^ I. '^ ■. , '-^^ ' * 6 ^ . \ ^ V 1 B i '/- ^ X -^ ^ , X -^ ^O -- ''j . ... s '^ .A ^S^ ^ „ , V ^ ,0"^ >.. ^." ., ^^ .n^ ^; ^ -fi \^^ * /' "^ 1^ o A o\ <;^ o O. ^o » V ■*• r'O' -0- ^~ -^ ^•^ .0^ c « N^^x. v^^^ ■^'*^. ^ .0- AN^ 1 \ V ^ ^ -^ " / ^ •\ .A ,<-^' ^ ^'h ■D "^ ^■.#^ .^^ X v-^' 9 I A \^ ' '<-', "<><^^ \V :y' .•3 ^ -O \J ^ '^^ -0^ 0" c^. ■J^' '// C- ./0>f;\ y- -^ \>> '^/>- ■i vX^ 4> -7 V <« \ •^c^. ''^/ /^■^'' S ' .'V O. '(;,>. \ L' 0^ '^ •>' o 0' Ill li!!! ,,,,,;;i-r|i|pi'|jj!;|!i|!ii;!]s^ i i i M i •i iiiii i'-il'liiib, m ill i!|! I s'^S'- pllil iJpiii' ! li iiiiiii! li liiiliiiliiiiilllil ''''■iiii i' i i! OUTLINES OF UNIVERSAL HISTORY, COUPBIBINO A CONCISE HISTORY OF THE WORLD, AEEANGED 80 THAT THE WHOLE MAY BE STUDIED BY PERIODS, OR THE HISTORY OF ANY COUNTRY MAY BE READ BY ITSELF. Written for LARDNER'S Cyclopaedia of History and Science, BY THOMAS KEIGHTLEY, AUTHOR OP THE ANCIENT MYTHOLOGY OP GREECE AND ROME, HISTORIES OP ENGLAND, ROME, GREECE, ITALY, ETC. REVISED AND BROUGHT DOWN TO THE PRESENT PERIOD, WITH QUESTIONS FOR EXAMINATION OF STUDENTS, AND ENGRAVED ILLUSTRATIONS OF STRIKING HISTORICAL EVENTS*^. ^^, . PHILADELPHIA : HOGAN & THOMPSON, 30 N. 1851. ^ / '■ ..s W THE LIBRARY OF CONGF.iiSS WASHINGTON J] Entered according to act of Congress, in the year 1851, by HoGAN & Thompson, in the Clerk's Office of the District Court for the Eastern District of Pennsylvania. TO THE READER. This work was written by Mr. Thomas Keightley, the historian, for the celebrated Cyclopedia of Science and His- tory, published by Dr. Dyonisius Lardner, and formed one of the volumes of that valuable series. It has been hereto- fore published in America as Dr. Lardner's History. It is now issued with the name of the proper author restored. The work is revised, with new illustrations and the narrative of events of the general history of the world extended to the present time. Philadelphia, 1851. NOTICES OF THE WORK. . * Outlines of History ; embracing a concise History of the World, from the earliest period.' This is the second Ameri- can edition of that useful work, and the editor, who is an eminent teacher of Philadelphia, has made valuable additions, and appended a set of questions for the examination of stu- dents. He expresses a high opinion of the author's labors, and is well qualified to judge of their character." — Nat. Gaz. " The main object of the work is, by givmg a selection of inter- esting and striking facts from more elaborate histories, properly and carefully arranged, with chronological tables, to render the study of general history less dry and repulsive than it has been heretofore. This, we think, is fully accomplished. Very great care appears to have been bestowed on the selections, and in ar- ranging the chronological tables, as well as in the classification of the historical matter into parts and chapters. The work will suf- ficiently recommend itself to all who examine it." — Saturday Evening Post. " To concentrate in one comparatively small volume, a complete epitome of the entire history of the world, ancient and modern, so treated as to present a correct image of it, would seem to be an object to be wished for, rather than expected ; the ' Outlines of History,' however, realize this object." — Asiatic Journal. "We consider that the editor, has done a service to schools, by the time and labor which he has bestowed upon this work ; the margi- nal dates will be found of great service, but the chapters of ques- lions upon the text, and upon the maps, to illustrate the geography of the history, will especially recommend the work to the attention of teachers." — U. S. Gazette. 1* Vi RECOMMENDATIONS. ''Philadelphia, 1831. "The 'Outlines of History,' I consider an excellent class-booh of general history for the use of schools. The questions added bj the editor, are a most valuable auxiliary for the teacher as well aii the pupil. I shall use the ' Outlines' in my school, and cordiall} recommend it to parents and teachers. S. C. WALKER." ^'Philadelphia, 1831. " Dear Sir, — I have just received a copy of your edition of the ' Outlines of History.' From a cursory perusal, I am disposed to give it a high rank as a school-book. So well satisfied am i with the arrangement and execution of the work, that I intend to put il immediately into the hands of a class in my own school. Very respectfully, your obedient servant, LEVI FLETCHER." Extract of a letter from Professor Worcester, of Amherst College^ Massachusetts, to the editor. " Recently I have given the ' Outlines of History' some atten- tion ; and as far as I can form an opinion from an examination ol" the pages which contain the most important subjects, I feel assuret that the work has high claims to the patronage of the public There is an uncommon tact and felicity in the sketches of eventit and delineations of character." After suggesting some alterations in the first chapter (whicli have been made in the present edition) Professor Worcester pra ceeds: — " I do not know where so large an amount of historical facts car be found in the same space as in the ' Outlines.' The author dis covers great acquaintance with the history of the world ; and hifi work must be supposed to be the result of long, diligent, extensiv(( and discriminating research. He has given us plurimum in parvo." NOTICE TO INSTRUCTERS, BY THE AMERICAN EDITOR. An attentive examination of Dr. Lardner's " Outlines of History," m the first appearance of the work, satisfied me that it was well suited to be a text-book of general history in our schools and acade- mies. The author's arrangement is such as to present a clear and connected view of the subject ; the accurate chronology serves not only to fix important dates, but to guard the student from errors which might arise in carrying forward the whole history in cormexion ; and the selection of interesting and striking facts, together with the mas- terly style of the narrative, may redeem the study of general history from that dry and repulsive character which has but too often been a just subject of complaint. With this view of the merits of the work, I determined to present it to my own classes, in order to show them how the particular periods :»f which they had been studying in the classical works of Robertson^ Scott, and others, stood related to the whole history of the world; and to guide them in the selection of periods and works of history for '.heir future study. To insure what seemed to me the largest possible amount of benefit to the pupil, from the study of the " Outlines," I have prepared ques- tions not only for examination on the text of the whole work, but also f eparate ones to be answered from maps. A moment's reflection will satisfy any intelligent person, that a constant referento to maps is ne- « essary to a correct understanding of history. It is more particularly important in a work like the present, where the transitions from one country to another are necessarily rapid and frequent. The questions :n this edition, referring to modern maps, may generally be answered /rom a school atlas, or from the large maps of Finley or Tanner, which are usually hung up in school-rooms. Those relating to ancient history will require an ancient atlas. Dr. Butler's, vthich I am happy (0 learn is shortly to be republished in this city, is the most conve- nient, as it is of the cabinet size, and is furnished with an index, by referring to which, any place named in the atlas may be found in a taw moments. In that part of the work which relates to modern his Viii NOTICE BY THE AMERICAN EDITOR. tory, obscure places, not to be found in any common maps, are some- times mentioned in connexion with marches, battles, &c. To ascer- tain the situation of these places, the pupil can have recourse to a gazetteer; but instances of this kind are of such rare occurrence, that a single gazetteer will amply suffice for the use of a whole school In preparing the questions, I have endeavored not to lose sight ol the principle of association by which events, dates, and places are connected and retained in the mind. Upon this circumstance, I found the hope, that young persons who may use the work will acquire, not only an acquaintance with the outlines of history, but a more lasting knowledge of chronology and of ancient and modern geography than is attainable by any other mode of study. The work itself, of which I have thus performed the bumble office of an editor, professes to be no more than a sketch. But it is a sketch drawn with a masterly hand. The broad lines — the characteristi*: features, are all there. The lover of antiquity — the admirer of chiv airy — the student of modern politics, will alike be struck with ili» force and truth ; and the tyro may contemplate its bold outline with out fear of its corrupting his taste or misleading his judgment. Philadelphia, Feb. 22, 1831. ADVERTISEMENT. The object of the writer of the present volume has been to give a correct, and, as far as the limits would permit, a comprehensive epitome of the history of the /vorld, which accuracy of narration and chronology ivould render valuable as a book of reference, and in which general views and reflections would remove the dryness inseparable from a mere enumeration of facts. As a portion of a Cyclopaedia, it is to the historical volumes what in an atlas the map of the world is to those which follow it, representing in connexion what they exhibit isolated, and displaying the relative pro- oortions and importance of the several parts. Its chief utility will be, doubtless, as a book of reference for those who are already versed in history ; yet it is hoped that even the tyro who studies it with attention will Qnd himself, at the termination of his labor, ignorant of few of the great characters and events which occur in the history of the world. Where brevity was a matter of such paramount im- portance, few will expect the graces of style; and it will, perhaps, be conceded, that the repetition of the same figures and modes of speech was almost un- avoidable where like events so frequently occurred. For the plan of dividing the last two parts into periods, the author is indebted to the celebrated Miil- ler, and has adopted several of the divisions employed by him in his Universal History. That work (the in- accuracies of which are to be regretted), with those of Schlosser, Gibbon, Hallam, and others, has been used X ADVERTISE3IENT. in addition to contemporary and national histories, in the composition of these Outlines. The Oriental por- tion has been chiefly derived from the works of Gib- bon, Malcolm, and Hammer. To prevent any misconception, the reader is requested to bear in mind that the present is a volume o( political history, mankind being- regarded in it only as divided into great societies ; and that, consequently, when true or false religions are spoken of, it is only in their poli- tical relations that they are viewed. In a work of this kind, theological discussion would have been altogether irrelevant and out of place. The history of any country or people may be read consecutively by consulting the index, where, under its name, will be found reference to the pages where it is mentioned. The wars and political relations of two countries will be best known by reading the corre- sponding parts of the history of each. ADVERTISEMENT OF THE AMERICAN EDITOR. In preparing the present edition for publication, it was deemed advisable to make some alterations and additions in that portion of the work which is devoted to the history of the United States. This part of the Outlines has therefore been enlarged, so far as was con- sistent with the author's general plan. CONTENTS. PART I. ANCIENT HISTORY. CHAP. I. INTRODUCTION. Of Man, 13. Original Seat of Man— Original State of Man, 14. Ethio- pians, 15. Chinese, 16. India, 18. CHAP. II. ANCIENT STATES OF CENTRAL AND WESTERN ASIA. Bactria, 19. Babylon and Assyria, 20. Egypt, 21. Phoenicia, 23. Phi- listines, 23. Arabia — Israelites, 24. Medes and Persians, 28. CHAP. III. GivE£jCFj« Early State of Greece, 33. Dorian Migration, 35. Sparta, 36. Athens, 37 CHAP. IV. GREECE TO HER SUBVERSION BY THE MACEDONIAN'S. Persian War, 40. Peloponnesian War, 42. Lacedaemonian Dominion, 45. Theban Dominion, 46. Philip of Macedon, 47. CHAP. V. ALEXANDER AND HIS SUCCESSORS. Alexander, 49. Division of Alexander's Dominions, 50. Macedon — Greece, 52. Thrace — Bithynia, 53. Pergamus — Pontus, 54. Armenia — Syria, 55. Judea, 56. Parthia — Egypt, 57. Carthage, 58. CHAP. VI. ROME TILL THE PUNIC WARS. Rome under Kings, 59. Tuscans — War with Porsenna, 63. Dictator — Secession — Tribunes, 64. Spurius Cassias, and the Agrarian Law, 66. The Decemvirs and the Twelve Tables, 67. Spurius Maelius, 68. Wars anterior to the Gallic Invasion, 69. Gauls — Capture of Rome, 70. Rebuilding of the City — Manlius, 71. Licinian Rogations, 72. Samnite War — Latin War, 74. War with Pyrrhus, 75. CHAP. VIL ROME TILL THE TIME OF THE GRACCHI. First Punic War, 76. lUyrian War — Gallic War, 77. Second Punic War, 78. Macedonian and Syrian Wars, 79 Conquest of Macedon — Third Punic War, 80. Achsan War, 81. Spanish Wars, 82. ^^^ CONTENTS. CHAP. VIII. ROME TILL THE END OF THE REPUBLIC. ^ rie Gracchi, 83. Jngurthine War — Cimbric War, 85. State of Rome — Social or Marsian War, 86. Milhridatic and Civil Wars, 87. From the Death of Sulla to that of Mithridates, 90. Catiline's Conspiracy — The Gallic War of Caesar, 92. Civil War of Caesar and Pompeius, 95. Events till the Death of Caesar, 97. Civil War with Brutus and Cassias, 98. War between Octavianus and Antonius, 99. CHAP. IX. ROME AN EMPIRE. Emperors of the Caesarian Family, 101. Emperors /^.hosen by the Army, 103. Flavian Family, 104. Good Emperors, 105. From Commodus to Diocletian, 107. Change in the Form of Government, 112. Cor- ruption of Christianity, 114. CHAP. X DECLINE OF THE EMPIRE. Successors of Constantine, 116. The Huns, 119. Wars with the Goths, 120. Genseric and Attila, 123. Fall of the Western Empire, 125. PART II. THE mDDLE AGES. CHAP. I. ESTABLISHMENT OF THE BARBARIANS IN THE WESTERN EMPIRE. Gotho-Gerrnans, 127. East-Goths in Italy, 128. Lombards in Italy — Burgundians, 130. Allemanni, 131. Franks, 132. Anglo-Saxons, 133. West-Goths in Spain, 134. Byzantine Empire, 135. Persia, 138. CHAP. II. THE TIMES OF MOHAMMED AND THE FIRST KHALIFS. Mohammed, 140. First Khalifs, 144. Conquest of Syria, 145. Con- quest of Persia — Conquest of Egypt, 147. Invasion of Africa, 148. Ommiyades — Conquest of Africa — Conquest of Spain, 149. Inva- sion of France by the Arabs, 150. France — Lombards, 151. Con- stantinople, 152. Germany — England, 153. CHAP. HI. THE TI.MES OF CHARLEMAGNE AND HAROON-ER-RASIIEED. Italy, 153. Empire of Charlemagne, 155. Feudal System, 156. Eng- land — Constantinople, 158. Abbasside KhaUfs, 159. CHAP. IV. DISSOLUTION OF THE GREAT EMPIRES OF THE EAST AND WEST. Empire of Charlemagne, 162. Hungarians, 163. Northmen, 164. France — Germany — House of Saxony, 166. Italy, 168. England, 169. CONTEXTS. XIU Russia, 170. Constantinople, 171. Decline of the Arabian Empire — Africa, 172. Decline of the Arabian Empire — Asia, 173. Causes of the Decline of the Power of the Khalifs, 17G. Gasnevides, 176. Spain, 177. CHAP. V. INCREASE OF THE PAPAL POWER. Italy — Normans, 178. Italy — Popes, 181. Italy — Lombard Citie?, 184. Germany — House of Franconia — France, 185. England, 186, Spain — Constantinople — Seljookians, 188. First Crusade, 191. CHAP. VI THE PAPAL POWER AT ITS GREATEST HEIGHT. Italy — Popes, 193. Italy — Lombard Cities. 196. Italy — Naples and Sicily — Germany — Swabian Line, 197. France, 200. England — Plantagenets, 201. Irelana — Spain, 204. Portugal — Almohades, 205. Persia — Saladin, 206 Mamelukes — Constantinople, 207 Crusades, 208. Mongols — Chingis Khan, 211. End of the Khalifat at Bagdad, 212. CHAP. vn. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER, AND FORMATION OF GREAT MONARCHIES. Italy — Popes, 213. Italy — Republics, 217. Italy — Naples and Sicily 220. Germany, 222. Switzerland — France, 224. England — Plan- tagenets, 230. Wars between France and England, 235. Scotland 239. Scandinavia, 242. Poland, 243. Hungary — Ottomans, 244 Tatars — Timoor, 247. Spain, 249. Portugal, 250 Discovery ol America, 251. PART III. MODERN HISTORY. CHAP. I. VIEW OF THE STATE OF EUROPE. England, 255. France — Germany — Russia, Poland, Scandinavia — Switzerland and Savoy, 256. Italy, 257. League of Cambray — Spain and Portugal, 258. Turkey, 259. Persia, 260. CHAP. n. TIMES OF CHARLES V, Accession of Charles V., 261. Reformation, 262. Wars of Charles V. and Francis I., 263. Affairs of Germany, 266. Renewed War with France, 267. Affairs of Germany, 268. England, 270. Spain and Portugal — Italy, 271. Denmark and Sweden — Turkey, 273. CHAP. m. TIMES OF PHILIP II. State of Europe at Philip's Accession, 274. France, 275. Netherlands, 280. England, 284. Portugal, 286. Germany — Poland, 287. Italy, 288. Turkey, 289 2 XIV CONTEXTS. CHAP. IV. TIMES OF THE THIRTY YEARS* WAR. Germany, 290. France, 295. Spain, 297. Portugal — Italy — England — The Civil War, 298. Holland, 300. Russia — Turkey and Persia, 301. CHAP. V. TIMES OF LOUIS XIV. France to the Peace of the Pyrenees, 302. England to the Restoration — Wars till the Peace of ]\imeguen, 303. England to the Revolution, 307. Wars to the Peace of Ryswick, 308. England — Spanish Suc- cession, 310. North of Europe — Peter the Great — Charles Xll., 315. England, 316. CHAP. VI. PERIOD OF COMPARATIVE REPOSE. England — Quadruple Alliance, 317. Russia — Turkish Wars, 319. Persia — Nadir Shah, 320. CHAP. VII. TIMES OF FREDERIC II. Silesian Wars, 321. England, 325. Russia — Seven Years' War, 326. Suppression of the Jesuits, 329. First Partition of Poland, .330. Turk- ish War — American Revolutionary War, 331. India — Persia, 338 CHAP. VIII. TIMES OF THE FRENCH REVOLUTION AND EMPIRE. State of Europe, 338. French Revolution, 341. Europe to the Peace of Campo Formio, 343. Affairs to the Assumption of the chief Power by Bonaparte, 345. Affairs till the Peace of Amiens, 346. Aflairs of Europe to the Treaty of Tilsit. 347. Affairs to the Treaty of Vienna, 348. Progress of the Peninsular War. 350. Invasion of Russia, and Fall of Napoleon, 351. Tabular View of Royal Dynasties. 359. Eminent Persons, 366. Chronological View of Important Events, 369. Index, 373 OUTLINES OF HISTORY, PART I. ANCIENT HISTORY. CHAP. I. INTRODUCTION. Gf Man. \tiv.B.\. are different races of our species occupying the vari ^+115 portions of the earth, and distinguished from each other b, corporeal structure and in mental development. These nu- merous varieties are, by the ablest investigators, reduced tc • hree principal stems, viz. the Caucasian or Europeo- Arabic, \he Mongol, and tiie Negro or Ethiopic. The first contauia '.he people of Asia, north and south of the great mountaui range of Caucasus and its continuation to the Ganges, of Eu- rope, and of Northern Africa ; the second, the people of East- ern Asia and of America ; the third, the tribes with woolly hair and sable skin that people the African continent. Yet many tribes can with difficulty be brought under any one of 1 hese divisions : the endless variety of Nature is as apparent in the human race as m the animal and vegetable kingdoms. Original Seat of Man. It is, perhaps, a useless inquiry to search afler the region in which man was first placed, the paradise of his first days of innocence and happiness. The only historic clew we pos- sess are the names of the four rivers, said in the Hebrew re- cords to have watered the land in which the progenitors of the human race dwelt. But as no four rivers can be found on the present surface of the earth agreeing in all points with those mentioned* by Moses, our safest course is to con- fine ourselves to the inquiry afler the region where those who escaped tb.e great inundation which overwhelmed the earth, resumed their destined course of life and occupation. The general opinion, founded on the literal interpretation of Scripture, has long been, that at the time of the flood all 16 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I. mankind perished, save Noah and liis family. Some, how- ever, contend, that the words of the inspired writer are not to be taken so strictly, and that as his information was des- tined for a particular portion of mankind, it may have been only intended to instruct them in the history of the race to which they belonged, while that of other races may have been passed over in silence. Hence they would infer that we are not precluded by the Mosaic writings from supposing, that at the time of the great inundation other portions of mankind may have saved themselves in different manners and places. They therefore look to the higher regions of the earth, and find three elevated ranges m the neighborhood of the three distinct stems into v/hich we find mankind divided. The lofty range extending from the Black Sea to the east of India has been at all times regarded as being, either itself or the lands south of it, the original seat of the Caucasian race. Still more east, beyond Tibet and the desert of Gobi, rises anotber range, regarded as the original seat of the Mongol race which dwells around it : and the Mountains of the Moon and their branches are thought to point out the primitive abodes of the Negro race. America, it is probable, was not, till long after, adapted for the abode of man. These, however, are all questions of curiosity rather than of historical importance. At the dawn of all history we find the various races of mankind distinct, and no history informs us of the origin of the differences. We have therefore only to consider them in their separate states, or as intermingled with and affecting each other. Original State of Man. Another point which has given occasion to a good deal of ingenious conjecture, is the original state of mankind. Philo- sophers, on surveying the human race in its different situa- tions, have traced out four distinct states, — those of the mere fruit and plant-eater, the hunter, the herdsman, and the cul- tivator, — and have generally inferred that man has pro- gressively passed through all these states, commencing at the lowest. Yet this is still but mere conjecture, unsupported by any historic evidence. No tribe has ever yet been found to civilize itself; instruction and improvement always com-e to it from abroad ; and experience would rather lead to the in- ference, that the savage is a degeneration from the civilized life. In the very earliest history, that of the Bible, we find the pastoral and agricultural life coexisting almost from tJie commencement of the world ; at all periods we find man possessed of the useful and necessary arts, the master of I ;HAP. L INTRODUCTION. l7 flocks and herds, the employer of the spade, the plow, and the sickle. It is in vain we seek for commencement, — all is progress. In imagination, we may conceive a time, when the human race was in the lowest degree of culture ; but, on inquiry, we everywhere meet the arts, meet men collected into societies, meet property, legislation, and government. It may perhaps be collected from the testimony of the sacred Scriptures, and from the deductions of philosophy, that man has always existed in society, and that the first societies were families, the first form of government patriarchal : and the following may be stated as the most probable hypothesis ; namely, that man commenced his existence in the social state under the mild and gentle form of government denominated patriarchal ; that his first nourishment was the fruits of trees and plants, which ripened in abundance for the supply of his wants in some temperate and fertile region of the earth, possibly that at the south of Caucasus, or where now extends the paradisal vale of Cashmeer; that gradually he became a keeper of flocks and herds, and a cultivator of corn; that families spread and combined ; and that from their union arose monarchies, the most ancient form of extended civil government. It is in this last state that we propose to consider mankmd, and to trace the great and important events that have taken place among the various stems and branches of the human race; to show how, beneath the guiding energy of the Creator and Ruler, the great machine of human society has proceeded on its way, at thnes advancing, at times apparently retrograding, in the path of perfection and happiness. And the final result of our view of the deeds and destinies of man will, we trust, be a firm conviction in the mind of every reader that private and public felicity is the result alone of good education, wise laws, and just government, and that all power which is not based on equity is unstable and transient. It is to the Caucasian race that the history of the world must mainly confine itself, for with that race has originated almost all that ennobles and dignifies mankind : it is the chief depository of literature, and the great instructor of philosophical, political, and religious systems. We shall re- strict ourselves, therefore, chiefly to the history of that race, briefly premising views of the state and character of the -Ethiopians, the Mongols, and the Indians. Ethiopians. We have already observed, that unds'r this name are in- ij^uded all the inhabitants of Africa whose bodily conforma- 2* 18 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I tion does not prove them to be of the Caucasian race. The indefiniteness of the term JFAhio-jnan employed by the Greeks, and applied by them to all people of a dark complexion, and the similar indefiniteness of tlie Hebrew Cush, prevent our being- able positively to say wliether the obscure traditi?ns of the Ethiopian power extending- along- the Mediterranean to the straits of Gades, and of that people having, under their king Tearcho, made themselves so formidable to the inhabit- ants of the coasts of the JEg-ean, are to be understood of a purely Negro empire, or of, what is much more probable, a state like that of Egypt, where the lower orders of society were of Negro, the higher and dominant classes of Caucasian race. Within the historic period of both ancient and modern times, the ^Ethiopian race only appears as furnishing slaves for the service of tiie Caucasian, to whom it has been always as inferior in mental power as in bodily configuration. Though modern travel has discovered within the torrid wastes of Africa large communities ruled over by Negro princes, and a knowledge of many of the useful arts, yet civilization and policy have never reared their heads in the ungenial clime. As literature has never been theirs, whatever revolutions may have taken place among tliem are buried in oblivion, and they claim no station of eminence in the history of the world. The Chinese. The Mongols stand far higlier in the scale of intellect and in importance than the ^Ethiopians. As we proceed, we shall find them striking terror into Europe by their arms and their numbers. One nation of this race, the Chinese, has long been an object of curiosity to the western world, from its ex- tent of empire and the singularity of its social institutions. The Chinese empire occupies an extent of surface equal to that of all Europe, containing within it every variety of soil and climate, and natural production ; thus rendering it in itself perfectly independent of all foreign aid. In its social institutions it has presented through all periods a model of the primitive form of government, the patriarchal, and an exemplification of the evil of continuing it beyond its just and necessary period. In China all is at a stand-still ; suc- ceeding ages add not to the knowledge of those that have gone before ; no one must presume to be wiser than his fathers : around the Son of Heaven, as they designate their emperor, assemble the learned of the land as his council; so in the provinces the learned in their several degrees around the governor; and laws and rules are passed from the highest down to the lowest, to be by them given to the people. Every CHAP. I. introduct;on. 19 even the most minute, circumstance of common life is regu lated by law. It matters not, for example, what may be the W(^a,lt]i of an individual, he must wear the dress and build his house after the mode prescribed by ancient regulations. In China every thing bears the stamp of antiquity: immovable- ness seems to be characteristic of the nation ; every imple- ment retains its primitive rude form ; every invention has stopped at the first step. The gradual progress towards per- fection of the Caucasian race is unknown in China ; the plow is still drawn by men ; the written characters of their mono- syllabic language stand for ideas, not for simple sounds ; and the laborious task of learning to read occupies the time that might be employed in the acquisition of valuable knowledge. Literature has been at all periods cultivated by a nation where learning (such as it is) is the only road to honor and dignity, and books beginning with the five Kings of Con-fu- tsee, which equal the four Vedas of India in the honor in which they are held, have at all times been common in this empire. A marked feature in the Chinese character is the absence of imagination: all is the product of cold reason. The Kings speak not of a God, and present no system of re- ligion : every thing of that nature in China came from India. Tiie uncertain history of China ascends to about 2500 years before the Christian era ; the certain history commences about eight centuries before Christ. According to Chi- nese tradition, the founders of the state, a hundred families in number, descended from the mountains of Kulcum, on the lake of Khukhunor, north-west of China; and hence the middle provinces of Chensee, Leong, Honan, &c. were the first seats of their cultivation. These provinces are in the same climate as Greece and Italy. Twenty-two dynasties of princes are enumerated as having governed China to the present day, the actual emperor being the fifth monarch of the twenty-second or Tai Tsin dynasty. Of these dynasties, .me of the most remarkable is the Song, which ruled over the southern empire at the time China was divided into two, and fell beneath the arms of the Yver or mingrled nomadic tribes, led to conquest by the descendants of Chingis Khan. This line, which reigned from A. D. 960 to 1280, distinguish- ed itself by the encouragement of the arts and sciences ; it cultivated relations with Japan, fostered trade and commerce, and in all things went contrary to the established maxims of Chinese policy, and while it lasted the empire bloomed be- neath its sway ; but the hordes of the desert levelled its glo- ries, and its fate has been ever since held up as an awful warning to those who venture to depart even a hair's breadth 20 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I. from the ancient manners. At an earlier period, under the dynasty of Tsin (248—206 B. C), China first received reli- gion from India ; but the missionaries were not artful or pru- dent enough to adapt it to Chinese maxims of state, and they were unsuccessful in the contest between them and the learned. At a later period, when the Buddhism of India had become the Lamaism of Tibet, it entered China as the reli- gion of Foe, and by the worldly prudence of its bonzes or priests, succeeded in gaining a favorable reception and be- coming the religion of the state. Every thing that hopes for success in this country must fall in with the national charac- ter. China has often been overcome, and its reigning dynasty changed ; but the manners and institutions of China remain unaltered, as different from those of the Caucasian race aa the features of the Chinese face are from those of the Euro- pean. India. From the Chinese, a nation of cold reason, almost no reli- gion, monosyllabic, unharmonious language, and literature full of events and valuable matter, we pass to their neighbors of India, whqm every thing but color indicates to belong tc the same family with the Europeans. Here we find glowing fancy, and in Brahmanism a luxuriant system of religion, a majestic and richly inflected language, and a literature full to exuberance of the highest poetry. But India has no his- tory or chronology of its own, and it is in the time of the Persian kings that it first appears in the history of the world. Yet the testimony of antiquity, its proximity to the original land of the Caucasian race, and the primitive character of its social institutions, prove it to be one of the most ancient nations of the earth. In India, religion and priestly influence have effected what law and tradition have produced in China — the absolute pros- tration of the intellect of the nation. The system of castes sets a bar to all ambition and to all energy. No development of mind can take place where every man's station in life is immutably marked out for him. The nation presents at the present day the same spectacle which excited the wonder of the Greeks who accompanied Alexander ; an immense, gentle, and peaceful population; abundance of wealth ; all the useful, necessary, and ornamental arts of life; a manifold, intricate system of religion, abounding in rites and ceremonies, many of them of the most lascivious character. Ijike China, India is an instance of the fatal effect of check- ing the free development of mind : here, too, every thing if CIIAF. I. CENTRAL AND WESTERN ASIA. 21 stationary. The love of country is a feeling' unknown to the hreast of the inhabitants, and India has been at all periods the easy prey of every invader whom its wealth attracted. Omittino" the fabulous expeditions of Sesostris and Semiramis, the earliest account we have of a conquest of any part of this country is of that by Cyrus and Darius I., kings of Persia ; next Alexander the Great with ease overthrew all that op- posed him, and, but for the refusal of his troops, would, have planted his standards on the banks of the Ganges. Seleucus Nicator ruled over the provinces conquered by Alexander, reached in conquest the banks of the Jumnah, and subdued a large portion of Bengal. When the feeble successors of Se- leucus had lost their power over other subject nations, their /icegerents were still obeyed during a period of 60 years by a great part of India. A hundred and twenty years after the death of Alexander, Antiochus the Great invaded and conquered a considerable portion of India ; and when he was overcome by the Romans, all his possessions west of the Indus fell to Euthydemus, the Grecian sovereign of Bactria, and India cheerfully obeyed him. He was unable to effect the succession of his son Demetrius in Bactria ; but over the In- dian provinces that prince reigned without opposition. Eu- cratides, the fifth of the Grseco-Bactrian kings, reunited to Bactria the Indian possessions, and every succeeding- reigning- line in Persia had dominions in India, till it was eventually overrun and occupied by Mohammedan conquerors. For the last thousand years it has been the prey of every foreign spoiler. Thus India seems destined never to enjoy national independence : her countless millions doomed for ever to bow beneath a foreign sceptre, she stands an instructive monu- ment of the evils resulting from fettered intellect and priestly dominion. CIJAP. II. THE ANCIENT STATES OF CENTRAL AND WESTERN ASIA. Bactria. According to the traditions of hoary antiquity preserved in the sacred books of the Parsees, and in the Shah Nameh, the immortal poem of Ferdoosee, there existed in the most remote ages, with sacerdotal institutions akin to those of India, a mighty and extensive empire in Bactria or Eastern Persia. Grecian writers confirm this account, and it is farther proved 22 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART 1. by the route of the Caucasian race, who, in their progress along the mountains, must have been attracted by these fer- tile regions, abounding in every production, protected by lofty impassable mountains to the north, and bordering on the realms of India and Babylonia. The branch of the Caucasian stem, called the Indo-Persian race, spread over Iran, the country between Babylonia and India. Its chief seat was Bactria. Here, according to Persian tradition, ruled Cayu- marath, the first of men, or of kings, and his descendants, till Jemsheed was overthrown by the Aramaean Zohak. The system of religion named from Zoroaster prevailed in Bac- tria, and the sacerdotal caste stood in rights and privileges nearly on a par with the Bramins of India, who, probably, possessed originally a similar institution. The idolatrous Aramaean priesthood united itself with that of Bactria; but when the Aramaean or Babylonian dominion sank, and the Iranian revived in the person of Feridoon, the old religion recovered its dominion. Changes of dynasty affected it not ; it passed to the Modes and Persians, and still was flourishing when the disciples of Mohammed extinguished it in blood ; and it yet lingers among the Parsees of India, the descend- ants of those who sought refuge in that country from perse- cution. But the simple relig-ion of Zoroaster, which wor- shipped under the emblem of light and fire the Author of life and happiness, had not tlie debasing effects of the intricate idolatry and metaphysics of India ; and if Iran fell beneath foreign conquerors, the fault was not in her system of re- ligion, Babylon and Assyria. We now begin to tread on more solid ground, for in tlie earliest portion of the far most credible ancient history, that of the Hebrews, we observe a recognition of the empires of Babylon and Assyria. From them, too, we may infer, that Babylon was the more ancient, for the city of that name is mentioned at a time while the Hebrev.'s were still in the no- madic state. We hear not till long after of Nineveh, the Assyrian capital on the Tigris. The Babylonians dwelt on the Tigris and the Lower Eu' phrates, and their industry had made their land the garden of Asia. They were a peaceful people, as is shown by their manufactures, and their provisions for watering their lands. Herodotus describes them as a luxurious trafficking people, fond of splendid dress and ornaments. Various dynasties of kings of the surrounding nations are related to have ruled ir Babylon. This wealthy state must have been at all times ex CHAP. II. CENTRAL AND WESTERN ASIA. 23 posed to the incursions of the nomadic tribes that surrounded it, and sometimes conquered by them. The city is stated to have been built in the most remote ages by the god Bel, and to have been enlarged and adorned by Semiramis, probably also a mythic personage. In the historic period, we find it farther improved and adorned by Nebuchadnezzar and the queen Nitocris. The reign of Nebuchadnezzar was the most brilliant period of Babylon. He ruled from the foot of Caucasus to the deserts of Libya. Judaea, Phoenicia, Egypt, all the tribes of the desert, did homage to his power. But the glory was transient : in the reign of his son the Babylo- nian dominion sank, never to rise, beneath the arms of the Medes and Persians. The Assyrian empire on the Tigris and the Upper Eu- phrates, rose much later than the Babylonian, which it sub- dued, but which under the father of Nebuchadnezzar cast off the yoke, and attained the power we have just described. Of the Assyrian history little is known. A caste of priests named Chaldeans, distinguished for their knowledge of the order and courses of the heavenly bodies, the objects of Babylonian worship, was to be found here ; but the early establishment of despotism permitted not a division of the people into any other castes. These Chaldeans were divided into several orders under a head appointed by the king. Birth was not a necessary qualification for admittance into their body. We find (as in the case of Daniel) Jews placed in the highest rank among them. They derived their support from lands assigned to them. The nature of the oc- cupations of the Babylonians made a race of men of import- ance, who pretended to a knowledge of the ways of the gods, who measured the land, marked the seasons, and announced the hours of good and evil fortune : yet almost all their boasted wisdom was mere jugglery and deceit. The valley watered by the Nile, and inclosed between the desert on the west, and barren mountains on the east, was the seat of one of the earliest and most renowned empires of which we have any record remaining. A branch of the Cau- casian race, it would appear, crossed the strait of Bab-el-Man- deb. It mastered the ^Ethiopians whom it met, and founded an empire on the system of castes in Nubia ; then advanced with the stream, and established that of Upper Egypt ; and, * Egypt, though properly in Africa, has been included in this chapter, to avoid needless subdivision. 24 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART T. lastly, spread over Lower Eg-ypt and the Delta now formed by the Nile. But this was long anterior to the commence- ment of history. So early as the days of Abranam, Lower Egypt was the seat of a rich, flourishing, and civilized state. The turn of mind of this branch of the Caucasian stem was similar to that of the branch which established itself in India. Hence some have needlessly supposed that one country was colonized by the other. Here, as in India, the pr'estly caste enjoyed high power and privileges. They were the deposi- tories of all arts and sciences ; they not only were the di- rectors of the employments of life, but possessed the awful office of judges of the dead, who were brought before their tribunal ere consigned to the tomb; and by numerous prac- tices and ceremonies, they for ever kept the idea and the fear of death before the eyes of the people. Their own religious system, known to the initiated alone, was perfectly simple : what they taught the people in symbol and figure was com- plex, obscene, and degrading. Independence was secured to the sacerdotal order by the immunity of their lands from im- posts. Yet priestly sway never attained the same height here as in India. Egypt was a conquered country, and numerous tribes of nomades and other classes, who never completely amalgamated with the conquerors, roamed the land, some- times independent, sometimes obedient. Hence the king was in a great measure independent of the priests. The history of Joseph informs us, that the king had a fiflh of the produce of the land, and, as in the case of this minister, could ap- point a stranger and an uninitiated person to the highest office of the state, and give him in marriage the daughter of the high priest. • We therefore read of internal tumults and for- eign wars, the fabulous expeditions of Sesostris, the real campaigns against Judsea and more distant powers. Arabian and Nubian monarchs have ruled over Egypt ; it fell before the Babylonian, Persian, Grecian, and Roman power, yet the castes, as in India, subsisted through every shock. Where the system of castes prevails, the inferior castes are always of a peaceful, industrious character. Each per- son's walk of life being marked out for him, he pursues it with the regularity and mechanism of mere matter. All we learn of ancient Egypt corresponds with this principle : the narrowness and fertility of the land caused an excessive pop- ulation ; agriculture could employ but a small portion of the people; the sedentary arts were therefore cultivated to a great extent, and the division of labor was carried almost be- yond any thing similar in modern times. The accounts we CHAP. II. CENTRAL AND WESTERN ASIA. 25 have of emigrations from Egypt are obscure, and many of them not very credible. The plan devised for preventing the evils of over-populousness was, to accustom the lower orders to a spare diet, and employ them on the construction of huge edifices, destined for tombs, or the temples of religion. Hence the pyramids and excavated temples which still excite the wonder of the world, and prove what may be effected by the aid of the simplest machinery, with time, numbers, and per- severance. The knowledge of the Egyptians has been much over- rated. The great trait of a sacerdotal period is everywhere to be discerned. Every thing advanced to a certain point of perfection ; there stopped, never to advance, but rather to recede. It is remarked, that in design and execution the more ancient monuments exceed the later. PhcBnicia. A portion of the Aramsean race was settled on thfc Persian Gulf. It was given to trade and commerce, and settled a colony on the coast of Syria. These colonists were named the Phoenicians ; their chief city was Sidon, and they after- wards built Tyre on an island near the coast. Their manu- factures, especially of glass, were celebrated from the most ancient times. While surrounded by nomadic tribes, they seem to have made little advances in wealth and power, though they had extended their settlements to some distance inland. But when the Israelites took possession of Canaan, and applied themselves to agriculture, the trade of the Phoe- nicians rapidly increased ; their ships visited the isles and coasts of the vEgean, and the distant ports of Italy and Spain. Numerous colonies, of which Carthage was chief, were es- tablished by them. In their impregnable island-city they could bid defiance to the might of Israel, Egypt, and Babylon, Luxury flourished in this city, whose " merchants were princes :" their religion was bloody and cruel, their form of government monarchical. Philistines. This people, celebrated for their wars with the Israelites, dwelt on a small strip of sea-coast south of the Tyrians. They were originally, it is thought, a colony from Egypt. They possessed five cities under the government of five princes, and confederated tog-ether for mutual defence. Trade and piracy were their chief means of subsistence. Their long and obstinate resistance against the arms of the Israelites testifies 3 26 OUTLINES OF IlISTORV. PART \ their valor and love of independence. A seafaring people, the chief object of their worship was a sea-god, Dagon. Arabia. From the earliest dawn of history the Arabs have led the nomadic life, to which the nature of their country has des- tined them. The numerous tribes, under the government of their sheikhs and emirs, roam the desert apart — now in friend- ship, now in hostility. The camel and the horse are their companions and support. The strangers who penetrate their wilds have always been regarded as lawful prizes. Under the various names of Edomites, Ishmaelites, Midianites, &.c. we find their tribes in friendly or hostile relations with the nation of Israel, with whom many of them acknowledged a kindred. Their religious worship was chiefly directed to the heavenly bodies. Israelites. At a very remote period of antiquity, when the sacerdotal caste in Babylonia had begun to spread idolatry even among the nomadic tribes of the land, a man named Abraham, dis- tinguished by wealth, wisdom, and probity, in obedience to the commands of the Deity, quitted the land of his fathers, and journeyed with his family and his herds towards the land of Canaan. His faith in the only God, and his obedience to his will, were here rewarded by increasing wealth and num- bers. His son and grandson continued the same nomadic life in Palestine which Abraham and his fathers had led. By a surprising turn of fortune, one of the sons of Jacob, the grandson of Abraham, became vizier to the king of Egypt : he brought his father and family to that country, and a dis- trict in the north-east of Egypt was assigned to them by the kinsr for the sustenance of themselves and their flocks and herds. During 430 years their numbers increased exceedingly. A new dynasty now filled the Egyptian throne, and they feared the power of a numerous people attached to the former line, and dwelling in the key of the land towards Asia. They sought, therefore, to change their mode of life, and by impos- ing heavy tasks upon them to check their increase, and grad ually to wear them out. During this period of oppression Moses was born. The Egyptian monarch had ordered all the male children of the Israelites to be destroyed at the birth ; and the mother of Moses, after concealing him for some time, was obliged to expose him. The daughter of the king found him, and reared CHAP. II CENTRAL AND WESTERN ASIA. 29 him as her own. As he grew up, he was instructed in the secret wisdom of the priests ; but neither knowledge, nor the honors and splendor of the court, could make him behold with indifference the state of his native people. He mourned over their oppression, and panted to behold them in their former happy independence. Seeing an Egyptian ill-treat an Israelite, he slew him ; and, fearing the vengeance of the king, fled to Arabia, where he led a shepherd's life, near Sinai, in the service of an Arab sheikh. While here, he received the command of God to lead his people out of Egypt : he returned thither, and, by performing many wondrous deeds, compelled the reluctant monarch to let his slaves depart. But Pharaoh repented, pursued, and he and his whole army perished in the waves of the Red Sea. During their long residence in Egypt, the Israelites had gradually been passing from the nomadic to the agricultural life, and had contracted much of the impure religious ideas and licentious manners of the Egyptians. They were now to be brought back to the simple religion of their flithers, and a form of government established among them calculated to preserve them in the purity of their simple faith. It pleased the Deity to be himself, under the name of Jehovah, the King of Israel, and their civil institutions were to resemble those of the country they had left, freed from all that might be pre- judicial to the great object in view — that of making them a nation of monotheistic faith. In the midst of lio-htning: and tliunder, while Sinai re- echoed to the roar, the first simple elements of their future law were presented to the children of Israel. No images, no hieroglyphics, w?re admitted into the religion now given : ceremonies of significant import were annexed, to employ the minds and engage the attention of a rude people. There was a sacerdotal caste, to whom the direction of all matters relat- ing to religion and law (which were in this government the same) was intrusted : but they had no dogmas or mysteries wherewith to fetter the minds of the people ; and being as- signed for their maintenance, not separate lands, but a por- tion of the produce of the whole country, their interest would lead them to stimulate the people to agriculture, and thus carry into effect the object of the constitution. As priests, judges, advocates, writers, and physicians, they were of im- portant service in the community, and fully earned the tenth of the produce which was allotted to them. Their division into priests and Levites was a wise provision against that too sharp distinction v/liich in E^ypt and India prevailed be- 3* 30 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART f. tween the sacerdotal and the other castes. The Levites, bein^ assigned some lands, formed a connecting" link between the priests and the cultivators. Agriculture being- the destination of the Israelites, trade was discourag-ed ; for the fairs and markets were held in the neighborhood of the heathen temples. But to compensate them for the prohibition against sharing in the joyous festivi- ties of the surrounding nations, feasts were held three times in each year to commemorate their emancipation, the giving- of the law, and their abode in the desert. At these festivals, all Israel was required to attend, that the bonds of brother- hood might be kept up among the tribes by participation in social enjoyment. Thus, many years before Con-fu-tsee gave the Kings to the Chinese, long ere any lawgiver arose in Greece, Moses, directed by God, gave to Israel, in the wastes of Arabia, a constitution, the wonder of succeeding ages, and ever memo- rable for the influence it has exerted on the minds and msti- tutions of a large and important portion of mankind. During forty years, till all the degenerate race who had left Egypt had died off, Moses detained the Israelites in the deserts of Arabia, accustoming them to obey their law, and preparing them for the conquest of the land assigned as their possession. At the end of that period their inspired legislator led them to the borders of the promised land, and having ap- pointed Joshua to be his successor, he ascended a lofty moun- tain to take a view of the country he was not to enter: ho there died in the 120th year of his age. Under the guidance of Joshua, Israel passed the Jordan ; the God of Moses was with them, and inspired them with valor to subdue their foes. A speedy conquest gave them the land. No fixed govern- ment had been appointed ; the people gradually fell from the service of Jehovah to worship the idols of the surrounding nations ; and Jehovah gave them up into the power of their enemies. At times there arose among them heroes, denomi- nated judges, who, inspired with patriotism and zeal for the law, aroused the slumbering tribes, and led them to victory. Then, too, arose that noble order of prophets who, in heaven- mspired strains of poetry, exalted the Mosaic law, and im- pressed its precepts, its rewards, and threats, on the minds of the people. After the time of the judges, the temporal and spiritual dignities were, contrary to the intention of the lawgiver, B. c. united, and the high-priest exercised the sovereign power. 1156. This lasted but a short time: in the person of the upright Samuel, a prophet, the temporal was again divided from th» CHAP. II. CENTiiAL AND WESTEKN ASIA. 31 spiritual dignity. The sons of Samuel trod not in the steps of their virtuous father. The prospect of being" governed by ihem, and the want of a military leader to command them in 1,heir wslts with the surrounding nations, made the people call g ^ on Samuel to give them a king. He complied with their 1095 wishes, warning them of the consequences of their desire, and appointed Saul. This monarch was victorious in war ; but he disobeyed the voice of the prophet, and misfortune ever after pursued him. It pleased Jehovah to take the king- dom from him, and Samuel anointed the youthful David to occupy his place. Saul was seized with a melancholy derange- ment of intellect. David, who was his son-in-law, won the af- fections of the powerful tribe of Judah ; but while Saul lived, he continued in his allegiance, though his sovereign sought his life. At length, Saul and his elder and more worthy sons fell 105.5 in battle against the Philistines, and the tribe of Judah called their young hero to the vacant throne. The other tribes ad- hered during seven years to the remaining son of Saul. His death, by the hands of assassins, gave all Israel to David. i^"^^' David was the model of an Oriental prince, handsome in his person, valiant, mild, just, and generous, humble before his God, and zealous in his honor, a lover of music and poetry, himself a poet. Successful in war, he reduced beneath his sceptre all the countries from the borders of Egypt to the mountains whence the Euphrates springs. The king of Tyre was his ally ; he had ports on the Red Sea, and the wealth of commerce flowed during his reign into Israel. He fortified and adorned Jerusalem, which he made the seat of govern- ment. Glorious prospects of extended empire, and of the diffusion of the pure religion of Israel, and of happy times, floated before the mind of the prophet-king. The kingdom of Israel was hereditary ; but the monarch might choose his successor among his sons. Solomon, sup- ported by Nathan, the great prophet of those days, and by the affection of his father, was nominated to succeed. The qualities of a magnificent Eastern monarch met in the son of David. He, too, was a poet; his taste was great and splendid ; he summoned artists from Tyre (for Israel had none,) and, with the collected treasure of his father, erected at Jerusa- lem a stately temple to the God of Israel. He first gave the nation a queen, in the daughter of the king of Egypt, for whom he built a particular palace. He brought horses and chariots out of Egypt to increase the strength and the glory of his empire. Trade and commerce deeply engaged the thoughts of this politic prince : with the Tyrians. his subjects visited the ports of India and eastern Africa : he built the 32 OUTLINES OF IIISTORV. PART I. city of Tadmor or Palmyra in the desert, six days' journey from Babylon, and one from the Euphrates — a point of union for the traders of various nations. Wealth of every kind flowed in upon Jerusalem ; but it alone derived advantage from the splendor of the monarch : the rest of Israel was heavily taxed. On the death of Solomon, the tribes called upon his son to B. c. reduce their burdens : he haughtily refused, and ten of the 975. tribes revolted and chose another king. An apparently wise a really false, policy, made the kings of Israel set up the sym- bolical mode of worship practised in Egypt. Judah, too, wavered in her allegiance to Jehovah. A succession of bold, honest, inspired prophets, reproved, warned, encouraged the kindred nations, and a return to the service of the true God was always rewarded by victory and better times. At length 721. the ten tribes, by their vices and idolatry, lost the divine pro- tection : they were conquered and carried out of their own country by the king of Assyria, and their land given to strangers. A similar fate befell tlie kingdom of Judah : the house of David declined, and the king of Babylon, Nebuchad- 585. nezzar, carried away the people to Babylonia. On the fall of that state, seventy years afterwards, Cyrus king of Persia allowed to return to their own land a people whose faith bore some resemblance to the simple religion of the Persians, and whose country secured him an easy access to Egypt. Restored to their country, the Israelites, now called Jews, became as distinguished for their obstinate attachment to their law as they had been before for their facility to desert it. But the purity and simplicity of their faith were gone; they now mingled with it various dogmas which they had learned during their captivity. The schools of the prophets, whence in the old times had emanated such lofty inspiration, simple piety, and pure morals, were at an end ; sects sprang up among them, and the haughty, subtle, trifle-loving Pharisees, the wordly-minded Sadducees, and the simple, contemplative Essenes, misunderstood and misinterpreted the pure ennobling precepts of the Mosaic law. Medes and Persians. In the west of Asia the ancient sacerdotal constitutions had been now almost wholly abolished. To them succeeded des- potism ; and from the erection of the first great Assyrian and Babylonian monarchies to the present day, the same appear- ance has been repeated with little alteration. One people has constantly succeeded another in the dominion over the lands between the Indus and the Mediterranean. So long as its CHAP. II. CENTllAL AND WESTERN ASIA. 33 military virtue has remained imenervated by luxury and pleasure, it has retained its sway : each dynasty has sustained itself till it sank in sloth, and a bold and powerful usurper tumbled it from the throne for his own descendants to un- dersfo a similar destiny. The Assyrian power flourished and ruled over Asia. In the country south of the Caspian, named Media, the people, as did Israel in the days of Samuel, called for a king* ; but for a judge, not a warrior. Dejoces, distinguished for his wisdom and justice, was the first monarch : his grandson Cyaxares was allied to the king of Babylon, Nebuchadnezzar, and be- neath their united efforts, Nineveh, tlie Assyrian capital, and with it the power of the empire, fell. At this period the Scythians spread their swarms over Lesser Asia, Iran, Syria, and even Palestine, The king of Media freed Asia from their destructive hordes. In Lesser Asia there had been hitherto numerous little states, attached to temples of dif- ferent gods; at these temples were held fairs and markets, and they were all closely connected with each other. At the period of the Scythian invasion these states were dissolved, and the kingdoms of Cilicia, Phrygia, and Lydia, were formed from them. Of the history of the two former we are totally ignorant. The two first dynasties of the Lydians, the Atya- b. c des and the Heracleides, are mythic : the history of Gyges, 730 the first king of the Mermnade dynasty, is in part fable. In his time began the connexion between the Greeks and Lydians, who differed not much from each other in manners and religion. His successor, Ardys, warred with the Grecian colonies planted on the coast of Asia before there was any extensive monarchy in Asia Minor ; and the Cimmerians, a horde from the Black Sea, poured over Lydia and Phrygia, and possessed them during the reign of his successor, Sadyat- tes. Alyattes, the next king, drove the Cimmerians from Lesser Asia at the time that Cyaxares expelled the Scythians from his dominions. The Lydian monarch ruled Lesser Asia, the Median from Bactria to the Tigris : war arose between them, the king of Babylon became the mediator, and a mar- riage united the rival princes. During the reign of Astyages, the successor of Cyaxares, the tribes of the Persians, a nation, in religion, laws, and manners, closely resembling the Modes, and who dwelt, partly stationary, partly nomadic, in the lands between the Persian Gulf and the mountains of Bactria, were united un- der Cyrus their native prince, and gained the dominion over the Medes. Cyrus was grandson to Astyages ; but his early 34 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART L history is related differently by the Grecian historians. Cy- rus led to war the mass of the Persian tribes, united M'ith the more warlike portion of the Medes, and by his conquests founded the Persian empire. He first subdued the nations of the east, next turned his arms against the Sacians and other freebooting hordes of Caucasus, then led his mingled host against Croesus, king of Lydia, who had reduced the Greeks of the coast, who so long had bid defiance to his pre- decessors. Croesus was defeated and taken prisoner, but treated with kindness by the conqueror, whose friend and adviser he ever after continued. The whole of Lesser Asia, including the Grecian cities, submitted to Cyrus. Babylonia had been in alliance with Croesus: its capital shared the fate B. c. of that of Lydia. Here Cyrus found the Jews who had been 553. transplanted thither when Jerusalem was taken and plunder- ed. Similarity of religious faith, humanity, and policy, co- operated to procure them permission to return and rebuild their city. Cyrus, it is possible, now meditated the conquest of Egypt. Judaea was the key to that country, and a grateful people might favor the operations of the Persian troops. The ancient cities of Persia, Pasagarda and Persepolis, where the treasures and chronicles of the empire were kept, and the kings crowned and interred, were considered too remote to be the seat of so extensive an empire as was that of Persia. Babylon was well adapted for that purpose ; but a Persian monarcli should reside in Persia, and Cyrus founded Susa on the Persian soil, at a convenient distance from Babylon. The 529. last expedition Cyrus undertook was against the Scythians or Turks, and in an engagement with their tribes he lost his life. Cyrus possessed all the qualities of a great prince : his memory was long held in honor throughout the East, and his virtues drew forth the praises of the sages of Greece. Cyrus was succeeded by his son Cambyses, who invaded and conquered Egypt, aided by the Phoenicians, jealous of the favor shown by the last Egyptian kings to the Greeks. Cam- byses attempted farther conquests ; but his troops were driven back by the -^ithiopians, and an army sent to take possession of the oasis of Hammon perished in the sands of the desert. He died by a wound from his own sword — a divine judgment, according to the Egyptians, for violating their sacred ox Apis — as he was about to return to Persia, where a Magian had, under the name of his brother Smerdis, seized on the throne. 621. A conspiracy of seven nobles put an end to the life and reign of the Magian, and Darius Hystaspes, one of their number, related to the royal family, was made king. Under the reign of Darius, Persia flourished, religion was CHAP. II. CENTRAL AND WESTERN ASIA. 35 reformed and purified, the empire divided into a certain num- ber of provinces, and fixed imposts established. Babylon had rebelled : the loyalty and treachery of Zopyrus, a Per- sian noble, reduced it to subjection. The Persian governor of Eo-ypt attempted to conquer the Grecian states of Barce and Gyrene ; but Grecian valor daunted the troops of Persia. The monarch in person led an army over the Hellespont against the Scythians ; but their steppes fought for them, and he only conquered Thrace. Master of all the coast of Les- ser Asia, Darius sought to bring under his sway the islands and the continent of Greece : his fleet was shattered, and the plain of Marathon witnessed the overthrow of the first j, c. Persian host that trod the soil of Hellas. He was preparing 490. another expedition against Greece : but family-feuds, and a rebellion in Egypt, occupied his thoughts, and death finally 485 surprised him. No Persian monarch, save the great Cyrus, stands on a line with Darius. Xerxes, the haughty son of a haughty mother, Atossa, the daughter of Cyrus, determined to wash away the disgrace the Persian arms had sustained in Greece. At the head of countless myriads, drawn from all the provinces of his em- pire, he passed the Hellespont. At Salamis he witnessed the destruction of his fleet: his land troops, no longer supplied 480. with provisions, perished with want and disease. The mon- arch, leaving a portion of his army in Baeotia under Mardo- nius, fled to Susa, and abandoned himself to pleasure. The next year saw at Plataea the total defeat of Mardonius, and the Grecian fleet, after the victory at Mycale, sailing in tri- umph along the coast of Asia. Cruelties exercised on his nearest relatives disgraced the latter days of Xerxes, and he 467. perished, assassinated by his friends and guards, Artabanus and Spamitres. The assassins accused of the murder Dari- us, the eldest son of the king, and he was put to death by order of his youngest brother, Artaxerxes, who mounted the throne. Artaxerxes soon discovered the true murderers of his father. Artabanus atoned for his treason with his life. A rebellion raised by his sons was crushed by Megabyzus, the brother-in-law of the king, who also defeated an elder brother of the king, who was governor of Bactria, and had taken arms to assert his claims to the throne. Rebellion still raged in Egypt: an army sent thither by Xerxes, under his brother Achsemenes, had been cut to pieces, and Megabyzus was now dispatched to reduce that country. He effected his object by negotiation ; but the obedience of the Egyptians was not durable, and during 100 years we read of kings of Egypt. 36 OUTLINES OF PI ISTORY. PART-,, This prince, siirnamed Long-armed^ was a monarch who pos- B c. sessed many great and amiable qualities. He died after a 424. long- reig-n, and the history of Persia presents from this, or rather an earlier period, the usual scenes of cruelty, treachery, fraud, and faction, characteristic of oriental despotism. Brothers murdered by brothers, queens exercising every species of cruelty on their rivals and their friends, eunuchs disposing- of the throne, assassinating- their sovereign, and perishing in their turn by justice or by similar treachery, are ordinary events, till, in the reign of the virtuous and ill-fated 331. Darius Codomanus, the Persian colossus was thrown to the earth by the arms of Greece. For when Artaxerxes II. mounted the throne, his younger brother Cyrus, who was governor of Lydia, Phrygia, and Ionia, under pretence of quelling some disturbances in Cilicia and Pisidia, collected an army in which were 10,000 Greeks, 401. and with it marched against him. The armies met at Cu- naxa, in the neighborhood of Babylon, and victory declared for Artaxerxes, as Cyrus fell in the action. The Greeks had on their side been conquerors : they were now deserted by their Persian confederates, deprived of their leaders by treachery ; yet without guides, they, through the midst of a hostile nation, barbarous tribes, mountains, defiles, and deserts, reached with trifling loss the coast of the Euxine. This, when known in Greece, betrayed the internal weakness of the Per- sian empire. Agesilaus the great Spartan had collected* a Grecian army in Lesser Asia, the ax was apparently laid to the root of the Persian monarchy, when Persian gold effect- ed what Persian steel could not : bribery armed a confederacy in Greece against Sparta, Agesilaus was recalled to the de- fence of his country, and the fate of Persia was delayed for a season. The Persian dominions at the period of their greatest ex- tent embraced India west of the Indus, and all the country between it and the Mediterranean, Lesser Asia, Thrace, Palestine, and Egypt: Arabia paid tribute; the mountain- tribes of Caucasus and the Turkish borderers were number- ed among its subjects. Yet, as the instance of the Cardu- chians or Koords proves, there were many tribes in the very heart of the empire who yielded but a nominal submission, maintaining nearly total independence. Under Cyrus, each subject state was left its own form of government, only bound to acknowledge the sovereign by tribute and attendance in war. Darius, by attempting to establish an uniformity of ad- ministration throughout his dominions, deprived his subjects of all love of independence. They ate, drank, plowed, and CHAP. III. GREECE 37 wove, heedless of who ruled over them ; were dragged at times away from their homes to share in wars they took no interest in ; passive machines, they paid their taxes, or carried arms; like a flock of sheep on fertile pastures, they fed heedlessly till they became the prey of wolves. They bowed as submissively beneath the sceptre of the Macedonian hero and his successors as under that of the descendants of Cyrus. CHAP. III. GREECE. Early State of Greece. Impenetrable obscurity covers the early times of Greece Were we to believe ancient tradition, corroborated by the testimony of geology, a country named Lectonia once cov- ered a great portion of the space now occupied by the ^Egean Sea. An extensive sea was spread over the plain of Scy thia, which burst the Bosporus, and poured into the Mediterranean, submerging Lectonia, and overflowing a large part of Greece. Hence this country was long under the dominion of water. The tradition of the fertile vales of Thessaly and Bceotia having been lakes, was long preserved. Buildings of gigantic dimensions still to be seen in Greece, testify for its having been in a very remote period the seat of a civilized race. These ruins are long anterior to history : they are mentioned in the Homeric poems. Tradition as- cribes the erection of them to the Cyclopes, possibly the name of that ancient people. It is probable these aboriginal colo- nists were, like the nations of Asia, under the government of a sacerdotal order, — this alone raises such works. There can be little doubt of their being of the Caucasian race. They entered Greece from Thrace, and spread over the whole country : for their chief remains are in Peloponnesus. Possi- bly they were of the same race with the aborigines of Italy. To these succeeded the Pelasgians, a numerous tribe, who overran Greece, Italy, the islands, and a part of Lesser Asia; they, too, came from Thrace, Agriculture v/as their chief employment: the arts of peace flourished among them. The religion of Greece was chiefly Pelasgian. The thicldy-peopled regions of Thrace still sent forth its tribes. The Achasans, the race who fought at Troy, next succeeded, and overcame the Pelasgians. Legends of the LapithaB and Centaurs, if 38 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART 1. credit is to be gfiven to them, may relate to contests between the Achsean and Pelasgian races, for the possession of Thes- saly. Colonies, it is said, came from Eg-ypt, Phoenicia, and Phry- gia, and civilized the barbarous, mast-eating savages who roamed the wilds of Greece. Danaus, an Egyptian, ruled at Argos ; Cecrops, from Sais, at Athens ; Pelops, the Phrygian, gave name to Peloponnesus ; Cadmus, the PhcEnician, founded Thebes. Little reliance is to be placed on these accounts: there is no evidence of any race of the inhabitants of Greece having been in the savage state. The Phoenicians, undoubt- edly, early visited the coasts of Greece, and a colony did, per- haps, settle there ; yet it is unusual for a maritime people to go so far inland as Thebes. With respect to the Egyptian colonies, it is not unlikely that the artful and vain-glorious priests of Sais, and of other towns of Egypt, imposed their fables on the credulous Greeks, who first visited that country. The Acha3an period is the heroic age of Greece : then flourished, or are said to have flourished, the mythic heroes Hercules, Theseus, Jason, and others : then were the Argo- nautic expedition, the wars of Thebes, and that of Troy, eter- nized by the verses of Homer. As a real historic event, the chief that this period offers is, the erection of a kingdom by Minos in Crete, three generations before the Trojan war. This monarch, at once king, prophet, and lawgiver, collected the various tribes of Crete into one state, established a ma- rine, conquered the piratic Carians, who swarmed in the iEgean, and reduced the isles beneath his power. The Achgeans, like the Pelasgians, were devoted to agri- culture and navigation. Their government was aristocrato- monarchic : they possessed numerous slaves, acquired by war or by purchase, who performed all servile offices. Their chief amusements, like those of the Germans and Scandinavians, were gymnastic exercises, and at banquets listening to the songs of bards, who chanted the deeds of living or departed heroes. Manners, language, religion, were the same in all the states : even between the Achgeans and the Trojans no difl^erence is to be perceived on these points. The Pythian and Dodonean oracles tended to keep up union : no traces of castes appear : the princes and fathers of families were priests. The monarch was distinguished chiefly by his personal quali- ties : he had the command in war, a larger share of the booty, orecedence, and a portion of land assigned him. The nobles were distinguished as much by their powers of mind and body as bv birth. The people had a voice in matters of war and CHAP. Ill GREECE. 39 peace : no law could be made without their approbation. The elements of the future democracy were there. The religion of Greece was the worship of deities presiding over the various parts of nature and powers of mind. Under the names of Zeus, Poseidon, Apollo, Hera, Pallas, &c. names mostly of unknown origin, these deities were honored by temples, sacrifices, processions : oracles were believed to an- nounce their will and the fliture. This system of religion was Grecian, and unborrowed. The Phcenicians may have introduced some new deiti,es ; and, when an intercourse was opened with Egypt, mysteries and new rites and dogmas were imported from that country. Dorian Migration, The Achaean race acknowledged a supreme head in the king of Mycenas. After the Trojan war, the bonds that imited them were loosed. A time of disturbance and revo- lution came: the Dorians, a brave and hardy race, left their abodes in the mountains, and came down on Greece. This movement was followed by great changes : numerous emigrations took place : Grecian colonies covered the coasts of southern Italy, Sicily, and Lesser Asia. The Dorians, it is said, were led by the descendants of Hercules to make good their claim to the throne of Argos, of which their ancestor had been deprived ; and the Dorian immigration is called the Return of the Heracleides. But Hercules is a myt'iic per- sonage, — one who, it is probable, never had a real existence ; and the Dorians were, doubtless, moved by other causes. They speedily overran the Peloponnesus : her mountains defended Arcadia: Achsea alone remained to the Atreidse: Laconia, Messenia, and Argolis became the property of the Dorians : ^Egina and the neighboring islands fell to them, and a portion of them settled in Crete. That branch of the Achseans named lonians, retreated to Attica, and joined its inhabitants, who were of the same race ; being pressed for room, a portion of these migrated to the banks of the Hermus, in Lesser Asia, and the adjacent isles. Peloponnesians, named ^olians, had previously settled on the coast from Cyzicus to the Hermug. No great kingdom existed at that time in Lesser Asia : the coasts had been possessed by pirate states of Leleges and Carians, The people of the interior favored the settlement of the lonians ; a race of mild manners, less addicted to war than to trade and manufactures. The conquering Dorians afterwards came from Crete, and took fi-om the Carians Cni- dus, Halicarnassus, and Rhodes. Thus were formed the Gre- 40 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART 1 cian cities of Lesser Asia, where poetry, philosophy, arts, and science bloomed ere they attained any height in Greece.* Sparta. The Dorian state of Laconia was, at this period, the great- est state of Greece. Two kings were at the head of it; under them stood the Dorian nobility, the Spartans ; then the Pe- rioeci or Laconians, and, lastly, the Helots, or descendants ot the conquered people, a body of oppressed, ill-used serfs. Disputes and unfixed relations among these orders made the want of a settled system of legislation apparent, Lycurgus, brother to one of the kings, and guardian of his infant heir, saw this necessity, and resolved to remedy it. He went to Crete, whose constitution, originally established by Minos, and renewed by the Dorians, was then in the highest repute ; made himself acquainted with its institutions, and formed a code of laws, such as he deemed fitted for Sparta. The Del- phic oracle, so highly venerated by all of Dorian race, ap- plauded his project, and pronounced him inspired. The object of all Dorian legislation was the maintenance of a martial character in the upper and dominant classes. To crush and grind dowm the ill-fated serfs, and give leisure for the practice of military exercises to the warlike race of the conquerors, was the aim of both Cretan and Spartan legisla- tion. In Crete there were but two orders, the lords and the serfs: in Laconia there were three; the Perioeci or Laconi- ans, whether Dorians of mingled marriages, or Achaeans who had been left some privileges by the conquerors, forming a link between the two former. Lycurgus divided the lands of Laconia into 39,000 lots ; 9000 large ones for the Spartans, and 30,000 smaller for the Periceci, all to be tilled for them by the miserable serfs. The government was in the hands of the Spartans alone. Both Spartans and Periceci were alike engaged in unceasing military exercises. By a fatal error in legislation, the number of the Spartan families was closed, and in default of male issue, daughters could inherit landed property ; hence there arose an inequality among the leading families, and a pernicious oligarchy, where women had pow- erful influence. At the time of the Theban war, the greater part of the land was in the hands of females. The Spartan government consisted of the two kings of the race of Hercules, and a senate of twenty-eight old men (tlie Gerusia,) chosen by the people. The kings were leaders in * The common name of the Greeks was Hellenes, a name posterior to the time of Homer. It is uncertain when it first came into use. CHAP. III. * GREECE. 41 war, and out of Laconia their power was unlimited. The peo- ple (i. e. the Spartans) were assembled every full moon to decide on measures proposed by the senate, which they could only accept or reject; they decided on all crimes against the state, on the succession of the kings, and the election and dismissal of magistrates. If peace or war was the question, the Perioeci were called to the council, as they were to share in the danger. The Helots had no part in legislation, or even in religious festivals. As a counterpoise to the power of the kings, a magistracy, the Ephorate, was introduced in the time of king Thoopom- pus. The Ephori were five men selected from the people (the Spartans,) without regard to age. They alone were al- ways in connexion with the people ; they had the inspection of all magistrates, v/ere present at every transaction, always attended the kings, directed all foreign affairs, accused kings and magistrates before the people, where they were them- selves both judges and accusers. At length they completely crushed all other power, and became the tyrants of the state. The greatest rigor of manners was enjoined by Lycurgus. He established syssitia, or public meals, at which all the male part of the citizens ate together. The most implicit obedi- ence and regard to age was impressed on the minds of youth ; the most inflexible endurance of pain inculcated ; most things, even slaves, horses, and dogs, were possessed in common. The chase was their favorite enjoyment; every species of trade was prohibited ; money was huge masses of iron. The natural result of such an education was a sternness of character, a pride and haughtiness, and love of command. While the institutions of Lycurgus continued in vigor, the Spartan character was distinguished for the sterner virtues ; when it relaxed, profligacy and corruption of every species broke in amongst them. Athens. Athens did not rise into importance till long after Sparta. Argos was a large city ; and Corinth, the entrepot of trade between the ^Egean and Ionian seas, was abounding in wealth before Athens became of any consequence ; but they and the other states of Peloponnesus offer at this period little to at- tract attention. The tale of the Egyptian Cecrops coming to Attica is a manifest fable. Attica had numerous petty princes, each ruling his own village. A prince, named Theseus, is said to have united several of these little states into one, and col- lected the people to Athens. But his power could not have 4* 42 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I. been great, as Mnestheus, the second from him, led but forty ships to Troy. At the time of the Dorian irruption into Pelo- ponnesus, the family of Theseus lost the throne ; and Melan- thius, of Achaean race, from Messenia, coming to Athens, ob- tained the chief direction of affairs: his son Codrus drove back the Dorians, and forced them to be content with Megara, at that time united with Attica. The legend says, Codrus of- fered himself up for his country, and that the royal dignity was abolished out of honor to him. The republican spirit had, however, from various causes, been on the increase at Athens, Towards the end of the sixth olympiad,* a regular aristocracy was established : the chief magistrate was called Archon, ard his office was annual. A farther change augmented the num- ber of archons to nine, three with peculiar rank and titles, six as presidents of courts of justice. This was the foundation of a rigid aristocracy ; but as the people had all along retained the right of assembling to pass laws, it was in a condition, whenever it could get a leader, to assert its rights and better its condition. But the aristocracy, being in possession of the administra tion of justice, and being also invested with the sacerdotal dignities, the people had no sure place of refuge when ag- p. e. grieved. Matters fell, therefore, into turmoil and confusion. ^^' Draco, in the first year of the thirty-ninth olympiad, sought a remedy in the revival of an ancient species of divine law ; but its general maxims were too rigid and severe. It suited not the spirit of the times, and became generally detested. The internal troubles still continued ; and twelve years aflerwards, in a struggle between two aristocratic parties, Cylon, the head of one of them, attempted, by the aid of the tyrant or ruler of Megara, to raise himself to similar power in Athens. His project failed ; the nobles, headed by the Alcmseonides, the chiefs of the rival faction, summoned their vassals from the country, and besieged Cylon and his adherents in the citadel. He and his brother escaped ; but his followers were dragged from the altars and slain. This offence brought down vengeance from the gods ; and though the chief agents were exiled, defeat and sickness visited the city. A prophet, Epi- menides of Crete, was summoned to purify and atone for the city. He regulated the religious worship, and prepared the way for the system of legislation projected by his friend Solon. In the third year of the 46th olympiad, Solon being archon, the land-owners and citizens, debtors and creditors, were in ♦ The olympiads were periods of four years. The first began B. C. 776. CHAP. III. GREECE. 45 open feud. Solon was called upon to legislate. His first step was to arrange matters between debtor and creditor, which he accomplished by altering the standard, and lower- ing the rate of interest. He then deprived the nobility of a portion of their former power, by dividing all the people into four classes regulated by property : thus, while he intro- duced a democracy, founding a new aristocracy. The nobil- ity, as possessors of the largest properties, as the sole mem- bers of the court of Areopagus, as possessed of the priesthoods, and directors of religious ceremonies, still retained an ample degree of influence. By the establishment of the Council of Four Hundred, an annually rotating college, he at once gave so many families an interest in the new order of things, that there remained no chance of its being totally subverted. He finally made all the people swear not to make any alteration during the next ten years, deeming that period sufficiently long for habituating them to the new constitution. Solon's laws did not put an end to the internal broils. The nobility, being the owners of the largest properties, were in the first classes, and the contests for honors and dignities raged among them as hotly as ever. The lowest class, the Thetes^ who were excluded from office, and were not liable to taxes, or to serve in heavy armor, formed in the popular assembly a portion of the sovereignty, and sat in courts of justice. They were a ready weapon for any one who knew how to employ it. The old local parties of the Paralians and the Pediseans also still subsisted. Solon had travelled to the East: Megacles, the chief of the Alcmseonides, who had now returned to Athens, was at the head of the Paralians ; Ly- curgus was the leader of the Pediseans, or country gentle- men ; Peisistratus, a descendant of the ancient kings, sought the favor of the lower class. He obtained by their means the supreme power: his rivals, however, united and expelled him. Megacles then gave him his daughter in marriage, and restored him, but again drove him away. After eleven years' absence, Peisistratus returned at the head of an army, and governed Athens till his death. His sway was mild and be- neficent ; the laws of Solon were observed, and Athens flour- ished under him. His sons, Hippias and Hipparchus, who succeeded him, trod in his steps ; but an act of private re- venge deprived the latter of life, and conferred an unmerited immortality on the assassins, Harmodius and Aristogeiton. Hippias grew suspicious and cruel. The Alcmseonides had devoted their wealth to the rebuilding of the temple of Delphi : the priestess, gained by them, incessantly commanded the Spartans to restore liberty to Athens. The latter, glad of 46 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I. B. c. ttie pretext, obeyed the oracle. Hippias abandoned Attica, 510. and retired to his estates in Asia. Solon's constitution re- mained ; but the heads of parties, to obtain mfluence, attached themselves to the aristocracy or the people. Isagoras, of an- cient lineage, headed the former, favored by the Spartans. Cleisthenes, the Alcmseonide, sought to win the people. . When archon, four years after the banishment of Hippias, he shook the whole Solonian constitution, and opened the way to all the future evils of unbridled democracy, by dividing the four original tribes into ten, and altering in like manner all the inferior divisions, and increasing the senate to 500 mem- bers, 50 from each of the new tribes. Prompted by Isagoras, the Spartans sent a herald to demand the banishment of those stained with the blood of Cylon's adherents. Cleisthenes was obliged to yield and retire. The Spartans attempted to re- store the old aristocracy ; the Athenians sought aid of Per- sia; Cleomenes, the Spartan, marched an army against Athens ; but his allies abandoned him, and his colleague, De- maratus, refusing to join in his project, the Spartans retired, and the democracy of Athens was fully established. CHAP. IV. GREECE TO HER SUBVERSION BY THE MACEDONIANS. The Persian War. Grekce and Persia now first came into conflict. Cyrus had conquered the Grecian colonies in Lesser Asia : the love of liberty however was not extinct, and the secret advice of Histiseus, tyrant of Miletus, whom Darius detained at his court, threw the Ionian cities into revolt. They called on Athens, as head of the Ionian race, to assist them. The aid was granted, and the anger of the Great King thereby in- curred. Darius meditated the conquest of Greece and the islands ; he sent his ambassadors to demand homage : many islands, especially iEgina, delivered earth and water. A large army, under Datis and Artaphernes, was sent to subdue 490. the refractory. The plain of Marathon witnessed the defeat of the Persian vassals by 9000 Athenians and 1000 Plataeans. Datis and Artaphernes returned to Asia with the discomfited host. The Athenians resolved to punish those who had submit- ted to the Persian king. Their first enterprise against Naxos, CHAP. IV. GREECE. 47 under Miltiades, failed ; the general was condemned to pay the costs, and being unable, was treated according to Athe- nian law, like any other citizen. Aristides, Xanthippus, and Themistocles, took the place of Miltiades, and by employing the proper methods of managing a democracy, raised Athens from a petty town to the rank of a leading state. The threat- ening war of the Persians showed that Athens' only hope lay in the augmentation of her navy, Themistocles awaked the ancient grudge against JEgina ; and the produce of the sil- ver mines of Laurium, which had been hitherto divided among the citizens, was appropriated to the building of a fleet. Athens and vEgina were in conflict when intelligence arrived of the immense preparations of Xerxes, the Persian king, for the conquest of Greece. All enmity ceased ; a bond for common defence was established among the Grecian g. c states. In the spring of the first year of the 75th olympiad, 480. Xerxes led, as is said, two millions of Asiatics over the Hel- lespont. A fleet of 1200 vessels attended the march of this huge multitude. The progress of the Persian monarch was unimpeded till he reached the ever-memorable pass of Ther- mopylae, leading from Thessaly into Proper Greece. The narrow passage between the mountain and the sea was guard- ed by a resolute band of Spartans, Phocians, Locrians, and others, under the command of Leonidas, the Spartan king. Division afler division of the Persian army were repulsed with immense loss in attempting to force their way. At length, a traitor revealed another passage through the moun- tains : Leonidas, on hearing it, dismissed his allies, and, at the head of his Spartans, attacked the Persian multitudes, and fell, covered with wounds, amidst the heaps of slain. Monuments, song, and story, have conspired to exalt this deed of heroes. Meantime, the Persian fleet had suffered from a storm, and had been roughly handled by the Greeks in an engagement off the promontory of Artemisium. The Persian army marched on to Attica, took and burned Athens. The Grecian fleet lay in the strait between Salamis and the continent ; the Persian imprudently attacked them there: a total defeat was the consequence. Xerxes, who had from the land beheld the destruction of his fleet, hasted back to Asia, leaving an army of 300,000 under Mardonius. The following year the Greeks, to the number of 110,000, fought and defeated the Persians at Platfea, and but 40,000 of the latter returned to Asia. On the same day (Sept. 22.) the Grecian fleet totally defeated that of the Persians at the promontory of Mycale, in Ionia. Athens got a large share of the Persian spoils ; the city 48 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I was rebuilt, and the port of Pirseus fortified. The insolence of Pausanias, the Spartan chief, having disgusted the allies, the command was transferred to Athens. It was resolved to prosecute the war against Persia ; each of the allies was bound to supply a certain number of men and ships ; they compounded with the Athenians for the payment of an annual sum of money, instead of furnishing their contingent ; the Athenian treasurers received each year the contributions of the cities on the isles and coasts of the Mgeoxi ; and Athens, at the expense of the allies, maintained a powerful army and navy. The jealousy of the Spartans was excited ; they were on the point of declaring war, when an earthquake levelled Sparta ; the Helots and Messenians rose in rebellion, and the haughty Spartans were forced to call on Athens for aid. But they distrusted their allies, and the Athenians joined the Ar- gives, the hereditary foes of Sparta. The rebellion of the Helots lasted ten years, and was ended by a composition with the rebels. Atliens was now in the height of her power; she sent 200 ships to Egypt to assist the natives against the Per- sians, took a part in the affairs of Cyprus, beat the ^Eginetes, and established a democracy at Megara. The great men of Athens at this period were, Aristides, Themistocles, and Cimon; all of whom, like Miltiades, experienced popular in- gratitude, and were driven from their country. Tlie Peloponnesian War. Pericles was now the leading man at Athens. An AIc- mffionide by the mother's side, and son of Xanthippus, who won the victory at Mycale, he sought power by bringing in the wildest democracy. All barriers of the constitution were thrown down, and power given to the lowest rabble, by whom and over whom he hoped to rule. Of commanding eloquence, he swayed the people ; handsome, rich, generous, and brave, he was master of their aifections. Magnificent in his taste, he adorned tlie city with stately buildings at the cost of the allies, and all the arts flourished beneath his patronage. Pericles reduced Euboea and Samos ; he covered the coasts and islands with Athenian colonies ; he made the Athenians masters of the sea, ann already those dreams of distant con- quest, which caused their overthrow, began to float before the imagination of the vain-glorious people. He sought to en- feeble the Doric confederacy, and an opportunity soon offered. Corinth and her colony Corcyra were, after Athens, the most considerable naval powers. United, they were able to cope with her ; but commercial jealousy prevented their co-ope- rating, and, at last, they went to war with each other. Cor- CHAP. IV. GREECE 49 cyra addressed herself to Athens for aid ; the Corinthians complained to Sparta of the breach of the truce by the latter power : other events occurred to increase the odium against Athens, and, at length, war was declared against her by the Doric confederation, and an army, under Archidamus, one of b. c. the Spartan kings, invaded Attica. The plan laid down by "^^^ Pericles for carrying on the war was, to abandon the country to the Lacedaemonian army, and then retaliate by descents on Peloponnesus, by which they would soon weary the confede- rates of the war. Unfortunately, destiny fought also against Athens : in the second year of the war the plague broke out, and swept away numbers of citizens ; amongst tliem, Pericles himself The war was still carried on with various success. The most remarkable event of it in Greece, was the gallant defence of Platsea against the Peloponnesians. The greatest man that appeared among the Spartans was Brasidas, who, to the severe virtues of a Spartan, united mildness and gentle- ness of manners. Among the Athenians, Nicias and De- mosthenes were the most distinguished of the nobles ; Cleon, the leading demagogue ; but Alcibiades, of noble birth, im- mense wealth, extreme beauty, and eminent talents, far eclipsed all the men of his time. He was the ward of Peri- cles and the pupil of Socrates ; but, hurried away by his am- bition, he waited not till years had matured his judgment, engaging in politics he took the popular side, and plunged his country into the fatal expedition to Sicily. Numerous Grecian colonies had settled in Sicily, and had risen to great wealth and power : they were almost all democ- racies ; but tyrants occasionally ruled tliem. Syracuse was the most distinguished of these cities. Gelon had possessed himself of the tyranny, and governed with justice and mild- ness: after his death, the people fell into divisions: the smaller cities, which were oppressed, applied to Athens for help. Alcibiades, who was then in the plenitude of his influ- ence, warmly exhorted the people to attend to the call, and drew a brilliant picture of the glorious prospect of universal empire that now seemed destined for Athens. In an evil hour the people, though warned by Nicias and other men of age and experience, yielded their assent, and an expedition against Syracuse was decreed. The finest fleet that ever left Athens sailed under the command of Alcibiades, Nicias, and Lamachus, and success at first attended its operations; but the enemies of Alcibiades accused him of profaning the mysteries ; he was recalled, and fled to Sparta : a Spartan general, Gylippus, was dispatched to Syracuse, and though the Athenians augmented their army in Sicily to 40,000 men, 5 50 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I. B.C. and sent out Demosthenes, their ablest general, it was de- 412. feated, and men and generals lost life or liberty. The news of this misfortune was at first not credited at Athens: when its truth was confirmed, the people looked around and saw themselves without horse, or heavy infantiy, or ships, with an empty treasury, their subjects in rebellion, their allies fallen off, the enemy in their country, and before their port ; yet they lost not courage, but vigorously prepared for defence. The Lacedsemonians, by the advice of Alcibia des, instead of making annual incursions into Attica, ha taken and fortified Decelia, a post half-way between Athen and Boeotia, and from thence wasted the country : still the Athenians held out for seven years : and, but for the party- spirit that prevailed, which drove again into exile Alcibiades, and unjustly put to death most of their other good generals, they might have come off victorious in the struggle. The vanity and inexperience of the Athenian commanders (warned •105. in vain by Alcibiades) gave a decisive victory to the Lacedae- monian Lysander, at the river ^gos, and Athens' last hope, her renewed fleet, was lost. Lysander soon appeared in the Piraeus; the people made a gallant resistance, but hunger compelled them to sue for peace. The Thebans and Co- rinthians insisted that the city should be burnt, and the in- habitants reduced to slavery. The Lacedaemonians declared they would never submit to the destruction of a city which had merited so well of Greece. But to cramp her power effectually, she was allowed to possess but twelve ships ; the Long Legs, the walls between the city and the Piraeus, were broken down ; and the government placed in the hands of an oligarchy of thirty persons. Thus ended the Peloponnesian war, after a continuance of twenty-seven years, and with it the dominion of Athens, in the seventy-fifth year after the battle of Salamis. During that period Athens had acquired another and more lasting empire, of which Lysander could not deprive her : she had become the mistress of Greece in all the arts and sciences that embellish and ennoble life. Poetry, philosophy, archi- tecture, sculpture, attained during the time of Athenian sway an eminence never surpassed. The philosophy of Socrates and his disciples, the dramas of Sophocles and Euripides, the stately Parthenon, and other works of the immortal Phidias, drew thither all Greece ; and nowhere were religious festivals celebrated with equal taste and splendor. Commerce flour- ished; good taste was diffused among all ranks of societj- CHAP. IV. GREECE. 51 Lacedccmonian Dominion. When Athens fell, Sparta remained without a rival : she commanded at sea as at land : her Harmosts, somewhat like the English residents at the courts of Indian princes, directed the policy of the independent towns of Greece and Asia. The pride and arrogance of Sparta lost her this empire. The oligarchy established and protected at Athens by her became odious ; Athenian exiles, headed by Thrasybulus, returned to b. c their country in arms, and overthrew the thirty tyrants: the 403 Long Legs were rebuilt, Conon, the Athenian, was admiral of the Persian fleet ; Persian gold was employed to raise the city to independence, and Athenian fleets again appeared at sea. Sparta still sought to establish an oligarchy in every town ; and wherever, as at Olynthtis, popular liberty estab- lished itself, the Spartan commanders nad orders to extin- guish it. During this period, Persia exercised considerable influence in the affairs of Greece. The memorable retreat of the Ten Thousand, who, opposed by all the arts of oriental treachery, by all the forces of the empire, and the difficulties of an un- known, mountainous country, had forced their way to the Euxine, revealed the secret of the internal weakness of that vast empire. Agesilaus, king of Sparta, had meditated con- quests in Asia, and had for two years carried on war with success in that country. The Persian court saw its danger, 396 and adopted the policy of subsidizing the different states of Greece, and keeping up such a balance of power among them, as would prevent any projects of invasion of Asia. Hence, as in modern times two Turkish pashas may have different foreign policies, so of the two satraps of Lesser Asia the one would support the Lacedaemonians, the other their enemies. By these means the influence of the Persian monarch was become so great in Greece, that he dictated the terms of a peace among the contending states ; in which he declares the cities of Lesser Asia, and the islands of Clazomenas and Cyprus, to belong to himself, and pronounces the indepen- dence of all other cities, great and small, with the exception of Lemnos, Imbrus, and Scyrus, which should belong as of old to Athens, and menaces with war such as refuse to ac- 337 cept it. This peace, called that of Antalcidas, from the name of the Spartan who was the chief agent in bringing it to bear, was viewed with indignation by every man of noble mind, who compared it with the terms which Greece, when at unity with herself, had imposed on the Persians, and saw 52 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I. in it loss of honor and independence by the permission of foreign interference. Thehan Dominion. Sparta had humbled Athens ; her own turn was to come from a quarter whence it was least expected. A Spartan general, Phoebidas, had, in the midst of peace, made himself, by treachery, master of the citadel of Thebes ; his govern- ment punished him, but retained tlie fortress, and establish ea an oligarchy in that city. Sparta seemed at this period in the height of her power. Her king, Agesilaus, was victo- rious in Asia, she had dissolved the Olynthian confederacy, and reduced Olynthus to that state of subjection, from whicli Athens alone was exempt, and never less dreaded decline, w^hen a conspiracy was formed by some of the democratic party in Thebes ; the principal oligarchs were murdered, the citadel besieged, and the garrison forced to surrender. Two great men now appeared to guide the Theban affairs, Pelopidas and Epaminondas; the Athenians joined them; the Thebans recovered their supremacy over the other Boeotian towns. The Lacedaemonians were now forced to recall Agesi laus from his conquests in Asia, to oppose the Theban and Athenian generals. The power of Thebes continually in- creasing, the Athenians grew jealous, and sent ambassadors to the Great King, who directed the Greeks to make peace among themselves on the basis of that of Antalcidas. Athens and Sparta obeyed — it was for the advantage of both — and Sparta, who had lost all influence out of Peloponnesus, will- ingly withdrew her harmosts. Cleombrotus was marching his troops out of Phocis, when he received orders to make the Thebans restore the other Boeotian cities to independence. The Thebans, who were dissatisfied at the peace by which they were the only losers, refused compliance ; the armies met on the plain of Leuctra, and the Spartans were for the 371. first time defeated in a pitched battle. The charm was now dissolved. It was proved that the Lacedaemonian arms were not invincible. Epaminondas and Pelopidas now invaded the Peloponnesus at the head of 40,000 men ; the Argives, Elians, and the democratic party in Arcadia, joined the Thebans, who entered and ravaged the Lacedaemonian territory. Epaminondas ad- vanced into Messenia, called the oppressed inhabitants to lib- erty, recalled the exiles, and raised a town named Messene, in which he placed a Theban garrison. Athens joined Sparta. Ambassadors from all the parties hastened to the Persian court. Pelopidas headed the Theban embassy, peace was B. C ). CHAP. IV. GREECE. 55 dictated on the Theban terms, and the stream of gold that previously flowed to Sparta was directed to Thebes. The Arcadians had now become powerful in Peloponnesus. Lyco- medes, one of their leading' men, sought to detach them from the Thebans : the latter, fearing to lose their influence in Pe- loponnesus, sent an army thither under Epaminondas. A second battle for the supremacy in Greece was fought at b c Mantinea between the Thebans and Lacedaemonians, and 362 Epaminondas died in the arms of victory. Philip of Macedon. The republican spirit was now extinct in Greece : no state was in a condition to take the lead ; no man of any eminence was to be found except in Athens. The republican virtues had fled from those who had sunk to be the pensioners of Persia. A monarchical was the only form of supremacy suited to the present state of Greece, and Providence had provided such in a constitutional monarchy — that of Macedon. Jason, the tyrant of Pherae in Thessaly, had conceived this design. The Thessalians were a strict aristocracy, with a numerous body of vassals called Penestse, resembling the barons of the middle ages. Occasionally there rose a prince in some town among them who gradually united several towns under him. At this period, Jason was such in Pherae, and Polydamas in Pharsalus. Both were men of virtue, only that of Jason was not proof against ambition. They united in the project of turning the quarrels of Thebes and Sparta to the > advantage of Thessaly, and by the influence of Polydamas, Jason was chosen Tagus, or commander-in-chief of Thessaly. He took the same road to power afterwards so successfully trodden by Philip ; but he was unfortunate in three circum- stances : his troops were chiefly mercenaries, and therefore not to be depended upon ; he was not an hereditary prince, and his nobility were jealous of him ; he appeared at a time when the great Theban generals were in the height of their glory, and when Athens had generals far superior to those she opposed to Philip. Fate seemed resolved to deprive Thes- f?aly of the glory of becoming a great power. Jason perished by the daggers of conspirators : his brothers and his nephew Alexander were tyrants, in the modern sense. The last was murdered by his own relations, and Thessaly fell into confu- sion and disorder. At this period, the celebrated Holy War broke out, and greatly contributed to the farther demoralization of Greece, when all reverence for the gods and every thing sacred was 'ost, and the holy offerings collected for so many years in the 5G OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I. temple at Delphi, were scattered through Greece, the pre- cious metals melted and coined, tlie crowns and other votive offerings profanely worn by women and boys of loose life. The Boeotians and Thessalians formed the great majority in the Amphictyonic Council. They caused a decree to be passed, inflicting a heavy fine on the Lacedaemonians for their ravages in Bceotia; and when these refused payment, they, from private motives, did the same to the Phocians for having occupied the land that once belonged to the Cirrhseans, and had been consecrated to the god. Relying on the aid of Athens and Sparta, the Phocians refused obedience, and by the advice of Philomelus, one of their chief men, seized on the temple and its treasures. Greece at that time abounded in soldiers of fortune, men who made war a trade, who served any one v;ho was able to pay them. Masters of the immense wealth of the temple, the Phocians, therefore, easily collected an army, and they carried on the contest for a space of ten years. In this war the Thessalians, being hard pressed by the Pho- cians, called Philip king of Macedon to their aid. This tal- ented prince, who had been brought up at Thebes in the time of Epaminondas, had, from the day be ascended the Macedo- nian throne, all his thoughts occupied on the means of strength- ening and extending his hereditary kingdom. He aided the Thessalians, and, after a variety of changes of fortune, the Phocians were at length destroyed. Philip made himself master of Olynthus and all the cities on the coast of Thrace, and in spite of all the efforts of Demosthenes, who did all that was in man to rouse the Athenians to energy while it was yet time, continually advanced in his plans of power and ag- B. c grandizement, and at length, on the field of Chaeronea, saw 338 the independence of Greece prostrate at his feet. Philip was now at the height of his power: the Spartans had been excluded from the Ampliictyonic Council, and the votes of the Phocians transferred to him : he had the right of priority in consulting the Delphian oracle, and was presi- dent of the Pythian games. He called a general assembly of the Greeks to Corinth ; and was there appointed com- mander-in-chief of the Grecian forces in the war now to be undertaken against Persia, under pretext of avenging her former violations of the Grecian tenjples. The Macedonian monarch thus occupied the station for which he was fitted, and which the present state of Greece required, — that of head of the Grecian confederacy ; from which the ill-judging patriotism of Demosthenes so long sought to exclude him. The idea of reducing Greece to a province of his kingdom CHAP. V. ALEXANDER AND HIS SUCCESSORS. 57 he was too wise to entertain. In the midst of his projects for the conquest of Asia, he fell by tlie hand of an assassin. CHAP. V. ALEXANDER AND HIS SUCCESSORS. Alexander. Alexander was in his twentieth year when liis father was b. g slain : he had been educated by Aristotle, and his naturally 337 great talents sedulously cultured. Difficulties environed him on his accession : the Athenians and Thebans, on the intelli- gence of the death of Philip, were flying- to arms, when Alexander appeared in Boeotia at the head of an army. They were terrified, and desisted. The IlJyrians and Triballi had made inroads into Macedon: the young prince marched against them, and conquered to the Danube. A report was spread in Greece of his death : Thebes rose in arms ; but Alexander suddenly returned, entered Ba30tia, and took and levelled that city. All Greece was now at his devotion. He called on the different states for the contingents they had voted his father for the invasion of Asia ; and, at the head of 334 30,000 foot and 4500 horse, passed the Hellespont. At the river Granicus the Persian army opposed his progress • it met a total defeat, and all Lesser Asia fell to the conqueror : he restored the Grecian cities to independence, and pursued his march through Cilicia. At Tssus, in the pass of the mountains 333 leading into Syria, he again encountered and defeated the Persian army. He continued his progress southwards, took 332. Tyre, after an obstinate resistance, and reduced all Egypt to subjection. He here founded the most permanent monument of his fame, the city of Alexandria, — a place that has exer- cised such influence on the political and moral relations of the world as ever to render it memorable, — ^marched with a select body of men to the oasis containing the temple of Am- mon, and obtained from the priests of the god a declaration of his divinity; acting in this, perhaps, with policy, — perhaps, with vanity. The conquests of Alexander can only be compared with those of the Arabs or Mongols in rapidity. Darius having assembled another army, his rival hastened from Egypt. On the plain between Gaugamela and Arbela, at the foot of the Armenian and Koordish mountains, he encountered the host of Darius, composed, it is said, of a million of men, while 331 58 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I. the Grecian troops were, at most, 50,000 men. The Per- sians were utterly routed ; Darius fled to the north-eastern provinces of his kingdom, and Babylon and Susa fell into the hands of the conqueror. Persepolis and Ecbatana shared their fate. Meantime Darius was murdered by Bessus, gov- ernor of Bactria. According to oriental maxims, Alexander was now king, and he resolved to avenge the death of his predecessor : he invaded Bactria, put to death Bessus, who had assumed the diadem, and conquered the whole of those northern provinces of the Persian empire. He founded cities in Bactria and Sogdiana, and then directed his course towards India. From the southern part of Balkh he marched through Candahar,* Ghizni, and Caubul, to the Indus. Though val- iantly opposed by the natives, the predecessors of the modern Seeks, he was victorious, and still advanced, till the discon- tent of his troops obliged him to return : he proceeded south- wards along the river, sent a fleet under Nearchus from the [ndus to the Persian Gulf, and, with a great loss of men and beasts, made his way across the deserts into Persia. Shortly B c afterwards he met his death from drunkenness, or poison, at 324 Babylon, in the thirty-second year of his age. Alexander's great object seems to have been the establish- ment of one great and permanent empire, of which the dif- ferent parts would be united by mutual political and com- mercial advantages. Hence he sought to do away all national prejudices, and make his different subjects feel themselves one people. To attain this object, he founded those numerous Grecian cities in various parts of his oriental dominions, and had he lived a few years longer he might possibly have, in a great measure, accomplished what he aimed at. But his early death frustrated all these great projects, and the am- bition of his generals speedily pulled down the fabric he was erecting. Division of Alexander's Dominions. Alexander died without appointing a successor. The queen Roxana, was pregnant, and he had a half-brother, named Philip Aridaeus, who was simple. When dying, he had given his ring to Perdiccas. After much warm dispute among the generals, they came to the resolution that Alexander (Rox- ana's son) and Philip Aridseus should be proclaimed kings ; that Perdiccas should be guardian, and that each general should take the charge of a province. The partition of offices * The city of Candahar is said to have been founded by Alexander. Its name seems evidently derived from his. He is called in the East Iscander, and, rejecting the first syllable, Cander and Candahar are not unlike. CHAP. V. ALEXANDER AND HIS SUCCESSORS. 59 and provinces was thus made : — Perdiccas had no prov- ince, but was commander-in-chief of the army: Antipater and Craterus had charge of the European dominions; Seleu- cus, of Babylon ; Ptolemy, of Egypt, Libya, and part of Ara- bia; Leonatus, of Mysia; Antigonus, of Phrygia, Lycia, and Pamphylia ; Lysimachus, of Macedonian Thrace ; Laomedon had Syria; Python, Media; Menander, Lydia; 6lc. &lc. To the valiant Eumenes was assigned Cappadocia, whose inhab- itants were yet to be subdued. The kings were only such in name, and these Grecian sa- traps saw and grasped at the opportunity of making them- selves independent princes. A period of unceasing tumult, war, and murder, formed the first sixteen years that succeed- ed the death of Alexander. Perdiccas first conceived the plan of gaining the empire by destroying the governors, one after another. This plan was facilitated by their mutual animosities, or their contests with tliose over whom they ruled. Ptolemy, the most powerful of the governors, was singled out as the first object of attack. Perdiccas led an ^ (^ army into Egypt, but was nmrdered by his own mutinous 321 troops. Craterus fell in a battle against Eumenes, and Antipater remained sole regent of Macedon. He died shortly after, 319 having appointed Polysperchon to succeed him. Polysper- chon joined the party of Olympias, the mother of Alexander. Aridseus and his wife were put to death, and the friends of Antipater persecuted. The nobles clung to his son Cassan- der, and Olympias expiated her crimes by a violent death. 315. Antigonus took and put to death Eumenes, who maintained the rights of Alexander's family. He now ruled over all Lesser Asia, wrested Syria and Phoenicia from Ptolemy, and drove Seleucus from Babylon. His valiant son Demetrius passed over to Greece, and restored the cities to freedom ; then collected a fleet, and defeated that of Ptolemy off Cy- 307. prus. His father now assum^^d the title of kin^, and his ex- ample was followed by the other governors. The family of Alexander was now extinct, Roxana and her son having been put to death by Cassander. But Antigonus's reign was of short duration : his ambition was too inordinate ; and a league was formed against him by Ptolemy, Seleucus, Lysimachus, and Cassander. Antigonus fell, in his 80th year, in battle 301 against his rivals, on the field of Ipsus, in Phrygia, and the victors shared his dominions among them. The dominions of Alexander were now divided into four 60 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I, great kingdoms. Macedon, with a part of Greece ; Thrace ; Syria, with all Upper Asia ; Egypt, with Gyrene and Gyprus. Macedon. Gassander, when he had destroyed the family of Alexan- der, took the title of king. His vicious and feeble sons lost their lives and the throne, which was seized on by Deme- B c. trius, son of Antigonus : he was expelled by Pyrrhus, the 287. Epirote ; and Pyrrhus, by Lysimachus, king of Thrace. Du- ring sixteen years, twelve kings of different houses governed the paternal dominions of Alexander. In the time of these kings, an army of Kelts devastated Macedon, penetrated into Greece, and advanced to pillage the temple of Delphi. The Greeks rolled down rocks from the heights ; thunder roared through the mountains; — the terrified barbarians fled, and the god got the renown of defending his temple. Antigonus Gonatas, son of Demetrius, a man of prudence and humanity, raised Macedon out of the ruin into which it had been plunged ; and, during a reign of forty years, he was the protector of Greece. His son, Demetrius II., who suc- 243. ceeded him, emulated his virtues. Demetrius dying, left an infant son, Philip, whose uncle and guardian, Antigonus, sur- named Doson, married the widow of the late king, and usurp- ed the kingdom, which he governed with ability for eleven years, and then left to the lawful heir, Philip, This prince 198. mixed himself in the affairs of Greece, and was recognized as sovereign lord of that country. War took place, in conse- quence, between him and the Romans, and Philip was de- feated, obliged to withdraw his garrisons from Greece, reduce 143. his shipping, and pay the expenses of tlie war. His son Per- seus renewed the war with Rome, but was taken, and died in prison ; and Macedon was shortly afterwards reduced to a Roman province. The Macedonian kingdom extended from the Propontis, through Thrace, to the mountains of JEtolia, lying at the north of the country of Greece. Greece. We have seen all Greece submit to Philip and Alexander. After the death of the latter, some unavailing efforts had been made, especially by Athens, to re-establish the ancient freedom ; but they were always obliged to bow their necks, once more, to the Macedonian yoke. There was no union among" them ; they pursued their old feuds and petty contests, instead of combining for a common object ; and their country CHAP. V. ALEXANDER AND HIS SUCCESSORS. 61 was continually ravaged by the armies of the contending generals of Alexander. Sparta, which had sulkily refused to take part in the con- quest of the East, and had waged an unsuccessful war against Antipater, had long since seen the decline of her Lycurgean constitution. In vain the patriotic 4gis sought to bring his country back to her former state ; his life atoned for his op- position to the tyrannic oligarchs. Sparta became the do- minion of the most odious of tyrants; she joined the Romans against Macedon, and then changed sides, and she ended by becoming, like the other Grecian states, a part of the Roman dominions. The cities of Achsea renewed among themselves an old confederacy, named tlie Achtean league, which, under the guidance of Aratus, labored with vigor for the freedom of Greece against Macedon : gradually, other states, and amongst them, Athens, joined tlie league. The iEtolian towns formed a similar union ; but their enmity with the AchsBans and Sparta prevented their arriving to any importance. Civil discord, the perpetual bane of Greece, gave the Romans the wished-for opportunity of intermeddling in its affairs. Corinth was taken and destroyed ; and Greece reduced to a Roman province, under the name of Acha^a. The last of the heroes of Greece was Philopoemen, the Arcadian general of the b. a AchsBan league, justly styled the last of the Greeks. Two 183 thousand years have rolled away since the death of PhilopoB- men, without Greece, till of late, producing a warrior for in- dependence. May she derive wisdom from the past, and avoid the errors by which she lost her freedom ! Thrace. Lysimachus made himself king of Thrace ; he conquered 322. Macedon, and was also master of a part of the countries about the Euxine. His reign was the flourishing period of Thrace ; but it was of short duration. Lysimachus fell in battle against Seleucus : the Gauls ravaged the land, which sometimes obeyed Syrian, sometimes Egyptian, princes. The native chiefs recovered their power. King Cotys, one of these princes, formed an alliance with the Romans : king Sasales 43. gave up Thrace to them. At this period, some independent states arose in Lesser Asia, which we shall notice in this place. Bithynia. This country, stretching along the Black Sea to the Pro- *>ontis and the Hellespont, was, at one time, tributary to the 6 62 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I Lydians, and then to the Persians. After the death of Alex- ander, a native chief, named Bas, expelled Calanthus, the Macedonian governor. Internal troubles continually agitated this state. Nicomedes I., to keep his throne, allied himself with the Gauls, to whom he assigned a district, called, from them, Galatia. Prusias is known by Annibal's having sought in vain a refuge at his court. Nicomedes II. was expelled by B. c. Mithridates, and restored by the Romans ; to whom Nico- 75. medes IV., having no children, made over his dominions. Pergamus. The ancient Mysia vanished in the Lydian and Persian empires. While Lysimachus, king of Thrace, ruled this part of Asia, his lieutenant, an eunuch named Philetaerus, made himself independent, and established a kingdom, called Per- 283. gamus, from its capital. He was succeeded by his nephew, Eumenes, who extended his dominions considerably. Attalus 11. was the first who took the title of king. The most cele- brated of these kings was Eumenes II,, in whose reign the pergament, or parchment, was invented. His dominions em- braced the Thracian Chersonese, and Asia this side of Tau- rus, consequently, Mysia, Lydia, the two Phrygias, and Ly- 83. caonia. His son, Attalus III., having no heirs, left his king- dom to the Romans. Pontus. This country, named from the Pontus Euxinus, on which it lay, formed a part of northern Lesser Asia, east of Bithy- nia. It was included in the Persian dominions, and was given as an hereditary fief by Darius I. to his son Artabazes. Ariobarzanes, one of his successors, having obtained also 365. Lydia, Phrygia, and Ionia, became so powerful, that he cast off the Persian yoke. Mithridates II. voluntarily surrendered his kingdom to Alexander. When, after that monarch's death, Antipater attempted to seize this state, the Pontic prince resisted, and maintained his independence. Succeed- 124. ing princes enlarged their dominions. Mithridates VII., the greatest of them, was talented and ambitious : yet, though desirous of conquest, he sought to avoid a conflict with the Romans, at that time masters of a great part of Lesser Asia. He therefore turned his arms eastwards, and conquered the tribes round the Euxine as far as the Tauric Chersonese. But two such powerful neighbors could not continue long without a rupture ; war broke out between them on account of Pam- phylia and Cappadocia, and during a space of thirty years the gallant and indefatigable king of Pontus sustained a war CHAP. V. ALEXANDER AND HIS SUCCESSORS. 63 against the arms of Rome, conducted by Sulla, LucuUus, and b. c. Pompeius. Poison, administered by his own hand, terminated 64. liis eventful life. His grandson Darius reigned over Pontus ; but its glory and its power were gone, and it was finally, by the emperor Nero, reduced to the form of a Roman prov- ince. Armenia. This mountainous but fruitful country appears not till late in the history of Asia. It was divided into Great and Little Armenia, and had obeyed successively the Assyrian, Persian, and Syrian empires. In the reign of Antiochus III., Artaxias, 190 the governor of Great, and Zariades of Little Armeii ia, made themselves independent. Tigranes, a descendant of the former, united the two Armenias, and was superior lord of Syria and Cappadocia. His father-in-law, Mithridates VII., involved him in a war with the Romans, and he lost Little Armenia and Syria. Tigranes II. was put to death by order of the Roman emperor Tiberius. I^ittle Armenia had been given after the fall of Mithridates to Dejotarus, a Galatian, and then to other foreigners. After this period it vanishes out of history, and Great Armenia becomes the apple of dis- cord between the Romans and Parthians, After many con- flicts between the contending parties, it had again kings of its own in the time of the emperor Hadrian, and was finally absorbed in the Persian empire of the Sassanides. Syria. Seleucus, named Nicator, was, after the death of Alexan- der, governor of Babylon. He extended his power eastwards into India, and, after the battle of Ipsus, he became master of Syria, and possessor of all or nearly all the countries that had composed the Persian empire. Seleucus was an active, pru- dent prince, an encourager of trade, and a founder of cities. With him the Syrian empire rose ; after his death it gradually declined. His son Antiochus obtained the name of Soter, the Saver, from having delivered Lesser Asia from the Gauls ; but he was forced to acknowledge the independence of Bi- thynia and Pergamus. Antiochus II., named, by his flatter- ers, Theos, the God, was weak and effeminate. The Parthi- 25a ans cast off" the yoke of Syria, and their example was fol- lowed by the Bactrians. Seleucus II., seeking to regain the lost supremacy, died a prisoner in Parthia. Antiochus the Great fought in vain against the Parthians and Bactrians: he reduced the rebel governors of Media and Persia ; but his de- feat by the Egyptians at Raphia lost him Palestine and Coelo- 64 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I B. c. Syria. Engaging in war with the Romans, he invaded 190 Greece, but was repelled ; and the battle of Magnesia checked his career of ambition. The terms on which the haughty senate dictated peace were, the surrender of all the countries on this side Taurus, payment of 15,000 talents to the Romans, and 400 to Eumenes of Pergamus ; the delivery of Annibal, and the sending of his son as a hostage to Rome. The Syrian power was now at an end. Roman influence was paramount : all efforts to shake it off" were futile. Murder and treason disputed for the throne : neighbors and subjects took advantage of its weakness. Parthia rapidly extended its conquests. Judea and the Armenias asserted their indepen- dence. The empire was finally contracted to Proper Syria and Phcenicia. Tigranes of Armenia seized on Syria; and 64. the Romans gave the empire of the Seleucides its coup de grace, by declaring Syria a Roman province. Judea. Only a small portion of Israel took advantage of Cyrus s permission to return to their own country. Those that did return were chiefly of the tribe of Judah ; and hence the na- tion is in future called Jews. They were feeble, and they continued in humble obedience to the Persian monarchy. On its destruction, they obeyed Alexander and his successors, first the king of Egypt, and then of Syria. Their rulers had hitherto respected their religion. Antio- chus Epiphanes attempted to force them to adopt Grecian rites. The Maccabees, a race of heroes, like the judges of old, arose. Mattathias assembled bands in the mountains, and thence fell on the Syrians. His valiant son, Judas Macca- beus, continued the warfare, defeated several Syrian armies, and entered Jerusalem in triumph. He formed an alliance with the Romans. The brothers of Judas, Jonathan, Simon, and John Hyrcanus, followed up his successes so ably after his death, that the Syrians were forced to acknowledge the independence of Judea. Uniting in his own person the dignities of high-priest and prince, John Hyrcanus extended his dominion over Galilee, the country beyond Jordan, Idumea, &c. ; and the Jewish state became under him of greater extent than it had been since the days of David and Solomon. His son Aristobulus 107 'took the title of kinof. The Jewish power was not of long continuance. Factions and feuds broke out: the throne was often disputed. The Romans interposed to settle the succession. Pompeius led fi2. Aristobulus and his sons to Rome, and gave the throne and CHAP. V. Al.EXANDER AND HIS SUCCESSORS. 65 priesthood to his brother Hyrcanus, placing a Roman governor by his side. The troubles, however, still continued ; and the Romans at last set the Idumean Antipater over Judea, whose son Herod became king, a prince well known for his cruelty. On the death of Herod, the Romans divided his kingdom among his three sons. The whole was reunited under his t grandson Agrippa, and after his death reduced to a Roman province. Parlhia. Parthia is the country lying between Media and Aria, south of Hyrcania. Its inhabitants had obeyed the Persian and Syrian monarchs: the tyranny of a governor of the latter drove them into rebellion. Arsaces, a man of humble birth, but military talent, placed himself at their head, and achieved their independence. The succeeding Arsacides, as the kings were named, enlarged their dominions, which gradually extended from India to the Euphrates, from the Caspian to the Arabian sea. When the Romans became masters of Lesser Asia, proximity produced enmity, and the Parthians were the only people who resisted Rome with suc- cess. Crassus, who led the first Roman army over the Eu- phrates, was defeated and slain. In the civil wars of the Ro- mans they also took a share, siding with Pompeius against Caesar ; and with the latter's murderers against Octavianus and Antonius. Ventidius, the general of the latter, gave them a decisive overthrow. The remaining history of the Parthians offers only, exter- nally, continued wars with various success against the Ro- mans ; internally, the usual series of murder, usurpation, and cruelty, which characterize the monarchies of Asia. The twenty-ninth of the Arsacides was driven from his throne by Artaxerxes, a descendant of the ancient line of Persia ; and a new dynasty, that of the Sassanides, so named from Sassan, the founder's father, was established. Egypt. Egypt was the most fortunate of the provinces in the char- acter of its governor. Ptolemy, son of Lagus, was a man of prudence and moderation : his first object was to form there a Grecian state without oppressing the original inhabitants. Peace was necessary for the execution of his judicious plans, and he never, but when constrained, took part in the quarrels of the other governors. Afler the battle oflpsus, to the gain- ing of which he had mainly contributed, he also assumed the title of king. He then turned all his thoughts to the benefit- 6* 66 OUTLINES OF HISTORY PART I. ing of his kingdom ; he beautified Alexandria, built the Pharus light-house, encouraged every kind of trade, collected a li- brary, and invited learned men from all parts to Alexandria. His empire included Egypt, Libya, Cyrene, part of Arabia, Palestine, and Coelosyria ; and flourished each day more and more, in consequence of his wise regulations and just govern- ment. Ptolemy II,, named Philadelphus, trod in the foot- steps of his father, and equalled or excelled him in his pat- ronage of learning. He much extended and facilitated the trade to India, by repairing the canal from the Nile to the Red Sea ; and, still more, by forming the harbor of Berenice B. c. on that sea. Ptolemy III., Evergetes, imitated his father and 221. grandfather, and closed the series of the virtuous Ptolemies. After the death of Evergetes, there reigned in Egypt ten degenerate descendants of Ptolemy Lagus. Discord agitated this royal house, like others; murders were perpetrated for empire. The constant interference of the Romans alone preserved it from dissolution. With their consent, and by the will of his father, the last Ptolemy espoused his sister Cleo- patra, and shared his empire with her. Driven from Egypt, she sought the protection of Caesar, who re-established her a.s sole ruler. After his death, she united herself to Antonius ; and, on his death, poisoned herself, rather than grace the 30. triumph of Octavianus. Egypt was then reduced to the form of a Roman province. The kingdoms of Europe and Asia, whose destinies we have traced in the preceding pages, fell, as we have seen, almost all into the spreading empire of Rome ; a state which, as will soon appear, grew up from the smallest origin, and, gathering strength from every storm that assailed her, at length embraced nearly the whole civilized world beneath her shade. To her we now hasten, previously sketching the early history of her first transmarine rival, Carthage. At an early period of history a colony of Tyrians, said to have been conducted by Dido, sister to the king of Tyre, founded on the coast of Africa the city of Carthage. Pos- sessed of the commercial enterprise and dexterity of their countrymen, they rapidly extended their trade and their dominions. Numerous cities on the coast of Africa were founded by them: they trafficked with the interior: their ships sailed to the south beyond the Canary isles ; northwards they visited the shores of Gaul and Britain, and, perhaps, those of the Baltic : they wrought the silver mines of Spain:, their colonies occupied tlie isles of the Mediterranean. CHAP. VI. ROME TILL THE PUNIC WARS. 67 The political constitution of Carthage claimed the admi- ration of Aristotle. Two magistrates, named Suffetes, or judges,* chosen annually from the most distinguished families, were at the head of the government : under them were five persons who managed the chief affairs. All these magistrates were unpaid. The senate was composed of 100 members: if they and the five agreed on any matter, it was put into exe- cution ; if they disagreed, it was brought before the as- sembly of the people : the decision of the last was conclu sive. Morals were more attended to in Carthage than in most Grecian cities, and there was a magistrate there cor- responding with the Roman censor. The popular power was not so dangerous in Carthage as in Greece, the people being of a grave and solemn character, and not to be led astray by the arts of demagogues. Their manners were rugged, their religion dark and cruel. Six wars were waged by the Carthaginians in Sicily. The b. o first was caused by the people of Egesta calling on them for 413 aid against Dionysius of Syracuse. In this war fortune favored the Punic arms. A second and a third war ensued between them and the prince of Syracuse, still to the advan- tage of Carthage. During a fourth, Dionysi'is died, and his son made peace. The Carthaginian arms were, for the fifth time, directed against Syracuse, in support of Icetas, tyrant of Leontium. Timoleon, the Corinthian, commanded the Syracusan troops, and forced Carthage to restore the Grecian towns to freedom, to recognize the river Halycus as their boundary, and to engage not to meddle with the affairs of Sicily. Agathocles was the occasion of the Carthaginians again engaging in hostilities with Syracuse ; and the latter was so hard pressed as to be forced to call on Pyrrhus, king of Epirus, for assistance. Carthage was successful against Pyrrhus ; but this war involved her in hostilities with Rome, and thereby caused her ruin. CHAP. VI. ROME TILL THE PUNIC WARS. Rome under Kings. While empire after empire was flourishing and falling in Asia, while the various states of Greece were contending with each other, or occupied by internal changes, there was * Shofctim is the Hebrew name of the Judges of Israel. 68 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART ^ growing up, from the smallest beginnings, a nation destined to be the future mistress of all these states and empires. Italy, the peninsula westward of Greece, was originally inhabited by tribes of an unknown race. The Pelasgians, that extensive people who settled in Greece, also eftablished themselves in Italy. They inhabited the plains and the coasts, and were peaceful and agricultural: the mountain tribes gradually encroached upon them and conquered them. On the banks of the river Tiber, a portion of this people, named Siculans, was established : a tribe of the mountains, named Aborigines by the historians, invaded their country, expelled a part, and conquered and settled themselves among the remainder; and the united people were called Latins. A portion of them lived in villages, on some hills adjacent to the Tiber. Another mountain-race, called the Sabines, after- B. c. wards advanced towards the sea, and wrested from the in- "53. habitants of the banks of the Tiber a part of their territory. These nations finally coalesced, and formed one people ; their joined city was named Rome, possibly its old Pelasgian ap- pellation, and it was governed by kings, chosen alternately by one of the combined nations out of the other. Such is the most probable account of the origui of Rome which the researches of modern times have been able to give.* A different and more romantic tale appears in the an- cient historians ; for the early history of Rome was not writ- ten till she had become a great and powerful state, and then inquirers could meet no narratives of the days long past, save what was contained in popular tradition and popular poetry, which recorded marvels of Rome's descent from wide- famed Troy, the landing of ^neas in Latium, the love of the god Mars for the vestal Rhea, her bearing twins by the god, their exposure in the Tiber, their being saved and suckled by a wolf, and fed by a woodpecker till found by the shepherd Faustulus, their finally restoring their grandfather to the throne of Alba Longa, the city founded by Ascanius, the son of ^Eneas, and then collecting their fellow-shepherds and an indiscriminate rabble, and founding a town named Rome, from Romulus, the elder of the twins, on the hills where they had been miraculously saved and educated. The religion of Rome having, probably, had a similar origin with that of Greece, strongly resembled it ; and the Grecian system was, in a great measure, afterwards adopted by the Romans. Religion was, however, in Rome, at all times, much more an affair of state than in Greece. * Niebuhr has been followed in this view of the early history of Rome. CHAP. VI. ROME TILL THE PUNIC WARS. 69 The first constitution of Rome, whatever her origin, was monarchical. Romulus the warrior, and Numa the legislator, who appear in history as her two first kings, it is possible, never existed. The first undoubted historic fact of this early period, is the migration of the Albans to Rome when their city was destroyed, tlie Roman writers say, by Tullus, the king of Rome ; strong circumstances intimate, by the Latins, who afterwards possessed her territory. Ancus, the suc- ceeding monarch, extended the Roman dominions to the sea, and built the port of Ostia at the mouth of the Tiber. His successor was named Tarquinius. The legendary history says he was a Tuscan of Greek descent, and, in its usual style, marks his arrival at Rome by a miracle : probability is on the side of the supposition of his having been a Latin, or of some kindred nation. He greatly extended the Roman power, increased and beautified the city of Rome, embanked the Tiber, built the huge sewers for the drainage of the city, which &till exist, and commenced the erection on the Capitol of the united temples of the three great gods of Rome. Tarquinius fell, it is said, by assassination; and the vacant throne was occupied by an Etrurian named Mastarna, a con- dottiere, or leader of mercenary troops, who had come to Rome and entered the service of Tarquinius. Having changed his appellation, he appears in history under the name of Ser- vius Tullius ; but the legend of Servius, born of a maid-ser- vant who had conceived by the fire-god, and around whose infant brows lambent flames had played, bears not the slight- est resemblance to the history of the Etrurian captain Mas- tarna. Servius continued the works commenced by Tarquin- ius, and immortalized his memory by the constitution which bears his name. A conspiracy of the principal citizens, who were displeased at the changes he had introduced, deprived Servius of his life ; and his throne was occupied by a grand- son of Tarquinius. This monarch was magnificent and princely in his ideas ; he was successful in war, and raised Rome to a high degree of power ; but he is said to have been haughty, cruel, and tyrannic. An act of violence done by one of his eons is related to have roused the indignation of the people ; Tarquinius and his family were expelled, and the kingly au- thority abolished. The Romans were originally divided into three Tribes, each tribe subdivided into ten Curiae, and each of these latter into ten Gentes, or houses. A representative of each gens sat in the senate. In the time of the earlier kings we find, however, but two tribes sending members to the senate ; the third was subsequently admitted to that privilege. These 70 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I. three tribes were the original citizens of Rome, the Popidus ; and there were, besides them and their slaves, a body of peo- ple called Clients, foreigners, who, from various causes, had removed from their own country to Rome, and settled there under the protection of Roman citizens, who, as their patrons, are called Patres and Patricians, words originally synony- mous. In the reign of Tullus, a new body began to be formed by the mig'ration of the Albans to Rome ; this was called the Plebs. It contained all ranks of society, both nobles and com mons, of the migrating people, and mostly retained its prop- erty in its lands ; but it had no share in the government, or in the public lands, which were enjoyed by the patricians on the payment of a tenth of their produce to the state : it formed the infantry of the army, had no right of intermarriage with the patricians, lived apart from them, and was opposed to them in interest. The patrician gentes, being a closed body, did not admit of their vacancies being filled up, and they continually dimin- ished in number. The plebeians were, on the other hand, receiving constant accessions. Tarquinius L, after a good deal of opposition, succeeded in forming three new tribes out of the plebeians, and adding them to the patrician tribes. His successor went still further ; he divided all the plebeians into thirty local tribes, independent of the patrician ones; and then, to combine the two orders more effectually, constituted a mingled aristocracy and timocracy, by dividing all the peo- ple into Centuries, for the purposes of war, and of passing laws and electing magistrates. It was thus composed : the three original tribes and the three formed by Tarquinius were first ; to these Servius added twelve centuries, com nosed of the most wealthy of the plebeians ; and these eighteen were to supply the cavalry of the army : hence the whole were called Equites. The remainder of the plebeians were di- vided, according to their property, into five Classes, subdi- vided into centuries ; and the rest of the people were put into other centuries. The classes furnished the infantry of the army; those not in the classes, the baggage-train, &c. When the centuries were assembled in the Field of Mars, their place of meeting, laws, and other matters, previously prepared by the senate, were laid before them ; the equestrian centuries voted first, and then the first class : and the number of cen- turies in this class was so great in proportion to those in the remaining ones, that if they agreed with the equestrian cen- turies, the majority was attained, and there was no necessity for calling up any more of the classes. The patricians had afterwards, in their curiae, the power of adopting or rejecting CHAP. VI. ROME TILL THE PUNIC WARS. 71 the measure which had passed the centuries. The legislator's object of giving power to wealth and birth was thus fully at- tained ; and but for the useless injustice of the patricians, who could not endure to part with ever so little of their privileges, Rome might have become, long ere she did, the mistress of the world. The form of government adopted by the Romans on the expulsion of their kings, was that of placing the executive in the hands of two magistrates, to be chosen annually from the patricians. These magistrates were originally called Praetors, afterwards Consuls, and they held the full kingly power,~only divested of its priestly dignity. Rome had attained a high degree of power under her kings. By a treaty made in the first year of the republic with the g. c. Carthaginians, which has fortunately been preserved, it ap- 509- pears that she was mistress of the whole coast from Ostia to Terracina, and traded with Sicily, Sardinia, and Africa. The Tuscans — War with Porsenna. The country to the right of the Tiber was inhabited by a people called Etrurians, or Tuscans. Manners, language, and religion distinguished them from the neighboring nations. Tliey possessed twelve cities in the country called Etruria, and an equal number in northern Italy, about the Po. The current opinion was, that they were a colony from Mseonia, who came by sea and conquered the inhabitants of Etruria, and then extended their conquests northwards: the more probable supposition is, that they were a nation who entered Italy on the north-east, and spread their conquests southwards. At the period we now treat of, they were fast approaching the acme of their power, which, though brilliant, was tran- sient ; for liberty was not in Etruria : no free land owners, like the Roman plebs, formed for her an invincible infantry. The Tuscan Lucumones, or nobles, ruled over vassals similar to the Helots of Laconia, or the Penestse of Thessaly. It was to this people that the Tarquinii addressed them- selves for aid to regain their lost dominions, after an attempt to recover them by treachery, in which even the sons of Brutus, the expeller of the tyrant, were engaged, had failed. The Veientians are said to have taken arms in their favor; a battle took place, in which the consul Brutus, and Aruns, a son of the banished tyrant, fell by mutual wounds, and vic- tory declared for Rome. The legend relates, that Tarquiniua tJien invoked the aid of Porsenna, king of Clusium, a powerful Tuscan prince, who marched against Rome ; and though his- tory seeks to veil the disgrace of surrender, by marvellous 72 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART 1 tales of the valor of Codes, the intrepidity of Mucius, the heroism of the female hostages, and the magnanimity of Por- senna, the ungrateful truth is still apparent, that Rome was amerced in one-third of her territory, and prohibited the use of iron, except for agricultural purposes. The Etrurians now extended their dominion into Latium ; before Aricia they met a defeat from Aristodemus, the Greek tyrant of Cuma ; and Rome seized this opportunity of regaining independence. Tarquinius and his claims had been neglected by Porsenna. B. c. He now roused the Latins to arms in his cause. A great and 495. decisive battle is said to have taken place on the banks of the lake Regillus, in which the fortune of Rome again triumphed, and the baffled tyrant fled to Aristodemus at Cuma, where he died. Dictator — Secession — Tribunes, The constitution devised by Servius was just and equita- ble, calculated to unfold and bring to maturity the various elements which composed the Roman state ; but it was check- ed and nearly smothered by Tarquinius the Tyrant. On his expulsion, the patricians, who felt their need of the cordial support of the plebeians, restored it in some measure. The consuls were elected by the centuries, and the Valerian law secured the plebeians in their life, property, and honor. But when Tarquinius was no longer an object of terror, and the Etrurian and Latin wars were ended, the patricians sought to bring back matters to their former state, or rather to a worse ; for during the monarchy, the king was the natu- ral protector of the plebeians. By the Valerian law, the ple- beians had been given the same right of appeal from the sen- tence of a magistrate, and of trial by their peers, which had always been possessed by the patricians ; but this extended to only a mile from the city. This right of appeal lay even 498. against the sentence of the consuls. To evade this lav/, and deprive the plebeians of their safety even within the city, a magistracy named the Dictatorship was instituted, an office of Latin origin. The dictator was chosen by the senate, and approved of by the patricians: his power while in office was regal ; no appeal lay from his sentence. At first even the patricians had no appeal, though they afterwards obtained it. It was, in fact, a power directed against the plebeians, who were always terrified at the creation of this magistrate. The patricians kept exclusive possession of the public do- mains. Having the government in their own hands, they no longer paid a tenth to the state. Taxes, wars, famine, re- duced great numbers of the plebeians to distress ; they were CHAi. VI. ROME TILL THE PUNIC WAliS. 73 forced to borrow money at an usurious inte.'^st. ^he p^tri cians, or their clients in their name, were the prlr«cipai credi- tors. The law of Servius, forbidding pledg'ing of tn^ person for debt, had been abolished. The Nexi* \vare coptinuallj brought before the praetor's tribunal, and made Addicti. Every patrician house was a jail for debtors ; and after everv court-day, in times of distress, droves of sentenced debtors with their sons and grandchildren, might be seen driven olt in chains to these dungeons. The grievances of the plebeians were intolerable, yet thert appeared no remedy. While they were in this state of un- certainty, an old man one day broke from his prison in chains, and covered with rags : he appealed to the Quirites to pro- tect him, enumerated the battles he had fought, recountec^ the causes of his misfortunes, and showed the bloody marks of his creditor's cruelty. The pity and indignation of the people were excited; all were clamorous for relief Tht senate knew not what to do ; they ordered a levy against tho Volscians ; the people refused to enlist. The consul Servilius issued a proclamation allowing those who were in slavery foi debt to serve, and declaring that els long as a soldier was un der arnis, his family should remain in undisturbed enjoyment of his property. The legions were filled up, and the army soon returned covered with conquest and laden with booty , but the hopes of the plebeians were disappointed. Next yea^' they again refused to serve in the legions. Valerius was made dictator, and he issued a proclamation similar to that of Servilius. The people trusted in the character of Valerius, and the power of the dictatorship. The army was victorious ; but even Valerius could not overcome the obduracy of the senate, influenced by the unbending tyrannic spirit of Appius Claudius. The dictator's army had been disbanded ; those of the con- suls were still in the field. An insurrection broke out. The legions appointed L. Sicinius Bellutus their leader, crossed the Anio, and occupied the Sacred Mount. The plebeians in the city and its vicinity retired to the Aventine and Esquiline hills of the city : the patricians and their clients occupied the Palatine, Capitoline, Quirinal, and Cselian : these were all separate and fortified. Matters might have come to blood- shed, but that the power of the two parties was pretty nearly balanced, and the dread of external enemies made them averse to weaken themselves. The patricians formed an al- * Those who were in debt under obligation to pay after a certain period were called JSTexi; those who failed to pay and were by the praetor delivered over to their creditors were called Mdicti. 7 B. C 74 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I. liance with the Latins : they then deputed ten of the princi- pal members of their body to treat with the plebeians, and peace was ultimately established and sworn to between the two orders. By this the patricians soug-ht to separate the in- terest of the multitude from that of the men of rank : to the latter they conceded nothing", gave them admittance to none of the honors of the state ; to appease the former, they con- sented to give force to the Valerian law, to cancel all debts, and release all enslaved debtors. But the law of debt re- mained unaltered. This secession and treaty were rendered memorable by the 483.* institution of the Tribunate, an inviolate popular magistracy, established for the protection of the plebs, which proved a salutary check on the excesses of either party ; was the chief mean of preserving Rome so long from bloody dissensions ; but, like every human institution, growing pernicious when it had outlived its original purpose, afterwards became a chief instrument in the overthrow of liberty. Spurius Cassius, and the Agrarian Law. The bonds of alliance were now drawn closer between the Romans and the Latins, and a third nation, the Ilernicians, was taken into the alliance. According to the terms of it, all spoils and conquests were to be divided, share and share alike, among the three nations. Sp. Cassius Viscellinus, the Roman consul, was the person wIk) concluded this league. He, some time after, brought forward the first Agrarian law, was accused before the curiae of aiming at the sovereignty, was condenmed, and thrown from the Tarpeian rock, his house razed, his goods sold, and the produce dedicated to Ceres. The Roman Agrarian laws have frequently been repre- sented as unjust and iniquitous. A moment's consideration of their nature will prove such a supposition to be groundless. It was the practice of Rome, and the Italian states in general, on making a conquest, to take a portion, generally a third, of the enemy's land. This then became public land, and was occupied for tillage or grazing, by the citizens of the state which had acquired it; they paid a tenth of the produce by way of rent, and the land was subject to resumption by the state. While the Roman citizens consisted of the three patrician tribes alone, there was no cause for murmur ; but when the plebs gradually grew up, and as the infantry of the army was the chief instrument in the acquisition of public land, they naturally claimed to have a share in what was gained. Tlie kings, therefore, were in the habit of assigning small portions jfHAP. VI. ROME TILL THE PUNIC WARS. 75 i)f the public land as property to the plebeians, and thus the latter grew, by degrees, to be the only or principal land-own- ers in the state. After the expulsion of the Tarquinii, a dis- tribution of the crown lands was made among the plebeians ; but the loss of the lands beyond the Tiber, and the heavy weight of taxation which fell almost entirely on them, now that the patricians, having gotten the government into their own hands, no longer paid the tenths off the public land, made the plebeians more clearly discern the injustice with which they were treated, and be clamorous for an Agrarian law, i. e. a law which was not, as has been erroneously sup- posed, to take their property from the rich and give it to the poor, but which would make the patricians give up a portion of the public land which they occupied without paying any rent or taxes, to be divided in small lots among those whose blood had purchased it. The Decemvirs and the Twelve Tables. After the death of Cassius, the struggles between the orders continued. The Romans were, in fact, two nations within the- same walls, so distinct as not even to have the cannubium or right of intermarriage. The plebeians saw that political equality was not yet attainable ; but they felt the absolute necessity of legal equality, and they insisted on a general code of laws being formed. After a most obstinate resistance on the part of the patricians, it was, at length, agreed to appoint ten persons to form a code ; and deputies, it is added, were sent to the Greek cities in Italy to collect b. c. their wisest laws, and bring them home for the use of the 455 legislators. The legislators were in number ten, hence called Decem- virs. They were all patricians, and invested with unlimited powers ; the consulate, tribunate, and qusestorate, were sus- pended during their magistracy. The decemvirs proved themselves worthy of this confidence. They governed ten days alternately, and each member of the college rendered to those who appealed from the sentence of his colleagues the assistance which the tribunes used to give. They collected all the former traditionary laws, selected those that were salutary, and formed a general code, instead of the former partial and local rights. The two orders were formed into one nation, the patricians and their clients being received into the plebeian local tribes. The Comitia of the centuries were declared to be the sole jurisdiction in capital cases, and aixV charge affecting liberty and civic rights, and thus the 76 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. FART I. equality of the citizens was decidedly pronounced ; for all or ders were comprised in these comitia. The decemvirs having, with honor to themselves and ad- vantage to the state, performed the duties imposed upon them, and drawn up a code in ten tables, laid down their office. But, under pretext of something still remaining to be done, the office was continued for another year, and ten per- sons, five patricians and five plebeians, chosen. These enacted two more tables, thus makmg the whole twelve. But they governed with haughtiness and tyranny ; the senate stood in awe of them ; the people, having now no tribunitian protec- tion, trembled before them, while the younger patricians ex- ulted in the license given to them, and maintained the cause of the decemvirs. The year passed, — no sign of their laying down their office : the tyranry seemed intended to be perpet- ual. The lust of Appius, the chief of them, saved the state. He had seen Virginia, the daughter of Virginius, a centurion, crossing the forum in her way to school ; a freedman of his, suborned by him, claimed her as his slave ; her lover hastened to the camp to inform her father, who hurried to Rome. Vir- ginia was brought before the tribunal of the decemvir, and by him assigned as a slave to his freedman : her father, seeing the honor of his family about to be stained, caught up a butcher's knife and plunged it into the bosom of his innocent child ; then, with the bloody weapon reeking in his hand, has- tened to the camp, told his comrades what he had done, and invoked their aid. The army marched to Rome, and posted itself on the Aventine : the decemvirate was abolished, and the tribunate of the people restored. Appius and Oppius, the most guilty of the decemvirs, died in prison by their own hand ; their colleagues went into voluntary exile. Spurius McbUus. The consulate was restored ; two members of the illustrious houses of the Valerii and the Horatii were the first consuls. They carried laws in favor of plebeian liberty. When their year expired, the tribunes brought in a bill to enable the peo- ple to choose, at their option, patrician or plebeian consuls. The chief patricians assembled to consult how to obviate the fancied danger of their order; C. Claudius even proposed to murder the tribunes ; his project was rejected with indigna- tion, and the two orders agreed, that, instead of two consuls, there should be six military tribunes, three from each ordei, placed at the head of the government. But the people, as yet, gained not much ; for the patricians, by management and union, generally contrived to procure for themselves the CHAP. VI, ROME TIL L THE PUNIC WARS. 79 whole, or the greater part, of the tribunarian authority. Con suls, too, were frequently chosen, and they and military tri- bunes alternated. On the whole, during- this period, the rights of the plebe- ians were advancing ; some of their order became military tribunes, the connubium between them and the patricians was established, and thus the bonds of amity and kindness be- tween the orders were drawn more closely. Yet patrician party-spirit and cruelty still occasionally exhibited them- selves. A crying sin of the senate of this period was the murder of Sp. Maelius, a plebeian knight, who, in a time of dearth, expended his private fortune in the purchase of corn in Tuscany to distribute among the poor of his order. The senate dreaded the influence of Maelius, and feared that he might make good the claims of his order to a share in the government. He was accused of aiming at the tyranny. The venerable Cincinnatus was created dictator to avert the pretended danger. Mselius was summoned before his tribu- nal ; he saw his enemies bent on his destruction, and took refuge among the people ; C. Servilius Ahala, the master of the knights, pursued and cut him down, when he might have seized him and brought him before the dictator's tribunal. Party-spirit applauded the deed ; succeeding ages blindly ac- quiesced in the applause : the enlightened inquirer now be- holds it in all its atrocity, and condemns the illegal and in- iquitous procedure. The voice of history cries without ceas- ing, Do no evil, for a time will arrive when the truth, how artfully soever veiled, will come forth and be apparent. Wars anterior to the Gallic Invasion. During the period whose internal history we have just been tracing, Rome was not free from external disturbance. In the year 272, a bloody war broke out between Rome and Veil, one of the most powerful of the Etrurian cities. For- tune was rather favorable to the latter, for volunteers flocked from all parts of Etruria to recruit her forces. The Romans saw the advantage to be derived from fixing the seat of war in the enemies' country. A fort was raised on the banks of the Cremera, a stream in the Veientian territory. The Fabian gens undertook the defence of it. They marched out of Rome to the number of 306, with their clients, amounting to 4000 or 5000, and settled there. Notwithstanding a peace, they ravaged the country. By a display of booty, the Veientians succeeded in drawing the greater part of them into an am- bush, where they were cut to pieces; the fort was then stormed, and the remainder of the garrison put to the sword. 80 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART 1. Tradition relates that of the entire Fahian gens, but one sur- vived — a child who had been left at Rome. The Veientians now carried on the war vigorously against Rome : they fixed their camp on the Janiculum, but were defeated, and their well-stored camp became the prey of the victors. Almost unceasing warfare prevailed at this period between the Romans, the Latins, and Hernicians on the one side, and the Volscians and the iEquians on the other, without either party acquiring much advantage. A Sabine war, too, termi- nated in favor of Rome ; for a kindred stem, the Samnites, was now extending itself southwards, and drawing to its ban- ners the active and adventurous spirits of the nation. The truce with Veii having expired, the war again raged. Fidenas revolted, and joined Veii. The seat of war w^as now the left bank of the Tiber. The Etrurians advanced to the gates of Rome ; they were repulsed, and forced to retire be- yond the Anio. Fidenae was besieged and taken. Another truce for twenty years was made with Veii, and indefinitely protracted. Veii was a peaceable, trading town ; her desire was tranquillity. Rome was a nation of soldiers. Veii sought to prolong the truce. Rome, as a hostile race, having burst over the Alps, and overrun the Circumpadanian Etruria, thought she had now a favorable opportunity for conquering her rival, who could not look for aid to the more distant cities of Etruria : she therefore refused to protract the truce. Both sides took arms. Capena and Falerii alone aided Veii. Con- quest of territory was the object of the Romans : regular pay was given to the army ; a line of forts was drawn around the hostile town ; the siege was extended to a duration equal to B c_ that of Troy. Camillus, one of the greatest names in Roman 394. story, commanded, and Veii at length fell, entered by a mine secretly wrought by the besiegers. The Romans were en- riched by the spoil. Camillus sullied his glory by secreting apart, for which he went into exile. The taking of Veii is an historical fact ; the details are poetic fiction. Who can now believe that the formation of the Emissarius, which still carries off the superfluous waters of the Alban lake, a passage of 3700 paces in length, six feet in height, and three and a half in width, was the work of a single year, and executed by a people who had little or no interest in th« adjacent lands, and that the fate of a city beyond the Tiber depended on the emission of the waters of that lake 1 The Gauls — Capture of Rome. Mistress of the Veientian territory, Rome now looked for- ward to farther conquest m Etruria; but a storm, whose first CHAP. VI. ROME TILL THE PUNIC WARS. 81 effects she probably contemplated with complacency, was des- tined to crush her for a season to the earth. Rome was to fall before the Gauls. The Kelts now first appear in history. This race, one of the first that occupied Europe, inhabited, at this period, Gaul and Britain, arid a great part of Iberia, Attracted by the accounts of the climate and fertility of Italy, a lar^e body of the Gauls passed the Alps, and poured down on the coun- try about the Po; they quickly conquered the Etrurians who dwelt there; the Umbrians submitted; the Gauls extended themselves to the Adriatic, crossed the Apennines, and laid sieo-e to Clusium in Etruria. The Clusians called on the Romans for aid, who sent an embassy to the Gallic camp to offer their mediation. This was rejected by the Gauls. The Roman envoys entered the town, and, noo;lectful of the laws of nations, took part in a battle. Q. Fabius, one of them, slew a Gallic chie^ and was recognized. The Gauls dis- patched an embassy to Rome to demand the surrender of the offenders. This was contumeliously refused. Breathinof vengeance, they broke up from before Clusium, and marched for Rome. At the AUia, eleven miles from the city, they met the Roman army. A signal defeat rendered the place b. c and the day ever detested in the Roman annals. The Gauls 388 speedily appeared before the walls of the city, forced the gates, and found it deserted, except by a few aged men of consular rank. These they slaughtered in cold blood. The remainder of the people had sought refuge in the neighboring towns : the Vestal virgins and the sacred things had been conveyed to Csere ; the Capitol was occupied by the senate, and about 1000 of the bravest of the patrician youth. An attempt to take the Capitol failed ; the Gauls burned the city and employed themselves in plundering excursions into the surrounding country. Autumn, then and now the sickly sea- son at Rome, came on ; the besiegers died in heaps, a compo- sition was proposed, and the Gauls finally agreed, for a thou- sand pounds weight of gold, to evacuate Rome, and its ter- ritory. Roman vanity invented a tale of Camillus, who had, though in exile, been appointed dictator, coming up with his army as they were in the act of weighing the gold, and so signally defeating the Gauls, that not one survived to carry home the news. j Rebuilding of the City — Manlius. Rome was a heap of ruins. Veii equalled it in magnitude, and exceeded it in beauty. It was proposed that the Roman people should migrate thither : the senate opposed this pn^ 82 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART 1 ject ; the people were wavering-, when a casual word, taken as an omen, decided them to remain. Within a year the city rose from its ashes with little of beauty or regularity Veii was demolished to furnish buildingf materials. War was renewed. The Tarquinienses, a people of Etru- ria, took the field against the Romans: the Volscians and ^Equians were again in arms: the Latins and Hernicians, though a century had elapsed since Sp. Cassius had formed the league between them and the Romans, separated from them, and were sometimes opposed to them : the Gauls again invaded the Roman territory ; yet the fortune of Rome pre- vailed, and her generals triumphed. But Rome was internally agitated : the heavy rate of in- terest, the odious laws of ' ^bt, the poverty of the people, and the cruelty of creditf > nearly produced desperation. Touched with compassion, ivianlius, the savior of the Capitol, a man of generous nature, stood forward as the protector of the unfortunate, and even sold a patrimonial estate to relieve their wants. He was charged with defaming the govern- ment, and thrown into prison. He was afterwards released, and whether he then meditated plans of vengeance is uncer- tain ; but he finally fell a victim to the envy and tyrannical spirit of his order, who now lorded it uncontrolled over the broken-spirited people. Rome was on the very point of sinking into utter insignificance under the dominion of the short-sighted patricians, when two men arose, who, by firm- ness and temperance, raised her from her dejection, and placed her in the road which led with certainty to her future grandeur. The Licinian Rogations. 375. In the year of Rome 378, C. Licinius Stolo and L. Sextius were chosen tribunes of the people, and they immediately brought forward their celebrated rogations, which operated such a mighty change in Rome. The supreme magistrates were in that year military tribunes ; the people were full of hope, the senate of fear. If the rogations passed the comitia, it might not be safe to refuse assent to them. They sought to avert the danger, and gained over the colleagues of Li- cinius and Sextius to interpose their veto on the measure. Its authors were not dejected. When the year expired, they refused to allow the election of military tribunes to proceed. The republic remained for five or six years under Interreges. Licinius and Sextius were re-elected every year, and each year more and more of the friends of the rogations were chosen to be their colleagues. The people were firm to their B. C CHAP. VI. ROME TILL THE PUNIC WARS. 83 popular tribunes. The clients had, in the time of the decem- virs, been admitted into the tribes ; the influence of the pa- tricians was thereby diminished ; the office of the interrex being- but for five days, no wars could be carried on : the tribunes allowed no one to be imprisoned for debt. Though the neighboring states remained at peace, yet such a condition of affairs was unsafe. All parties wished to see an end of it, yet the senate would not yield. Twice was the venerable Camillus created dictator against the people, twice did the dictatorial power fail before the tribunarian. Arts, menaces, force, were tried in vain. The senate would willingly have conceded some of the demands. The tribunes incorporated all into one bill, and would have all or none. Camillus, at length, became convinced of the inutility of protracted re- sistance. He mediated between the orders, and the senate gave their consent to the rogations. These rogations were, 1. that no more military tribunes yhould be chosen, but consuls only, and of these one to be a plebeian ; 2. that one half of the guardians of the Sibylline books should be plebeians ; 3. that in cases of debt, all the interest already paid should be deducted from the capital, and the residue paid in three equal annual instalments; 4. a.i Agrarian law : of which the principal provisions were, that the public land should have its boundaries marked out ; that every Roman citizen should be entitled to enjoy it; that no one should hold more than 500 jugera of it in arable or plantation land, or feed more than 100 head of black, or 500 of small cattle, on the public pasture ; that a tenth of the produce of corn-land, a fifth of that of vineyards and planta- tions, and so much a head grazing-moncy for cattle should be paid to the state ; that this tax should be farmed out every lustrum by the censors, and the produce of it appropriated to the payment of the army ; that the possessors of the public land should be bound to employ free laborers on their land in a rated proportion to their possession. The plebeians consented that the consular power should be diminished. The jurisdiction was separated from it, and com- mitted to a prsetor, whom the patricians insisted should of right belong to their body ; and as the prajtor ranked with the consuls, and might be styled their colleague, they thut; kept two out of three places to themselves. The first plebeian consul was L. Sextius Lateranus, the fellow-tribune of C Licinius Stolo. 84 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I Samnite War. Tlie period from 389 to 411 was internally spent m efforts, on the side of the patricians, to do away with the Liciniaii law ; externally in various wars with the Gauls, Etruscans, Hernicians, and others; and victory was, as usual, on the side of the Romans. The Samnites, a mountain race, descended, it is said, from the Sabines, certainly akin to them, had been for some time spreading themselves to the south. They had long since made themselves masters of Capua, the wealthy capital of Campania, where they rapidly degenerated, and sank into luxury. Their mountain brethren became their bitterest enemies. In the year 412, the Campanians, being hard pressed by the Samnites, called upon Rome for alliance and aid. Aid was not refused ; the Romans sent an cmbassv to the Samnites, requesting them to abstain from injuring the allies of Rome. Their interference was haughtily rejected ; a combined Roman and Latin army entered Campania. JMoimt Gaurus, which overhangs the Lucrine lake, was the scene of the first conflict between these two great nations, who fought for tlie empire of Italy. After a furious conflict, victory declared for Rome. The war was obstinatelv continued, though to the advantage of the latter. At last Rome, jealous of Latium. made a peace with the Samnites, in which the Latins refused to join. The Latin War. The Latins had long been in close alliance with Rome. In all wars they composed one half of the legions ; they were mingled in the manipuli, or companies, and their general commanded alternately with the Roman. Feclinij their power, they deemed it just that they should be placed on a footing of perfect equality ; their ambassadors repaired to Rome, and proposed to the senate that tlie two nations should form one, in which Rome should have the supremacy, and which should be denominated from iier; that half the senate should be composed of Latins, and one of the consuls be of that nation. These just propositions were rejected with scorn and indignation by the haughty Romans, and war, little less than civil, broke out between the long-united nations. The Latins and Campanians were still at war with the Samnites, who were now in alliance with Rome. Four Ro- man legions, by a rapid march through the mountains, arrived in Campania, and joined the Samnite army. At the foot of Vesuviu.s, the decisive conflict took place : Sanmites were CHAP. VI. ROME TILL THE PUNIC WARS. 85 arrayed against Campanians, Romans against Latins, similar arms and tactics against each other. Victory long being doubtful, the front ranks in the left wing of the Romans fell back. The plebeian consul Decius, who had vowed to sacri- fice himself for Rome, now performed his vow : consecrated • by the pontifex, and clad in a magnificent robe, he rushed on horseback amidst the ranks of the enemy, and fell covered with wounds. The Latins gave way before the renewed valor of the Romans ; and the other consul, Manlius, was equally successful on his side. Scarcely a fourth of the liatin army escaped. The loss of the flower of her troops effectually debilitated Latium : town after town submitted to the Romans, and a bloody and cruel vengeance was taken by that haughty people. The people of Latium were divided ; some obtained the rank of Roman citizens, others were deprived of their lands and their rights. They were forbidden to hold national diets, or to intermarry or acquire lands in each other's territories; they no longer served in the Roman legions. With the Volscians and Hernicians they formed separate cohorts. About this time, Q. Publilius Philo, being dictator, had three laws passed which completed the constitution. One of these included the censorship in the higher offices, which were common to the two orders; a second took from the curiae the power of putting their veto on any law ; the third made the plebiscita, or decrees of the tribes, binding on all citizens. By these means, internal discord was ended, and Rome, unretarded by domestic dissensions, could now ad- vance rapidly in the career of universal empire. War with Pyrrhus. Rome was now mistress of Etruria, Latium, and Campania. The Samnites had aided her to conquer the Latins ; a gene- ■■ ral league of the Samnites and their kindred mountain tribes was formed against the menacing power of Rome, and a fierce war broke out, in which a Roman army endured the disgrace of passing under the yoke at the Caudine pass; but the disgrace was speedily effaced, and Samnium reduced to submission. Tarentum, a rich and luxurious city of Southern Italy, b. c. had taken part in this war, and grievously insulted the Ro- 283 mans. Unable to defend themselves, the Tarentines sought the aid of Pyrrhus, king of Epirus, a prince of courage and talent, ready to serv^e whoever could pay. He had just gained and lost Macedonia ; and he now fed himself with the hopes of becoming the Alexander of the West ; reckoned on 8 86 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I a speedy conquest of Italy; and already, in his ambitious views, anticipated that of Gaul, Spain, and Africa. He there- fore willingly acceded to the desire of the Tarentines, and passed over to Italy. For the first time the arms and tactics of Greece and Rome came into collision. In the first two battles, fought at Pan- dosia and Asculum, his military skill and his elephants gained the victory for Pyrrhus ; yet with so much loss, that he made proposals of peace to the Romans. They would treat only on condition of his quitting Italy. A third battle was fought B. c. iisar Beneventum, in which Pyrrhus was so roughly handled, 279. that he gave up all hopes of conquest in Italy, and passed over to Sicily, and thence to Greece, where he met his death, in an attempt on the city of Argos, in the Peloponnesus. The Romans now reduced all Southern Italy ; and from the Arno to Rhegium, the whole peninsula obeyed the city. CHAP. VII. ROME TILL THE TIME OF THE GRACCHI. First Punic War. The island of Sicily had originally been colonized by the people who inhabited Italy. The Greeks early began to es- tablish colonies there, and many of these rapidly grew up to be powerful states. The Carthaginians also settled there. They held at this period one half of the island, and their power was formidable to the remainder.* Syracuse was the chief of the Grecian colonies. Its founders were Dorians ; its constitution was therefore at first aristocratic ; but it was a trading city, and did not long con- tinue to be so governed. The beneficent Gelo, at the time when Greece was assailed by Persia, possessed the supreme 406. power in Syracuse. Six years after the fatal expedition of the Athenians against it, Syracuse fell under the dominion of Dionysius, an able, talented, and, if we credit a modern his- torian, a useful prince. He left his power to his son, of the 867. same name, who inherited not his good qualities. His cousin Dion, and then the Corinthian Timoleon, overthrew his power. The Syracusans had not virtue enough to retain their recovered freedom. Agathocles, a man of splendid talents, seized the supreme power. Ho was the terror of his foes, ard formidable even to the Carthaginians. Close pressed in See Carthage, p. 59. CHAP. VII. ROME TILL THE TIME OF THE GRACCHI. 87 war by them, he adopted the bold resolution of carrying the war into their own country. He passed over to Africa, and appeared before the walls of Carthage. He died in a good b c old age, full of fame, but childless. 28^ On his death Syracuse fell into confusion. Pyrrhus wa? invited over from Italy to no purpose. The Mamertines, a portion of the mercenary troops whom Agathocles had had in pay, seized on the city of Messma, and murdered the in- habitants : the Syracusans allied themselves with the Car- thaginians against them ; the Mamertines applied for support to the Romans. After some delay, occasioned by the flagrant injustice of the Mamertine cause, interest prevailed over principle, and the required aid was promised. Thus began the first of those wars called Punic. Rome was mistress of all Italy, except what was held in 265. the north by the Gauls : Carthage was in the height of her power, possessed of a large portion of Africa, Spain, and Sicily, and of Sardinia, and other islands. Rome's civil con- stitution was in its vigor ; that of Carthage in its decline : Rome's troops were free-born citizens; those of Carthage mercenaries : Rome had no fleet ; that of Carthage was nu- merous. Such was the relative state of the two nations when they descended into the arena. The Romans determined to have a fleet. A Carthaginian ship of war, that was driven on shore, served as a model : the crews were taug-ht to row on land. Inferior to their foes in the art of manoeuvring their vessels, they mvented machmes for grappling, and bringing a sea to resemble a land-fight. The consul Duillius won the first naval victory. The Romans were already victorious in Sicily. The consul Regulus, in imitation of Agathocles, carried the war into Africa, and spread terror to the gates of Carthage. A Spartan merce- nary, named Xanthippus, was opposed to him. Roman courage failed before Grecian skill, and Regulus and his army surren- dered. National hatred invented a lying tale of Punic cru- elty and Roman virtue, in the person of this unhappy general. A signal defeat, off* the ^gatian islands, forced the Cartha- ginians to sue for peace, and a war of twenty-three years ter- minated by their giving up all Sicily, and paying a large sum 243. of money. lllyrian War — Gallic War. The Illyrians, a people inhabiting the north-eastern coast of the Adriatic, were addicted to piracy. The Italian mer- chants complained of their losses at Rome : ambassadors were sent to tllyria to remonstrate : the ambassadors were ill- 88 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART 1 treated, and some of them murdered. Rome took up arms to avenge them, and to put down piracy. The Illyrian queen, Teuta, was compelled to surrender a large portion of her do- minions, to reduce her sliipping, and to pay an annual tribute. The Senonian Gauls possessed the rich plains watered by the Po ; the Ligurians, the rugged hills west and south of them. Rome engaged in war with both : the former were completely subdued, after a hard contest, in which they were B. c. aided by their kindred tribes from beyond the Alps. The 224. battle of Clusium decided the fate of Cisalpine Gaul. De- fended by their mountains, the Ligurians, often overcome, were long unconquered. They were a hardy, active race, who lived by feeding cattle, and by hiring out their services in war. Second Punic War. The Carthaginians now turned their views to conquests in Spain. Their troops were commanded by Asdrubal, one of the ablest generals they had ever possessed. On his death the troops chose for their commander his son Annibal, now but twenty-six years old, who had been reared in the camp, and was the sworn foe of Rome. All his thoughts were 219. turned on war against that republic : he attacked Saguntum, a city in alliance with Rome, took it, after an obstinate but unavailing defence, marched with a numerous, veteran, and well-appointed army through the Pyrenees and Gaul to the confluence of the Rhone and Saone, passed through the coun- try of the Allobroges, crossed the Alps, and descended into the modern Piedmont. He defeated the Romans on the banks of the Ticinus, then on those of the Trebia, next at the Tra- simene lake in Tuscany, and finally gave them an overthrow at Cannse in Apulia, worthy to be compared with those of Syracuse, Leuctra, and Arbela. But here his career of vic- tory ended. The Roman armies hitherto opposed to him had been militia, their generals rash and inexperienced. The chief command was now given to Fabius the Delayer, who would never come to a general engagement, but hovered about and harassed the Punic army, and raised the courage of his own. Yet Annibal, though opposed by a faction at home, and ill-supplied with men and money, kept possession of the fairest portion of Italy during seventeen years. Rome gradually recovered her strength; her courage had never failed : she sent an army to Spain, which was at first resisted with success; but under the command of the youth- ful, virtuous, and heroic Scipio, overcame the troops of Car- thage. Annibal was repeatedly checked in Italy ; Gracchus CHAP. Vll. ROME TILL THE TIME OF THEGRACCHL 89 conquered Sardinia ; Syracuse, which had now gone against Rome, was, though defended by the machines of the great Archimedes, taken by Marcellus ; and Annibal's last hope, — the army led to his assistance from Spain by his brother As- drubal, — was annihilated on the banks of the Metaurus by Tiberius Nero. Scipio at length passed with his victorious army over to Africa, and Annibal was recalled to the defence of his country. On the plains of Zama a battle was fought b. c. between the two greatest generals of the age, and the fate 202. of Carthasre was decided. Annibal was defeated for the first time ; Carthage was forced to sue for peace. Rigorous terms were imposed ; she was confined to Africa, obliged to surren- der her ships, prohibited engaging in war, and compelled to yield Numidia to Masinissa, the ally of Rome. The Macedonian and Syrian Wars. Rome now possessed all Italy, Sicily, and the other islands, and a part of Spain. Her arms now, for the first time, show themselves in Greece. Carthage being reduced, Philip, king of Macedon, was the prince who could give Rome most dis- turbance. Philip, though he had made an alliance with An- nibal, imprudently neglected to assist him ; he wasted his strength in petty conflicts in Greece, and, instead of uniting the people of that country, unwisely put them in fear for their independence. The iEtolians called on the Romans for aid, who came forward as the champions of Grecian liberty. The 198. battle of Cynocephale overthrew the power of Macedon. Philip had to sue for peace, and Rome proclaimed liberiy to Greece — a nominal, deceptive liberty, like the independence she had left to Carthage : she would fain be mistress of the world, without the world discerning its subjection. Thoas, the iEtolian, thought himself not sufficiently re- warded for his services by the Romans. He betook himself to Antiochus the Great, king of Syria ; represented to him the danger to be apprehended from suffering the Romans thus to go on extending their power, a power the more to be sus- pected, as they were the known foes of kings ; and exhorted the monarch to lose no time in opposing their farther pro- gress. His representations were enforced by Annibal, who, driven by a faction favorable to Rome from his own country, where he was endeavoring by salutary reforms and wise regu- lations to restore Carthage to a condition of resuming her former rank, was now at the court of Antiochus. Their sug- gestions were listened to with a willing ear; war was de- clared : Asia arrayed against Rome ; but fortunately for the 8* 90 OUTLINES OF HISTORY PART I. latter, the counsels of Annibal, respecting the mode of con- ducting the war, were not attended to. Antiochus was by far the most powerful monarch of Asia , his sway was acknowledged from the Troas to Caucasus; Media, Syria, Phoenicia, Palestine, obeyed him. With an army estimated at 400,000 men he entered Greece. Asiatic luxury attended this second Xerxes: pomp and splendor shone in his purple and silken tents ; but he, too, had to en counter an iron race, who fought, not indeed for liberty, bu B. c. for empire. A defeat at Thermopylae drove him from Greece 191. The Romans pursued him into Asia. Another decisive vic- tory at Magnesia reduced the Syrian monarch to seek a peace, the conditions of which were the surrender of all Lesser Asia, as far as Mount Taurus, and of the half of his ships. Conquest of Macedon. Philip had put to death the better of his two sons : learn- ing when too late his innocence, he died of grief His suc- cessor, Perseus, vainly hoped to restore Macedon to its pris- tine strength and dignity, and he wanted to engage its forces once more in conflict with those of Rome. But Paulus JEmi- lius, the Roman general, overcame all obstacles presented by the nature of the country. The battle of Pydna, in which 20,000 Macedonians fell, was decisive. Perseus was seized with a panic ; he fled from his kingdom, and sheltered him- self in Samothrace, where he meanly surrendered himself to his enemies. In the 156th year after the death of Alexander 169. the Great, the last king of his paternal kingdom walked in the triumphal procession of the general of a nation which had not, at that time, attracted the attention of Greece. Per- seus died in prison. Macedonia was declared free, under the protection of Rome. Fifteen years afterwards, a commotion was raised in that state by one Andriscus, who called himself the son of Perseus. The Romans were obliged to send an army thither, and the kingdom was reduced to a Roman province. In these times Rome began to interest herself in the af- fairs of Egypt. Egyptian ambassadors appeared in the senate- 167. house, imploring the interference of Rome to prevent An- tiochus, king of Syria, from making a conquest of that coun- try. Ambassadors were dispatched thither by the senate, and at their mandate Antiochus withdrew. Third Punic War. The period fixed by Providence to the duration of Carthage now approached. Civil dissensions, the sure forerunners of t^HAP. VII. ROME TILL THE TIME OF THE GRACCHI. 91 national ruin, ran high. Forty senators, driven from the city, besought Masinissa, of Numidia, to effect their restoration. His mediation was spurned by the dominant faction. The affair was brought before the Roman senate, who decided ac- cording to the wishes of Masinissa, and the pretext was gladly laid hold on for destroying their once formidable rival. The Carthaginians were ordered to surrender all the ships they had built: they obeyed, and saw them burned before their faces. They were then ordered to quit Carthage, and to build for themselves a new city in the interior, afar from the sea. This ruthless command to leave their temples and the tombs of their fathers, and the scene of all their ancient glory, was too much ; the people were driven to desperation ; the senate swore to stand or fall with Carthage ; and war, now inevitable, was prepared for. Every exertion was made to replace the lost navy ; all the timber that could be collected was brought to the dock-yards ; all metals, noble and ignoble, holy or profane, were melted down for the making of arms ; even the women cut off their long hair, that it might be twisted into bow-strings for the defenders of their country, and into cordage for the ships; all ages, ranks, and sexes took share in the common danger. Three years long did the iil-fated city hold out with amazing perseverance against all the efforts of the Romans, More than once were the legions defeated ; two walls were taken, the besieged defended the third ; the harbor was lost, they dug a new one. At length, the younger Scipio was appointed to the command of the be- sieging army, and his genius triumphed over the ingenious devices of the besieged. By stratagem he gained the new harbor ; yet the city, though now open and defenceless, main- tained, for six days and nights, an obstinate resistance. A party at length declared for the Romans ; the city was set on fire by its own citizens, as it would appear, that it might not become a provincial town to Rome. The inhabitants slew themselves on the tombs of their fathers, in the citadel and in b. o the temples of their gods: the city burned seventeen days; 147. and the heretofore mistress of the sea, the town which had numbered 700,000 inhabitants, which had flourished for nearly 1000 years, sank, never again to rise with independence. AchcBan War. Greece, though nominally free, very soon saw that she had made an ill exchange, in getting the Roman instead of the Macedonian power into her neighborhood. When Macedon had been reduced to a Roman province, the Romans sought gradually to make themselves masters of the strong places 92 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I. throughout Greece. They called on the AcIiaBan league to surrender such places as the Macedonian kings had held in the Peloponnesus. Their embassy was insulted and abused by the populace in Corinth, and a pretext for a war was gladly laid hold on. Greece fought with her ancient heroism, but in vain ; her star had set, her troops could not resist the legions led by able and experienced commanders. Critolaus, the Achaean general, was defeated at Thermopylae, and slew himself. Diseus, like another Leonidas, vainly attempted to defend, with 614 brave men, the isthmus of Corinth. He hastened to his own country, satisfied that resistance was vain ; col- lected his wife and children; distributed poison among them ; and he and they perished, not to behold the slavery of their B. c. country. Corinth was taken by L. Mummius, in the same 147. year that Carthage fell before Scipio. Its pictures, statues, plate, and treasures, v/ere shipped for Rome ; all the grown men were put to death, the women and children sold for slaves, and the city itself burned. A similar fate befell Thebes and Chalcis in Eubcea. Greece became, under the name of Achsea, a Roman province ; her glory departed ; and for nearly 2000 years she has been a stranger to independence. The Spanish Wars. Spain was originally inhabited by nations of Keltic and of Iberian race. Its people were distinguished by valor, talent, steadiness, and perseverance : it had been, from the most remote ages, resorted to by the Phoenicians for the produce of its mines and its soil; the Greeks early visited it; the Carthaginians made themselves masters of a considerable portion of it. During the second Punic war, all their pos- sessions in Spain fell to the victorious Romans. After the conquest of Carthage and Corinth, the Romans began to turn their view to Spain. They attacked the Lusi- tanians; but this valiant people, headed by Viriatus, a man of distinguished bravery, prudence, and virtue, long bid de- fiance to the arms of the Romans, who now were so far degen- erated from their pristine virtue, as not to blush at employing treachery to accomplish their objects, and Viriatus perished by assassins hired by Rome. The town of Numantia, with a garrison of but 4000 men, long withstood some of Rome's ablest generals, and often compelled the legions to withdraw. Even the great Scipio, the conqueror of Carthage, could hardly boast of having taken this heroic town. Famine preyed on the inhabitants; the Roman general would give no opportunity for battle ; in despair they set fire to the town. CHAP. VIII. ROME TILL THE END OF THE REPUBLIC. 93 and threw themselves into the flames. The Romans stormed the walls, and found all desolate and silent. In several parts of Spain, various tribes maintained their mdependence for another century. They fought long and obstinately ; but they had no confederacies. Each tribe fought and fell alone ; and gradually the whole country fell under the dominion of Rome, now grown thoroughly corrupt and tyrannical. CHAP. VIII. ROME TILL THE END OF THE REPUBLIC. The Gracchi. Rome had conquered Greece. The last will of Attalus, king of Pergamus, gave her Lesser Asia. The gift was de- structive. Grecian and Asiatic corruption and vice proved too strong for Roman virtue. We are no more to look for the noble qualities that adorned the golden ages of the repub- lic. Wealth and power are henceforth the claims to the high offices of the state ; corruption and extortion the characteris- tics of magistrates and governors. Blood, which for centuries jiad not stained the streets of Rome, was now shed without remorse. Even his virtues could not save the conqueror of Carthage, the elegant and accomplished friend of Laslius and patron of Terence and Polybius, from the hands of his own relations, who dreaded his being elevated to the dictatorship ; and the friends of justice feared to institute an inquiry into the causes of his death. Now it became usual at Rome to carry a dagger beneath the robe. In the early days of the republic, when the Roman people were divided into the two separate orders of patricians and ', plebeians, nothing could be more just than the Agrarian laws, ' such as we have described them above.* It was but reasona- ble that the plebeians should share in the lands purchased with their blood ; it was but just that all orders should con- i^ribute to the public revenue. But, in the present period, the distinction between patrician and plebeian could hardly be , said to exist ; and if there was a difference, it was, that the great preponderance of landed property was on the side of the latter. This property had been possessed undisturbed for * See p. 66. 94 OUTLINES OF HISTORY PART L generations ; it had often been acquired by purchase, by in- heritance, or by marriage. Yet, though their estates might have been legally acquired, the unfeeling rapacity of the no- bles, in cruelly expelling the old tenants, whose fathers had for generations dwelt on their lands, to throw their little farms into pasture-land, was such as must have excited indignation m any generous bosom. The Romans were now, like a modern nation, divided into rich and poor, without the latter having the resource which the poor of modern times have, of following a trade or going to service. Trade w^as esteemed beneath a free-born citizen ; slaves precluded the necessity of hired labor. No remedy remained but a violent and unjust one. B. c. Wlien the treasures of Attains came to the Romans, Tib. 132. Sempronius Gracchus, nephew to Scipio, one of the tribunes of the people, proposed tliat they should be divided among the people. This was unjust; for, since the conquest of Macedon, the Roman people had been tax-free; and the wealth now brought into the treasury was merely sufficient to enable the government to be carried on without oppressing the provinces. Gracchus farther brought in a law to prevent any citizen whatever from holding more than a certain quantity of land. Gracchus was a man of many noble qualities, but, looking to the end, he was not sufficiently regardful of means. He ejected by force, from the tribuneship, one of liis colleagues, who was, in his eyes, too moderate. He then proceeded to require, that civic rights should be communicated to all Ital- ians. The senate and nobles thus saw tJiemselves at once menaced with spoliation of their property, and loss of all influ- ence, by the admission to the legislature of such a multitude, who might be swayed to the most ruinous resolutions. They resolved to resist ; Scipio Nasica, a man of the purest virtue, placed himself on tJie steps ascending to the Capitol, and called on every one who valued his country to come to him. The senate, all the principal citizens, the knights, and a con- siderable portion of the people, ranged themselves on his side. A tumult arose, in which Tib. Gracchus lost his life, and blood was shed in civil contention for the first time since the enact- ment of the Twelve Tables. 22. Ten years after the death of Tib. Gracchus, his brother Gains, a man of genius and eloquence superior to his, renewed his plans. He proposed, that, in conformity wnth the Li- rinian law,* no citizen should hold more than five hundred * See p. 72. It is almost needless to observe, that the Licinian law related only to possession in the public land. It set no limit to the acquisition o( landed ox any other species of property. CHAP. VIII. ROME TILL THE END OF THE REPUBLIC. 95 jug"era of land ; that all Cisalpine Gaul should be reckoned part of Italy, and have the same rights ; that corn should be sold to the people at an extremely low price ; that six hundred knights should be admitted into the senate ; that the right of sitting as judges should be taken from the latter and trans- ferred to the knights. It is difficult to conceive how the plain consequences of such measures could have escaped the penetration of a man of the genius of C. Gracchus. His yiews may have been personal ; he may have been led away by pas- sion ; possibly he was only attempting a desperate remedy for an evil that was inevitable — the corruption and debase- ment of the Roman people. His plans seemed calculated to engage the knights, the people, and all Italy, in his favor ; yet he met with little sup- port. The consul, Opimius, his personal enemy, set a price on his head ; the knights, and even Latium, and the allied towns, declared for maintaining the constitution. Cams Gracchus also lost his life, and his fate was shared by three thousand of his adherents. Jugurthine War — Cimbric War. Micipsa, son of Masinissa, king of Numidia, when dying, left his kingdom to his sons, Hiempsal and Adherbal, and to his nephew, Jugurtha. The latter murdered his cousins, and seized on the whole kingdom. War was declared against him by the Romans. At Rome, whither he had come, during the lifetime of Adherbal, on the summons of the senate, he bribed to a great extent ; and having become convinced that every one there had his price, the conduct of the first gene- rals sent against him confirmed him in his belief But, at last, the command was conferred on Metullus, a man of noble birth. The arts of Jugurtha failed against him ; he had reduced the Numidian to the last extremity, when party-spirit at home transferred the consulate, and the glory of terminating the war, to his lieutenant Marius, a man of mean extraction, son of a peasant of Arpinum. Jugurtha was led in triumph, and then starved to death in prison. Now began those irruptions of the northern nations, which b. c. were destined, at length, to overturn the empire of Rome. 106. The Romans had already made themselves masters of the principal passes of the Alps; a Roman province extended from the foot of the Alps to that of the Pyrenees ; the Allo- broges and the Arverni, nations inhabiting the present Savoy, Dauphine, and Auvergne, had been reduced. While the arms of Rome were employed against Numidia, northern tribes, named Cimbri, Teutones, Ambrones, and Tigurini, laid waste Q^ OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I the banks of the Danube, and Gaul. They were encountered by the Roman legions under the consul Carbo. The Roman arms met a defeat. Armies commanded by Silanus, Scaurus, and Cassms, shared a similar fate. Caepio and Manlius were overthrown with prodigious slaughter; and Italy trembled a.«. m the days of Annibal. Rome's only hope lay in Marius: he was chosen consul He marched m person against the Teutones who were in Oaul ; his colleague, Catulus, went against the Cimbri, who T..C. were entermg Italy by the Rha^tian Alps. Marms encoun i^'i- tered and defeated the Teutones with tremendous slaughtei ^^^.^"®„^6xti®(^i^)'and then marched to the assistancf of his colleague. At Vercellae, on the Athesis, the combine(; Roman armies engaged the wild hordes of the Cimbri Thf ^^n^rlan '^^^ i^"""? ^"^ ^^""""^y' ^^"^^^^Y declared for Rome, .no , r' Y. ^^y °" ^^^ P^^^"' numerous prisoners wcr.* »o^. taken and sold for slaves, and the consuls entered Rjme i.. triumph. State of Rome — Social or Marsian War. The demagogues were now dominant at Rome, Thev had made Marius consul in opposition to the noble Metellus Marius allied himself closely with the tribune Satumius, who had murdered his competitor on the day of election Metellus, fearing for his life, quitted Rome, the hopes of the nobles were in Memmius : a tribune of the people mur- dered him on the day of consular election. Marius, however took the side of justice, and the tribune was torn to pieces' buch was the state of Rome : no man's life was safe who op- posed the demagogues. In the provinces matters were not much better. The knights, who now formed a distinct order m the state, were in number 3900 : since the time of C Crracchus, they had exercised the judicial power. They' moreover, farmed the revenues of the provinces, and extorted and oppressed the people in the most nefarious manner, while no redress could be obtained, as it was to themselves, in their capacity of judges, that all appeals for justice lay. A private quarrel between Caepio and Drusus brouo-ht the senate and the knights into conflict. The knights warmly espoused the cause of the former. Drusus saw the necessity of endeavoring to deprive them of their power, and of re- storing the constitution. It was of importance to gam the people to his side ; he proposed the formation of new colonies, the division of some districts. The morals of Drusus were pure, his views were noble; but the senate, for whose ad- vantage he was laboring, did not comprehend his object, and CHAP. VIII. RUME TILL THE END OF THE REPUBLIC. 97 opposed him. Finding senate and knights united against him, he saw that he must look abroad for support. He promised the freedom of the city to all Italy ; he brought in a law for the assignment of lands, another to regulate the price of corn, and a third to divide the judicial power, between the senate and the knights. As he was returning home, attended by an immense concourse of people, he was stabbed by an unknown hand. The Italians came to Rome to claim their civic rights. They had been a chief mean of extending the dominion of the city, as their contingents had always far out-numbered the legions: they deemed it, therefore, but just they should share in its advantages. Their desire was haughtily rejected. Seeing they had nohopes from the justice and generosity of b. c. Rome, they resolved to become independent of her. An ex- 91. tensive confederacy was formed among the nations of Um- brian and Sabellian race, which was afterwards joined by the people of Tuscany, Campania, and Calabria. War was de- clared against Rome. Corfinium was made their capital. Large armies were sent against the confederates : the Roman generals were defeated. Never was a war more obstinate or more bloody. The greatest generals of Rome were sent against the enemy : victory and defeat alternated. Cruelties and massacres of the most barbarous character were exer- cised. The war, which cost the lives of 300,000 men, was only ended by a concession which, in the first instance, would have prevented it. One by one the allies were granted full civic riarhts, and all Italians became citizens of Rome. 88. Mithridatic and Civil Wars. Mithridates VII., king of Pontus,* the ablest and most powerful enemy Rome ever encountered, now appears as her opponent. This monarch was respected and admired for his great gifts of mind, and he had an army habituated, in its conflicts with the nations round the Euxine, to privation and danger. Just as the Romans were terminating the Social War, in- telligence arrived of the massacre, in one day, of 80,000 Roman citizens, resident in the towns of Lesser Asia. The Roman army in that country was unable to stand before the troops of Mithridates ; its generals were taken and put to death with insult. The isles of the ^gean and Greece it- self were reduced by the Pontic monarch. L. Sulla, a member of a reduced patrician family, had been * See p. 54. 9 98 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART 1 the lieutenant, and was now the rival, of Marius. He was besieging" the city of Nola, one of those of the allies, when he was appointed to conduct the war against Mithridates. Marius, though now seventy years old, could not endure that his rival should have this honor. He had the decree recalled, and himself appointed. Sulla, on receiving this intelligence, broke up from before Nola, and, for the first time, a Roman army marched against the city. At the head of 26,000 men he entered Rome, which he had called for torches to set fire to. Marius was forced to fly ; ho, his son, and ten of his adherents were, by orders of Sulla, declared public enemies. Marius concealed himself in the Minturnian marsh, but was taken and thrown into prison at Minturnum. A Cimbrian slave was sent to put him to death ; but, terrified at the look and the voice of the conqueror of his countrymen, he cast down his weapon and fled. Marius escaped to Africa. Sulla hastened over to Greece, all of which submitted tc him. Athens alone shut her gates, and was gallantly de- fended by Archelaus, Mithridates's general : he, however, soon retreated to Bocotia, and an engagement took place near ChaBronea, in which the Pontic troops were totally defeated. Another battle followed at Orchomenus, in Thessaly, equally fatal to the interests of Mithridates, who now sued for peace , and Sulla, who, in consecjuence of tidings from Italy, was in haste to return thither, readily consented, promising to secure Mithridates in his paternal dominions, and have him entitled a friend and ally of Rome, that monarch agreeing to surren- der Bithynia, Cappadocia, and Asia. Sulla had left the consulate in the hands of Octavius and Cinna. The latter introduced confusion anew into the city: he was expelled by his colleague : he collected an army, and menaced the senate. Eight new tribes had been formed out of the citizens of such towns as had abandoned the Marsian league, and Cinna, by promising to distribute them into the old tribes, so that these should have no pre-eminence, soon saw himself at the head of a numerous army. To strengthen himself still more, he recalled Marius, and various motives armed almost all Italy in favor of the veteran general. The army of the elder Pompeius was defeated near the gates of Rome. Marius, Cinna, Carbo, and Sertorius entered the city. The consul Octavius still defended the Vatican hill ; but his head was soon seen borne on a spear through the streets. Marius then issued his orders for the slaughter of the prin- cipal senators : some were slain in their own houses, some betrayed by their clients. The high-priest of Jupiter was slaughtered at the altar of his gon. Catulus, the colleague CHAP. VIII. ROME TILL THE END OF THE REPUBLIC. 101 of Marius in the Cimbric war, was compelled to be his own destroyer. The head of Antonius, the great orator, was brought to Marius as he sat at supper : he took and handled it, and embraced with joy the murderer. Having thus, with tiger-ferocity, glutted his vengeance and made himself with Cinna consul for the seventh time, he expired in the 70th b. o year of his age, fortunate in thus escaping the vengeance of 87 his rival. Sulla, having ended the Mithridatic war, was now return- ing home in triumph. He landed in Apulia, and marched his troops with good order and discipline towards Rome. He was^met by the flyuig consulars, and professed his intention to restore the senate to their legal rights. Cinna led an army against him, but was slain in an uproar by his own sol- diers. Sulla overthrew the army of Norbanus, near Capua : the army of L. Scipio went over to him. Cneius Pompeius joined him with his father's clients. One of his officers gained possession of Sardinia. The Marian praetor of Africa was in an insurrection burnt in his own house. Meanwhile, at the desire of the younger Marius, the praetor Damasippus assem- bled the senate of Rome to make proposals of peace. All the citizens of rank then in Rome met in the Hostilian curia. The Marians fell upon and slaughtered the whole assembly ; no age, or station, or place, was sacred : the chief pontiff ScaBvola fell in presence of the holy fire of Vesta. Sulla entered Rome : his entrance was the signal for the slaughter of all the Marian party, of all whom he himself or any of his partisans hated. That the slaughter might pro- ceed regularly, proscription-tables were now introduced into Rome : these presented to view the names of at first 80, then 500 men of rank, whose murder was enjoined, and whose murderers were to be rewarded by the possession of their es- tates, while their children were to lose all claims to public office. Wealth soon became crime, where murder was gain. Blood had flowed in the days of Marius ; it now streamed. Eight thousand of the Marian party had surrendered: by order of Sulla, they were massacred near the senate-house. The cries of the victims were so loud, that the senate could not go on with their deliberations. " They are only," said Sulla, " some wretches who are punished for their crimes." Young Marius defended Prseneste with a heroism worthy of his father. His brother, the praetor, was put to death with wanton barbarity, and his head flung over the walls into Prse- neste. Marms and a friend voluntarily slew each other: the town was taken, and its defenders put to the sword. Cneius Pompeius defeated the consul Carbo in Sicily. Norbanus was 9* 102 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I driven to suicide in Rhodes. The sole authority of Sulla was undisputed, save in Spain : he exercised it with ruthless atrocity. One of his most zealous adherents, the prsetor Ofella, who had taken Prseneste, venturing to stand for the consulship without the permission of Sulla, was slain in the forum by his command. When the people testified marks of indig-nation, he stepped forward and merely said, " I ordered it." The proscription still raged ; wives shut the doors agains their own husbands ; children slew their own fathers : death was the only refuge from cruelty. The war between Marius and Sulla cost the lives of 33 consular?, 7 praetors, 60 sediles, 200 senators, and 150,000 Roman citizens, and thousands were stript of their paternal possessions, and driven forth to wander in misery. Sulla di- vided among his legions the lands and properties of the Ma- rians : he renewed and made perpetual in his own person the dictatorship, now out of use 120 years ; sought to bring back the republic to its old form, when all power lay with the pa- tricians ; deprived the tribunes of the people of the right of proposing laws, completed the reduced senate from the eques- trian order, increased, for the advantage of his friends, the colleges of pontiffs and augurs. Suddenly, in the very pleni- tude of his power, he abdicated it, and retired into private B. c. life. He resigned himself undisturbed to mental and sensual 75. enjoyments, employing his leisure in writing the history of his own life. He died just as he had completed the 22d book. His resignation of power is an act almost unexampled : it gives a strong idea of the man and the times, thus to behold him, who had made blood run like water, passing his latter days in tranquillity at Puteoli. From the Death of Sulla to that of Mithrido.tes. Sertorius, one of the Marian party, had retired to Spain : he put himself at the head of the Lusitanians, whose respect and affections he had gained, established among them a miniature of the Roman republic, and during eighteen years defeated every army sent against him by the Romans. Neither Me- tellus nor Pompeius availed to subdue him; treachery alone could free Rome from this enemy. Perpenna, one of his offi- 72. cers, conspired against him, and slew him at a banquet. While Sertorius maintained himself in Spain, a furious war raged in the south of Italy. A few gladiators broke out of their school at Capua; their leader was Spartacus, a Thra cian by birth ; slaves, pirates, peasants, flocked to them ; they soon increased to such a number as to be formidable to Rome. Consular armies were sent agfainst them without success; 3 B. C. CHAP. VIII. ROME TILL THE END OF THE REPUBLIC. 103 four Roman armies were defeated by the gladiator. At length Crassus was sent to oppose him ; victory was long dubious, but finally declared for Rome. The whole of the rebel army was cut to pieces or dispersed : its leader fell on heaps of slaughtered Romans. The bodies of 40,000 rebels lay on the field. At this period arose in Lesser Asia a pirate-society, re- sembling the buccaneers of modern times. Cilicians, Isauri- ans, and people of other Asiatic regions, engaged in piracy on an extensive scale : their ships swarmed in the Mediter- ranean ; the coasts of Italy were infested by them. No Ro- man was safe at his country-seat ; no magistrate on his jour- ney. They ventured even to attack the Roman legions, put a stop to foreign commerce, and reduced Rome to danger of famine, by intercepting the supplies of corn. Several Ro- man commanders were sent against them ; they were beaten, but not conquered. At last Cneius Pompeius was intrusted with the conduct of the war, and with unlimited power over the Mediterranean and its coasts. He swept the sea of them in the short space of forty days, pursued them to their re- treats, forced them to submit, and transported them far inland into the continent. ^gg During the lifetime of Sulla, a second war had broken out with Mithridates, and been terminated to the advantage of Rome. When Nicomedes of Bithynia bequeathed his king'- dom to the Romans, Mithridates disputed their right to it, and entered it with a large army. The command of the Roman army was intrusted to Lucullus, a man long retired from military affairs, and devoted to the arts of peace. He is said to have acquired his knowledge of this war, and the mode of conducting it, from books and conversation on his way to Asia. His deeds prove that a mind used to thinking can soon mas- ter any difficulties. The war was a constant succession of victories on the side of the Romans. Mithridates was forced to apply to Tigranes, king of Armenia. Lucullus, in a bloody battle, overthrew, with hardly any loss on his own side, the troops of Armenia, and made himself master of Tigranocerta, the capital of Tigranes. He now had the full prospect of bringing to a glorious termination the war against one of the ablest enemies Rome had ever encountered, when Pompeius arrived to rob him of the honor. The new general carried on the war with vigor : he reduced Tigranes to sue for peace, and drove Mithridates to take refuge among the wild tribes north of the Euxine. The spirit of the Pontic monarch was not yet broken : he meditated a union of the nations dwelling from the Tanais to the Alps, and of invading Italy at the head 104 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART 1. of them. His troops were terrified at his projects ; his son B. c. conspired against him, and Mithridates, justly styled the ^' Great, died by poison administered by his own hand, in the 72d year of his age. During 25 years he had carried on an obstinate war against Rome, had withstood the fortune of Sulla, the zeal of several consuls, the wisdom of Lucullus, and the rapidity of Pompeius, and was finally overcome only by ingratitude and treason. Pompeius deprived Tigranes of Syria, Cilicia, and Phoeni- cia, which became subject to Rome. He marched southwards, and reduced Judaea. All Asia being now subdued, he re- turned to Italy, where he disbanded his troops on landing, to quiet the apprehensions of the people. He was honored with a splendid triumph, and he brought into the public treasury a sum of 20,000 talents. Catiline's Conspiracy. While Pompeius was absent in the East, Rome ran immi- nent risk of seeing days worse than those of Marius and Sulla, and crimes of equal or greater enormity perpetrated. L. Sergius Catilina, a man of patrician extraction, but of profligate manners and ruined fortunes, conceived hopes of being able to overthrow the constitution. Several men of high rank were concerned in this conspiracy. Catiline stood for the consulship, but failed, M. Tullius Cicero, the illustri- ous orator, being chosen. His designs being discovered, he became desperate, and resolved on the murder of the consul and the principal senators, and setting fire to the city ; but information of all his projects was given to the consul, and Catiline was at length obliged to leave Rome, and put him- self at the head of such forces as he had been able to bring together. His accomplices at Rome were meanwhile dis- covered and executed, and he himself engaging with the army sent against him, fought and fell with a heroism worthy 63. of a better cause. The Gallic War of CcBsar. At this period the leading men in Rome were Pompeius, named the Great, and flushed with his victories; Crassus, distinguished for his riches, and the conqueror of Spartacus : Csesar, a man of noble birth, distinguished talents, ruined for- tune, and now father-in-law of Pompeius ; Cato, of pre-emi- nent virtue, unstained character, and only to be blamed (i+' blame could at1;u^li to such a principle) for not being able to accommodate himself to the manners of the times, and of thus being unable to render more real service to his country • CHAP. VIII. ROME TILL THE END OF THE REPUBLIC. 107 and, lastly, Cicero, the crusher of the projects of Catiline, the ablest orator, the most accomplished and virtuous states- man, only unhappy in a want of firmness and decision of character. The ambition of the three former could not be restrained by the virtue and moderation of the two last. Already Csesar and Crassus had been more than suspected of being privy to the plans of Catiline, trusting that, through their superior character, talents, and influence, they might be able to seize on the supreme power, when his ruthless ferocity had re- moved all obstacles and all competitors. Csesar had been afterwards preetor in Spain, and had there repaired his dilapi- dated fortune. On his return to Rome he had been made consul, and while in office he caused several laws to be passed, which gratified and increased his influence with Pompeius, the knights, and the people. He took occasion to reconcile Pompeius, who was married to his daughter, with Crassus, whose wealth gave him great power with the people, and the three formed among themselves that coalition or secret com- pact of nmtual support and mutual regard to each other's in- terest, known under the name of the Triumvirate, Caesar, on the expiration of his consulate, had himself ap- pointed for five years to the government of the Gauls. Cisal- pine Gaul had long been a part of Italy. The Romans had first entered Transalpine Gaul, B. C. 123., and shortly after reduced the south-eastern part of it to the form of a province. Gaul was divided into a number of independent states, some of a more, some of a less warlike character. The most powerful race were the Belgians, who dwelt from the Alps northwards to the sea, mingled with tribes of Germanic race. The Helvetii, a portion of these, dwelling at the foot of b. c Mount Jura, gave the Roman governor the wished-for oppor- 57. tunity of increasing his military fame and power, and of securing the tranquillity of Italy. United with several Ger- man tribes, they set fire to their dwellings, and in an im- mense body set forth to pass the Jura in search of more smiling lands. Csesar hastened to Geneva, pursued them, and brought them to an engagement, in which Roman tactics and discipline speedily triumphed over ignorant courage. He followed their enfeebled forces, and compelled them to sur- render. They were received as allies, and a colony was placed, for future security, at the principal pass of Jura. In some parts of Gaul confederacies were formed against the Romans, in others oppressed states called on Csesar for protection : one after another the confederacies and the states fell before his genius. During a command of ten years (for, 108 OUTLINES OF HISTOtv PART ! b^ the influence of Pompeius, it had been prolonged) he re- duced the entire of Gaul, crossed the Rhine, carried the arms of Rome into the gloom of the Hercynian forest, and passed the channel which divides from the continent the island of Britain, hitherto laiown only by name to the inhabitants of Italy. Each day filled Rome with wonder by the intelligence tliat arrived of the victories of Csesar in Gaul. His influence and the number of his partisans in Rome were great. He aided Pompeius and Crassus to get the consulate : he was continued in his Gallic command. Pompeius took Africa and Spain as his province ; Crassus preferred tlie wealthy, luxu- rious Syria. Pompeius remained at Rome, and administered his provinces by lieutenants. Crassus hastened to Asia, where the Parthians were now in arms against the republic. He marched against them, crossed the Euphrates, and was near Carrhse defeated with great loss by Surena, the Parthian B. c. commander. He surrendered, and was put to death, and his 54. skull filled with molten gold as a reproach of his avarice. Julia, the wife of Pompeius, was also dead ; the bonds which had kept the two most powerful and ambitious men of Rome from discord were now both removed. Pompeius cojild not endure a rival, Csesar a superior. All prudent men saw that the sword must be the arbiter. The nobility all looked up to Pompeius as the chief support of the aristocracy. He was appointed consul without a colleague. He remained still at Rome; and the troops in his province were commanded by able and faithful officers. He sought to have the dictatorship renewed in his person. Caesar and his friends required that he should be nominated consul in his absence, as more ex- traordinary transgressions of usage had been done in the case of Pompeius. Caesar having now completed the conquest of Gaul, and thus established a frontier against tlie Germans, the people whom Italy had now most to dread, was meanwhile returning to Rome. All the towns of the province of Cisal- pine Gaul vied in rendering honors and hospitality to the amiable conqueror and tranquillizer of Gaul. Pompeius sent to demand of Csesar that he should give up two legions which he had lent him : they were given up. The senate then de- creed that Csesar should disband his legions, and seek the consulate like any other private man. The heads of the state and senate, from various motives, concurred in this decree. Cato, who never looked to expediency, but to right, supported it. Cicero in vain sought to mediate. Curio, a man of talent and eloquence, but profligate morals, and M. Antonius, his colleague in the tribunate, whose character resembled his, but *:HAP. VIU. ROME TILL THE END OF THE REPUBLIC. 109 who excell(?d him in military skill, were zealous partisans of Csesar. All the other public officers were on the side of Pompeius, who maintained that the anny was averse to Csesar, and reckoned himself certain of the attachment often legions. Without waiting for the declaration of Caesar, the senate, in an evil hour for them, issued their decree, that all the mem- bers of the executive should exert themselves for the defence of the republic, that troops should be raised, and Cn. Pom- peius supported out of the public treasury. Meantime Csesar's answer arrived, offering to disband his army, all but one legion, and to come and seek the consulate as a private citi- zen ; but even his presence was dreaded in Rome. 'When the news reached Caesar, he had but five cohorts with him ; the rest of his troops were dispersed in numerous towns. He was near Rimini, on the banks of a little stream called the Rubicon, where Proper Italy was considered to end, and which no general could venture to pass without permission of the senate, under penalty of being declared a public enemy. It was a moment of importance, not to Caesar only, but to the future world. Should he submit, or should he lead his army against Rome, against his country ] On horseback, in the open air, Caesar all night long pondered this weighty question. At daybreak, his anxious soldiers found him still riding to and fro, deep sunk in thought. At length he cried " The die is cast," gave his horse the spurs, and sprang across the stream, followed by his troops. Civil War of Ccesar and Pompeius. All the towns of Italy opened their gates to Caesar as he approached them ; the garrisons all joined his standard. Cor- finium alone resisted; but its garrison also passed over to Caesar, and Domitius, its governor, and his officers, entered the camp of the conqueror as captives, and experienced only clemency. On receiving intelligence of the approach of Caesar, Pompeius, Cicero, Cato, the consuls, and the senate abandoned Rome in haste, and fled to Capua. Caesar still ad- vanced, making every day proposals of peace. When he drew near to Brundusium, Pompeius and his friends passed over to Greece : he marched to Rome, assembled the senate and people, and declared that he was driven by the conduct of his enemies to act as he was doing. Then knowing that the main strength of Pompeius lay in the army in Spain, com- manded by Afranius and Petreius, he resolved to march against it without delay. He took money out of the treasury, and set out for Spain. Massilia opposed his passage, but soon was forced to open her gates. The obstacles presented by the 10 110 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I. rivers and mountains of Spain were surmounted by the genius of CcGsar. The Pompeian generals, notwithstanding their advantageous position, were forced to surrender themselves and their armies, without fighting a single battle. Having conquered the army, he hastened to engage the general, passed rapidly through Gaul and Italy, embarked at Brundu- sium, and landed his troops at Dyrrhachium. Pompeius had summoned to his standard the troops of the kings of the East, whom he had formerly vanquished ; (ireece ' and Africa contributed to augment his forces ; the majesty of the senate was in his camp ; he himself called back the vigor, energy, and skill of his younger days. But he was not allowed to follow the dictates of his wisdom and experience ; his cause was regarded as that of the republic ; and each unwarlike senator fancied he had a right to blame and reproach the in- activity of the general. The army of Csesar was less nu- merous, but better composed ; his plans were controlled by none ; his soldiers placed implicit confidence in his talents and fortune. The judicious plan adopted by Pompeius was to protract the war, to weary out and exhaust by delay his adversary. The taunts of his associates induced him to quit his fortified camp. Instead of returning to Italy, where the name of the republic might have operated powerfiilly in his favor, he de- scended into the plains of Thessaly. He drew up his forces near Pharsalus. The Caesarians fell on with rapidity sword in hand. The cavalry on one of the wings of the Pompeians pursued a body of Caesarian cavalry, who had fled ; they passed the three ordinary ranks of a Roman army, when, to their surprise, they encountered a fourth : without a moment's deliberation, they fled to the neighboring heights. The op- posite Caesarian wing attacked that which was now denuded of its horse ; the three ranks of the Caesarian army fell into one ; the Pompeians could not resist the shock ; they gave way; Pompeius fled, and the day was irrecoverably lost. Caesar, with his usual humanity, rode through the field, call- ing on his men to spare the Roman citizens. All the letters and papers he found in the tent of Pompeius he committed to the flames, without reading them. Next day the rest of the Pompeian army surrendered. Cato, not yet despairing of the fortune of the republic, passed over to Corcyra, and thence to Africa, to renew the conflict now, not for Pompeius, but for the laws and constitution, Pompeius fled to the sea, and embarked for Lesbos, where his wife, Cornelia, was awaiting the event of the war. The ninxims o** philosophy which he had always cultivated, were a o .a CO - \^- CHAP. VIII. ROME TILL THE END OF THE REPUBLIC. 113 now his consolation. In doubt whether he had better look to the Parthians, to Juba. king- of Numidia, or to Ptolemy of Egypt tor support, he preferred the last, whose father his power had restored to his throne. He sailed for Egypt : the ministers of the feeble young monarch dreaded his arrival ; and by their treacherous contrivance, the great Roman was g murdered in sight of his wife, and his naked body cast on the 49. strand, where it was indebted for funeral honors to the grati- tude and humanity of an old Roman soldier. Caesar, who speedily arrived in Egypt, shed tears over the head of his rival which was presented to him. Events till the Death of CcBsar. The charms of Cleopatra, the fair queen of Egypt, detainea CcBsar in Alexandria. In a tumult, excited by his partiality for that princess against her brother, he narrowly escaped death by throwing himself into the sea, and swimming to a ship. A battle soon after took place ; the Egyptians were worsted, and Ptolemy lost his life in the waters. CsBsar be- stowed the entire kingdom upon Cleopatra, who had two chil- dren by him. From Egypt Csesar proceeded to Lesser Asia against Phar- naces king of Pontus, probably to give the Pompeians an op- portunity of drawing together all their forces. Veni, vidi, vici was his account to the senate of the war against the Pontic prince. He soon made his appearance in Africa, and defeated all the armies opposed to him. Cato, no longer con- fiding in the republic, slew himself at Utica : his example was followed by Scipio, who had commanded the army. Juba 47 and Petreius slew each other after supper. The other Pompeian commanders retired to Spain. At Munda the two sons of Pompeius gave battle to Csesar, who never ran greater risk of seeing fortune desert him. Despe- rate effort gained him the victory, and one of the sons of Pompeius remained slain on the field. The Pompeian party was now completely crushed ; all opposition to Cssar was at an end. He returned to Rome, and triumphed over a)l the countries he had subdued. He was entitled father of his country, and made dictator for life. Mild and clement, he persecuted none ; and Rome, beneath his sway, was en- joying tranquillity. As high pontiff^ he undertook and ac- complished the reformation of the calendar, and formed the plan of a new legal code. Employment being necessary for the legions, war was meditated against the Parthians, to avenge the death of Crassus, or against the people on the coasts of the Black Sea. 10* 114 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I. In her present state of corruption, the government of such a man as Caesar was the greatest blessing that could befall Rome. The virtues requisite in a republic were no longer to be found in her ; it was now her destiny to receive a mas- ter, and the world could not match the man into whose hands the power had fallen. But the old Roman sentiments still smouldered in some bosoms ; the lessons and acts of Cato were still remembered with approbation ; and a conspiraci'' was formed, in which some of the noblest and most virtuous men of Rome took part. Men who owed their lives to his clemency, their fortunes to his favor, impelled by a false idea of patriotism and public virtue, armed their hands against B. c. iiim ; and on the ides of March, in the 708th year of Rome 4^' Ceesar fell in the senate-house, pierced by three-and-twenty wounds. Civil War with Brutus and Cassius. The two principal of the conspirators were Brutus and Cassius. Of the purity of their motives, especially of those of the former, there can be little doubt : the wisdom of them is more questionable. They removed a mild despot; they brought back on their country the days of Marius and Sulla. Cicero sought to establish concord by making the senate ratify all the acts of Caesar, by bringing in an amnesty, and by sending the conspirators away to their respective prov- inces. But Marcus Antonius had, by a culpable lenity of the conspirators, been spared, and he now aimed at establishing his own pov/er amidst the general confusion. Against him Cicero and the senate found it necessary to set up the young Octavianus, the nephew and adopted son of Ceesar. Anto- nius began the war by attempting to drive Decimus Brutus, one of the conspirators, out of his province of Cisalpine Gaul. He besieged him in Mutina. The consuls, Hirtius and Pansa, marched to the relief of Brutus ; Octavianus joined them, and Antonius was forced to fly into Transalpine Gaul. The two consuls fell before Mutina, not without suspicion of treachery on the part of Octavianus, whose dissimulation and want of moral principle early began to display themselves. But the senate dreamed, that they would find no difficulty in keeping him down, if by his means they could get rid of Antonius. Lepidus and Plancus commanded armies in Gaul. Anto- nius gained them over to his side. He wrote to Octavianus, who, though appointed consul in the room of Pansa, was now every day on worse and worse terms with the senate, to show him that it would be more for his advantage to join him. A CHAP. VIII. TtOME TILL THE END OF THE REPUBLIC. 117 meeting was held between the two and Lepidus, in a little g. c. island formed by two streams, near the modern Bologna, and 43. a second triumvirate, of a far more odious character than the former, was agreed on. Tables of proscription were drawn up, containing the names of 300 senators, 2000 knights, and many other distinguished citizens. All ties of friendship and kindred were postponed to the gratification of ambition and revenge. In the fatal list were L. Caesar, the uncle of Anto- nius ; Paulus, the brother of Lepidus ; and Cicero, the friend and supporter of Octavianus. A man whose life and honor he had once defended was base and ungrateful enough to be the murderer of the great orator; his head was brought to Fulvia, the widow of Clodius and wife of Antonius; and with the mean revenge of a profligate woman, she pierced with her bodkin that tongue which had described in true and lively colors the vices and enormities of her husbands. The triumvirs resolved to destroy Cassius, who governed Syria, and Brutus, who commanded in Macedonia. The united army of the latter amounted to seventeen legions. The ar- mies engaged on the plain of Philippi, in Macedonia. Brutus was successful on his side, and took the camp of Octavianus. 42. Cassius, who was opposed to Antonius, was not so fortunate. He thought, deceived by his short sight, that all was lost, and slew himself. A few days afterwards, Brutus, feeling that the fortune of the republic was gone, followed his example, and many other Romans of noble birth and lofty sentiments disdained to survive Brutus, Cassius, and the republic. War between Octavianus and Antonius. Sextus Pompeius alone remained to oppose the victors. His power was on the sea, and he long continued to give them uneasiness. Fulvia soon excited disturbance among the triumvirs themselves. Lepidus wavered which side to take ; but Octavianus gained over his legions, and deprived him of his rank and power. The unfortunate citizens were the victims of these quarrels between their masters. Octa- vianus's forty-seven legions must have lands, and the paternal properties of numerous respectable families were confiscated to gratify their cupidity. Antonius was in Asia. Pacorus the Parthian had invaded the Roman dominions there, but was repelled by Ventidius. Antonius would avenge the honor of Rome by reciprocal in- vasion. He was ignorant of the nature of the country he en- tered, and was forced to retire with loss. He went to Egypt, and in the arms of Cleopatra abandoned himself to the licen- tious indulgences he delighted in, and offended and insulted 118 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I his wily colleague by divorcing his virtuous sister, Octavia. Both sides prepared for war. Octavianus, wliose policy from the commencement had been to identify his own cause and that of the republic, and who, all his life long-, affected to govern in the name of the senate, and under the ancient forms, gave out, that he took arms solely to prevent the re- public being subjected to an Egyptian. He proceeded to Greece with eig-ht legions and five cohorts, and he had a fleet of 250 ships. His principal officer was M. Agrippa, a man of experience and ability. The engagement took place off the cape of Actium in Epirus. Cleopatra was there, and set the example of flight. She was followed by Antonius : the rout was total. Octavianus exercised clemency, and the greater part of the hostile army surrendered. He pursued the love-sick Antonius to Egypt, who, on a false report of the death of Cleopatra, threw himself on his sword ; and the Egyptian queen, having in vain essayed her arts on the cold calculating Octavianus, sooner than be led in chains to adorn the triumph of the victor, and glut the eyes of the populace of Rome with the sight of the daughter and the last of the Ptolemies preceding the chariot of the adopted son of him who had done homage to lier charms, gave herself voluntary death by the bite of an asp, or the prick of a poisoned needle. Egypt, in the 295th year from the death of Alexander the Great, became a Roman province. B. c. In the same year, the 479th from the establishment of the 29. republic, the 724th from the building of the city, was CsBsar Octavianus, now styled Augustus, invested with all the power heretofore exercised by the consuls and tribunes of the peo- ple. He was a monarch, without appearing such. Every tenth year he affected to lay down and again receive his ex- traordinary powers from the senate and people. His sway was mild and beneficent ; stately edifices rose to adorn the city ; public spectacles and abundance of food satisfied the people ; peace was enjoyed by all the empire. The memory of the republic was nearly obliterated ; old men only retained a recollection of its worst period, and shuddered as they called to mind the horrors of the civil wars, and the blood-ti-aced tables of proscription. The reign of. Augustus was halcyon days after those storms ; but, unhappily for Rome, this state was of no long and steady duration. The government was one of power, not of law ; it was a despotism ; and soon, be- neath the tyranny and caprice of the emperors, even the tur- bulence of the latter days of the republic was looked back to with a sigh of regret. CHAP. IX. ROME AN fcMPlRE. 121 CHAP. IX. ROME AN EMPIRE. Emperors of the Ccesarian Family. Among the titles of Augustus was thatof Imperator, wlience emperor, a word derived from the ancient language of Italy,* and signifying general of an army. It was retained by his successors, as was also that of Caesar, his family name. The empire over which Augustus now ruled extended, in Europe, to the ocean, the Rhine, and the Danube ; in Asia, to the Euphrates ; in Africa, to ^Ethiopia and the sandy deserts. Its population was estimated at 120 millions. Satisfied with this extent of dominion, Augustus sought not himself to ex- tend it, and advised his successors to be guided by his exam- ple. He therefore abstained from wars, except such on the frontiers as were deemed necessary to keep up the skill and discipline of the legions, and inspire the barbarians with a salutary dread of Rome. In these slight wars the imperial arms were usually successful : one memorable defeat alone is recorded : the legions of Varus were cut to pieces by the a d. German leader, Herman, or Arminius. The praetorian guards, 10 afterwards so fatal to the empire, were instituted by Augus- tus to protect his person, and to crush the first germs of re- bellion. But he dispersed them through Italy, and they knew not then their own strength. The temple of Janus, to close which in time of peace had been a ceremony in use from the. origin of the state, was three times closed during the reign of this pacific prince. The arts and sciences which adorn peace were warmly patronized by him and his minister the accomplished Mecaenas. The house of Augustus, for he dwelt not in a palace, was the re- sort of the poet and the scholar. The monarch himself was a writer, and he enjoyed the felicity, rare in his station, of possessing friends. By the people he was adored as a god. Yet the happiness of Augustus was not without alloy. He could not, though he might seek to palliate by the plea of necessity, efface the recollection of the proscription-tables of his younger days, and the base surrender of his friend the virtuous Cicero. The defeat of Varus haunted his dreams by night. He had no male issue to succeed him ; he had to jnourn over the untimely death of the promising youth Mar- cellus and of the valiant Drusus ; and the profligacy of his * Embratur is the term in the Samnite language. 11 A D. 122 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART J. daughter Julia, and the insatiable ambition of his wife Livia, _ embittered his declining" days. Augustus died at Nola in 14. Campania, in the 76th year of his age, having governed Rome vi^ith absolute sway during forty-four years. In the year of Rome 753, while tlie world was enjoying peace under Augustus, and the " fullness of time" was come, it pleased the Almighty to send forth his Son Jesus Christ, as the announcer of a religion more pure and holy than any he had yet given to man. To relate the circumstances of the life and death of the Son of God (with which every reader must be supposed familiar) would be here superfluous. His religion, though persecuted, gradually spread over the Roman world. Unhappily, it is in its corrupted state that it becomes a prominent object in history. Tiberius, the son of Livia, and stepson of Augustus, Vv'as 14. appointed by him to succeed. This prince was now in his 55th year. All the bad qualities of his predecessor were united in him; his good ones were absent. A dark and crooked policy characterized all his acts: the establishment of perfect despotism, the abolition of all forms of the republic, was his object. Restrained at first by fear of the noble Ger~ manicus, when that check was removed by death, not with- out suspicion of poison, he gave a loose to all his cruel and 19. sensual propensities. In his later years, he retired to the island of Caprea in the bay of Naples, where he wallowed in every species of beastly and sensual gratification. His cruel- ties at Rome were meantime directed by his minister Sejanus, until, grown suspected by his master, he was by his order put to death. Tiberius dying left the world to a monster still more ferocious than himself, 37 Caius Caligula, the son of Germanicus, and grandnephew of Tiberius, displayed tyranny in its most appalling form. His reign commenced with mildness ; but at the end of the first year, after a violent fit of illness, which, perhaps, disor- dered his intellect, a cruelty, the most absurd and capricious that can be conceived, commenced. While he meditated raising his horse to the consulship, and fed him out of gold, he slaughtered the noblest men of Rome without mercy, drove men in herds before the judgment-seat to receive sen- tence of death, and hunted the spectators of a public show into the waters of the Tiber. Four years the empire groaned beneath the cruelty of this frantic savage. At length the dagger of Chjpreas delivered the world of him. On the death of Caius, the senate, detesting the tyranny 41. of the Caesars, deliberated on restoring the republic, and abolishing the imperial power. But ere two days had elapsed. JIIAF. iX. ROME AN EMPIRE. 125 they had to learn, to their mortification, that there was now in existence a power greater than theirs or that of the em- perors. Tiberius had collected the praetorian guards, a body of 10,000 men, from the quarters in which the policy of Au- gustus had kept them dispersed ; and, under pretext of re- lieving Italy and of improving their discipline, had fixed them in a strongly-fortified camp on the Viminal and Quirinal hills. The guards now first exhibited their power: they >; proclaimed Claudius, the weak-minded brother of Caius, em- peror, and the senate received with submission their feeble ruler. Not naturally bloody, yet the instrument of women and freedmen, the annals of his reign exhibit thirty-five sen- ators and three hundred knights falling by the hand of the executioner during the thirteen years that he filled the throne. Claudius was poisoned, to make room for his successor. a. d Domitius Nero was the son of Agrippina, and pupil of 54. Seneca. The first five years of his reign were mild and just. But his furious passions soon grew impatient of restraint. He put to death his mother, his brother, his tutor; set fire to the city, charged the Christians with the crime, and began the persecution of that sect. He prostituted the dignity of his station, and the majesty of Rome, by appearing as a singer on the public stage. The patience of mankind could no longer endure this combination of cruelty, insult, debauchery, and meanness: several conspiracies were formed against him, but without success; the tyrant discovering them in time. At length Galba was declared emperor, and Nero by the senate pronounced a public enemy, and sentenced to death more majorum, which sentence he avoided by a volun- tary death. Yet, vile as he was, there were those w^ho loved his memory, and raised monuments to the monster who had per- petrated so many crimes. It is not undeserving of notice, that within a century after the deatli of Cato, the senate, which once gave laws to the Vv^orld, was convoked on the solemn occasions of the marriage of Nero with two of his own sex. So utterly can the greatest institutions be degraded ! Emperors chosen by the Army. Galba, a man of honorable birth and advanced age, was 68. raised to the throne by the army which he commanded in Spain. The senate confirmed the choice of the army ; but he sought to restrain the praetorians, and he atoned for his boldness with his life. Otho, the partaker of the guilty pleasures of Nero, was 69 placed on the throne by the partv which murdered Galba. The army of the Rhine had meantime proclaimed their gen- il + 126 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I eral Vitellius. Otho, though a voluptuary, still retained some noble feelings ; and when in the battle at Bedriacum victory had declared for the generals of Vitellius, Otho, to spare the blood of citizens, put a voluntary termination to his own life, A. D. Vitellius, devoted to the pleasures of the table, viewed the 70. imperial power only as afFordmg the means of unbounded in- dulgence. But he was soon roused from his dream of luxury, by tidings of the Syrian army having proclaimed their gene- ral Flavius Vespasianus worthiest of the throne. Vitellius terminated his brief reign by a cruel death. During this period the tranquillity of the empire was dis- turbed in every quarter. The Jews, oppressed by their gov- ernors, torn by parties, deceived by a false interpretation, but flattering to their national vanity, of their ancient prophecies, broke out into rebellion, which, persisted in Avith obstinacy and judicial blindness, cost their nation the remnant of their independence, the lives of three hundred thousand men, their noble city, and the magnificent temple of Jehovah, the point of union and pride of Israel. Rome, too, witnessed, at this period, a second conflagration of the splendid temple of Jupi- ter Optimus Maximus, which crowned the Capitol. It seemed as if the wrath of Heaven was now poured out on guilty man and his works. At Rome were to be seen each day the ex- cesses of the soldiery, the clash of arms, and false charges brought before judicial tribunals; war menaced or devastated the provinces; Civilis raised Gaul in rebellion; the Germans passed the Rhine ; the Parthian cavalry hovered ready to descend on Syria. The Flavian Family. 70. Vespasian was at the head of the army acting against the rebellious Jews, when he was proclaimed emperor. He re- paired to Rome, leaving his son, the mild and virtuous Titus, to carry on the war. Though raised to the throne by the army, he would receive his power from the senate, who be- stow^ed on him all the offices, rights, and powers held by Augus- tus, Tiberius, and Claudius, in as full and unlimited a manner as they had possessed them ; and by his conduct during the nine years he reigned, he showed himself deserving of the absolute power he possessed. The empire now enjoyed peace. Titus had ended the Jewish war. The Parthians, seeing no internal discord, ab- stained from hostilities. Judicial persecution ceased at Rome. The emperor and his son lived on terms of intimacy with the best and wisest men. The senate regained its consideration. The finances were put into a proper condition ; military dis- CHAP. IX. ROME AN EMPIRE. 129 cipline restored ; cities built, and roads constructed. An excessive frugality, hardly, in such times, to be regarded as a fault, was the blemish most observed in the character of Vespasian. His death would have been an irreparable loss to Rome, had he not left such a successor as Titus. Titus, the Delight of Mankind, amiable, just, generous, a d. and brave, reigned but for two short years, and in that space "9- this virtuous prince had to witness many calamities. His heart was torn with anguish at being obliged to part with the Jewish princess Berenice, whom he loved so tenderly; Vesu- vius raged with unwonted fury, and buried beneath its ashes the towns of Herculaneum, Pompeii, and Stabise, and wasted a large portion of Campania ; a conflagration broke out in Rome, and destroyed a great part of the city, and tliis was followed by a destructive pestilence. Domitian, the brother of Titus, succeeded. The happiness 81. of the empire seemed to have expired with his father and brother, and Nero to have returned to life. Yet Domitian dreaded to venture on the excesses of this last-named tyrant, and fear set some bounds to his cruelty. He e.xhausted the treasury, while he embellished the city with magnificent buildings, and engaged in expensive and inglorious wars. His reign was, however, distinguished by the real conquest of Britain by the gallant Agricola, whose death the jealous emperor, if he did not occasion, did not regret. After a tyran- ny of fifteen years, his life and reign were terminated by a conspiracy, in which his own wife shared. The good Emperors. The senate was assembled on the death of the tyrant, and 96. the purple was offered to Nerva, one of their body, a just and virtuous man, but far advanced in life. To give security to his authority, and assure a virtuous successor to the empire, he adopted the valiant and upright Trajan, who then com- manded a large army in Lower Germany. The aged em- peror, at the same time, declared him his colleague for life in the empire. Nerva, during his short reign, reduced the taxes, and made a distribution of lands among the poor. Trajan was forty years of age when adopted by Nerva : ga of his virtue a decisive evidence was exhibited, for more than 250 years after his death, in the acclamation of the senate to each new emperor, wishing him to be more fortunate than Augustus, more virtuous than Trajan. The military and pacific virtues were united in this accomplished prince. Just and upright, he listened to the meanest suitor ; affable, he •vas accessible to the lowest citizen. During a reigfn of 130 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I. nineteen years but one senator suffered death, and he was condemned by his own order. He lightened the burdens of the provinces, declaring' that the hearts of loving subjects should be his treasures. He selected his ministers and friends r'\ from among the virtuous and the good : he perfected the code of laws, adorned Rome with stately buildings, and founded a magnificent library. In war he extended the bounds of the empire beyond the limits set to it by Augustus ; con- quered the fruitful plains and hills of Dacia; curbed the wild hordes of Caucasus ; bowed to submission the emirs of the Arabian deserts ; avenged the fate of Crassus, and took Ctesiphon, the Parthian capital. , The ships of Trajan visited the coasts of India. He died at Seleucia, in Cilicia ; whence his body was brought to Rome, where it was received by the whole senate and people, and buried in the forum, which bore his name, beneath the lofty pillar which rises to the height of 140 feet, adorned with his deeds. A. D. Hadrian, it is thought, had been adopted by Trajan. He 117. was also an able and virtuous prince, though not the equal of his great predecessor. Hadrian wisely gave up several of the conquests of Trajan, and reduced the empire to its old bounds of the Rhine, the Danube, and the Euphrates, and 121. raised in Britain a barrier against the incursions of the un- tamed Caledonians. During his reign a formidable insurrec- tion of the Jews, under an impostor, named Barchoehebas» broke out, which was extinguished in the blood of thousands of that obstinate and misguided people. This emperor made a progress through his dominions, redressing grievances and diminishing taxes; and he regulated his court in the most exact manner. He was devoted to the fine arts, though his taste w^as none of the purest. As age came on, he grew peevish and cruel ; but the eflfects of these ill qualities were mitigated by the mildness and gentleness of Antoninus, whom he had adopted on the death of his favorite Lucius Verus. 138 Antoninus, surnamed the Pious, from his affection for his adoptive father, was one of those rare combinations of perfect virtue which the visions of philosophy, rather than real life, present as seated on a throne. His reign flowed on, for a space of twenty-three years, in dignified tranquillity : wars interrupted not the repose of the empire : neighboring na- tions submitted their differences to the arbitration of the virtuous Antoninus. He closed his beneficent career by leaving the guidance of the empire to an accomplished phi- losopher, 161. Marcus Aurelius Antoninus would willingly have trodden the tranquil course of his predecessor ; but the restless cue- CflAP. [X. ROME AN EMPIRE. 131 niies of the empire summoned the philosophic monarch to the defence of the frontiers, and to give a proof that the study of philosophy does not disqualify for action. Nations of Ger- manic race united, as in the days of Marius, to pour in upon Italy ; but Aurelius showed them, that the legions of Rome still retained their discipline and valor. The Parthians broke into Syria: the emperor speedily drove them back within their own limits. Foreign war was not the only calamity that afflicted the empire in this reign; famine and its constant attendant pestilence, ravaged various provinces. The Ger- mans, though beaten, still renewed their attempts, and the emperor died during his eighth winter campaign against the Marcomanni. Aurelius was, like Augustus, unhappy in his family: his wife Faustina disgraced him by her licentiousness; and the disposition of his son Com modus afforded slender grounds for pleasing hope. From Commodus to Diocletian, The most vicious succeeded the most virtuous of mankind, a. d. Commodus, the son of Aurelius, was a profligate, foolish boy. ^^^' His delight was in the indulgence of low sordid propensities; he sought for glory in gladiatorial skill ; while he degraded tlie majesty of the empire, by setting the example of pur- chasing peace from the barbarians. His father had made the Marcomanni feel the edge of the Roman steel ; his degene- rate son bestowed upon them Roman gold. Oppressive taxa- tion once more galled the subjects; the blood of the virtuous was once more seen to flow ; the favor of his father availed not to save ; Salvius Julianus, the great lawyer, whom Au- relius had honored, died by the order of Commodus. The emperor had nothing to fear from the Praetorians, whom he indulged in all their excesses. These were his protectors against all others, and he might mock at all plots of the sen- ate or people ; but he carried his tyranny, whither it was rarely carried with impunity, into his own household, and a conspiracy delivered the Roman world of the wretch who oppressed it. Murder thus, after a long interval, again made its appear- ance in the palace of the Caesars, and now seemed to have made it its permanent abode. Helvius Pertinax, the prefect 192 of the city, a man of virtue, was placed on the throne by the conspirators, who would fain justify their deed in the eyes of the world, and their choice was confirmed by the senate. But the Praetorians had not forgotten their own power on a similar occasion ; and they liked not the virtue 132 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART L and regularity of the new monarch. Pertmax wa;5, there- fore, speedily deprived of throne and life. Praetorian insolence now attained its height. Regardless of the dignity and honor of the empire, they set it up to auc- tion. The highest bidder was a senator, named Didius Ju- ^ D. lianus, a nephew of that very Salvius who had suffered for 193. law and virtue in the reign of Commodus. The legions dis- dained to receive an emperor from the life-guards. Those of Britain proclahned their general Clodius Albinus ; those of Asia, Pescennius Niger; the Pannonian legions, Septimius 1^4 Severus. This last was a m.an of bravery and conduct : by valor and stratagem he successively vanquished his rivals. He maintained the superiority of the Roman arms against the Parthians and Caledonians. His reign was vigorous and ad- vantageous to the state ; but he wanted either the courage or the power to fully repress the license and insubordination of the soldiery. 211. Severus left the empire to his two sons. Caracalla, the elder, a prince of violent and untamable passions, disdained to share empire with any. He murdered his brother and col- league, the more gentle Geta, and put to death all who ven- tured to disapprove of the deed. A restless ferocity distin- guished the character of Caracalla: Jie was ever at war, now on the banks of the Rhine, now on those of the Euphrates. His martial impetuosity daunted his enemies ; his reckless cruelty terrified his subjects. But the army loved the prince, who set no vahie on any but a soldier. Alexander the Great was the model this profligate fratricide dared to set before him. No greater insult could be offered to the memory of the Macedonian, During a Parthian war, Caracalla gave offence to Macrinus, the commander of his body-guard, who murdered him. 218. Macrinus seized the empire, but had not power to hold it. He and his son Diadumenianus, an amiable youth of but eighteen years, were put to death by tlie army, who pro- claimed a supposed son of their beloved Caracalla. 2i8 This youth was named Elagabalus, and was priest of the Sun in tlie temple of Emesa, in Syria. Every vice stained the character of this licentious, effeminate youth, whose name is become proverbial for sensual indulgence: he possessed no redeeming quality, had no friend, and was put to death by his own guards, who, vicious as they were themselves, detested vice in him. 222. Alexander Severus, cousin to Elagabalus, but of a totally opposite character, succeeded that vicious prince. All es- timable qualities were united in the noble and accomplished CHAP. IX. ROME AN EMPIRE. 133 Alexander. He delighted in the society of the learned and the wise ; the statues of the sages of all countries adorned his library; and their works, destined for the improvement of mankind, formed his constant study. But the love of learninor and virtue did not in him smother military skill and valor; he checked the martial hordes of Germany, and led the Ro- man eagles to victory against the Sassanides, who had dis- placed the Arsacides in the dominion over Persia,* and re- vived the claims of the house of Cyrus over Anterior Asia. Alexander, victorious in war, beloved by his subjects, deemed he might venture on introducing more regular discipline into the army. The attempt was fatal, and the amiable monarch lost his life in the mutiny that resulted. Maximin, a soldier, originally a Thracian shepherd, distin- a. d. guished by his prodigious size, strength, and appetite, a 235 stranger to all civic virtues and all civic rules, rude, brutal, cruel, and ferocious, seated himself on the throne of the noble and virtuous prince, in whose murder he had been a chief agent. At Rome the senate conferred the vacant dignity on Gordian, a noble, wealthy, and virtuous senator, and on his son, of the same name, a valiant and spirited youth. But scarcely were they recognized, when the son fell in an en- gagement, and the father slew himself Maximin was now rapidly marching towards Rome, full of rage and fury. De- spair gave courage to the senate ; they nominated Balbinus and Pupienus, one to direct the internal, the other the exter- nal affairs. Maximin had advanced as far as Aquileia, when his horrible cruelties caused an insurrection against him, and he and his son, an amiable youth, were murdered. The army was not, however, willing to acquiesce in the claim of the senate to appoint an emperor. Civil war was on the point of breaking out, when the conflicting parties agreed in the person of the third Gordian, a boy of but thirteen years of age. Gordian III. was an amiable and virtuous youth. In affairs 238. of state he was chiefly guided by his father-in-law, Misitheus, who induced him to engage in war against the Persians. In the war Gordian displayed a courage worthy of any of his predecessors ; but he shared what was now become the usual fate of a Roman emperor. He was murdered by Philip, the captain of his guard. Philip, an Arabian by birth, originally a captain of free- 244. footers, seized on the purple of his murdered sovereign. Two rivals arose and contended with him for the prize, but accom- plished nothing. A third competitor, Decius, the commander * Sep p. 57. 12 134 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART 1. of the army of the Danube, defeated and slew him near Verona. During the reign of Philip, Rome attained her thousandth year ; and the games to commemorate the dura- tion of the city of -Romulus, Brutus, and Csesar, were cele- brated by the native of a coimtry scarcely known, even by name, to the kings and consuls ! ^ P_ Decius, a prince of rigid virtue and primitive simplicity of 249. manners, sought to restore its ancient tone to the Roman character ; but the time for reformation was long gone by ; a new character was now completely and fixedly formed. Tlio well-meant projects of the emperor failed, and himself fell in battle, in defence of his country against the invading Goths. 251. In the space of two years reigned and fell tour emperors, 253. Gallus, Volusian, Hostilian, son of Decius, and /Emilian. The Germans still pressed on Italy, the Persians on Syria. 253. Valerian succeeded. His rigor and virtue as a censor haf^ been applauded ; as an emperor, he showed feebleness and in- capacity. He associated his son Gallienus in the empire with him. In the war against Shahpoor of Persia he was defeated and taken prisoner. The haughty Persian subjected the cap- tive emperor to every indignity. The Roman spirit was gone; he submitted with patience, and his luxurious col- league revelled heedless of his father's sufferings. 260. Gallienus, devoted to sensual indulgence, lived tranquilly in Italy. But in the various provinces, Britain, Gaul, Spain, Syria, Africa, &c., and even in Italy, numerous claimants of the imperial dignity arose. Some of these were men of merit, almost all persons of military skill and valor. Though the empire was thus torn and confused, its constant enemies, the Germans and Persians, were unable to seize any part. This is usually denominated 7'he time of the thirty tyrants, though (as far as we can collect from coins) they did not ex- ceed twenty-one, and are unjustly designated as tyrants. But some fancied analogy to Critias and his colleagues at Athens presented itself, and mankind love analogies and round num- bers. None of these rivals gave much uneasiness to Gallie- nus, who would have been well content with Italy alone, till Aureolus threatened to deprive him even of that. He then marched to battle against him at Milan ; but ere he took the city, he was murdered, naming, with his last breath, the most worthy to be his successor. 268. Claudius was the most worthy. He delivered Italy from the Goths, by a victory such as Rome had not seen since the days of Marius. But his reign was of short duration, and would have been more deeply lamented were it not for the virtues and talents of his successor. CHAP. IX. ROME AN EMPIRE. 135 Aurelian, a man bred in camps, brought to the throne the a. n. valor, activity, and vigor that it required. He introduced or- ^ ' • der into the state, and restored the empire to internal tran- quillity. He defeated the Germans, and even pursued them into their forests, vanquished all his rivals, and among them Zenobia, or Zeinab, the heroic queen of Palmyra, who, in chains of gold, adorned the triumph in which the emperor entered Rome. Aurelian never lost a battle : he was clement to the conquered, indulgent to the people and the army, but averse to the senate. He was murdered on his way against the Persians. The army was now either satisfied with the long exercise of its power in appointing emperors, or it saw the evils likely to arise to the empire in general from each army investing its leader with the purple. Accordingly, on the death of Aurelian, they restored its privileges to the senate, who, after an interreign of eight months, bestowed the purple on 275 Tacitus, a man of virtue and probity. Tacitus was far ad- vanced in years when he was placed on the throne, which he occupied for a few months with honor, and then died a natu- ral death. After the death of Tacitus, his brother Florianus, who lit- tle resembled him, aspired to the empire. Neither senate nor army approved of him, and the latter bestowed the pur- ple on their virtuous and able commander, Probus, who, to the more rigorous virtues of Aurelian, united a gentleness 276. and moderation, to which that able prince had been a stranger. The senate approved of the choice of the army. Probus de- feated the Germans on the Danube and the Rhine. He in- troduced into their country the culture of the vine, and em- ployed the legions in the labors of the field and the vineyard. This, united with the strict discipline he sought to revive, excited their indignation: they rose in munity, murdered, and then lamented their excellent emperor. Caras, the commander of the body-guard, was raised to the 282. empire, in which he associated with himself his two sons, Carinus and Numerian, the former of a dissolute, the latter of a more gentle and cultured disposition. Carus was es- teemed a good general, but his reign was short ; he was killed by lightning in his tent, or possibly murdered by those who spread that report. His son Numerian was shortly afterwards murdered by his father-in-law Aper, the prsetorian prefect. 1'he traitor expiated his crime by death. Carinus was slain by a man whose conjugal honor he had insulted. 136 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I Channre in the Form of Government. A.D. . 284. After the death of Carus and his sons, the reigns of empire fell into the firm hands of Diocletian, by birth a Dalmatian, a wise and able prince. The enemies of the empire pressed now with redoubled force on the frontiers, and Diocletian ;iaw that the vigilance and activity of one mind could not suffice to attend to the multifarious concerns of the state. The events of the last reigns had also taught him the danger of committing the command of the legions to officers who might so readily become competitors for the throne. He therefore resolved to share the imperial dignity with his friend and comrade in arms, Maximianus Herculius, to whom, as being of a rugged active character, he committed the West, while himself took charge of the East. Each bore the title of Augustus, and each appointed a successor under that of Csesar. The Caesars were younger and more active men, and the more exposed parts of the empire were committed to them. Diocletian administered Asia; his Csesar, Galerius, rough and soldierly, governed Thrace and the countries on the Danube. Maximian retained Italy, Spain, Africa, and the islands; his Caesar, Constantius Chlorus, a worthy de- scendant of the late emperor Claudius, governed Gaul and Britain. Rome ceased to be an imperial residence : that of Maximian was mostly at Milan ; Diocletian resided chiefly at Nicomedia. A farther innovation made by this emperor was the introduction of the oriental splendor of attire and adora- tion of the emperors. He and his colleague with great so- lemnity assumed, on the same day, the diadem and other insignia of eastern royalty. Perhaps nothing better could have been devised for main- taining the empire tlian this partition of power. The expe- rienced monarchs could give attention to internal affairs, while the younger and more active emperors elect, away from the corruption of capitals, might keep up the discipline and military virtues of the legions. Accordingly we find that the Goths were held in check, the Allemanni defeated, Brit- ain, where Carausius had in the late reign raised a rebellion, reduced to obedience, and the Persians forced to a peace ad- vantageous and honorable to the empire. But it was not to be expected that four princes could reign together in una- nimity, or that Csesars would patiently wait till death made way for them to the higher rank. It was not long, therefore, before contention and war broke out among them. While Diocletian ruled, he kept his colleagues in bounds, exerting o\'er them tlie influence of a superior mind. Bu- CHAP. IX. ROME AN EMPIRE. 137 after a reifrn of twenty years, feeling the infirmities of age approach, he resolved to abandon the cares of empire, and retire to pass the evening of his life in seclusion in his native province. He signified his intention to Maximian, who re- luctantly assented to a joint abdication. The Caesars were raised to the rank of Augusti: Constantius was assigned Severus for his Caesar ; Galerius conferred that dignity on his nephew Daza. Constantius did not long enjoy the dignity he adorned. Ga- a. d. lerius soon became odious to the Romans ; and Maximian 306. took advantage of this circumstance to make his son Maxen- tius master of Italy. Severus was forced to yield. In the mean time, Constantino, the son of Constantius, had com- pletely won the hearts of the British and Gallic legions, by Ir.s military and civil virtues, and he soon forced Galerius and Maxentius to acknowledge him as joint-emperor. The debauchery and cruelty of Maxentius were now grown intolerable to the Romans. The nobles fled from the city ; the labors of agriculture were neglected ; his own father was forced to fly from him and take refuge with Constantino, who liad married his daughter. But the restless and depraved old man could not abstain from machinations against his son- in-law and protector ; and Constantine, not to be himself the victim, compelled him to end his unquiet life by voluntary death, the mode of which was left to his own choice. Invited by the Roman nobles, Constantine marched against Maxen- 312. tins. A battle took place in the neighborhood of Rome : Max- entius fell, and the whole West obeyed Constantine. Galerius was now dead, and his nephew, Maximianus Daza, whom he had raised to the rank of a Caesar, liad follow- ed him. Constantine associated with himself Licinius, a man who by military merit had risen to the dignity of a Caesar. They named their sons, Crispus and Licinius, to be their Caesars. The old emperor Diocletian died, as was said, by his own hand, about this time. Constantine now openly professed himself a Christian. He 311 put an end to the persecution whicn had raged against that sect for the last ten years with all the violence of the ex- piring storm. His conversion, perhaps, was sincere : possibly 31.^ he saw that the Christians were become the most powerful body in the empire, and that the wisest policy was to give way to what could not be resisted without imminent danger. He issued two edicts ; one assigning them the temples of the gods, in places where they had not suitable churches; the other, giving them the preference in all appointments to civil and military offices; and thus, in less than three centuries 12* 138 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I. from its origin, Christianity became, in effect, the established religion of the empire, Constantine, however, deferred his baptism till a little before his death. Unanimity did not long subsist between the emperors. Wars broke out, and Licinius was eventually deprived of his A. D. dignity and life by his victorious colleague, who now reigned 324. alone. Seeing that the North-east, where the powerful nation of the Goths was settled, was the quarter from which most danger was to be apprehended, and also the growing strength of Persia, Constantine deemed Rome too remote a residence 330. for the sovereign, and he fixed on Byzantium, which he en- larged and named from himself, as the seat of imperial power. This measure has been blamed, as leaving Italy ex- posed to the irruptions of the barbarians ; but continuance at Rome, or any other plan to ward off the inevitable evil, w«uld have been equally exposed to censure. The virtue and energy w^hich had gained the empire were gone ; the tribes of the North had added skill and discipline to their numbers, strengtli, and courage. Corruption of Christianity. The Christian religion, as given to man by its divine Au- thor, was perfect in truth and simplicity; but it was sent forth into a world in which error abounded, and the stream had hardly left the fountain when it became defiled with mundane impurities. Earnestly and repeatedly does the zealous Paul inveigh against those who mingled what he called the "beggarly elements" and the "fables" of Judaism with the spiritual precepts of the Gospel ; and strongly does he warn to avoid " profane and vain babblings, and oppositions of knowledge, falsely so called." But the evil was not to be checked, and Oriental and Grecian philosophy rapidly mingled with Gospel simplicity. The heat of eastern climates inspires indolence and the love of contemplation. The human mind becomes absorbed in rapturous visions of light and expanse, and men learn to regard the soul, the commencement of whose existence they cannot conceive, as having descended from the realms of su- pernal light into the body, its present darksome dungeor., whence it was to reascend to its former blissful abode. Hence the body being a prison, and matter evil, the object of the soul was to emancipate itself from their influence. This was to be best effected, it was thought, by mortification of the flesh and senses ; and hence the voluntary mutilations, the corporeal tortures, rigid abstinence, and all that system of self-torment which distingui. hes the yogee, the fakeer, and CHAP. IX. ROME AN EMPIRE. 139 the monk. Others, but fewer in number, drew a contrary conclusion, and maintained that the acts of its impure com- panion were indifferent to the pure soul ; and they freely in- diilired in the practice of the grossest sensuality. This eastern doctrine, mixed with the Persian one of the two principles, entered, under the name of Gnosis, or know- ledge, into Christianity, even in the days of the apostles ; and it was, perhaps, already not unknown to the Essenes. All the heresies of which we read in the early days of tlie church were founded, more or less, on the Gnosis ; and one of the favorite doctrines of these sects was, that this world and its creator were evil, and that Jesus was a being produced by wisdom, who took the appearance of a body, in which he was apparently crucified by the agents of the creator of the world. With this knowledge of the East the philosophy of the West combined to debase the truth of the Gospel. This phi- losophy was the New Platonism, which had fixed its chief seat at Alexandria, in Egypt, a country ever fertile of error and corruption. Its followers undertook the defence of the old religion ; they allegorized all its indecent and extravagant legends, and set it in opposition to the new faith. Some of these philosophers became Christians, and retained their love of mystery and word-straining artifices: some Christians were educated in their schools. The Jews of Egypt had, as the works of Philo show, long since been familiar with the allegorizing system, which was now unsparingly applied to the simple precepts and narrations of the Old Testament : and the sober Christian of the present day would stare with amazement at the numerous and marvellous senses they were made to bear in the writings of the learned Origen. By this system any words could be made to bear any sense; and what a field for corruption this gave, is too evident to need proof Yet, as evil has always its attendant good, this very corruption of Christianity may have aided its diffusion, by procuring it a more ready acceptance among the educated classes of society, whose taste had long lost all relish for truth and simplicity. A veneration for departed excellence is one of the most natural and praiseworthy principles of our nature; hence no one can blame the early Christians for visiting with respect the tombs of those Vv'ho died beneath heathen tortures rather than renounce their faith. But, gradually, simple respect was converted mto religious adoration; the bodies and relics of the martyrs and confessors were taken from their peaceful and obscure places of rest, and solemnly enshrined in stately churches, where, by the devout, they were viewed with aw- 140 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART 1. ful veneration, and to whose sanctity they were held largely to contribute. If such honors were paid to the mortal remains of the champions for Christ, of how much greater were they them- selves to be held worthy ! It soon became an established ar- ticle of faith, that the apostles and other eminent saints were at once admitted to the beatific vision and immediate presence of God, where they enjoyed an extent of knowledge and a measure of power to which limits could not easily be set. The transition was easy to an invocation of them, to exert their own power for their suppliant, or intercede with God in his favor ; and the ivorsJiip of saints was speedily dissemi- nated throuofh the Christian world. The bodies which the saints had occupied when on earth were supposed to retain or to have acquired a portion of this power : they too iDcre adored ; and, sliortly after, this honor was extended to their images. Each saint was held to be most easily propitiated at the place where his relics lay, or his life had been spent, and hence the origin of pilgrimages. In effect, the theory devised by Euhemerus, to account for tlie origin of Grecian polytheism, w^as exactly applicable to a great part of the religion now called Christianity ; and we shall have completed the picture when we add the number of pretended miracles that were every day asserted with the most unblushing assurance, and the quantity of Jewish and heathen ceremonies that was rapidly introduced into the church. This is the religion which will appear in the next twelve centuries of our history, and to which our future remarks will apply. We must, however, in justice add, that the tor- rent of corruption was nobly stemmed by some, such as Vigilantius ; that many of the corrupters knew not what they did ; and that much of the gold still remained among the dross. CHAP. X. DECLINE OF THE EMPIRE. Successors of Constantine. 337, Constantine II. obtained Gaul and Britain : Constans Italy, Illyria, and Africa ; Constantius had the East. Their cousins, Dalmatius and Hannibalianus, had been made Caesars by their uncle : the former governed Thrace, Macedonia, and Greece ; the latter, Armenia. CflAP. X. DECLINE OF THE EMPIRE. 141 The Cffisars were murdered by their soldiers, not without the approbation of the emperors, each of whom thirsted for absolute sway. Constantino attempted to deprive his brother of Italy, and lost his life in a battle against him near Aqui- a. d leia. Constans, a prince not devoid of talent, was devoted to 340 and passed his days in the practice of unnatural lusts. Mag-- nentius conspired against him, and he was surprised and slain in a wood at the foot of the Pyrenees, whither he was in the 350 habit of retiring- with his favorites. Magnentius attempted to seize his dominions; but Illyria refused obedience, and made Vetranio, an old and worthy officer, emperor. Constantius, committing the war which he was waging, with little success, against Shahpoor, king of Persia, to his cousin Gallus, whom he had made Caesar, marched to the West. Vetranio cheerfully resigned his dignity for an annual pension. Italy declared for Constantius ; and Rome suffered a cruel veng-eance from Magnentius, ere he marched to meet his rival. A series of bloody engagements ensued. On the plains of Hungary the last decisive one was fought, which re- united the empire under a single sceptre, Magnentius, to save them from disgrace, slew his own mother, and one of his brothers, and then himself; and his example was followed by his brother Decentius. The Csesar Gallus was executed 354 shortly afterwards for some offences, by order of the emperor. Julian, the brother of Gallus, had been reared up at the court of Constantius. His habits were studious, his senti- ments virtuous. Disgusted with what he saw around him, he sought relief in the contemplation of the noble characters of Greek and Roman story, whom he made his models. He carried his veneration for his loved antiquity so far as to re- nounce the Christian religion in which he had been reared, and secretly to embrace the ancient system of Greece and Rome, refined by the allegorizing subtilty of the school of the New Platonists ; and resolved to restore it to its former dignity, if ever the empire should fall to him. The Franks and Allemanni were now causing extreme un- easiness to Gaul, and the emperor was obliged to send thither, with the rank of Csesar, his nephew, whom he held cheap as a book-learned dreamer. But Julian showed, as other men of mental power oflen have done, that study and learning disqualify not for action. He arranged the most judicious plan for conducting the war, and gave the Allemanni, whose troops under their chief Chnodomar were three times the number of his army, a most decisive defeat in the neighbor- hood of Strasburg. He marched all throug-h their territory, reduced them and the Franks to sue for pea,ce, and restored 142 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I. the frontiers of the empire. He diminished the hurdens of Gaul, and caused justice to be administered with speed and impartiality. His army saluted him Augustus : and Constan- tius, on receivinof the intelligence in Cilicia, died, it is said, of grief and mortification. A X). Julian, when seated on the throne, openly professed the 361. ancient religion of the empire. The temples of the gods were again opened, the priests restored to their ancient dignity, and the zealous emperor sought to purify their morals. All practices and institutions to which Christianity appeared to nim to have owed its success were eno-rafted on the old reli- gion : preachers were placed in the temples ; excommunica- tion employed against obstinate sinners ; large sums distributed in alms among the poor. An example of strict and rigid mor- als was set by the emperor ; the utmost moderation prevailed in the palace; the eunuchs and other ministers of luxury were removed. Favor in the distribution of employments was naturally shown to those who agreed in sentiment with the monarch ; but Julian, though superstitious, was too politic, if not too humane, to persecute the Christians. Toleration prevailed ; bishops who had been deposed from their sees were restored ; the cessation of mutual persecution for opinion en- joined ; Arians and Athanasians — for the dispute respecting the divine nature of Jesus Christ had split the church into these parties — compelled to live in peace. The politic em- peror hoped, perhaps, by division to weaken his opponents. From these cares Julian was called away to the defence of the eastern frontier against Shahpoor, who, probably aware of the growing disaffection of the Christians, had begun to make inroads. Julian marched to Mesopotamia, where, de- ceived by a pretended deserter, who undertook to lead him by a nearer road, he got into the deserts, where his army was exposed to the attacks of the light cavalry of the enemy. He resolved on giving battle ; but just as he was preparing for action, he was mortally wounded, and he died, encouraging his officers to do their duty. A. D On the death of Julian, the army invested with the purple 363. Jovian, a Pannonian, a man of talent, and so 2iealous a Chris- tian, that he had thereby incurred the displeasure of the late emperor. He was compelled to surrender the strong fortress of Nisi bis to Shahpoor, as the condition of peace. Before he reached Constantinople, he diea. 364 The army chose another Pannonian, Valentinian, to suc- ceed ; and he, with their assent, shared the dignity with his brother Valens, tcrwhom he committed the care of the eastern part of the empire, himself taking charge of the West. Va- CHAP. X. DECLINE OF THE EMPIRE. 143 lentinian was a valiant prince ; and he distinguished himself in war against the Saxons, Allemanni, and Sarmatians, and built fortresses along the Rhine. Want of self-command was his great defect. Valens was of a less noble character, and he exercised great cruelty against those who s'et up claims to liis empire, or differed from his theological sentiments. The internal corruption and weakness of the empire still increased ; the court more and more every day approximated to the idle pomp, the secret influence of women and eunuchs, the inaccessibleness of the monarch, the horrid cruelty which distinguished those of the East. Barbarous punishments, such as Rome had hardly seen under the worst of her heathen monarchs, were inflicted by these emperors. The discipline of the legions continually relaxed ; their armor was lightened, the infantry diminished, and cavalry increased. The garrisons of frontier towns took to civil occupations. The best of the legions were composed of barbarians, who had been taken into the imperial pay. These often refused to fight against their own countrymen ; often betrayed the Romans ; mocked at all discipline ; robbed and plundered the country ; forced their emperors to give battle when it pleased them, how unfavora- ble soever the circumstances might be. When military virtue was lost, all was gone, for civil virtue had long since departed. The view given by contemporaries of the then state of the empire is heart-rending. Corruption, injustice, and oppres- sion, in the government and its officers; swarms of barbarians continually pouring in and devastating the provinces; and famine and pestilence to fill up the picture of misery. The Huns. A new enemy now appeared in Europe. Wars and com- motions in the distant ICast caused a tide of mingled Turks and Mongols to pour itself on the West. In the reign of Valens, the Romans heard of tribes of Mongol deformity, be- gotten, some reported, by the devil, who in countless swarms pressed on the eastern frontier of the Goths. This dreadful people was named the Huns. All the country from the Black Sea to Livonia was then ruled by the venerable Hermanric, chief of the Goths. He was shortly afterwards murdered. The Goths were divided into two great portions, the West-Goths (Visigoths,) governed by the house of t!.e Balti : the East-Goths (Ostrogoths,) by that of the Amali. The Huns rarely venturing to meet the West-Goths in battle, continually carried ofl^ their wives and children. In the confusion that ensued on the death of Her- manric, and the invasions of the Huns, the West-Gothic 144 OUTLINES OF HISTURV. PART 1 princes, Alavivus and Fridigern, proposed to the emperor Va- lens, that if he would give their nation lands south of the Danube, they would undertake the defence of that frontier. Valens consented ; he gave the lands, and, through Ulphilas, had them instructed in the Arian form of Christianity. During a period of fifty years the Huns pastured their herds, and pur- sued the chase, in the woods and plains of Russia, Poland, and Hungary, without molesting the West-Goths. The East-Goths were among their subjects ; but Safrach and Aleth led a portion of them over the Danube. Wars ivith the Goths. The Goths soon found themselves straitened for room in their new abode. They applied to the emperor for permission to trade. He gave orders to the neighboring governors to conduct it, which they did in such a spirit of monopoly, that the Goths had soon sold their cattle and slaves, and were re- duced to part with their children for food. The governors attempted treachery against Fridigern, the Gothic prince ; he summoned his countrymen to arms ; blood and devastation tracked the march of the Goths from Moesia towards Con- stantinople. The orthodox emperor of the West refused aid to the Arian Valens ; Terentius, governor of Armenia, did the same ; the imperial general, Trajan, was defeated ; the populace despaired of victory under an emperor who was the enemy of the Son of God. Meantime the Goths advanced ; the flames of the villages were seen from the walls of Con- stantinople. Valens marched and encountered the Goths in the plains of Adrianople. Cavalry now composed the main strength of the Roman armies. They could not stand against the firm Gothic infantry ; the imperial troops gave way and fled. Va- lens, wounded, sought refuge in a peasant's cottage, which y^D. was set fire to, along with the rest, by the pursuing Goths, 378. and the emperor perished in the flames. The Goths approached the walls of Constantinople, and the empress Domnina prepared for a vigorous defence. Un- used to sieges, and daunted by the strength of the walls, they retired. Fridigern marched mto Greece. Safrach and Aleth turned back to ravage Pannonia. 375. Valentin ian was dead, and his sons, Gratian and Valentin- ian II., a child of four years, had succeeded him. Gratian associated in the empire Theodosius, a Spaniard by birth, a descendant of Trajan, whose virtues he emulated. The East 379 was committed to the new emperor. His first efforts were to e.vcite discord amongf tlie Goths, and to o-ain them over 1o CHAP. X. DECLINE OF THE EMPIRE. 145 himself. Fridigern shortly after died, and the emperor pro- posed a conference with his successor Athanaric : a peace was agreed on, a regular subsidy assigned the Goths, and a number of them taken into pay as auxiliaries. The Gothic chief died at Constantinople ; and such was the idea the Goths had conceived of the talents and virtues of the emperor, that they declared that so long as he lived they would not appoint another prince. Gratianus was an able and enlightened prince : he fought witli valor and success against the Allemanni ; but his army disliked him, because he gave a preference to foreign troops. They set up Maximus against him, and Gratian was treache- a. d. rously murdered. 383 Maximus drove the young Valentinian out of Italy. He secured the passes of the Alps, and posted himself with a large army near Aquileia ; but Theodosius took advantage of his neglect, and defeated him. Maximus fell in the action. 388. The two emperors now reigned undisturbed, till Valen- tinian was murdered by tJie Count Arbogastes and the secre- tary Eugenius. Theodosius speedily came to avenge him, and defeated his murderers at the foot of the Alps. 394. A few months after he had obtained the sole power, Theo- 395. dosius died, to the great misfortune and grief of the empire, which he had governed with justice, moderation, and pru- dence. He was the last who ruled over the whole Roman world. Theodosius had two sons : Arcadius, the elder, a youth of eighteen, was left the East; and Rufinus, a native of Gaul, became his director : Honorius, a boy of eleven years, held the West, under the guardianship of Stilicho, a Vandal. These ministers, for private ends, introduced confusion into the empire. The Goths, on the death of Theodosius, had appointed Alaric, of the house of the Balti, their prince. Finding their subsidy ill paid, and perceiving that the justice and valor of Theodosius no longer swayed the sceptre, they meditated war. Rufinus deemed it a great stroke of policy to throw the evil on Italy. He secretly advised the Goths to turn their arms that way, promising to send no aid to that country. Stilicho, on the other hand, rejoiced at the prospect of war ; he took no pains to secure the passes against Alari<;, and a Gothic prince was surrounded and slain in the mountains near Fie- sole. The nation of the West-Goths, with wives and children, 4U3 flocks and herds, broke up from their seats in Mcesia and Hither-Dacia, and advanced through Illyrium, Istria, and the 13 146 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART 1 north-east of Italy, without meeting any opposition. They arrived within a few miles of Milan, at that time the impe- rial residence, and sent a message to inform the emperor that the West-Gothic nation was arrived in Italy, and prayed him either to assign them land, or to try the strength of the two nations in the field. Honorius replied, that they might take land in either Gaul or Spain. Alaric accepted the permission, though in the one country he might have to contend with the Franks, in the other with the Vandals and Suevians. With- out committing any act of violence, he marched towards the Alps leading into Gaul, and the Goths celebrated Easter in the mountains of Piedmont. In the midst of the festival, they were astonished to see that they were followed by a Roman army. The Goths were attacked and defeated by the assail- ants, and Alaric, filled with rage, turned back on Italy, He ravaged Liguria and all the country to Tuscany, and hastened towards Rome. Her fate was averted for a season ; but on th*^ 26th August, of the year 1164 from the supposed era of her foundation, Rome surrendered for the first time to A D. a foreign e^emy, and saw herself at the mercy of Alaric. 40y. The imperial palace and the houses of the great were plun- dered ; much blood was spilt, and many houses fired. He bestowed the purple on one Attains, then stripped him of it, marched southwards, and subdued Campania and Calabria, as far as the strait. He was meditating, it is said, a passage to Sicily and Africa, and the conquest of that country, when death surprised him at Cosenzo in his 35th year. The whole West-Gothic nation mourned for him, and the neighboring river was diverted from its course to afford a grave for the Gothic monarch in its bed, and then turned back to its usual channel, that the tomb of Alaric might never be discovered. His brother-in-law, Adolf, (Athaulf) was chosen to succeed him. Adolf marched back to Rome, where his troops did great injury to the public buildings and works of art. The empe- ror was forced to give him his sister in marriage. He con- tinued his march to Gaul. All opposition gave way before 410. Gothic valor. The country bounded by the Rhone, Loire, and Pyrenees, submitted to the West-Goths, and Toloza (Toulouse) became their capital. They crossed the Pyrenees, and drove the Vandals, Suevians, and the Slavonian Alans to the moun- tains of Gallicia and Portugal. The Spaniards retained their ancient valor ; but the government of the empire was not so beneficial as to deserve to be defended. This kingdom of the West-Goths in Spain lasted till the year 711. The Caledonians meantime pressed upon Britain ; Phara- mond (Warmund) and his Franks had settled in the Nether- :;hap. X. decline op the empire. 147 lands ; Gundicher (Gimther) and his Burg-undians, seized the country on the Upper Rhine. His capital was Worms. Heruli and Rugians came down into Noricum (Austria ;) the Lang-o- bards took Pannonia (Hungary and a part of Austria ;) the East-Goths, a part of Thrace. Sebastian and Jovinus raised the standard of rebeUion in the empire. Heraclianus, gov- ernor of Africa, kept back the corn-ships destined for Rome. In this state of the pubJic affairs Honorius died, leaving the ^^ p throne of the West to his nephew Valentinian^ a child af six 423. years of age. Genseric and Attila, In the reign of Valentinian III. Africa was lost to the \vestern empire; the cause was the ambition and art of ^Etius, the imperial general. Galla Placidia, the mother of the young emperor, governed for him with wisdom. Boni- facius was governor of Africa. ^Etius wished to cause en- mity between him and the regent. He wrote to Bonifaeius, telling him he had been traduced to her, and that she would re- call him and put him to death ; he represented to Placidia that Bonifaeius was meditating rebellion, and that the only way to check was to recall him : she did so ; he refused obedience : it was resolved to make war on him. Bonifacii^, diffident of his own resources, cast his eyes on the Vandals, now masters of Andalusia : he offered land on the coast of Africa, as the price of their assistance, to their princes Gense^ric and Gon- deric. Genseric, an able, enterprising, and ambitious youth, immediately crossed the strait. Terror and devastation tracked 427 Ids route. Bonifaeius perceived his error : aided by some forces sent by Theodosius II. emperor of the East, he armed in de- fence of the country. Genseric defeated bc^h him and the im- perial general Aspar. He took Carthage, plundered it, de- stroyed the nobility, and tortured all ranks to make them discover their treasures. Being an Arian, he relentlessly persecuted the orthodox. His son Hunneric was married to a West-Gothic princess. As Genseric grew old, he became suspicious: he took it into his head that his daughter-in-law meditated poisoning him, and he cut off her nose and ears, and sent her home to her own country. Then, fearing the vengeance of the West- Goths, and a union between them and the Roman emperor against him, he sent ambassadors to Attila, king of the Huns^ to induce him to invade the western empire. The whole nation of the Huns was united under this able prince. He ruled from the Volga to Hungary; Gepidse, Langobards, East-Goths, and nations of southern Germany obeyed him ; tlie emperor Theodosius paid him tribute ; 148 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I. 700,000 warriors marched beneath his banners, each Hunnisli tribe under its chief. One soul animated the whole; all yielded implicit obedience to the mandate of their great Tanjoo. Attila was generous, and not averse from mercy. Attila resolved on war. He prepared the way by artifice ; he wrote to Theoderic (Dietrich,) the West-Gothic king re- siding at Toulouse, inviting him to unite in a partition of the empire of the Romans, his sworn foes. He wrote to the im- perial court, exaggerating the fidelity of the Huns, and pro- posing to restore the integrity of the empire by a union of their forces to expel the West-Goths from Gaul and Spain. The imperial court saw through the artifice. Valentinian called on all the barbaric monarchs of the West to join in averting the common danger : his call was attended to. The vahant West-Gothic monarch, the Burgundians who dwelt in the modern Burgundy, Dauphine, Savoy, and West Switzer- land, Sangiban, king of the Alans, on the Loire, the towns of Armorica, the community of Paris, the Ripuarian Franks between the Maese and Rhine, the Salian Franks ruled by Meroveus, and the Saxons beyond the Rhine, all took anns to repel the Huns. From his village-court on the banks of the Theiss, Attila pursued his march through Austria, Styria, the borders of Rhsetia and Allemannia, passed the Rhine, defeated at Basil the king of the Burgundians, rapidly advancing, till on the Marno in the plains of Croisette, not far from Chalons, he en- countored the army of the confederates. A. D. The left wing of the confederates was commanded by 450. iEtius, the Roman general, the right by Theoderic, the centre by king Sangiban. One wing of the army of Attila was led by the king of the Gepidse, the other by the princes of the East-Goths. Attila ordered the principal efforts to be directed against the West-Goths and Alans, and desired all to fix their eyes on him. The fight was long and bloody. Theoderic fell, encouraging his men. At the approach of night, Attila found it necessary to retreat. The West-Goths burned to avenge the death of their king. ^Etius judged it more politic to reserve the Huns as a counterpoise to them: he also wished to prolong the war, and his own command. Attila, as the country was unable to support his troops, returned home. 452. Vengeance, or, as is said, the invitation of a sister of the emperor, who offered him her hand, drew Attila to Italy. Aquileia resisted in vain : it was levelled to the ground ; its male inhabitants put to the sword, the women and children led into slavery. All the towns of northern Italy were taken and plundered. He entered Ravenna through a breach made by the citizens in their walls, to testify tlieir submission. Leo CHAP. X. DECLINE OF THE EMPIRE. 149 the venerable bishop of Rome, came to meet him, bearing' gifts, and accompanied by nobles. He besought him to spare the city where the apostle had preached, and which Alaric had not violated. Attila was moved : he drew off his army, laden with spoil, to pasture their herds once more beyond the Danube. Dreaded by the East and West, Attila died soon j^. ^ after, on the night of his marriage with the fair Hildichunde, 453 and with him expired the power of the Huns. Fall of the Western Empire. Valentinian III. was a luxurious and superstitious prince. He had violated the wife of Maximus, a noble Roman. Bent on vengeance, Maximus, to deprive the emperor of support, contrived to make him put the brave ^Etius to death. This incensed the guards, whose prefect ^tius had been, and Valentinian was murdered by them. Maximus was made 455^ em.peror, and he married Eudoxia, the widow of his predeces- sor. In a moment of unguarded confidence he revealed to her the secret of his being the chief agent in the death of Valentinian. Eudoxia, who had loved the husband of her youth, resolved to avenge him. She wrote to Africa to Gen- seric, calling upon him to avenge the murder of him, who had so many years left him in undisturbed possession of the fertile regions of Africa. Genseric obeyed the summons. On intelligence of his approach, all the principal citizens of Rome fled to the Sabine and Tuscan mountains. Maximus was put to death by the people. No resistance was offered to the Vandals. Fourteen days they abode in Rome, which Leo, its bishop, with difficulty saved from conflagration. The empress and her daughters, the flower of the youth, the artists and mechanics, were brought to Africa. The works of art were embarked for the same place, but were lost on the passage. All the south of Italy was wasted by the Vandals. Avitus, a man of noble descent and virtuous life, was ele- 456. vated to the purple in Gaul, but almost immediately laid down his dignity. The Romans then chose Majorianus, a 457. brave warrior. He marched against the Alans, who were threatening a descent into Italy, but was murdered by his own 461. soldiers. His successor was Severus. The Alans, who were a tribe of Slavonian race, had settled on the Loire in Gaul. Finding themselves straitened between the Franks and the West-Goths, they abandoned that country, passed the Alps, and reached Bergamo. Here they were defeated by the imperial general, Richimir, who shortly afterwards deposed the em- peror, and raised his own father-in-law, Anthemius, to the 467 13* 150 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART I. throne. He designed to govern under the name of the em- peror. Anthemius was refractory : a battle was fought near Rome. Richimir was victorious ; he put Anthemius to death, wasted and plundered the city in a dreadful manner, and sur- A. D. vived but forty days. Olybrius, married to a daughter of 473. Valentinian, was raised to the throne, which he occupied but seven months. Glycerins, a lord of the court, was chosen by the Romans ; but the Eastern emperor set up Julius Nepos 474. against him, and Glycerins retired and took orders, and be- came bishop of Porto. The emperor sent his general, Orestes, to defend the pas- sage of the Alps against the barbarians, who were continually advancing. By means of his army Orestes forced him to re- sign, and he invested with the purple his own son, Romulus 475. Augustus, a youth of amiable manners and cultivated mind. The Heruli, a people whom we first find seated in Pome- rania, on the shores of the Baltic, had gradually proceeded southwards. They fed their herds in Pannonia, then roved into Noricum, and now appeared in Italy, with other tribes, headed by the valiant Odoacer. Pavia, defended by the father of the young emperor, resisted. It was taken, and Orestes beheaded. All the cities opened their gates at the approach of Odoacer. Romulus laid down sceptre, purple, and crown, and entered the camp of the Herulian chief His life was spared, and he was sent to a castle in Campania. 476. Thus, in the days of a prince of the same name as her supposed founder, in the 1229th year of the city, fell the empire of Rome. She had by valor and prudence risen from the smallest beginnings ; had step by step enlarged her do- minions, absorbed one after another all the nations of the civilized world that surrounded the Mediterranean, had adopted their vices, had lost her strength by internal corrup- tion. The mighty colossus had long tottered on its base; each tribe of the Gotho-German stock had by turns agitated it : the last and decisive effort was reserved for the dwellers of Riigen and Pomerania, a tribe unheard of in her days of glory. We here quit the ancient world. New scenes open, new manners appear ; the gods of Greece and Rome have vanish- ed : a different religion is dominant, before which another ancient system also gives way ; while the wilds of Arabia send forth another religion, which, in its rapidity of diffusion and extent of dominion, will vie with that which emanated from its vicinity six centuries before. We shall meet limited •monarchy the prevalent form of government ; view the amaz- ing fabric of ecclesiastical dominion ; and contemplate feu- dalism, with its chivalry and its martial spirit. OUTLINES OF HISTORY, PART II. THE MIDDLE AGES. CHAP. I. ESTABLISHMENT OF THE BARBARIANS IN THE WESTERN EMPIRE. Introduction. Hitherto the stream of history has run in one nearly continuous channel, varying its appellation as the chief power fell into the hands of a different people, Assyrians, Modes, and Persians, have succeeded each other in the possession of Asiatic empire. Greece has risen on their ruins ; and all have been finally absorbed in the wide dominion of Rome. The minor streams of smaller states have only contributed to swell the current of empire. The face of history now alters ; the last great empire is dissolved ; no state will ap- pear of such magnitude as to absorb all others ; numerous states will run a parallel course, mutually affecting each other. Our plan must suit itself to the altered condition of the world : henceforth we shall divide the course of events into periods, under each of which we shall view the then state of human affairs. The middle ages occupy ten centuries of the history of man. Of these, the six first are justly denominated the dark ages. A long night succeeded to the brilliant day of Rome, whose sun had set in blood and gloom. In the four last cen- turies of this period, it will brighten more and more into the perfect day of modern cultivation and refinement. Religion will purify, law will resume its empire, manners will soften; literature and science will revive. The Gotho- Germans. The tribes that overturned the western empire were all of this great race, which overspread nearly all the northern part of Europe. Their original seat was probably east of the Caspian. The affinity between their languages and those of 152 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART IL India and Persia is striking ; but the date of their migration is anterior to occidental history. They were distinguished by their huge stature, blue eyes, and fair complexions. Their religious system was a deification of the powers of nature ; it still subsists in the Icelandic Eddas. We shall now give a concise view of the states founded by them on the ruins of the empire of Rome. East- Goths in Italy. On the death of Attila, the East-Goths threw off their sub- jection to the Huns. Under their princes of the house of the Amali, they dwelt from the Danube to the Save. They received gifts from the Eastern emperors ; they gave hostages in return. Among these was Theoderic (Dietrich), a natural son of their king Theodemir, a youth of talent and hope. Theodemir extended his conquests to the Alps. His son re- turned at the ag*e of eighteen, accomplished in the knowledge of the Romans, and, unknown to his father, defeated a Sar- matian prince. The Goths now extended into Illyria and Macedonia, and Theoderic succeeded his father. The em- peror Zeno, a weak prince, feared the ruler of the Goths: he invested him with the consular robe, and allowed him to tri- umph. But the Goths still felt themselves straitened ; and Zeno adopted the resolution of formally bestowing on Theo- deric Italy, now bowed beneath the sceptre of the king of the Heruli. The Gothic nation, accompanied by their fiimilies, flocks, and herds, joyfully set forth under their prince, of twenty- four years of age, to take possession of the blooming region assigned them. Twice on the borders of Italy were the sub- jects of Odoacer defeated. The Gothic warriors marched through the future Venetian territory. Odoacer fled to Rome, but found its gates closed against him. He shut him- self up in Ravenna, defended by its morasses, works, and 20,000 men. In the third year of the siege, Odoacer was mur- ^ P dered, and the city surrendered. Theoderic forthwith assum- 493. ed the Roman purple. At Rome, where he was received with every demonstration of honor, he sought to restore every thing to its state under the emperors. He governed with j»istice : though an Arian, he persecuted not the orthodox, but testified all becoming respect for their bishops. Though so illiterate as not to write, he encouraged learning : his chancellor was the learn- ed Cassiodorus; the philosophic Boethius was one of his min- isters. Allied to most of the barbaric princes, he was a father and mediator among them. His wife was daughter to Childe- ^ CHAP. I. BARBARIANS IN THE WESTERN EMPIRE. 153 bert, king of the Franks ; his sister was married to Hunneric, king of the Vandals ; his niece, to the king of the Thurin- gians; his daughters to the nionarchs of the Burgundians and West-Goths, Theoderic left no son. When he felt the approach of death, he summoned his nobles and officers, com- mended to them his daughter Amalaswinde, and her son Athalaric, a child of ten years ; advised regard to order, and a. d. to the senate and people of Rome, and the maintenance of ^26. peace with the Eastern empire. The ambition of the mother of Athalaric induced her to associate with her in the regency her cousin Theudat. Her son died of disease, and her ungrateful colleague deprived 534 her of life. Meantime the Vandal kingdom in Africa had fallen beneath the arms of Belisarius, the able general of the emperor Justi- nian, and Gelimir, its last sovereign, had been led in triumph in Constantinople. Orders were now issued to Belisarius to avenge the daughter of Theoderic. Theudat wels dethroned 536. by the Gothic nation, and Vitig seated on the throne of the Amali. Belisarius denied the right of the Goths to elect a king over a country originally Roman. From Sicily, which had already submitted, he passed over to Italy, took Naples, then Rome, which he fortified ; advanced into Tuscany, and defeated the Goths at Perusia. Milan and the neighboring towns rebelled against the Arian Goths; and Vitig called from Burgundy, now under the Franks, 10,000 volunteers 538 against them. The defence of Milan was long and obstinate ; the inhabitants endured the extremities of famine; but at length the Frankish arms were successful, and neither age nor sex was spared in the carnage. Vitig lay fourteen months before Rome, which was relieved by Belisarius; Ravenna was taken, and Vitig led a captive to Constantinople. 539 The Franks fought in Italy with the success which has always attended their arms in that country — victory, then defeat. The Goths were still animated by their usual heroism: two kings were elected and dethroned. In the person of 540 Totila, the third monarch, the fame of Theoderic revived. Victory attended his arms ; he took the towns, and levelled their walls. Belisarius was absent quelling an insurrection in Africa : he returned to see Rome taken before his eyes. Her fortifications were destroyed ; her inhabitants of all ranks driven from their homes, that she might never again be able to resist the Gothic arms. Master of Italy, Totila now emu- lated the mildness of Theoderic ; he recalled her population to Rome, and lived as a father among his people. Court intrigue had recalled Belisarius ; the conduct of the 154 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. Italian war was committed to the valiant eunuch Narses. With the title of proconsul, and with Langobardic auxilia- 1^. D, ries, he entered Italy. The Goths were defeated near Tajina, 552. and Totila slain. The nobles of the nation raised Teias to the throne in Pavia; but Nocera soon beheld his end, and that of the Gothic dominion. A feeble attempt on Italy was made by tlie Allemanni, now subject to the Franks. Under the admmistration of Narses, Italy enjoyed abun- Jance, tranquillity, and happiness. Rome, too, gradually rose again. But Narses fell under the displeasure of the emperor Justin II. He left Rome and retired to Naples, whence he 568. sent letters inviting Alboin (Albwin), king of the Lombards, to the invasion of Italy. The Lombards in Italy, The Longobards or Lombards had occupied the abandonea seats of the East-Goths in Pannonia. Alboin had lately con- quered the Gepidse, a kindred tribe, drunk from the skull of their king Kunimund, and married his daughter, Rosamund, when he received the invitation of Narses, On the 22d April, 568, the whole nation of the Lombards, with 20,000 Saxon confederates, abandoned Pannonia. On a lovely morn- ing of Spring, they with rapture first beheld, from the summit of the Alps, the magnificent region which was to become their own. Their march through the country was orderly and peaceful ; no plunder or devastation took place ; nothing was omitted to conciliate the affections of the inhabitants* Pavia fell before their arms, and became their capital. In a short time no part of Italy remained to the empire but Ra- venna, Rome, and some of the eastern sea-coast. This prov- ince was governed by exarchs or proconsuls. The authority of the emperors gradually diminished in Rome, and was trans- ferred to the popes, of whom the virtues of many rendered them worthy of the authority they enjoyed ; and Rome might justly esteem herself happy, when directed by the meekness, piety, and zeal of her more distinguished pontiffs. The Burgundians. Bordering on the Lombards were the Burgundians, who possessed the ancient country of the Allobroges. On entering this country the Burgundians had required of the former pos- sessors to give up to them two-thirds of the lands, one-half of the woods, houses, and gardens, and one-third of the slaves. Agriculture and pasturage were the occupation of the free Burgundians; the arts were exercised by the servile classes They were one of the first of the barbarian nations to form a CHAP. I. BARBARIANS IN THE WESTERN EMPIRE. 155 code of laws ; and the Burgundian code is distinguished from that of the other nations, by not allowing a composition for blood. When they entered Gaul, they had themselves in- ^Btructed, during seven days, in the principles of Christianity ; •)n the eighth they were baptized. The princes of the Burgundians sought and obtained from the court of Constantinople the Patriciate or government over the original inhabitants : their office and their large posses- sions assured them authority over their own countrymen. A powerful nobility controlled their authority. Gondebald, one of thpir sovereigns, attempted to raise his Roman subjects to an equality with the Burgundians, to diminish their influence; but all ranks of the latter assembled at Geneva, and forced him to abandon his project. To secure the crown to his son Sigmund, his father, Gon- debald, had him, during his own lifetime, elevated, after their a. d ancient manner, on the shields of the Burgundians, and pro- 515 cured for him the patriciate from the emperor. Sigmund was married to the daughter of the great Theoderic, the East- Goth. After her death, he sacrificed her son to the calumnies of his second wife. Theoderic sent troops to avenge his grandson, and he roused the sons of Clovis (Chlodvig) the Frank to gratify the vengeance of Clotilda, their mother, whose father had been put to death by his brother Gondebald, the father of Sigmund. The Franks entered the country : Sigmund fled to a convent he had founded; he was taken and slain. His brother Gondemar and the nation carried on the struggle during ten years. At last Gondemar was over- come, and the race of Clovis ruled over Burgundy. The 534 national independence, the laws, and manners still remained. The Allemanni, Northwards of the Burgundians, the Allemanni had estab- lished themselves along both sides of the Rhine, from its source to its confluence with the Moselle and Maine. They neglected the arts of civil life ; their herds occupied and sus- tained them : they loved the agitation of war, and their rude policy caused them to demolish the walls of conquered towns. Cologne, the territory of tlie Ripuarian Franks, having 496 been invaded by them, Clovis, the Salian, marched to the aid of his allies. He met the Allemanni near Ziilpich. A long and desperate battle ensued ; victory was declaring for the Allemanni, when Clovis, still a heathen, raised his hands to heaven, and invoked the God of the Christians. His Roman soldiers were stimulated to increased exertion; they threw themselves impetuously on the foe. The Allemanni were 156 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. broken, their king was slain, and the people submitted to the rule of the king of the Franks. The Franks. In the third century, the warlike association of the Franks, seated on the marshy confines of the Lower Rhine, began to overrun Gaul. They had been gradually acquiring a firm footing in that country. They were divided into several tribes, governed by different chiefs of the family of Meroveus. Clovis (Chlodvig) son of Chilperic, succeeded, at the age of fifteen, to the command of the Salian tribe. Ambitious of conquest, he led his warriors from his little kingdom of the Batavian island into Gaul. Numerous auxiliaries crowded to a stand- ard which held forth the prospect of conquest and plunder. Clovis, with rigid impartiality, divided the booty of each vic- A. n tory among his followers ; but indiscriminate plunder was se- 486 verely prohibited and punished. Syagrius, who ruled as king over Soissons and the neighboring country, and whose equity and justice had gained him a mild and beneficial influence over the Burgundians and Franks, was the first potentate at- tacked by the Frankish chief A battle decided the fate of Syagrius, who fled to the court of Toulouse, where his life was sacrificed to the menaces of Clovis. The district of Tongres was the next acquisition of Clovis, made in the tenth year of his reign. The battle of Ziilpich, just narrated, gave him the sovereignty over the Allemanni. His queen, Clo- tilda, was a Burgundian princess, and a Christian : her en- treaties, the victory at Ziilpich, or politic views, perhaps a union of all these motives, led Clovis to yield a willing ear to the arguments of the Christian bishops, and he was fol- lowed to the font by 3000 of his warriors. The form of Christianity embraced by Clovis, was the Cath- olic. Nothing could have been more advantageous to him, at least in a temporal point of view. The West-Goth and Burgundian princes were Arians ; and though they treated their Catholic clergy and subjects with the utmost gentleness, the latter could not endure patiently the dominion of here- tics. A large portion of their subjects, therefore, looked up to the orthodox king of the Franks, and were ready to aid his enterprises against their Arian sovereigns. Alaric, king of the West-Goths, was young; his subjects had for many years enjoyed the luxury of peace ; his realms were fair and fruit- ful; he and his Goths were Arian sectaries. In an assembly of liis nobles and warriors at Paris, now the seat of his gov- ernment, Clovis expressed his grief, that the fairest part of Gaul should be in the hands of Arians, and invited his war- CHAP. I. BARBARIANS IN THE WESTERN EMPIRE. 157 riors to join in the conquest and division of it. Such motives were not to be resisted ; a numerous army soon took the field. Alaric roused his Goths to arms: his troops outnumbered the Franks ; but the influence and the arts of the clergy were with Clovis. Miracles, it was even said, came in aid of the righteous cause. The river of Vienne was swollen ; but a white hart appeared to conduct the Catholic army to a ford. A briofht meteor huno- each nio-ht over the cathedral of Poi- tiers; and its flame, like the pillar in the wilderness, served to guide the true believers towards the station of the infi- dels. Ten miles beyond that city the armies encountered. Alaric tell by the hand of his rival, and the rout of the Goths was complete. The whole of Aquitain was conquered and colonized by the Franks, and the Gothic dominions in Gaul reduced to the province of Septimania, a strip extending along the Mediterranean. The emperor of the East conferred on Clovis the dignity of consul and patrician ; titles of no in- trinsic value, but which gave him estimation in the eyes of his Gallic subjects. a. d On the death of Clovis, his extensive dominions were di- 511 vided among his four sons. Thierry (Dietrich) had Austrasia, the eastern portion, embracing a great part of western Ger- many: his capital was Metz. Clodomir resided at Orleans; Childibert, at Paris; Clotaire, at Soissons. These princes reduced Burgundy, in the conquest of which Clodomir fell. The dominions of Clovis had again a single master, in the person of Clotaire, his youngest son by Clotilda. Tiie valor 553 of Thierry, the eldest, had added Thuringia to his domin- ions. The empire wus again divided, and again reunited, in the person of another Clotaire, great-grandson of Clovis. His son, Dagobert I., was an able prince ; but after him the sove- 613. reigns of the Merovingian house became utterly insignificant. Their dominions were divided into two portions, Austrasia and Neustria ; the latter containing the former kingdoms of Paris, Orleans, and Soissons. Burgundy was dependent on Neustria ; but Aquitain was separated from the time of Dago- bert, and governed by dukes descended from his brother Ari- bert. Officers, called Mayors of the Palace, whose original employment had been the presentation of petitions, gradually usurped all power, and eventually the throne. The Anglo-Saxons^ On the decline of the empire, the Roman legions were withdrawn from Britain. The inhabitants, enervated by civili- zation and a long peace, were assailed by the Picts and Scots, and their coasts were infested by the incursions of the tribes 14 158 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. of the north. Vortigern, who at that time enjoyed the su- premacy over the Britons, deemed it the wisest policy to gain the alliance of some of these last, and he engaged Hengist A, D. and Horsa, two Saxon chiefs, who were sailing with three 4-19. ships along the coast, to enter his service. With their aid the Caledonians were reduced to peace. The isle of Thanet was assigned to these useful allies. A large body of Saxons sailed from Germany and joined them in that place. The Saxon chiefs then persuaded the British king to invite over more of tlieir countrymen, and plant them in the north. He assented, and a third fleet sailed from Germany. Peace did not long continue between Vortigern and his allies. Saxons, Jutes, Angles, poured over in vast numbers : adventurers from all parts joined them. A long and bloody contest ended in giving the Saxons possession of all the plain country of Brit- ain : the original natives could only maintain themselves in Cornwall, Wales, and the district along the western coast, in the north : a portion passed over to Armorica, and gave that country its present name — Bretagne. In the conquered dis- tricts, the original natives were reduced to a state of thral- 582. dom, and nearly exterminated. Their conquests were divided by the Saxons into a num- ber of separate and independent kingdoms. The greatest number at any time was eight ; but conquest, inheritance, or other causes, frequently reduced them to seven, six, five, four, three, which were again dissolved, and the number increased. The usual train of murders, usurpations, tyranny, and op- pression that accompanied the various lines of barbarian princes settled in the Roman empire, distinguished the Anglo- Saxon monarchies ; but, with their barbarism and their vices, they retained their freedom, and the germs of those institu- tions of which England is now so justly proud. The West- Goths in Spain. The nature of the country has always favored the defence of Spain. Its conquest engaged the Roman legions during 171 years ; and the same period elapsed from the arrival of 414. the Gothic king Adolph in Catalonia, before the last king of the Suevi in that country was taken, and the whole peninsula submitted to the Gothic rule. The history of the Gothic monarchs in Spain is a tissue of murders, usurpations, and all the evils attending elective monarchy among an uncivilized people. In 117 years, Leu- vigild, the first monarch of all Spain, had seventeen succes- sors. When the monarchs embraced the Catholic faith, the influence of the clergy greatly increased; and though the ar- CHAP. I. BARBARIANS IN THE WESTERN EMPIRE. 159 dent zeal of the prelates, in their numerous councils, incul- cated persecution, many laws beneficial to the people in gen- eral were enacted in them ; and the Visigoth code breathes a more enlightened policy than those of the other states founded on the ruins of Rome. During a great part of this period the coast of Spain was under the dominion of the Byzantine emperors, who encour- aged the disaffection of the orthodox subjects of the Arian Goths. When Recared, one of these monarchs, embraced the Catholic faith, the pretext for refusing allegiance was re- moved, and the Gothic monarchy had only its own internal weakness to dread. The Byzantine Empire. The eastern or Byzantine empire, so called from the an- cient name of its capital, continued to exist to the end of the middle ages ; but greatly declined from the rank of the Roman empire, and now only one among many of equal power and dignity. Through the early part of this period it possessed nearly all that was apportioned to it by Theodosius ; and, in the reign of Justinian, Africa, the greater part of Italy, and the coast of Spain, were annexed to it. Its external enemies were the Persians, the Huns, and other tribes on its northern frontiers ; internally it was agitated by the contention of reli- gious parties, for which a remedy was vainly sought in the assembling of general councils of the prelates to settle by their votes what was incapable of being determined ; and the conduct and character of the majority of those who met in solemn assembly at Ephesus, Chalcedon, and Constantinople, to decide on the nature of the Son of God, showed how small a portion of his spirit was abiding among them. The city of (Constantinople was continually thrown into disorder by the furious contentions and mutual massacres of the blue and green factions of the Hippodrome, and their respective parti- sans and favorites, Arcadius, the son of Theodosius, was a weak, insignificant a. d prince, entirely governed by his empress and his faithless ^^^• minister Rufiinus. His son, Theodosius H., partook of his 408 father's weakness of character; and eunuchs and monks ex- ercised unlimited power over his mind. The powerful Attila threatened the throne of Byzantium, and the feeble successor of Constantino trembled and paid tribute ; but his father had had the good sense and magnanimity to commend his tender youth to the regard and protection of Yezdejird, the able monarch of Persia, the enlightened tolerator of Christianity ; and during his reign the empire was unmolested on that side. 160 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART 11. The hours of Theodosius were devoted to study, to the chase, and to the occupations of his court ; and he has the honor of being the first monarch who caused a collection of the laws of the empire to be made. The repose of his latter days was disturbed by the first council of E-phesus ; wherein the turbu- lent Cyril of Alexandria, by violence and cruelty, settled the disputed question of the nature of the meek and lowly Jesus, in opposition to his rival, the less fortunate, but perhaps more X. D. pious, Nestorius, of Constantinople. 450. Pulcheria, the wise and talented sister of Theodosius, suc- ceeded. Feelings the necessity of masculine energy at the helm of the state, she gave her hand to Marcian, a senator, who had in early life distinguished himself in the Persian and other wars. With true Roman spirit, Marcian refused to continue the tribute of his feeble predecessor to the king of the Huns. Attila stormed and vowed vengeance; but his attention being at that time drawn towards the West, he con- fined himself to threats against the Byzantine monarch, 457. On the death of Marcian the throne was filled by Leo, a prince not unworthy of it; but he stained his fame by his in- gratitude to Aspar, to whom he owed his elevation. His in- fant grandson succeeded, whose father, an Isaurian by birth, but who had taken the Grecian name of Zeno, governed in his stead. The infant emperor dying prematurely, suspicion fell on his father ; and Verina, the widow of Leo, drove him from his throne, which she bestowed on her brothei Basilicus. But this prince, having offended his sister, a conspiracy de- livered him and his family into the power of the relentless 491. Zeno, who recovered his throne. On the death of Zeno, his widow, the virtuous Ariadne, bestowed her hand and the em- pire upon Anastatius, a domestic of the palace, whoso charac- ter is expressed by the popular cry at his accession : " Reign as you have lived !" After a reign of twenty-seven years, Anastatius died, leav- ing no heirs. The eunuch Amantius determined to give the purple to some one in whose obsequiousness he might confide. To assure his measures, he intrusted a large sum of money, to be distributed by way of donative among the guards, to Justin their commander, originally a Dacian peasant. Justin was false to his trust : he gained the suffrages of the soldiers 518. for himself; and the illiterate peasant was seated on the throne of the Caesars, which he occupied not discreditably during a reign of nine years. 627. Justinian succeeded his uncle Justin. The talent of this prince lay in the selection of fit persons to execute his plans of war and legislation ; for he never himself appeared in the CHAP I. BARBARIANS IN THE WESTERN EMPIRE. 161 field, and his mind was narrow and confined. Yet Justinian has the fame of forming a regular and copious body of juris- prudence, embracing, digesting, and simplifying the mass of judicial wisdom, which had accumulated under the kings, consuls, and emperors. This important work was executed by the ablest lawyers of the age, under the superintendence of the great Tribonian. The emperor discerned also in the camp the merit of Belisarius, a general worthy to stand in competition with those of any age. The Roman arms, under the conduct of Belisarius, checked the pride of Persia; over- turned the Vandalic kingdom in Africa, and reduced that country to a province of the empire ; conquered the East- Goths of Italy, and led their king a captive to Constantino- ple. But the great military and private virtues of Belisarius were shaded by too slavish a submission to the arbitrary will of an ungrateful court, and too great blindness to the vices of his wife, the wanton and vindictive Antonina. The emneror liimself was the slave of his passion for the empress Theo- dora ; who, from the condition of the vilest of prostitutes and most shameless of pantomimists, had been elevated to a share of the imperial throne. Justinian had a thirst for fame ; he adorned the capital with stately buildings. The church of ►St. Sophia, now a mosch, remains a monument of his taste. One of his nephews, Justin II., was the successor of Jus- a.d. tinian. In his reign Narses, the valiant eunuch, offended, as ^^^• is said, by an expression of the empress Sophia, invited the Lombards into Italy ; and that country was lost to the empire. Disease afflicted Justin : he was unable to leave his palace and attend to the affairs of his people ; his mind was over- whelmed with the magnitude and responsibility of his office ; he resolved to appoint a successor, and abdicate. The em- press recommended Tiberius, the captain of his guard. Justin transferred to him his diadem, in the presence of the patriarch and the senate ; and during the four years he survived, he ex- perienced every attention from the worthy object of his gen- erosity. Tiberius governed with every kingly virtue. Success 578. crowned the arms of his generals in the Persian war ; but a fatal disease seized on the excellent monarch, and, in four years after the death of Justin, carried him off, amidst the tears of his people. He gave his daughter and his diadem to Maurice, a prince worthy to occupy his throne. But in a 582. war against the Avars, a tribe of Turkish race, Maurice re- fused to redeem the prisoners who had fallen into their hands. The army mutinied, and in'/ested Phocas, a centurion, with 14 + 162 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. the purple ; and by his order Maurice and his children were ^ j^ murdered. 602. The vices and tyranny of Phocas disgraced the throne which had been adorned by the virtues of his predecessors. Every province was ripe for insurrection. Heraclius, the exarch of Africa, refused tribute and obedience to the tyrannic centurion. Crispus, the son-in-law of Phocas, who trembled for his life, joined the senate in callinsc upon Heraclius to save the empire. The task was committed by Heraclius to his son of the same name. An African fleet appeared before Constantinople : the tyrant was deserted, takeii, and put to- death. 510. The reign of Heraclius was a series of struggles against foreign enemies. Chosroes (Khosroo), the Persian monarch, under pretext of avenging the death of Maurice, had made war on Phocas, The first intelligence Heraclius received was that of the capture of Antioch. Jerusalem was next taken by the victorious Persians ; they poured into Egypt, and the Persian standard was carried as far as Tripoli. An^ other Persian army lay during ten years encamped on the Bosphorus, in view of Constantinople. The Avars occupied Thrace, and pressed the capital ; and Heraclius narrowly es- caped becoming the victim of their perfidy. A peace was at length granted by the Persian king, on the condition of a most enormous tribute. During the time allotted for the col- lection of it, Heraclius prepared for a desperate struggle : he put forth the soul and energy of a hero, and in six glorious campaigns retrieved the honor of the empire ; Assyria, and the regions beyond the Tigris, then beheld, for the first time, the victorious standards of Rome. Meanwhile the heroism of the emperor was caught by his people, and the Avars and their allies were driven with loss from before Constantinople. But while Heraclius and Chosroes were thus mutually ex- hausting their strength, a new enemy, who meditated the overthrow of both, was looking on with secret satisfaction ; and in the heart of Arabia a storm was preparing to burst over both their empires. Persia. We have seen that the Parthians had recovered the greater part of the original dominions of the Persian kings from the descendants of Seleucus, and had long proved the most for- midable enemies of them and of the Romans. Their empire had gradually declined ; and Ardeshir, or Artaxerxes, a Per- sian, and an officer of reputation in the army of Artaban, the Parthian king, and who was, or gave himself out to be, a CHAP. I. BARBARIANS IN THE WESTERN EMPIRE. 163 lineal descendant of the ancient Persian monarchs, throngh his valor and conduct succeeded in wresting- the sceptre from a. ,>. the feeble grasp of the Arsacides, and the empire again be- 226. came Persian. The restoration of every thing to its original state in the glorious days of the ancient monarchs, was the first object of Ardeshir. The Mobeds or priests of the national religion were summoned from their retirement to consult on the re- establishment of the worship of Ormuzd in its original parity ; for though the ancient religion had not undergone any perse- cution from the Arsacides, it had not been held in honor, and its ministers bad languished in obscurity. But now, under a prince who regarded himself as the son of the Kaianides, the religious system, which had animated the soul and nerved the arm of that illustrious house, was again to flourish ; the disciple of Zerdusht (Zoroaster) again to combat beneath the banner of Ormuzd, against x^hriman and the powers of dark- ness ; and the sacred fire to flame once more on a thousand altars. By the side of religion stood military renown. Ardeshir put forth a claim to all the countries once contained in the Persian empire, and carried on heavy wars with the Romans for Anterior Asia, where, in Armenia, they still maintained on a throne the remnant of the Parthian royal family. Shah- poor (Sapores,) the son of Ardeshir, continued the wars of his father, and extended his empire towards the west. The Ro- man emperor Valerian ended his days a captive in the hands of this monarch. Galerius, whom Diocletian raised to the dignity of Caesar, forced the Persian king, Narses, to a peace, which lasted forty years, and gave Osrhoene and Nisibis to the empire. The Persian Yezdejird was the friend of the emperor Ar- cadius, and was suspected of Christianity by his orthodox sub- jects. Bahram, the succeeding king, was one of the best and greatest of the Sassanides. Feroze made war on the Neph- thalites, or White Huns, whose king had been his friend and protector, and lost his life in battle against them. His son, 488 Cobad, waged war with the emperor Anastatius. His more illustrious son and successor, known in the West as Chosroes, in the East as Noosheerwan the Just, continued the wars of his father through the reign of Justinian; but in Belisarius he met an opponent such as the empire had never yet opposed to the generals of the Persian kings. The struggle was maintained throughout the life of Noosheerwan with mutual loss, and the final gain of neither. Hormuz, his son, in despite 579 of the careful education bestowed by his father, became a A. D. 164 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. TART 11 tyrant : the provinces rose in rebellion ; the Roman arms ad vanced on one side, the Turkish Khan on another. A her(«, 590, Bahram, saved his country, and usurped the throne. Hormuz died in prison ; his son, Khosroo, fled to the protection of Maurice ; the Roman arms and his faithful subjects restored him to the throne of his fathers : Bahram fled to the Turks, and there died by poison. Khosroo, as v^e have just seen, took arms to avenge the murder of his protector Maurice, and 628. carried on a long- and bloody war w^ith Heraclius. Defeated by the Romans, he was murdered by his son Siroes. The parricide enjoyed the fruit of his crimes but eight months. Twelve years longer the empire was agitated by anarchy and bloodshed, till the victorious arms of the Arabian khalifs ended the dominion of the house of Sassan in the person of Yezde- jird III. CHAP. II. THE TIMES OF MOHAMMED AND THE FIRST KHALIFS. Mohammed. While Chosroes of Persia was pursuing his dreams of re- covering and enlarging the empire of Cyrus, and Heraclius was gallantly defending the empire of the Caesars against him ; while idolatry and metaphysics were diffusing their baleful influence through the church of Christ, and the sim- plicity and purity of the Gospel were nearly lost beneath the mythology, which occupied the place of that of ancient Greece and Rome, the seeds of a new empire, and of a new religion, were sown in the inaccessible deserts of Arabia. 5Gy. At the time when the sceptre of Constantinople was swayed by the pious nephew of Justinian, and that of Persia by the vigorous hand of Noosheerwan tlie Just, was born in the city of Mecca, in Arabia, JNIohammed, the son of Abdallah, and grandson of Abd-ul-Motallib, one of the richest and most gen- erous chiefs of the Koreish. Mohammed was early left an orphan ; his uncles were numerous and powerful, and, in the division of his grandfather's property, his share was but five camels and a female slave. His uncle Aboo Taleeb reared him: at the age of twenty-five he entered the service of Kha- dijah, a rich widow of Mecca ; and with her merchandise ac- companied tlie caravans to Damascus. The honor and fidelity of the factor to his mistress was exemplary; the person of Mohammed was handsome and dignified, his aspect majestic, CHAP. II. MOHAMMED AND THE FIRST KHALIFS. 165 his eye penetrating, his smile irresistible, his voice harmoni- ous, and eloquence flowed from his tongue. Khadijah admired and loved ; the generosity of Aboo Taleeb made up the defi- ciency of his nephew's fortune : she gave him her hand and her wealth, and thus raised him to his proper rank in society. The gratitude and affection of tlie son of Abdallah caused the noble matron never to regret her act. Mohammed was of a serious contemplative mind. He had long been convinced of the great truth of the unity of the Deity, and he mourned over the idolatry of his countrymen. In the solitude of a cavern near Mecca, whither he used to retire for meditation, he reflected on the best mode of bring- ing them to an acknowledgment of the truth. Arabian tra- dition spake of ancient prophets sent to reclaim men from error; Moses and Jesus were, he knew, commissioned from heaven to teach ; he may have expected a similar commission ; his enthusiasm may have beguiled his imagination, and in ecstatic vision the angel Gabriel possibly may have appeared to descend to him : but it is far more probable that he con- ceived that the end justified the means ; that the arguments of reason, which he had, perhaps, already tried, would have no effect on the obtuse minds of the adorers of Ji60 idols ; that only as the envoy of heaven could he look for attention, and that his first vision of Gabriel was as fictitious as his latter ones notoriously were. a. d. In the 40th year of his age, Mohammed announced to his 609. v/ife Khadijah, his slave Zeid, his pupil Ali, and his friend Aboo Beker, a direct commission from God to preach the doctrine of his Unity. They may have believed, they may have seen the distant prospects of temporal power and glory that awaited them ; they acknowledged the prophet. During the next three years, ten of the principal citizens of Mecca embraced the new faith. In the fourth year, he offered the blessing to Iiis own kindred, the race of Hashem ; and was warned in vain by Aboo Taleeb, the father of Ali, to abandon liis impracticable project. Ten years longer he preached j)ublicly and privately in Mecca to the inhabitants and as- sembled pilgrims, warning them to embrace the truth, and to remember the fate of the tribes of Ad and Thamood, whose impenitence had brought down the vengeance of offended Ijeaven, Persecution was at length employed against him and his disciples. As long as Aboo Taleeb lived, he protected his nephew, though he rejected his prophetic claims; but he died : the faithful Khadijah soon followed him ; Aboo Sofian, a declared enemy, succeeded to the place and power of Aboo 166 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. Taleeb ; and the death of Mohammed was resolved on. Timely information enabled him and his friend Aboo Beker to ifly to the concealment of a cavern; where, durincr three days, they escaped the perquisitions of their enemies. They then mount- ed their camels and fled towards Yatreb : on the road they A. D. were overtaken ; but by prayers and promises they escaped. 622. This memorable event, denominated the Hejira, or Flight, gave name and origin to the era by which years are counted in all countries professing the tenets of Islam. At Yatreb, henceforth called Medinat-en-Nabi {the City of the Prophet), he was received with every testimonial of respect. Its principal citizens had already formed with him at Mecca a treaty of conversion and alliance; and the people had ratified the compact, and now submitted to his rule as prophet and king. War ensued between his new subjects and his foes at Mecca: the white banner of the prophet was soon seen to float before the gates of Medina ; and his sacred person was not unsparingly exposed in the tumult of the conflict. Mohammed may have been originally only an enthusiast, and have dreamed of no other weapons for the diffusion of his faitli than those of eloquence and persuasion. At the head of an army he became a fanatic. The sublime doctrine of the Unity might, he saw, be made the foundation of temporal . dominion. The Koran — the book of his law — now breathes a fiercer tone, and the sword is to be called to the aid of the truth. Henceforth we are to contemplate the prophet as a 623. prince and conqueror at the head of armies. The battle of Beder was the commencement of his career of victory. Aboo Sofian was, with only thirty or forty followers, conducting a caravan of 1000 camels : a party of the troops of the prophet, in number 313, lay in wait for it ; the Koreish, to the amount of 100 horse and 850 foot, advanced to its protection. The prophet and his troops lay between the caravan and the troops of Mecca : he determined to assail the latter; exhorted his men, ascended a pulpit, and called on God for the aid of Gabriel and 3000 angels. His troops were yielding; the prophet mounted his horse, cast a handful of sand into the air, crying, " Let their faces be covered with confusion." The Koreish were panic-struck, and fled ; 70 were slain, an equal number taken prisoners. A second battle was fought at Mount Ohud, near Mecca. The Koreish were 3000 strong, the followers of the prophet numbered but 950; and, notwith- standing his military skill and valor, he was forced to abandon the field, and the bodies of 70 of the saints. Next year 10,000 f.25 nien sat down, in vain, before the walls of Medina; tempests .^^i))vsaaM CHAP. tl. MOHAMxMED AND THE FIRST KHALIFS. 169 and dissension forced them to retire without fame, and the Korcish lost their hopes of overcoming the exile. The Jews formed several tribes in Arabia. Mohammed at first sought to gain them to his faith ; but, finding them in- flexible, he unsheathed the sword against them. Everywhere their resistance was overcome, and their treasures divided among the victorious Mussulmans. The conquest of Mecca was the object next the prophet's heart : he advanced against it ; but awed by the martial appearance of the Koreish, he negotiated and concluded a truce for ten years, stipulating a permission to enter the city the following year to perform his devotions. In the pilgrimage made in consequence by him and his followers, Khaled and Amroo, the bravest war- riors of the Koreish, embraced the faith of Islam. The Kore- ish were soon accused of breach of truce ; 10,000 Moslems marched against the holy city ; resistance was not to be at- tempted ; and Aboo Sofian in person presented the keys to ^. ^ Mohammed, and confessed him to be the prophet of the one 629 true God. The last great effort in the sinking cause of the idols was made in the valley of Honain, in the war called that of the Idols. A confederacy was formed, at the head of which stood the people of Tayef, a strong fortress, sixty miles south- east of Mecca : 4000 of the confederates occupied the valley of Honain ; 12,000 Moslems advanced with rash confidence, and were speedily thrown into confusion : the prophet was surrounded, and only saved by the devotedness of ten of his disciples; his own voice, and that of his uncle Abbas, re- stored the battle. The idolaters were finally routed ; Tayef taken, and their temples destroyed. The whole of Arabia now acknowledged that " there was but one God, and that Mohammed was his prophet ;" and a train of 114,000 True Believers attended his last pilgrimage to the Caabah. When the Moslem ambassador waited on Heraclius to invite him to the profession of Islam, a degree of amity en- sued between the emperor and the prophet. The murder of a Moslem envoy in the empire gave the Arabs the wished-for pretext for invading the country east of the Jordan. The command of 3000 men was intrusted to Zeid, and in case of his death to Jaaffer, and then to Abdallah. In the battle of Muta the three leaders fell gallantly fighting. Khaled re- stored the battle, and repulsed the Christians. At the head of 10,000 liorse, and 20,000 foot, the prophet advanced towards Syria, in the hottest season of the year. Their suf- ferings were intolerable ; and when they reached the fountain of Tabook, midway between Mecca and Damascus, he de- 15 170 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II clared liimself satisfied of the peaceful intentions of the em- peror; perhaps he dreaded the number and valor of the ^ jj^ Roman troops. 630. In the 63d year of his age, Mohammed, after beholding his religion spread over the Arabian peninsula, felt the approach of death : he comforted and instructed his friends and tlie people, manumitted his slaves, gave orders about his funeral, appointed Aboo Beker to pronounce public prayer in his place, and then calmly expired. The disconsolate Moslems would not believe him dead till their clamor was silenced by the 632. scimitar of Omar and the arguments of Aboo Beker. The First Khalifs. On the death of the prophet, it might have been expected that Ali, his cousin and earliest disciple, and who was mar- ried to his daughter Fatema, would have been appointed Khalif, i. e. successor ; but Ayesha, the favorite wife of Mo- hammed, was his mortal enemy. Discord was on the point 632. of breaking out, when Omar proposed the election of the venerable Aboo Beker: he was accepted, and during two years governed with justice and impartiality. In his reign, the indefatigable Khaled continued his conquests in Syria, and from the Euphrates to the Mediterranean the khalif was obeyed. 634. The sceptre was bequeathed by the khalif to Omar, one of the oldest of the companions of the prophet. In the twelfth year of his reign, Omar perished hy the dagger of an assas- sin. Ali still forbore putting forward his claims; and six electors, of whom he himself was one, chose Otliraan, the 644. secretary of the prophet. Othman was unequal to his high situation : old age had enfeebled his mental powers. The subjects became discon- tented, A large anny assembled before Medina; the khalif was forced to surrender, and he fell with the Koran in his lap. The brother of Ayesha headed the assassins. The public 655. choice now fell on Ali. Ali in old age displayed all the daring courage of his youth. Two powerful chiefs, Telha and Zobeir, erected the standard of revolt in Irak : they were joined by Ali's implacable enemy, Ayesha, and, mounted on her camel, she appeared in the thickest of the battle, encouraging the rebels, but in vain ; they were slain, and she was taken. The khalif reproached her, and then dismissed her to pass the remainder of her days at the tomb of the prophet. A more formidable enemy now appeared in Moawiyah, son of Aboo Sofian, and governor of Syria, who assumed the title of khalif, and gave himself out CHAP. il. .JOIIAMMED AND THE FIRST KHALIFS. 171 as the avenger of Othman, whose bloody shirt he exposed in the mosch of Damascus. The cause of Moawiyah was em- braced by Amroo, the conqueror of Egypt. Ali took the field with an inferior force, and during 110 days a war was waged on the plain of Siffin, on the western bank of the Euphrates, to the advantage of Ali, till the superstition and disobedience of his troops forced him to yield to a treaty. Ali did not long survive. Three fanatics met in the temple of Mecca, and agreed to murder Ali, Moawiyah, and Amroo, as the only means of restoring peace to the church and state. Each chose his victim : he alone succeeded who selected Ali, who fell by his dagger in the mosch of Cufa, in the 63d year of his age. IVIoawiyah was now acknowledged khalif, and the seat of em- a. d pire transferred to Damascus. 660. The virtues of the first four khalifs are acknowledged ; but, by a large portion of the Mohammedan church, the first three are looked on and cursed as usurpers. Those that hold this opinion are denominated Sheeahs, and it is an article of their faith, that Ali is the vicar of God. This is the estab- lished religion of Persia. The Soonees, or orthodox, to whom the Turks belong, resrard all the four as rio-htful successors of the prophet, but they assign the lowest degree of sanctity to Ali. It is almost needless to add, that the Imtred of the rival sects is most cordial and intense. Conquest of Syria. During the reign of the first four khalifs, Syria, Persia, and Egypt were conquered by their lieutenants, and the law of the Prophet embraced, or tribute yielded, by the inhabit- ants. On the accession of Aboo Beker, he dispatched an army, 632 under the command of Aboo Obeidah, for the conquest of Syria. The first object of their attack was the fortress of Bozra, eastward of the Jordan. The false confidence of the people, and the treachery of the governor, delivered it into the hands of the Moslems. Damascus was distant but four days' journey ; its siege was undertaken ; but intelligence of the approach of a large army to its relief, induced the Mo- hammedan chiefs to suspend their operations till they had encountered the imperial forces. All the forces scattered on the borders of Syria and Palestine were summoned to the standard of the faith. On the plains of Aiznadin, the troops of the klialif, 45,000 633, in number, and guided by Khaled, Amroo, and their most dis- tinguished leaders, encountered the Christian host of 70,000 men. Liberal offers of peace were made by the Greeks, and 172 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. disdained by the Arabs. The conflict began ; it continued throughout the day with doubtful success; in the evening, Khaled made a furious onset, and victory declared for the Moslem arms : the field was covered with the bodies of the Christians, and inestimable booty rewarded the victors. Da- mascus was again invested. Animated by their brave gov- ernor, Thomas, a nobleman allied to the emperor, the garrison and citizens offered a gallant resistance ; till after experienc- ing the inutility of all the efforts of valor, they capitulated to the mild and upright Aboo Obeidah, on condition of those who chose being permitted to depart with as much as they could A. D. carry of their effects, and those who stayed being allowed to 634. retain their lands, houses, and seven churches tributary to the khalifs. A large number departed. Urged by the im- portunity of a Syrian renegade, whose mistress was among the fugitives, Khaled pursued them with 4000 horse. The ill-fated Damascenes were overtaken ; not a soul, save one, escaped the Arabian scimitar; but the traitor to his country and his faith perished by the dagger of his indignant mistress at the moment he attempted to embrace her. 635. The following year saw Heliopolis, or Baalbek, the capital of the rich valley of Hollow Syria, and Hems, or Emcssa, the chief city of the plain, in the hands of the khalifs lieuten- ants. 636. The banks of the Yermuk, a stream that flows from Mount Hermon into the lake of Tiberias, was the scene of the last great battle for the possession of Syria. Eighty thousand of the imperial troops stood with 60,000 Christian Arabs of the tribe of Gassan against the Moslems. It was the most doubt- ful day the faithful had yet seen ; but the Sword of God (so Khaled was styled) was victorious. Countless was the loss of the Christians ; 4030 Moslems lay on the plain. Afler a month spent at Damascus, to recruit their vigor and divide the spoil, the impatient host marclied to invest the sacred walls of Jerusalem. The siege lasted four months; a surrender was then offered to the khalif in person. The sanctity of the place moved Omar, and he undertook the jour- ney from Medina through the waste. The holy city received the khalif, and on the site of the temple he laid the founda- 637. tion of the mosch named from himself. 638. Aleppo and Antioch, the only remaining places of strength, submitted to the victorious arms of the Arabs, and all Syria obeyed the successor of the prophet. Heraclius abandoned that portion of his dominions in despair, and the ravages of the Moslems extended to within view of Constantinople. CHAP. II. MOHAMMED AND THE FIRST KIIALIFS. 173 Conquest of Persia. In the first year of Aboo Beker, Khaled appeared on the 632.* banks of the Euphrates. In the same year with the conquest of Syria, 30,000 Moslems engaged the numerous host of Yez- 638. dejird IJI., the youthful grandson of Khosroo, on the plains of Cadesia, on the edge of the desert, 61 leagues from the future Bagdad. The troops of Persia were commanded by Roostem, a namesake of the national hero ; the Direfsh-e- Kawanee, or Apron of Kawah, the banner of the empire, blazed in their front. On the fourth day of the battle, the flying Roostem was overtaken and slain, and the jewel-set Direfsh-e-Kawanee was captured. All Irak, the ancient As- syria, submitted, and the city of Bassora was founded, to com- mand the trade of Persia. In the third month after the battle, the Tigris was passed ; Madain or Ctesiphon, the capital of the empire, was taken by assault, and immense plunder enriched the faithful. Yez- dejird had fled to Holwan, at the foot of the hills of Media. The loss of the fortress of Jaloola made him fly to the moun- tains of Farsistan, the country of Cyrus. At Nahavend, to the south of Hamadan, 150,000 Persians made a final effort for their country and their religion. The appellation, Victory of victories^ bestowed on this battle by the Arabs, proves the fatal result. All the cities and towns of Persia submitted to the conquerors. Their banners approached the Caspian and the Oxus. Yezdejird had fled to Chorasan, and taken refuge in Merv. The governor of that city invited the khakan of the Turks to take possession of his person. The Turks en- tered, and made themselves masters of Merv. Yezdejird es- caped during the confusion, and sought shelter with a miller, who murdered him while he slept, for the sake of his rich 651. arms and robes. Conquest of Egypt. The year in which the conquest of Syria was completed 638 Vhat of Egypt commenced. Amroo marched from Gaza with 4000 Arabs. After a siege of thirty days, Pelusium surren- dered. Memphis held out seven months against the Saracen army, now double its original number. It was taken by as- sault. The city of Cairo rose on the spot where the Arabs had encamped. Religious enmity facilitated the conquest of the country. The Egyptians hated the creed and the government of the emperors. A treaty was entered into between Amroo and Alokawkas, a noble Egyptian. It was agreed that, for a mod- 15 * 174 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. erate tribute, the Christian inhabitants should be left in the full enjoyment of their religion and their property. The whole nation fell off from the Greeks, and every assistance was rendered to the Arabs. The city of Alexandria remained to be conquered; an achievement, perhaps, surpassing- in difficulty any the Arabs had yet attempted. Its inhabitants were numerous and resolute, its supplies abundant, the sea was open, affording a facility of relief. The Saracens strained every nerve ; the tribes of the desert crowded to the standard A. D. of Amroo ; the Egyptians labored strenuously, and, at the 639. end of fourteen months and the loss of 23,000 men, the Mos- lems saw themselves masters of the capital of Egypt. The khalif rigidly forbade pillage ; a tribute was imposed on the inhabitants. The truth of the destruction of the library of the Ptolemies has been questioned. The loss of Alexandria hastened the death of Heraclius. In the space of four years two fruitless attempts were made to recover it. Invasion of Africa. 647. Under the reign of Othman the conquest of Africa was attempted by the Moslem arms, led by Abdallah, the foster- brother of the khalif At the head of 40,000 men, he ad- vanced from Egypt into the west. Afler a toilsome march they appeared before the walls of Tripoli; but the approach of the prefect Gregory, with a numerous army, called the Saracens from the siege to the field. For several days the two armies encountered from morning till noon. The daugh- ter of Gregory fought by his side, and her hand and 100,000 pieces of gold were offered to the warrior who should bring the head of the Arab general. Zobeir, who afterwards fell in rebellion against the khalif Ali, joined his brethren : his stratagem defeated the army of Gregory, who fell by his hand. The town of Sufatula, 150 miles south of Carthage, was taken. The country on all sides implored the clemency of the conqueror ; but his losses and the appearance of an epidemic disease prevented a settlement being formed, and after a campaign of fifteen months, the Saracen army re-en- tered Egypt with their captives and their booty. From the battle of Beder till the death of Ali, a period elapsed of 37 years, during which the arms of the Arabs had penetrated from the heart of Arabia to the banks of the Oxus and Indus, and the shores of the Euxine and Caspian. The Nile rolled within their dominions ; Africa, Cyprus, and Rhodes, had been visited and plundered by their victorious warriors. CHAP. II. MOHAMMED AND THE FIRST KHALIFS. 175 The Ommiyades, When Ali was murdered, his rights passed to his son Has- san, who was induced by Moawiyah to abandon his claim and retire to Medina. The khalifat was now established in the house of Ommiyah, in which it continued during seventy years through fourteen khalifs, and extended its sway from the Pyrenees and the Atlantic to the borders of Turkestan and India, the largest empire and most powerful monarchs of the globe. This dynasty derived its appellation from Ommi- yah, one of the chiefs of the Koreish : Aboo Sofian, his de- scendant, long resisted the prophet ; his son, Moawiyah, be- came his secretary, and Omar made him governor of Syria. The first Ommiyah Khalif was a man of courage, though he declined the proposal of the chivalrous Ali, who offered to decide their dispute by single combat : his son Yezid, and his successors, were princes of little merit, and never partook ill the toils and glories of war. Conquest of Africa. Oppressed by the exactions of the court of Byzantium, the people of Africa invoked the aid of the Arabs. The lieuten- ant of Moawiyah entered Africa, defeated an imperial army of 30,000 men, and returned laden with booty. Akbeh, a valiant warrior, marched from Damascus with 10,000 Arabs ; his army was joined by numerous African auxiliarits; victory led him to the shores of the Atlantic, and he founded the city of Cairoan, fifty miles south of Tunis, to secure his con- quests. Bat Akbeh fell in battle against the revolted Greeks and Africans. His successor, Zuheir, shared his fate. The final conquest was reserved for Hassan, governor of Egypt, who took and destroyed Carthage, and subdued the Berbers a. d. of the desert. Musa, his successor, broke their power ef- 701) fectually when they rose in rebellion. Conquest of Spain. The Gothic monarchy in Spain was now utterly enfeebled. Having no foreign foes, military discipline had been neglect- ed, and luxury had quite altered the descendants of Theo- deric. Roderic, a nobleman, had, on the death of Witiza, ascended his throne, to the exclusion of the two sons of that monarch: their uncle, Oppas, was archbishop of Toledo; Count Julian, a partisan, was governor of Ceuta and Andalu- sia; the malcontents were numerous. It is added, that Rod- eric ha,d given farther offence by violating Cava, the daughtei- of Julian. 176 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. Julian had repulsed Musa from the walls of Ceuta, but soon after he entered into correspondence with the Arab A. D. chief, and offered to give him entrance into Spain. The per- ''l^- mission of the khalif, Walid, was obtained. A small body of troops, commanded by Tarif, passed over and advanced to the castle of Julian, at Algeziras, where they were hospita- ■/U- bly entertained and joined by the Christians. The following spring 5000 Moslems, under the command of Tarik, passed over and landed at Gibraltar, named from their chief They defeated the Gothic commander sent against them. Roderic collected an army of near 100,000 men ; the Saracens were augmented to 12,000, besides their Spanish and African aux- iliaries. On the banks of the Guadaleta, near the town of Xeres, the battle was fought which decided the fate of the Gothic monarchy. Three days were occupied in bloody but undecisive skirmishing, the fourth was the day of general conflict. The Saracens were yielding to multitudes ; Tarik still animated his men, when Oppas and the sons of Witiza, who occupied the most important post in the army of the Goths, passed over to the enemy, and turned the fortune of the field. The flight and pursuit lasted three days, Roderic fled on the back of his swiftest horse, but escaped the battle only to be drowned in the waters of the Guadalquivir. The whole country submitted without resistance to the victorious Tarik. Toledo, the Gothic capital, opened her gates, stipulating only for freedom of religion and internal government. Within almost as short a time as a traveller could traverse Spain, the general of Musa beheld the bay of Biscay. Envious of the fame of Tarik, Musa hastened his passage to Spain at the head of 18,000 men : the cities of Seville and Merida resisted ; and the defence of the latter was obstinate, and only subdued by famine. The Tarrago- nese province was speedily overrun by Tarik, and the Goths were pursued into their Gallic province of Septimania. A valiant remnant of the Goths maintained their independence U4. in the rugged mountains of Asturia. All the rest of Spain obeyed the successors of the prophet. At the same time that the khalif Walid received intelli- gence of the conquest of Spain, messengers from the East arrived to announce the first successes of the Mussulman arms in India. Invasion of France by the Arabs. 668. The Arabs of the East had twice besieged Constantinople : . the son of Pepin. A grateful pope (Leo) crowned the French 60O monarch emperor of the West. Rome did homage to his power : the duke of Benevento, whose duchy embraced the modern kingdom of Naples, acknowledged himself his vassal; the Venetians, who, since the days of Attila, had dwelt in their isles and lagunes, revered his authority. The Lombards retained their laws and usages; each person and each district of Italy was governed by local or adopted laws. The great cities were governed by dukes, aided by a council of bishops, abbots, counts, knights, and gentlemen. The pope exercised at Rome the power possessed by the dukes in the other cities. He was chosen by the clergy and people, and the choice confirmed by the emperor. Empire of Charlemagne. On the death of Charles Martel the kingdom of the Franks was thrown into some confusion. The German provinces armed in favor of his son Grypho, against his brothers Carlo- man and Pepin. The latter were victorious in the contest, and an end was put to the duchy of Allemannia. Chilperic occupied the seat of Clovis ; the power of the monarchy was wielded by Pepin. Pope Zachary pronounced that it was lawful for the title to follow the power; and at Soissons, where, 266 years before, the empire of the Franks had been founded by Clovis, his last descendant was formally deposed in an assembly of the nation, and sent to end his days in a 752. convent, and Pepin crowned in his place. The new monarch rpiickly destroyed his brother Carloman, and humbled the great. His chief exploits were against the Lombards in de- 768. fence of the popes. At his death he divided his dominions be- tween his sons Charles and Carloman. The latter lived but three years, and suspicion of having hastened his end fell upon his brother. 771 Charles, afterwards called Charlemagne, or Charles the Great, early in his reign overturned the kingdom of the Lom- bards. During- thirty years he carried on an obstinate war against the Saxons, on whom he sought to impose his yoke and Christianity. Pleaded by Wittikind, a second Arminius, the gallant nation resisted with vigor and perseverance. Gott- fried, king of Denmark, aided and gave refuge to them ; but the Obotrites of Mecklenburg joined the Franks, and Witti- kind and his people were at last forced to receive the religion and the law of Charlemagne. Several abandoned their coun- try and took refuge in Denmark, whence their descendants united with the Northmen issued, and avenged the blood of 16 182 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART li their fathers on the descendants of their oppressors. In Spain, Charles appeared as the ally of the emir of Zaragoza, and es- tablished the Spanish March, extending from the Ebro to the Pyrenees. Barcelona was the residence of the French gov- ernor. In Germany, he extended the French dominion to the Elbe, and added the kingdom of Bohemia to the Germanic body. A conflict of eight years against the Avars of Pan- nonia gave him the possession of that country. His empire thus extended from the Ebro to the Elbe, from the ocean to the Vistula, and the Teyss and Save. The duke of Bene- vento acknowledged his supremacy ; the king of England was his friend ; the Christian princes of Spain regarded him as a patron. Haroon-er-Rasheed honored him by gifts as an equal. Master of two-thirds of the Western Roman empire, he was crowned emperor of tbe Romans by Leo, on the fes- tival of Christmas, A. D. 800, in the sacred temple of St. Peter. His dynasty, called the Carlovingian, from Charles Martel, formed the second in France. After a long and vic- ^. D. torious reign he left his empire, which he had widely ex- 814. tended, and to w^hich he had given a code of laws, to his son Louis the Debonair. Feudal System. As France was the chief seat of this celebrated system, the present period seems not unsuitable for givmg a slight view of it. The Franks, like the Burgundians, Lombards, and others of the barbarous nations, carried their original Germanic ideas with them into the countries they conquered. The land was divided into a number of districts, over each of which was a count to administer justice and collect the revenue in peace, to lead the military contingent in war. Several of these counties were under a duke. These offices were ori- ginally precarious, but gradually became hereditary in fami- lies, and the foundation of power and independence. At the conauest, the lands which had been seized were distributed into portions, according to the rank of the occu- pant. That of the king was considerable, and those of the principal officers proportionably large. These lands were allodial, held in propriety on the sole condition of serving in the defence of the country. The owner of three mansi* was obliged to serve in person ; where there were three possessors of single mansi, one served, the others contributed to equip * A mansus contained twelve jugera of lanl. Ducavge. CHAP. III. CHARLEMAGNE AND HAROON-ER RASHEED. 183 him. All served at their own expense, and the period of ser- vice was limited. Of the Romans, or original inhabitants, some retained their lands in propriety ; others farmed those of the Franks. They were governed by their own laws. But tlie Franks stood higher in the eye of the law, and the Weregild, or composi- tion for homicide, was always much greater in the case of a Frank than of a Roman. The demesne lands of the crown were very extensive. They were the private estate of the sovereign, whence he was to support his dignity. Portions of these lands were frequently granted by the kings to favorites, under the name of benefices, under the usual condition of military service, which service appears to have differed from that of the allo- dial proprietors in this, that that of the latter was rather na- tinnal, that of the former rather due to the monarch person- ally. These benefices were granted for life, and then re- turned to the crown ; but the son of the beneficiary was gen- erally continued in his benefice, and under the feeble Mero- vingians the benefices mostly became hereditary. The hold- ers of hereditary benefices now began to bestow portions of their benefices on others to hold of themselves, under a simi- lar tenure of military service. This practice, called sub-in- fcudation, spread greatly after the death of Charlemagne, and we have here the germ of the whole feudal system, with its burdens and obligations. The dukes, counts, and marquisses, or margraves, who guarded the marches or frontiers, gradually encroached on the royal dignity. They made their dignities hereditary; they sought to appropriate to themselves the crown lands within their jurisdiction ; they oppressed the free proprietors. These last were hitherto the strength of the state, and shared in the legislature, owing no duty but military service against the public enemy. They now were exposed without protec- tion to the tyranny of the counter duke. The protection of a powerful man was the only security ; the allodial lands were surrendered and received back as feudal ; their owner ac- knowledged himself the vassal of a suzerain, and took on him the feudal obligations. These obligations were mutual, as those between patrons and clients at Rome : the vassal w"as bound to follow his lord to war during a limited period, usually forty days, and that even against a superior lord or the king; he was not to di- vulge his lord's counsel, to injure his person or fortune, or the honor of his family. In battle he was to give his horse to liis lord if dismounted, to give himself as a hostage for him if 184 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. taken ; he was to attend his lord's courts as a witness or a jiidg-e. He was to pay a fine on receivino-, and another on alienating' his fief; and he was to pay an aid to redeem his lord from captivity, to enable his lord to pay his own fine to his superior lord, on taking- possession of his fief, &c. The aids varied in number in different places, and these obliga- tions mostly grew up gradually, as the power of the lords enabled them to encroach. On the part of tlie lord, the prin- cipal obligation was that of protection. The church, though rich in lands, and hallowed by super- stition, did not escape the universal outrage and spoliation. Though the clergy were often martial, they could not meet the feudal lords on equal terms. The rich abbeys, therefore, usually adopted the practice of choosing- an advocate in the person of some neighboring lord, on whom they bestowed sun- dry privileges, and generally some good fief; and who was, in consequence, bound to defend the interest of his clients in courts of law, and in the field of battle. The feudal system did not arrive at full maturity during the time of the Carlovingians, and we have here somewhat anticinated. It was confined to the dominions of Charle- magne, and to countries which, like England, borrowed it from them. England. Nothing remarkable happened in England during this pe- A. D. riod, except the union of all the Anglo-Saxon kingdoms, un- ^^"7- der the sceptre of Egbert, king of Wcssex. The Vikingar, or pirates of Scandinavia, nov/ began to send forth those large fleets which were soon to spread devastation on the coasts of Europe, and Charlemagne shed tears at the sight of the first of them that appeared in the Mediterranean. Constantinople. Superstition, ignorance, and feebleness increased in the ■742. eastern empire. Leo the Isaurian was succeeded by his son Constantine V., who carried on the war against the images with apparent rather than real success. The short reign of Leo IV. was terminated by poison, as was supposed ; and his widow, Irene, who governed under the name of her infant 780 son Constantine VI., gave a final triumph to the monks by .solemnly establishing the worship of the images. This monk- lauded empress stained her hands with the blood of her own soil, and then contrived to reign alone, the first sole regnant 8C2. em.press; but she lost her throne to the daring courage of Nicephorus. This emperor set himself resolutely but vainly CHAP. III. CHARLEMAGNE AND HAROON ER-RASIIEED. 185 against the image worship ; the evil had come to too great a head. His son and son-in-law possessed the throne but three a. d. years. A soldier, Leo Bardanes, next ascended the throne ; 813. but court intrigues and monkish arts impeded his judicious policy. His successor, Michael of Amorium, was feeble and unfortunate. The external enemies of the empire during this period were the Arabs under the Abbasside khalifs, who ravaged Lesser Asia, and the Bulgarians, a Slavonian tribe, who ad- vanced southwards towards the Adriatic, where they subse- quently occupied Dalmatia. They were now on the southern bank of the Danube, in the country named from them. The emperor Nicephorus lost his life in a battle with this nation. 810 The Abbasside Khalifs. The house of Ommiyah failed in gaining the affections of its subjects. The family of the prophet was esteemed best entitled to his throne and pulpit. Of the line of Hashem. the Fatemites, or descendants of Ali by Fatema, the daughter of the prophet, had the prior claim ; but they were wanting in 746- courage or talent. The Abbassides, the family of the proph- et's uncle. Abbas, were numerous, prudent, and united : their partisans were chiefly in Persia, where Aboo Moslem, their chief support, first gave them dominion by the conquest of Khorassan. Persia was from east to west a perpetual scene of conflict between the rival parties of the white and the black, as they were styled, from the colors of their ensigns. The Ommiyades unfurled tlie white banner of the prophet ; their rivals displayed the opposite hue. Ibrahim, the chief of the house of Abbas, was waylaid on his pilgrimage to Mecca by the troops of Damascus, and he expired in the dungeons of Haran : his brothers, Saffah and Almansor, escaped to Cufa. Saffah was there proclaimed khalif Mervan II., the Ommi- yade khalif, collected a large army, and met the host of Saflah on the banks of the Zab. The Abbasside troops were least in number; but fortune favored them. Mervan fled to Egypt; and in another engagement at Busir, on the banks of the Nile, he lost both life and empire. 750 The unfortunate race of Ommiyah was now sought out and slaughtered. One youth alone, Abd-er-rahman, escaped the perqiiisitions of tlie Abbassides, and he fled to Africa. He was invited over to Spain by the friends and servants of his house. The governor, Yussuf, was forced to yield to his arms ; 755. and from the city of Cordova the sceptre of the Ommiyades ruled during 283 years over the eight provinces into which Spain was divided. 16* 186 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. After a short reign, Saffah was succeeded by his brother Ahiiansor. The royal residence had at first been Medina : Ali transferred it to Cufa; and Moawiyah to Damascus. Per- sia was tlie chief seat of the Abbasside power ; and Ahnansor A. D. laid, on the eastern bank of the Tigris, the foundations of 762. Bagdad, the royal seat of his posterity for five hundred years. The arms of Almansor were successful against the nomadcs of Toorkistan; but his expedition against the Ommiyade khalif of Spain encountered only disgrace and defeat. ' The Greeks had taken advantage of the civil dissensions of the Moslems to recover a portion of their dominions. Mo- hadi, the successor of Almansor, retaliated during the reign of Irene and her son. Haroon, his second son, at the head of 95,000 Persians and Arabs, invaded Lesser Asia ; and from tlie heights of Scutari, within view of the imperial city, dic- tated the terms of an ignominious peace. 781. Five years after this war, Haroon-er-Rasheed, or the Just^ ascended the throne of his flither and his elder brother. Du- ring a reign of twenty-three years, this active prince eight times invaded the Grecian territories. In vain the emperor Nicephorus sent haughty defiances and denials of tribute ; in vain he assembled large armies : his troops fled in dismay before the disciplined bands of the commander of the faithful ; and the Byzantine gold was annually poured into the treasury of Bagdad. The memory of Haroon is renowned alike in both the East and West, as the hero of history and tale ; but it is indelibly stained by the slaughter of the princely and guiltless Barmecides. 804. On his death his tlirone was disputed by his three sons ; and, in the civil conflict, Al-Mamoon, the son of the filthy slave of the kitchen, triumphed over the issue of the haughty Zobeide. The memory of this prince is dear to literature and science, of which he was the zealous patron ; and his peaceful acquisitions eclipse the martial deeds of his father. Under the first khalifs and the house of Ommiyah, no literature was attended to but tlie Koran and their native po- etry. Almansor began to encourage the acquisition of foreign literature : it was also patronized by Haroon ; but Al-Mamoon far outstripped all Ijis predecessors in its cultivation. At his command, his agents and his ambassadors collected the best works of Grecian science, and his translators gave them an Arabic dress. The astronomy of Ptolemy, the medicine of Galen, the metaphysics of Aristotle, were read and commented on in the language of Arabia. The Ommiyade khalifs of Cordova, the Fatemites of Africa, vied with those of Bagdad in the collecting of books, and the encouragement of science; CHAP. III. CHARLEMAGNE AND HAROONER-RASHEED. 187 and from the schools establislied by them proceeded chiefly the medicine, physics, and metaphysics of Europe during the middle ages. But the poets, the orators, and the historians of the Grecian republics, never learned to speak the language of Mohammedan despotism. j^ j, In the reign of Al-Mamoon, Crete and Sicily were con- 823. quered by the Moslems. A piratical fleet of ten or twenty galleys from Andalusia entered Alexandria at the solicitation of a rebellious faction. They spared neither friends nor foes; they pillaged the city, and it required the forces and the pres- ence of the khalif Al-Mamoon to expel them. They ravaged the islands to the Hellespont. The fertility and riches of Crete attracted them : they invaded it with forty galleys. They entered and pillaged the country ; but as they returned to their vessels, they found them in flames by the orders of their chief, who exhorted them to seize and keep the fertile land. They obeyed from necessity, the island submitted, and for 13S years their depredations harassed the eastern em- pire. A youth had stolen a nun from a cloister in Sicily. He was 827 sentenced to the loss of his tongue. He fled to Africa, and exhorted the Arabs to invade his country. They landed, in number, 700 horse, and 10,000 foot. They were repulsed be- fore the walls of Syracuse, and reduced to great straits, when they received a reinforcement from Spain. The western part of the island was quickly reduced, and Palermo became the Saracenic capital. Fifty years elapsed before Syracuse sub- 878. mitted, after a siege worthy of her old renown. The Gre- cian language and religion were eradicated throughout the island. From the ports of Sicily and Africa the Mohamme- dan fleets issued to ravage and pillage the cities and prov- inces of Italy. While the Arabs were engaged in the conquest of Sicily, 846. one of their fleets entered the Tiber, and the Moslems plun- dered the temples of St. Peter and St. Paul. Fortunately for the Romans, their pope died, and Leo IV., a man of the old Roman spirit, was chosen to succeed. By his care the city was fortified, and an alliance formed with Gaieta, Na- ples, and Salerno. Soon after, a large fleet of Saracens came from Africa, and cast anchor before the Tiber. The allies of 849. the pope soon appeared ; the engagement commenced, and a tempest finally decided it in favor of the Christians. The Saracen fleet was utterly destroyed, and those who escaped to shore were slaughtered, or reduced to slavery. 188 bUTLINES OF HISTORY. TART II CHAP. IV. DISSOLUTION OF THE GREAT EMPIRES OF THE EAST AND WEST. Empire of Charlemagne. 814.* Charlemagne was succeeded in his dominions by his son Louis the Debonair, or good-natured. His eldest son, Pepin, had died before him, leaving an illegitimate son, Bernard, who retained the kingdom of Italy, which his father had held. Re- 817. belling against his uncle, he was sentenced to the loss of his eyes, wiiich caused his death. Louis associated his eldest son, Lothaire, in the empire, and conferred Bavaria and Aqui- taine on his two other sons ; but having had a son, Charles, by his second wife, Judith of Bavaria, he was naturally anxious to provide for him also. This could only be done at the ex- pense of Lothaire and his brothers. They rose in rebellion, and deposed their father : their discord caused his restoration. 840. At his death, all his sons were in arms against each other. A bloody battle at Fontenoy, in Auxerre, forced them to come to an agreement, and the empire was, by the treaty of Ver- dun, divided among them. 843. In this partition, Lothaire got Italy, Provence, and the country running along the Rhine, afterwards called Lorraine. Louis had all the German dominions eastward of the territo- ries of Lothaire ; and Charles, surnamed the Bald, had France. Pepin, their nephew, had Aquitaine, which his father had held : of this he was afterwards robbed by his uncle Charles. 855. Lothaire, filled with remorse for his rebellions against his father, retired to a convent. His three sons took arms to di- 859. vide their inheritance. By the treaty of Orbe (in the Vaudois,) Louis got the crown of the Cassars, Italy, and Rhfetia ; Lo- thaire II., Burgundy, Alsatia, and Lorraine ; Charles had Provence. 868. Lothaire II. dying the victim of a lawless amour, without legitimate issue, his two uncles made a treaty of partition of his dominions, which was finally decided in favor of the king 879. of Germany. Lothaire II. had already divided with his 863. brother, Louis II., the dominions of Charles of Provence, who 875. had died without heirs; and on the death of Louis II. Rhsetia came to the king of Germany ; but his younger brother, the king of France, contrived to make himself master of Italy and the imperial crown. gyg^ The two brothers soon died. Louis the Stammerer suc- ceeded his fiither, Charles the Bald ; but followed him to the tomb within half a year after his accession. The legitimacy CHAP. IV. DISSOLUTION OF THE GREAT EMPIRES, 189 of his children was doubted ; and in a council of Burgundian })ishops, held at Geneva, the sovereignty of that country was DtTered to Boson, who was married to Imogene, daughter of a. d. Louis IL, and he was crowned king of Burgundy by the 879. archbishop at Lyons. Charles the Fat, the son of Louis of Germany, united Italy 880 to his German dominions; and on the death of the elder sons of Louis the Stammerer, and the minority of their brother Charles the Simple, he was made king of France, and Boson received his kingdom of him as a fief The empire was now once more under one head ; but Charles becoming deranged, he was deposed, and the unity of the empire of the Franks 888. dissolved for ever. The German dominions of Charles were taken possession of by Arnulf, the illegitimate son of his brother Carloman, a prince deeply imbued witli the best spirit of the Carlovhigi- ans; but he died, leaving a son of only seven years. Eudes, count of Paris, which he had gallantly defended against the Normans, was chosen king of France ; but on his death it came to the rightful but incapable heir, Charles the Simple. After the death of Boson, two kings reigned in Burgundy ; his son Louis, and Rodolph, son of the powerful Count Con- rad, and that kingdom was divided, never to be reunited. In Italy, Widen, duke of Spoleto, and Berenger, duke of Friuli, contended with each other for the restoration of the kingdom of tlie Lombards, and discord and turbulence agitalc'd the whole country. Such was the internal state of tlie empire of Charlemagne at the close of the ninth century : externally it was harassed by the Arabs, tlie Hungarians, and the Northmen. The Hungarians. Beyond the Ural mountains a tribe of Turks, it is thought, had intermixed with the Finns, the original race of Northern Asia and Europe. Pressed on from the East by other tribes set in motion by war or want, they broke up their camps, and advanced towards tlie West. They forced their way through the Russian tribes, penetrated the passes of Mount Krapak, and spread themselves over Pannonia, their future country. They called and still call themselves Majars : by the Euro- peans they were termed Turks and Hungarians. Their gov- ernment had been hitherto administered by a council of Voi- vodes, or hereditary chiefs ; they now chose a sovereign in the person of Almus, the father of Arpad. The empire of Charlemagne had extended to Transylva nia. The king of the Moravians, who dwelt in western 190 OUTLINES OF HISTORV. PART II. Hungary, refused obedience to Arnulf, king of Germany, and even invaded his dominions. Unable to reduce him, A. D. Arnulf invited the aid of the Hungarians, and the Moravian 340. prince was speedily humbled. Arnulf being succeeded by his infant son Louis IV., all restramt, which gratitude or fear had laid on the Hungarians, was removed. They rushed into and wasted Bavaria, overthrew the Christians at Au":s- burg, swept over Swabia and Franconia, spread to the Baltic, and laid the city of Bremen in ashes. During a period of more than thirty years Germany paid tribute to these bar- barians. The Hungarians passed the Rhine, and ravaged southern France to the Pyrenees. Italy attracted them : tliey encamp- ed on the Brenta ; but, dreading the strength of the country, they asked permission to retire. The king of Italy, Beren- ger, proudly refused, and the lives of 20,000 men were the penalty of his rashness. Pavia was soon in flames, and all Italy, to the point of Reggio, was ravaged. The Bulgarians, a Slavonic tribe, had been converted to Christianity, and they formed the north-western barrier of the eastern empire. Their resistance was overcome, and the rapid bands of the Hungarians v/ere soon seen before the gates of Constantino- ple. By arts and presents they were induced to retire. The ravages of the Hungarians extended through a period of nearly half a century (889 — 934). The valor of the Saxon princes. Henry the Fowler and his son Otho the Great, at ength delivered Europe from them. The Northmen. Scandinavia had been originally peopled by the Finnic race. In very remote ages the Goths, whose primitive seat was, probably, the great central mountain-range of Asia, had penetrated thither, and expelled the less warlike Finns. We have already seen them recross the Baltic, and eventually establish themselves in Spain and Italy. Everywhere they appear as conquerors. In Scandinavia they were generally divided into small independent states : their land was poor • they had little agriculture and less trade to occupy them they loved war, were bold mariners, and early began to com- mit depredations on each other and on strangers. In this period, Gorm the Old in Denmark and Harold Fair- hair in Norway had reduced several of the independent chieftains of these countries, and established their respective monarchies. Several of the high-spirited rr^nli scorned to own as masters those whom they had regarded as equals; they embarked in their ships, sought and colonized tlie dreary CHAP. IV. DISSOLUTION OF THE fiREAT EMPIRES. 191 shores of Iceland or the Feroe, Shetland, and Orkney islands, whence they annually ravag-ed the coasts of their forsaicen country. By these and by the younger sons of the Yarls (earls) of the north, piracy was £fradually committed on a more extensive scale than hitherto : the coasts of England and France were now richer and more inviting-, and annually the fleets of the Northmen spread desolation along them. Towards the time of Charlemagne their depredations on these countries had begun. The date of their appearance in England is the year 787, and shortly afterwards they rav- aged the coast of France. During the reign of Louis they were more frequent in their visits. The unsettled state of the country in the reign of Charles the Bald favoring them, they grew more bold, sailed up the navigable rivers, and plundered the interior. In 872 they pillaged Anglers ; in 888 they laid siege to Paris, which, but for the efforts of Gosselin, the bishop, and Eudes, the count of that city, would have been their prey. But the number and boldness of their invasions continually increasing, Charles the Simple was finally forced to cede to Rolf, or Rollo, one of their leaders, a. d the large province since called from them Normandy. This 918. was a wise measure, for Rolf and his subjects embraced the Christian relio-ion, and ofuarded the kingdom from farther in- vasion. In England, where they were called Danes, they harassed the coasts in a similar manner, and gradually formed perma- nent settlements. Even the great Alfred was obliged to yield to them the kingdoms of Northumbria and East Anglia, and at length they placed monarchs of their nation on the throne of England. But the Northmen also extended their name and their power eastwards. The coasts of the Baltic were among the scenes of their depredations ; and the Russians, a Slavonian tribe, who had subdued the original natives of its eastern shores, admired and feared them. As allies they employed them in their wars against the tribes of the interior. These Varangians, as they were called, like their Anglo-Saxon 862. brethren, made themselves masters of the people that invited their aid, and Ruric, one of their chiefs, established a dynasty which endured for seven hundred years. The house of Ru- ric, at first depending on the arms of the Varangians for sup- port and safety, new adventurers continually flocked to them, and were rewarded by grants of lands and subjects; but when they felt themselves firmly seated, they found they could dispense with tliese expensive auxiliaries, and Vladimir I. recommended to them the service of the Greek emperors, 192 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. as more profitable. They followed his advice, and from that period till the end of the empire, the Varangians were the faithful guards of the throne of the Byzantine Caesars. France. The power and authority of the Carlovingian princes con- tinually decreased. France was now divided among several dukes and counts, who, though acknowledging themselves vassals of the crown, exercised all the rights of independent sovereigns. Louis IV. and Lothaire, the successors of Charles the Simple, though of more energetic character, were unable to restore the royal dignity ; and on the death of Louis V., a feeble vouth, though his uncle Charles duke of Lorraine was heir, Hugh Capet, son of Hugh duke of France, Orleans, and Burgundy, and descended from Eudes and Robert the Strong, who had defended Paris from the Northmen, had himself A. D. crowned king at Rheims, and when Charles of Lorraine came 987. in arms to claim his right, he met with defeat and captivity. Thus, after a period of 235 years from the deposition of Chilperic (752) to the coronation of Hugh Capet (987), the Carlovingian, like the Merovingian dynasty, expired by its own feebleness. Would it not appear that great families, like fruit-trees, become with time effete, and incapable of pro- ducing the similitude of those powers to which they owed their original elevation 1 So little reason is there to be proud of a long line of noble ancestry ! Hugh, though king of France, was in reality only master of his own demesnes, and feudal superior of the great vassals of the crown. Even this superiority was not acknowledged south of the Loire, and in his own fiefs of Paris and Orleans, which by his accession were regarded as reunited to the crown, he and his successors were frequently defied and made war on by their refractory barons. He used the pre- caution of getting his son Robert crowned during his own lifetime, a plan wliich was followed by his two successors, Robert and Henry L Under the reign of Philip L the monarchy was grown sufficiently strong to dispense with this custom. Germany — House of Saxony. On the death of Louis, son of Arnulf, the German branch of the Carlovingians was extinct. Charles the Simple, king of France, was doubtless of that race ; but the present situa- tion of Germany demanded a sovereign of more energetic character. The Germans were divided into five nations, Franks, Swabians, Bavarians, Saxons, Lorrainers. These CHAP. IV. DISSOLUTION OF THE GREAT EMPIRES. 193 nations met to appoint a successor, and the choice of the as- a. n sembly fell upon Conrad of Franconia, descended through 911. females from Charlemagne. Conrad did not long enjoy his dignity. Feeling the neces- sity there was for the sceptre being grasped by a vigorous hand, he sought not to perpetuate it in his own family ; but when dying, he recommended, instead of his brother, Henry duke of Saxony, also descended on the female side from Charlemagne, to the choice of the electors. Henry, surnamed the Fowler, was son of Otho, who had 91^- reduced Thuringia, and extended his dominion to the Elbe. This able and politic prince was at first obliged to continue the tribute to the Hungarians ; but he surrounded the hitherto open towns and villages with walls and ditches, obliged every tenth man in each district to reside in them, gave them privi- leges, and encouraged industry and arts of every kind : the courts of justice were held in them, and they were the de- positories of a third of the produce of the lands of the district. He established the march of Meissen against the Slaves, and erected bishoprics there for their conversion. Thus prepared, when the years of truce with the Hungarians were expired ; he suffered them to come with arms to demand tribute ; and he rose from his bed of sickness to meet them, and drove 934 them out of his dominions with slaughter. On the death of Henry, the princes and people assembled 936. at Aachin, and elected his son Otho, deservedly styled the Great. It being a principle of the German empire, that an emperor should neither retain a fief nor add one to the domain, Otho bestowed Saxony on Herman, a brave warrior ; but he sought to indemnify himself by granting archbishoprics and dukedoms to his own family ; a policy that availed him but little, as they were frequently in rebellion against him. In the discord that pervaded Italy at this period, Adelaide, widow of Lothaire, son of Hugh of Provence, who had been king of Italy, invoked the aid of Otho against Berenger IL, who had seized on the throne. Otho crossed the Alps, married Adelaide, and Berenger did homage to him for his kingdom. 952. Troubles afterwards breaking out in that country, Otho, at the call of Pope John XII., again descended from the Alps, deposed Berenger, and was crowned by the Lombards. The next year he visited Rome, and was there received and crowned as Charlemagne had been. But the pope, seeing the power of his ally, sought to raise up enemies against him. Otho sent ambassadors to complain, and at last came himself to Rome. The pope fled, and the people swore never to re- 963. ceive a pope without the consent of Otho and his successors. 17 l94 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. Three days after, the emperor in an assembly of bishops and nobles, had John deposed, and Leo VIII. chosen in his place. The party of John was, however, still strong : the Romans rose aofainst the Germans and their friends. Otho came a third time to Rome : an injured husband had slain John ; famine forced the Romans to surrender ; and thus originated the right of the emperor to nominate the pope. During" the reign of Otho I. the Hungarians, assisted by domestic faction, penetrated to the heart of Flanders. All the forces of Germany and all the aids of superstition were arrayed against this dreadful enemy ; and the neighborhood ^ u of Augsburg, which some years before had witnessed their 955. triumph, now beheld the final ruin of the Hungarian might. 974. Otho II., son of Otho the Great, married Theophano, step- daughter of the Byzantine emperor, Nicephorus Phocas, who made over to him all the imperial rights and claims on Lower Italy. Otho was an able prince ; but he had many enemies to contend with, and sometimes endured the mortifi cation of defeat. 983. Otho III., educated by his mother Theophano, was a prince of amiable temper and cultivated mind. He loved to reside in Italy; but the turbulence of the Romans gave him con- tinued uneasiness and occupation. During his minority they rebelled against him and the pope ; but when he came of age he besieged and took the city. He treated it with se- verity, and hung the consul Crescentius, the leader of the popular party. iiiK)2. Otho dying without issue, his kinsman, Henry, duke of Bavaria, was elected to the vacant dignity. Henry II. was successful in his foreign wars. He passed less of his time in Italy than his predecessors had done. With him ended the 1024. Saxon line of emperors. Italy. The great vassals had in Italy succeeded in making them- selves independent. Of these the principal were the dukes of Benevento, Tuscany, and Spoleto, the marquises of Ivrea, Susa, and Friuli : the pope ruled the turbulent Romans : Apulia and Calabria were governed by the Catapan of the eastern emperors : the republics of Amalfi and Naples ac- knowledged their supremacy ; and Salerno and Capua were under their own princes. When the Carlovingian princes had lost their power, the dukes of Spoleto and Friuli contended for the kingdom of Italy. Berenger of Friuli governed with the title of king, but amidst continual factions, for thirty-six years. His adver- CHAP. IV. DISSOLUTION OF THE GREAT EMPIRES. 195 saries called in Rudolf II., kiiiof of Buro-undv. In a battle Eerenger defeated him; but in the pur-suit, Boniface of Spo- a. d leto, Rudolf's nephew, fell on him ; and Rudolf turnino-, Be- 923 renger was defeated, and soon after murdered. Rudolf was now made king of Italy, but did not long enjoy his crown. Hugh, count of Provence, who had driven the grandson of Boson out of the kingdom of Aries, laid claim to Italy ;. and, supported by the clergy and the great, he forced Rudolf to 926. resign, and accept a part of the kingdom of Aries in exchange. Hugh reigned over and oppressed the nobles of Italy for six- teen years. Berenger II., of the house of Ivrea, succeeded, and was nearly as tyrannical ; and, as we have seen, the aid of Otho the Great was invoked against his oppression, and 945. the German monarchs became kings of Italy. The dukes of Spoleto and Tuscany generally directed the election of the popes. Virtue and piety were little considered in the candidates : political motives and female influence de- cided each election. The infamous Tlieodora and her daugh- ter Marozia disposed of the chair of St. Peter at their pleasure : mere boys were chosen : sons succeeded their fathers : scanda- lous vices disgraced the heads of the church ; and some suffered shameflil deaths. Among the charges against John XII. were several which would disgrace the most licentious layman in the most barbarous age of history. The duchy of Benevento had been greatly diminished by the formation of the states of Salerno and Capua; and at this time the Normans established themselves at Aversa, a town given to them by the duke of Naples. The Saracens possessed Sicily, and had settlements in Calabria. England. Egbert had united all England under one sceptre ; and, in- 828. ternal warfare being thus checked, the country might have advanced in civilization and the arts of peace; but the Danes 832- now began to visit the coasts with large fleets, carrying havoc and desolation wherever they appeared. The reigns of his successors are chiefly marked by their struggles with these 871. formidable foes. When Alfred mounted the throne, they were masters of the greater part of England. This monarch, one of the ablest that ever adorned a diadem, spent a great part of his reign in doubtful conflict vvitli them, which ended by the Danes embracing Christianity, and Alfred ceding to them North umbria and Eayt Anglia. Peace being restored, the wise king turned all his thoughts to the formation of such institutions and regulations as might increase the power, the wealth, and the civilization of his subjects. lie established 196 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. schools, regulated the police, built ships of war, and encour- aged trade and navigation. Three able prmces, Edward, Athelstan, and Edmund, pursued the victories of Alfred : under them the monarchy became coextensive with the present England ; and Edgar the Peaceable was the most powerful of the Anglo-Saxon kings. The Danes still continued their hostilities. The successors of Edgar were feeble, the great subjects intractable, the Danes in the kinsfdom numerous : the custom was introduced of buying them off, and then of employing the Normans against them. In the reign of Ethelred II. the savage and fatal mea- sure of murdering the Danes throughout England was adopted. Filled with rage at this base treachery, Sueno, king of Den- mark, invaded and conquered the kingdom. His son Canute (Knut) was king of both Denmark and England, and he is justly placed in the list of great princes. He was succeeded by his sons Hardicanute and Harold. On the death of the last, the English nation returned to the Ang'lo-Saxon line, in the person of Edward, surnamed the Confessor, an amiable but feeble prince. An injudicious practice had been introduced of giving the government of large provinces, the former kingdoms, to par- ticular noblemen. Hitherto each shire had been governed by its alderman, and the moderate size of a sliire prevented its governor acquiring any very formidable power. But a man who wielded the forces of such a state as Mercia or Wessex, might easily defy his sovereign. Godwin, a man of ability, had gained for himself and his sons the government of seve- ral provinces; and on the death of Edward, his son Harold, a man of many noble qualities, had himself chosen king by the Witena-gemot, or great council of the nation, to the exclu- sion of the lawful heir. He was opposed by his own brother Tosti, by the king of Norway, and by a still more formidable rival, William duke of Normandy. The former two he van- quished : in the battle of Hastings he lost to the latter both life and crown. Russia. Russia under her Scandinavian princes became known to Europe. The Russians appeared at Constantinople at first as traders, exchanguig the furs, hides, bees'-wax and honey of the North for the productions and manufactures of the em- pire. Their cupidity was excited, and they sought to take by force the wealth of which they got but scanty supplies by trade. Their fleets repeatedly assailed Constantinople, and their armies invaded the empire and Bulgaria. Nicephorus CHAP. IV. DISSOLUTION OF THE GREAT EMriRES. 197 fought in vain ag-ainst them, but the heroic John Zimisces vindicated the honor of the empire and the wrongs of Bulga- ria, and the Russian grand-duke Svatoslof and his army, sur- ^ i». rounded by the galleys and the legions, was forced to surren- 973. der, and retire on honorable terms. Olga, the mother of Svatoslof, a princess of mind as mas- 955. culine as the Catherines or Elizabeths, had come to Constan- tinople and received baptism. At Kiov and Novogorod she persisted in her new faith. Her grandson Vladimir, at first a 980 zealous votary of the gods of his country, at length embraced the religion of his grandmother, and a marriage with Anna, sister of Theophano, wife of Otho II., confirmed him in his new faith. Olga had sought to improve her country: she made roads, built bridges, and introduced social order. Vladi- mir erected schools, opened new sources of trade, had rela- tions with foreign courts, was active in the introduction of the Christian religion, — was, in fact, the Peter of the tenth century. Yaroslof, son of Vladimir, was the legislator of Russia. 1015 He caused books to be translated from the Greek. He was the ally of the German emperors against the Hungarians, and his daughter Anna was married to Henry I. of France. Alexius Commenus, the Byzantine emperor, sent the impe- rial insio-nia to the grandson of Yaroslof, Vladimir Monoma- chus, and Kiov swore always to choose the Tsar from his house. Constantinople. Theophilus, son of Michael the Stammerer, was a virtuous 829. prince, and an enemy to the images. On his death his widow /Theodora, like Irene, during the minority of her son Michael 842. III., finally re-established them. Michael was a weak prince; but his uncle Caesar Bardas administered the empire with 867. prudence and ability. Basilius murdered them both, and mounted the throne. His government was vigorous and ac- 886. tive. His son Leo followed his maxims. The sceptre passed 911. to the infant son of Leo, Constantine Porphyrogenitus, under whose name first his uncle Alexander and then his mother Zoe governed. By perjury Romanus Lacopenus obtained the 919. direction of affairs; but he guided them with ability. Con- stantine, apparently devoted to books and wine, managed to deprive Romanus of his power, and became sole ruler. Ro- 959 manus 11. reigned after him with little credit. Nicephorus Phocas distinguished himself in war against the Persians, the Saracens of Crete, and the Russians. His successor, John Zimisces, was th^ conqueror of the Russian 969. 17* 198 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. 4. D. duke Svatoslof. The sons of Romanus 11., Basil 11. and Con- 975. stantine VIIL, reigned in conjunction, with reputation. Basil completely broke the power of the Bulgarians, and dying after 1025. a reign of fifty years, left the sole dominion to his brother, who left it to his daughter Zoe and her husband, the patrician 1028. Romanus Argyrus, a man of some ability. Romanus was un- fortunate in a battle against the Saracens at Aleppo. The 1034. empress fell in love with a handsome youth. Romanus was murdered, and her favorite raised to the throne under the name of Michael IV. ; but, goaded by remorse, he abandoned the palace to shut himself up in a convent. The empress >041.then placed his cousin Michael Calaphates on the throne. Finding him disobedient to her will, she dethroned and blinded i042. him, and then gave the dignity to Constantine Monoma- chus, who had been her first love, who governed with order 1054. and regularity. On Iiis death, Theodora, the sister of Zoe (now dead) seized the reigns ol government, and held them 1056. for a short time with no steady hand. With her ended the dynasty of Basil I., which had occupied the throne nearly two centuries. Michael VI., a soldier, was chosen emperor, and gave one among the many examples there are of the unfitness of a man for the supreme station who may have been distinguished in an inferior one. He was dethroned, and Isaac Comnenus 1057. put in his place. Isaac ruled with wisdom, vigor, and justice; but bodily infirmity made him retire after a short reign. Con- 1059. stantine Ducas, his successor, was just, but no soldier. His 1068. widow married and raised to the throne Romanus Diogenes, a man of noble mind and military talent. He warred against the Seljookian Turks ; but by the treachery of his nobles he fell into the hands of the sultan Alp Arslan, by whom he was honorably treated and set at liberty. On liis return he found 1071. treachery, revolt, and murder awaiting him. Michael VIL, the son of Ducas, was weak and incapable ; he was the slave of a vicious minister, and he took orders, and attained to dig- 1078. nity in the church. Nicephorus Botoniates was a soldier, but 1081. unfit to be emperor. He gave way to the dynasty of the Comnenians, with whom a new state of things commenced. Decline of the Arabian Empire — Africa. 789. The Abbasside khalifs had never possessed Spain. In the reign of Haroon-er-Rasheed, Edris, a descendant of Fatema, fled from Arabia to the extreme west, and declared his inde- pendence. His son, also named Edris, built the city of Fez the capital of a state w^hich soon became populous and flour ishing. CHAP. IV. DlSriULUTlON OF THE GREAT EMPIRES. 199 During- the reign of Edris II. of Fez, Ibrahim, the son of a. d Afflab, governor of Cairoan, one of the lieutenants of Haroon- 805. er-Rasheed, established an independent dominion in the an- cient territory of Carthage, of which Tunis became the capital. About a century later, Mahadee Obeid Allah, a real or pre- 90b. tended descendant of Fatema, founded a state on the coast of Africa, of which the city of Mahadiah, built by him on a pen- insula, running out into the Mediterranean, was the capital. He made war on and defeated both the Aglabites and the Jildrisites, whose kingdoms lay to the west of his, and added their territories to those he already possessed. Moez-ladin-Allah, the great-grandson of Mahadee, had 969. wells sunk in the desert, and then marched an army to Egypt, which had ceased to obey the khalifs. He took possession of that country with little opposition, where he founded the city of Cairo (Al Cahira) henceforth its capital. His reign was one of mildness and gentleness. Armies conducted by skilful and victorious generals conquered Syria, and Damascus and Jerusalem were among the cities which obeyed the khalif of Egypt, whose dynasty — the Fatemite — ruled for two centu- ries from the Euphrates to the deserts of Cairoan. Moez, aware of the impossibility of retaining distant prov- 971. inces, separated by sandy deserts from the seat of govern- ment, wisely abandoned all thoughts of seeking to retain his conquests on the north-western coast of Africa. He therefore gave up to Yoossef Belkin, the son of Zeiri, the western con- quests of Mahadee. Zeiri was of a noble Arab family, and had headed a troop of warriors, who were solely devoted to him. His dynasty — the Zeirides — reigned till 1148 over the north-western coast during 177 years. A prophet, named Abdallah, rose among the tribes subject 1056. to the Zeirides. He taught Islam in greater purity. His followers became numerous. Under the command of Aboo Bekr, son of Omar, they took arms to spread the faith, and carried on successful wars against the princes of Fez, Tan- giers, and the other states. Yoossef^ the successor of Aboo Bekr, founded Morocco at some springs of water, and it be- came during his lifetime the capital of a state reaching to the 1069 Straits of Gibraltar. Almoravites was the appellation of the followers of Abdallah : they led a pastoral life, and their princes Yoossef and his successors were both powerful and peaceable. Decline of the Arabian Empire — Asia. Thus were Spain, Africa, and Syria lost to the house of Abbas, and at the same time their eastern possessions were rapidly reduced in extent. 200 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. A. D. Taher, an able general, had essentially served Mamoon in 813. the contest with his brother. He was dismissed in honorable exile to command in the province of Khorassan ; but here he made himself independent, and his descendants, the Taher- ites, to the fourth g-eneration, governed that province with wisdom and justice. 872. The Taherite dynasty was overthrown by the Suffaree, founded by Yacoob ben Leis, the son of a pewterer in Seistan (hence the name Suffaree,) who abandoned his trade for that of a robber. An accident gave occasion to his being em- ployed by the prince of Seistan, in whose service he led an army which he turned against his master, whom he sent pris- oner to Bagdad : obtaining in reward the government of that province, he gradually made himself master of Khorassan, and nearly all Persia. The klialif instigated Ismael Samanee, a Turkish chief, to seize on Transoxiana. Amer, the brother and successor of Yacoob, marched against him ; but was de- feated, taken, and sent to Bagdad, where, after some years' confinement, he was put to death. Transoxiana, Bulch, Kho- rassan, and Seistan now formed the dominions of the Sama- nians. 892. The Arabian princes of the tribe of Hamadan made them- selves masters of, and held for 109 years (892 — 1001) Meso- potamia, with the cities of Mosul and Aleppo. They were extolled by their poets for their beauty and their noble quali- ties. Their history presents the usual series of crimes. 900 The power of the Samanee princes extended over the north of Persia. The south obeyed the Dilemee, so called from their native village Dilem, as they were styled Buyah from one of their ancestors. A fisher of Dilem, Abul-Shujah-al- Buyah, entered the service of the governor of his native prov- ince. Under the conqueror and successor of that governor, Ali Buyah, the son of Shujah, rose to high military command ; and he defeated Yacoot, the governor of Isfahan, and gained thereby great wealth and reputation. Ali pursued and again defeated Yacoot, and made himself master of Pars, Kerman, Khuzistan, and Irak. He advanced to Bagdad, and obliged the khalif to bestow on him the government of Pars and Irak, and to make his younger brother Ahmed his vizier ; his sec- ond brother Hussun acted under him.self Ahmed dethroned the khalif, and raised Mothi to his place, over whom he exercised unlimited authority during his life. Ali dying, universally regretted, was succeeded by his brother, Hussun, who left his authority to his son, the able and excel- lent Azed-e-Dowlat, who united in his person the offices of vizier to the khalif and viceroy of Pars and Irak. JHAP. IV. DISSOLUTION OF THE GREAT EMPIRES. 201 After tlie death of Azed, one of the brightest characters . Baldwin reigned but one year; he was taken prisoner and 1205. cruelly put to death by the Bulgarians. His brother and suc- 1216. cessor, Henry, an abler prince, died by poison. The throne then came to his brother-in-law, Peter de Coortenay, grand- son of Louis VI., and his children. John Lascaris and bis son governed their Asiatic empire with prudence and valor. His grandson, of the same name, came to the throne a minor, and was murdered by Michael 1261. Paleeologus, one of whose generals retook, in one night, the imperial city, which the Latins had held but fifty-seven years. The Crusades, The kingdom of Jerusalem was continually harassed by its Mohammedan neighbors in Syria and Egypt. The forma- tion of the orders of the Templars and the Hospitalers, and the constant accession of volunteers from Europe, enabled it to resist its enemies ; and prodigies of valor equal to any in romance were achieved by the warriors of the cross. But in less than half a century after the conquest, the state of Edessa having been subdued by the attabeg of Moussel, more power- ful aid w^s deemed requisite, and St. Bernard preached a new crusade. At his persuasion, the cross was assumed by Louis 1147. VII. of France and Conrad III. of Germany. The number of all ranks engaged in this crusade is estimated at 300,000, The Gel-mans went first, and the same ravages which had disgraced the first crusade occurred also in this. The Greek emperor, Manuel, was terrified at their numbers, and em- ployed artifice to get rid of tbern. They passed over ; and the imprudence of Conrad caused him to march into the heart 148. of Lesser Asia, where his troops were cut to pieces by the sultan of Iconium. Conrad fled to the French army, and then returned to Constantinople. Louis pursued his march : near Laodicea he sustained a partial defeat ; but he reached Antioch, and thence proceeded to the Holy Land, and he and his troops aided at the unsuccessful siege of Damascus. 1187, When intelligence arrived in Europe of the capture of Je- rusalem by Saladin, the utmost grief and indignation pre- 1188. vailed; and Clement III. ordered a crusade to be preached everywhere. The emperor, Frederic Barbarossa, assembled (;HAP. VI. PAPAL POWER AT ITS GREATEST HEIGHT. 1:39 a diet at Mentz, where he and his son Frederic, and the greatest of the German nobles, took the cross. The same was done by Richard I. and Philip Augustus. It was not now, as in the first crusade, piety that actuated these kings and nobles, — that motive had given place to tlie passion for mili- tary fame and glory. The emperor, on marshalling his forces, found them to amount to 100,000 fighting men, care having been taken to keep off" the beggarly rabble which had attended the former expeditions. He marched through Hungary into the Greek territories, where the emperor, Isaac Angelus, harassed the crusaders as far as he was able. Frederic laid the country under contribution, cut to pieces the Greek troops, and made the emperor sue for peace. He wintered at Adrianople, passed over to Asia in spring, defeated the Turks in several battles, took Icon mm, and crossed Mount Taurus. But coming on a sultry day (June 10th) to the Selef, a gelid mountain-stream, a. n. he threw himself into its waters, and was unfortunately 1190. drowned. Richard of England, Philip of France, Henry count of Champagne, Thibaut of Bloig, Philip of Flanders, and numer- ous other princes and nobles, collected their forces on the plain of Vezelay, and found them to amount to 100,000 fight- 1190. ing men. Aware of the evils that had attended the former land expeditions, they resolved to convey their forces by sea, Richard led his troops to Marseilles, Philip his to Genoa, where they embarked. The appointed place of rendezvous was Messina ; and while they staid there, various incidents occurred to excite jealously and disunion between the mon- archs. Driven by a storm to the isle of Cyprus, Richard de- posed, for his cruelty to the crews of some of his ships, Isaac Comnenus, who tyrannized over the island, and sold the sove- reignty of it to Guy de Lusignan, the king of Jerusalem, in whose family it continued for three hundred years. An army of Christians, aided by the slender remains of that of the emperor Frederic, was besieging Acre, or Ptole- mais. After a heroic resistance, it was forced to surrender to the emulative valor of Richard and Philip. But the latter, instead of pursuing this success, jealous of the superior fame of the English monarch, returned to Europe, under the pre- text of ill health, leaving 10,000 of his troops, under the duke of Burgundy. The siege of Ascalon was now resolved on. The Christian army marched along the sea-coast: Saladin collected all his strength to oppose them : a bloody and w^ell- contested battle tx^ok place. Nothing could resist the valor and imoetuosity of Richard; 8000 of the Moslems were left 1192. 240 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. TART II dead. Ascalon and Joppa were razed by Saladin at their ap- proach ; the cruuaders came within sight of the holy city ; but the fickle king of England was weary of the war, and anxious to return home. A truce was concluded with Sala- din, by which the Christians were to hold Ptolemais, Joppa, and other sea-ports, and to visit the holy sepulchre unmolested. The gallant Richard was, on his return through Germany, basely thrown into prison by Leopold duke of Austria, whom he had offended at Ptolemais. A. D The fourth crusade was composed of French and Germans 1202. led by Baldwin count of Flanders. The Venetians furnished ships. Its first efforts were directed against the city of Zara in Dalmatia, which had revolted from Venice, and, in spite of the pope's excommunication, it was reduced. The arms of the faithful were now directed against Constantinople, 1204. which, as we have seen, they took, placing their leader on the throne. In the partition, Venice got the island and the Morea, the marquis of Montferrat Thessaly, Ville Hardouin (the historian of this conquest) Achaia, and Otto de la Roche, a Burgundian, became duke of Athens. 1216. The fifth crusade was chiefly composed of Germans and the neighboring people; Andrew II., king of Hungary, was its commander. The main body marched to Italy, to embark in its ports ; others sailed from the ports of Saxony, and, being driven by a storm into Lisbon, were prevailed on by Don Sancho to assist him against the Moors. The king of Hun- gary and his troops, with tlie king of Cyprus, landed at Ptolemais, where John de Brienne, the titular king of Jeru- salem, gladly received them. They attempted in vain to take Tabor ; were obliged to divide for subsistence ; the king of Cyprus died, and the king of Hungary found it necessary to return home. On being joined by the fleet from Portugal, it was resolved in council to besiege Damietta, in Egypt. An 1219. army, led by the sultan to its relief, was defeated. The duke of Austria and his forces now returned home ; but a rein- forcement arrived, under the cardinal Albano, to whom, as the officer of the pope, John de Brienne was obliged to re- sign the command, and the military priest injudiciously led his army between two branches of the Nile, at the season that river was beginning to overflow. The sultan opened the sluices, and burned the ships of the Christians, who w^ere 1221. forced to restore Damietta, and bind themselves not to serve for eight years against the sultan. 1228. The emperor Frederic II., who had long promised, at length sailed to the East. He did not spill any blood ; but he made an advantageous treaty wiih Malek-el-Kamel, sultan of CHAP VI. PAPAL POWER AT ITS GREATEST HEIGHT. 241 Esfypt, who ceded to him Jerusalem, Bethlehem, and all the villacres between the former place and Jaffa, and Ptolemais. The Khovvaresmians, flying- before the Mongols, had poured a. d, down on Lower Asia, and had seized on Syria and Palestine. 1244 St. Louis, having in a fit of sickness vowed a crusade, he collected a fine army, and sailed for the East. He resolved to commence by reducing Egypt, and landed at Damietta, which was abandoned to him. But his troops were wasted by sickness, and defeated at Massoor, where his brother Rob- ert of Artois was killed at his side, and himself, his two bro- thers, and all his chief nobility taken prisoners. At the price of a large ransom and the city of Damietta they were set at liberty. 1250 Twenty years afterwards, this excellent monarch, whose 1270. only defect almost was superstition, sailed with another expe- dition for the Holy Land ; but hearing that the king of Tunis was inclined to embrace Christianity, he directed his course thither. Finding the intelligence to be false, he laid siege to the city ; but he here caught a fever and died, and with him died the spirit of the crusades. Edward, son of our Henry HL, revived the fame of Richard ; but the Latin power gradually 1291. declined, and Acre, its last seat, fell to the sultan of Egypt. . The crusades, though originating in folly and superstition, and productive of a large quantity of positive suffering to both Europe and Asia, have, in the order of Providence, been also productive of good. They awoke the mind of Europe from its slumber of ignorance and barbarism, by bringing it into contact with the more polished nations of the East; they enlarged the sphere of ideas, gave a taste for elegance and refinement, extended navigation and commerce, and thereby increased the wealth and powder of cities ; they diminished the property and influence of the factious and tyrannic nobles, and enlarged the authority of monarchs. The degree of in- tercourse that prevailed between Europe and Asia, during the period of the crusades, was far beyond what we usually conceive. It has not become adequately known until very recently. The Mongols — Chingis Khan, In the ancient country of this race, a great khan who had ruled over 30,000 families on the banks of the Selinga had died, leaving his son Temujin a child. The horde separated, and Temujin, when he grew up, found only thirteen families adhering to him. He distinguished himself by valor, talent, and generosity. In an assembly of the nation on the Selinga, one of their wise men arose and said, he had had a vision, in 21 242 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART 11 which he saw the great God of heaven sitting- on his throne X D. ill council, and heard sentence given that Temujin should be 1206. Chingis Khan, i. e. Greatest Khan. The Mongols raised their hands, and swore to follow their Chingis Kiian whither- soever he went. He first invaded China, overthrew the dynasty of Song and took Yen King, their capital. He conquered Corea, then turned westward, subdued Tibet, penetrated to Cashmeer, and to the borders of Khowaresin, whose sultan had van- quished the dynasty of Ghaur, and ruled over nearly all Per sia, and a great portion of Hindostan. The sultan Ala-ed-deen Mohammed took the field at the head of 400,000 men, was defeated, and his country subdued. His son, Jellel-ed-deeii Mohammed, heroically, but in vain, resisted the conquerors. The shores of the Caspian were conquered. The tsar of Rus- sia advanced with a large army to the Calca, was defeated 1227. and put to flight. Chingis Khan gave laws and regulations to the Mongols, and died in the 64th year of his age. The sons of Chingis, Octai, Joojee or Tooshee, Toolee, and Jagatai, and their sons, Guoyookh, Batoo, Hoolagoo, and Kublai, followed up his conquests. Resistance was every- 1241. where overborne. Alexander Nevski, the great duke of Rus- sia and conqueror of Livonia, was overthrown ; his successor was forced to fly to Poland, and the house of Ruric reduced to such dependence, that for two liundred years it paid tribute to the khan of the golden horde. This conquest was achieved by Batoo, son of Joojee, who then led his army to the confines of Europe. Poland offered no resistance. Batoo took and burned Cracow. Bela IV., king of Hungary, gave him battle, but was utterly defeated. The Mongols advanced and burned Breslau. The emperor Frederic II. and the pope called on all Europe to aid. Crowds of volunteers joined the standard of Henry duke of Lower 1242. Silesia. The battle, one of the bloodiest ever fought ao-ainst the orientals, was given at Wollstadt, near Lignitz, and lost. The whole country was deserted ; but the Mongols could not form sieges, and they retired. Kublai, son of Toolee, completed the conquest of Cliina. End of the Khalifat at Bagdad. Hoolegoo, the grandson of Chingis, undertook the conquest of Bagdad. The Mongols advanced, treachery aided, and the City of Peace was taken. In the 656th year of the Hegira, the 56th successor of the prophet was trodden beneath the feet of the horses of the Mongols. Bagdad was plundered during forty days, and 200,000 persons slaughtered. The CEIAP Vir. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 243 strong-holds of the Assassins were taken, and that sect de- s^troyed. The Mongols took Aleppo and Damascus, and en- a. d. tered the Holy Land. Seif-ed-deen, the Mameluke sultan of 1260. Egypt, defeated them there, and his successor, Bibers, drove them out of Syria. Hakem bi-emr-illah Ahmed Mostaser of the house of Abbas 1262. fled to Bibers, who received him kindly, and gave him an es- tablishment at Cairo; and for two centuries and a half the successoi's of the prophet lived on the bounty of the Mameluke sultans. CHAP. VII. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER, AND FORMATION OF GREAT MONARCHIES. Italy — The Popes. The high assumptions, the intolerable rapacity, and the extreme corruption of the court of Rome, were gradually alienating from it all orders of men. The clergy were in- censed at the heavy taxes imposed on them, the invasion of the rights of patronage, and the favor shown to the mendicant orders ; and even some of the latter began to declaim against its corruption and vices. In this state of affairs Boniface VIII. obtained the triple crown, and, not attending to the signs of the times, endeavored to raise the papal power to a higher point than it had yet attained, but thereby only showed its real weakness. Edward I. and Philip the Fair began to attack the revenues of the church. The pope left the former and his clergy to themselves ; but when Philip taxed those of France without their consent, Boniface issued a bull, forbidding the clergy of every kingdom to pay any thing without his permission. But the French clergy adhered to their king, and he and the pope became reconciled. Some years afterwards the bishop of isoi. Pamiers, as legate of the pope, behaved with great disrespect to the king, and, as he was his subject, Philip put him under arrest. Boniface, in a rage, issued several bulls, in one of which he asserted that the king was subject to him in tempo- ral as well as in spiritual matters. Philip had the bulls pub- licly burnt at Paris, and summoned the states-general of his kmgdom, who disclaimed, in the fullest manner, the temporal authority of the pope. Boniface held a council at Rome, in which he promulgated A. D. 244 OUTLINES OF IlISTORV. TART II. his constitution of Unam mnctam, by which he declares the church to be one body under one head, possessing- two swords • one spiritual, to be wielded by the pope himself; the other temporal, to be used by kings and knights at his will, and with his permission. But tiie latter must be subject to the former, for every human being is in subjection to the see of Rome. He concludes another bull thus : — " Since such is our pleasure, who, by divine permission, rule the world.'* Finding Philip still refractory, he excommunicated him, giv- ing his kingdom to tlie emperor Albert I., and was tlien aboit to absolve his subjects from tlieir allegiance. Philip now as- serted that Boniface was not legally elected, and appealed to a general council and a lawful pope. But he at the same time ventured on an act of fortunate temerity : he secretly sent into Italy a gentleman named Nogaret, who, with the aid of Sciarra Colonna, who was persecuted by the pope, seized him in the town of Anagni, whither he was gone with- out guards. On the third day the neigliboring gentry came to his rescue ; but the hauglity pontiff was so mortified at what had befallen liim, that his rage brought on a fever, 1302. which terminated his days. His successor, Benedict XL, re- scinded the bulls against Philip, and thereby showed the real decline of the papacy since the days of Innocent. 1305. Clement V., who had been archbisliop of Bourdeaux, re- moved, at the desire of the king of France, the papal chair to Avignon, where it continued under his six successors, all of whom were French, for a space of seventy years. The Avignon pontiffs were engaged in a long contest with the emperor Louis of Bavaria, in which they asserted, that though the power of choosing an emperor had been trans- ferred to certain electors, the popes still retained the right of approving the choice, and of receiving an oath of fealty from the emperor on his coronation. This quarrel originated hi the attempts of the emperors to regain their imperial rights 1323. in Italy. In the course of the contest Louis was excommu- nicated, and his subjects released from their allegiance ; but they remained firm to him, and if Louis himself had acted with more vigor, he would have come off victor in the con- test. 1338. But though thus apparently triumphant over the emperor, the papal power was gradually losing ground. The diet of Frankfort positively denied all right of the pope to interfere in imperial elections. Scholastic science had inured men to thought, and they began to employ their mother-tongues as its organ : men of learning and patriotism assailed the found- ations of the papal edifice, and the ballad and the talc ex- CHAP. VII. DECLINE OF THE TAPAL POWER. 245 posed the profligacy and corruption of t>ie church. A portion of the Franciscan friars, whom John XXII. persecuted for some follies, loudly proclaimed the pope to be Antichrist, and supported the emperor Louis. The rapacity of the papal court now passed all bounds. John XXII. imposed the tax of an- nates, or first-fruits, on all benefices, to be paid into the papal chancery; the same pontiff resert;^^/ to himself all the bishop- rics in Christendom. Benedict XII. assumed the right of dis- posing of all benefices vacant by cession, translation, or de- privation. Empire had been the object of the former popes : money that of tliese more low-minded pontiffs. The wishes of Italy and of Europe, joined with the evils a. d. arising from absence from Rome, induced Gregory XL to re- 1376 move the papal chair back to that city. Soon afler occurred the famous schism. On the death of Gregory, the cardinals, 1378, who were mostly French, assembling to elect a successor, the populace collected and insisted on his being an Italian. The archbishop of Bari, a Neapolitan, wag elected, and he took the name of Urban VI. For some weeks the cardinals obeyed liim ; but, disgusted with the harshness of his temper, they conspired against him, and he threw several of them into ])ri.son : the rest fled to Fondi, and, with the opinion of Nic- colo Spinelli, the great Neapolitan lawyer, they proceeded to a new election, under the pretext of the last having been ef- fected by intimidation. They chose the cardinal Robert, who took the name of Clement VII., and fixed his seat at Avignon. Urban tortured and even executed some of the cardinals and prelates who were his prisoners. Italy, Germany, England, and the North adhered to Urban; France, Spain, Scotland, and Sicily to Clement. All wished both to resign, and the cardinals to proceed to a new elec- tion ; but neither party would recede. Three pontiffs suc- ceeded Urban ; Benedict XIII. was the only successor of Clement. The cardinals on both sides at last deserted their heads, and a general council was summoned to meet at Pisa. 1409. In this assembly the two pontiffs, Gregory XII. and Benedict Xin., were deposed, and Alexander V. elected; but Spain adhered to Gregory, and Benedict was supported by others, so that now tljere were three rival pontiffs. Another council 1414. was held at Constance, in which, under the pretext of his enormous vices, John XXIIL, Alexander's successor, was deposed ; Gregory submitted, and the obstinate Benedict was deposed. Otto Colonna, a man of great prudence, was elected under the name of Martin V. To curb the papal power, to reduce the government of the church from an absolute to a Ihnited monarchy, was the ob- 21* 246 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART ll ject aimed at in the council of Constance; and it declared that a council has received, by divine right, a power in mat- ters concerning religion, to which every other, even the papal, must submit. This council, it is to be observed, wa3 composed not merely of bishops, like the ancient ones, but of abbots, deputies of universities, ambassadors of princes, theo- logians, and doctors of law. To obviate the influence of the numerous Italian bishops, the council was divided into four nations, Italian, German, French, and English, with equal rights, and the majority of the four was to decide each ques- tion. A committee of reformation was appointed ; but the art of the Italians, by taking advantage of the national jeal- ousies, prevented any thing effectual being done. Martin V., when elected, lost no time in dissolving the council. It was decreed that another council should be held in five, a second in seven years, and then one every ten years. The . jj first was called at Pavia, but owing to the plague was re- 1433. moved to Siena, and nothing effected in it. The second was convoked to Basle ; but Martin dying before it met, Eugenius IV. attempted to transfer it to Italy, where the papal strength lay. After several years' contest, Eugenius, by his preroga- tive, removed it, under pretext of the union he was nego- tiating with the Greek church, to Ferrara, and thence to Florence. But the assembly at Basle still sat, and proceeded in the w^ork of reformation, abolishing annates, reservations, 1439. and other papal abuses. They proceeded so far as to depose Eugenius, and elect Amadeus, the first duke of Savoy, who had laid down his dignity, and retired into private life. Few states concurred in this assumption of power ; the party of the fathers of Basle became weaker every day; and Nicholas 449. v., the successor of Eugenius, easily prevailed on Felix V., as Amadeus was called, to resign. The popes ever after dreaded the idea of a general council, of which Europe has since seen but one, and that called greatly against the incli- nation of the pontiff. All the future popes, but one, were Italians ; they learned to confine their views to Italy, where, as a temporal power, they established their influence in their own states, and engaged in the political projects of their neighbors. A general spirit of opposition to the encroachments of Rome, and of the church in general, prevailed throughout Europe, precursive of the reformation. England in this led the way : her kings and parliaments set barriers to ecclesias- tical encroachments: the tenets of Wickliffhad many favor- ers ; and parliament even went so far as to press Henry IV. to seize the temporalities of the church. Opinions similar to CHAP. VII. DECLIISTE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 247 those of WicklifF were preached in Bohemia by Huss and Jerome of Prague; and the base act of treachery sanctioned by the fathers at Constance against the former, tended to cast an additional odium on the church. Italy — The Republics. In the 13th century the republics of Italy were numerous and independent. They may be regarded as forming four great clusters, according to their situation. 1. Central Lom- bardy, containing Milan, Cremona, Parma, Pavia, Brescia, Bergamo, Piacenza, Mantua, &lc. 2. The march of Verona, in which were Verona, Vicenza, Padua, and Treviso. 3. Romagna, where were Bologna, Imola, Modena, Faenza, Ferrara, &c. 4. Tuscany, containing Florence, Pisa, Lucca, Siena, &c. All of these were split into the Guelf and Ghibilin fictions. In the first, Milan was Guelf, and her influence made the whole except Parma and Cremona such: in the second, Ezzelin da Romano, a nobleman of the country, to whom Frederic 11. had given his natural daughter in mar- riage, by his talents and his merciless cruelty made the Ghibi- lin cause triumphant: in the third, the Guelf party predomi- nated : in the fourth, Florence headed the Guelf, Pisa the Ghibilin party. To these we are to add the great maritime republics, Genoa on the west, and Venice on the east, and we have a view of the state of northern and central Italy. Under their republican forms of government these cities were opulent, industrious, and powerful ; but they were harassed by external and internal discord, and before the end of the thirteenth century all those of the first three classes were under the rule of signori, answering to the Greek tyrants. In Milan the Torreani and then the Visconti ruled ; in Verona the Delia Scala ; at Ferrara and Modena the Este ; at Padua the Carrara ; at Mantua the Gonzaga. Of these by far tlie most powerful were the Visconti ; and though mur- der, assassination, and every crime were freely perpetrated by all, none equalled them in atrocity. Florence, like the other cities, was divided into Guelfsand Ghibilins. She had a farther division of parties, called the Neri and Bianchi. There were here, as elsewhere, powerful noble families, the Donati, Amidei, Uberti, Buondelmonti, wliose feuds filled the city with confusion and riot. The citizens were divided into arts, or companies of the different trades, each of which had its own council, consul, and gon- faloniere, to whose standard all the members repaired in any ^ ^ commotion. The government had been in the hands of the 1260 nobles ; but in 1266 it was thrown chiefly into the hands of 248 OUTLINES OF FIISTORY. PART II. the commons. Feuds ran high between the two orders. A y^. n. new order of plebeian nobility arose, and chiefly administered 1336. the government : the people disliked both. An officer, named the Captain of Defence, was appointed with great criminal 1342. jurisdiction, but was speedily expelled for his tyranny. Soon after, Walter de Brienne, duke of Athens, was intrusted with unlimited military and judicial power, with a view to his curbing the nobility; but he aimed at the tyranny, and conspiracy expelled him. Though incessantly changing her form of government, Florence, from the animating influence of the principle of liberty, increased in wealth and consequence. She engaged in wars with the powers of Lombardy, and made the con- quest of Prato, Pisa, and other places in Tuscany. Her wars were carried on by mercenary troops, which, under their condottieri, answered to the companies of adventure in France. Pisa was one of the first Italian cities that was distinguish- ed by naval armaments. In the 11th century she conquered Sardinia from the Moors, and also obtained a short possession of the Baleares : Corsica and Elba also belonged to her. Her commerce was, of course, extensive. She derived great ad- vantage from the crusades. In 1119, war broke out between Pisa and Genoa, which lasted the greater part of two centu- ries. The sea-fight off" the isle of Meloria, in 1284, gave the power of Pisa its death-blow. She ceased to be a mari- time power, gradually declined, and at length became subject to Florence. Genoa rose into importance coeval with Pisa. Her pros- 1261. perity increased rapidly on the recovery of Constantinople from the Latins, in which event she aided. Palseologus as- signed the Genoese the suburb of Pera, where their colony lived in independence, under a magistrate sent from home, and they thence carried on an extensive trade with the coasts of the Black Sea, on which they erected factories, and with the inland country. Rivalry ensued between them and the Venetians: several hard-fought actions took place, particu- larly one in the Sea of Marmora, where the Genoese fought single-handed against the Venetians, Catalans, and Greeks. o'tS. The most important was the war of Chioggia, where the Genoese, after defeating the Venetian fleet, entered the la- gunes of Venice. Certain of reducing the city, the Genoese admiral, Doria, refused the most advantageous offers of peace. The Venetians, gathering courage from despair, equipped a fleet, closed up the passage of the lagunes, besieged the CHAP. VII. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 249 Genoese in the island of Chioggia, and at length obliged tliem to surrender. From that period dates the decline of Genoa. Like the other Italian cities, Genoa was harassed by the feuds of her nobles. Tlie leading families on the Guelf side were the Grimaldi and Fieschi ; on the Ghibilin, the Doria, and Spinola. As at Florence, the nobles were reduced, and a plebeian oligarchy, the Adorni, PVegosi, Montalti, took their place. Yet it is remarkable that the Genoese fleets wore al- most always commanded by one of the nobles. The revolu- tions in Genoa were incessant. In 1339, the chief magistrate, named Doge, was first appointed. Venice owed her origin to some citizens of Aquileia, who, in the beginning of the 5th century, fled to the islands at the mouth of the Brenta, and built the town of Rivoalto, aft;er- wards called Venice. This town gradually increased in popu- lation and strength. Till the 10th century, it continued sub- ject to the Eastern empire. At this time Venice mado several acquisitions in Dalmatia. She very early applied to commerce, and she derived very great advantages from the crusades. On the taking of Constantinople by the Latins, in which her fleet, under Henry Dandolo, the doge, bore a great share, she got three-eighths of the city and of the provinces, and she pur- chased the shares of some of the other spoilers. It was thus she obtained Candia and the Ionian isles. The trade of Ven- ice was chiefly carried on with Syria and Egypt, and she was the great medium of conveying the productions of the East into Europe. After the war of Chioggia, Venice began to turn her thoughts towards territorial acquisitions. Before that period, the Venetians had united with Florence to check the career of Mastino della Scala, lord of Verona, and had gained Treviso. They looked on with indifference at the progress of the Visconti of Milan ; but when, in the confusion that followed the death of Gian Galeazzo Visconti, Francesco Carrara, lord of Padua, had seized Verona, the Venetians, who hated that family, took arms, and reduced both Padua and Verona, and the duke of Milan ceded Vicenza to them. Venice afterwards, in alliance with Florence, against Filippo Maria Visconti, took into her service Carmagnola, the cele- brated condottiere, and she acquired Brescia and Bergamo, and reached the Adda, which she never passed. a. p. The government of Venice, at first, perhaps, merely fede- 697. rative, had become, under its Doge, or duke, nearly an elec- tive absolute monarchy. Limitations were gradually laid on his power, which ended in making the doge little more than pageant, and converting the government into a jealous close 250 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. FART 11 aristocracy, which, with its various councils and intricate mode of election, has lasted down to near the present time. Italy — Naples and Sicily. 1254. On the death of Conrad, son of Frederic II., his natural brother Manfred occupied the kingdom in the name of Con- radin, the young heir. The Ghibilin party looked up to Man- fred as their head : the pope hated him as the son of Frederic. The pope, as superior lord, offered the kingdom which Man- fred had usurped to Charles of Anjou, brother of St. Louis, who, with his brother's consent, led thither a crusade, as it 1266. was called. Manfred fell in the field. Conradin, afterwards attempting to recover his inheritance, was taken prisoner, 1268. and judicially murdered by Charles, But Constance, daughter of Manfred, was married to Peter III. of Aragon, who, in her right, claimed the crown. Charles was master of Provence, Naples, Sicily, head of the Guelf party in Italy, and created by the pope vicar-gene- ral in Tuscany. John of Procida, one of the adherents of Manfred, was living in Valencia, watching an opportunity of revenge. The Neapolitan barons were French, or in that interest; but Sicily was treated as a conquered country, the women, after the usual manner of the French, insulted, and the indignation of the people thereby excited, which was in- creased by the speeches of John, who went in disguise through the island. Pope Nicholas III., adverse to the An- gevin dynasty, the court of Constantinople, the king of Ara- gon, all entered into the project of John of Procida, and when 1253. the massacre of the French, called the Sicilian vespers, an utterly unpremeditated act, occurred, the fleet of the king of Aragon was at hand, and the Sicilians gave him the crown. A war ensued, in which the king of Naples w^as supported by the kings of France and Castile, and by the pope. Peter dying, left Sicily to his second son, James ; and Alfonso, king of Aragon, made peace, engaging not to assist Sicily. James, on succeeding to his brother in Aragon, renounced Sicily ; but the Sicilians transferred the crown to his brother Frede- ric, and maintained the war against Charles II. of Naples, and the king of Aragon ; and peace was at length concluded, a300 on condition that Frederic should retain for life the kingdom, which then should revert to tlie crown of Naples. 305. On the death of Charles II., the crown was disputed be- tween Caribert, the son of his eldest son Charles, who had died king of Hungary, and Robert, his eldest living son. The point was referred to the pope, the feudal lord of the king- dom, who gave sentence in favor of Robert. The latter leav- CHAP. VII. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. ^^51 inof no male issue, the crown descended to his grand-daughter Joanna. She was espoused to her cousin Andrew, son of Cari- bert, king of Hungary ; but the manners of this prince were a. d brutal, and he was assassinated, an act of which the guilt 1345 was laid on the queen. Louis king of Hungary invaded Na- ples, to avenge the death of his brother. Joanna fled, but afterwards regained her crown. The queen had no children. The king of Hungary, and Charles duke of Durazzo, were the only male descendants of Charles I. The latter was mar- ried to the queen's niece, and was regarded by her as heir to the crown. Offended with the queen, Charles invaded her kingdom, took her prisoner, and had her smothered in prison. 1378 But Joanna had adopted Louis of Anjou, uncle to Charles VI. of France. He easily entered on Provence, and led 30,000 men to Naples, but he eifected nothing. Charles IIL, now, as he thought, secure, accepted the crown of Hungary. His son Ladislaus, only ten years of age, succeeded him in Naples. The party that had called in Louis then invited his son Louis IT., and put him in possession of the greater part of the kingdom. But as Ladislaus grew up, he displayed su- perior qualities ; the Angevin barons came over to him, and he recovered the whole of the kingdom. On the death of this able prince, his elder sister, Joanna II., a weak, vicious woman, came to the throne. The kingdom fell into anarchy. Sforza Attendolo, the great constable, and Ser Gianni Carac- cioli, the seneschal, were the most powerful individuals. Sforza called in a pretender to the crown, Louis III. of An- jou. Caraccioli persuaded the queen to adopt Alfonso, king of Aragon and Sicily. The successors of Frederic I. of Sicily, were weak or in- fant princes. Maria queen of Sicily had married Martin, son of the king of Aragon, to whom, when dying, she left her i409 crown ; and on his death his father Martin, king of Aragon, had taken possession of Sicily as heir to his son. Alfonso gladly embraced the offer of Joanna ; but jealousy of him, or some other cause, induced her to revoke her deed, and adopt Louis ; and the queen's and the Angevin parties united were too strong for Alfonso. Louis dying betbre the queen, she substituted his brother Regnier. When Joanna died, Regnier was a prisoner in Burgundy; but his wife maintained his cause with spirit. Fortune, however, sided with Alfonso, and he founded the Aragonite line at Naples. Alfonso, having no lawful issue, was anxious to transmit Na- ples to his illegitimate son Ferdinand. Chiefly with this view he became a party with Sforza duke of Milan, and the republics of Venice and Florence, in the quadruple league, 1455 252 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. for the maintenance of peace in Italy ; and the pope and t\m Neapolitan parliament confirmed the succession of Ferdinand, A. D. But the character of this prince was dark and vindictive, and 1461. the barons offered the crown to John, son of Regnier of i^n- jou, who made an ineffectual attempt to obtain it. Germany. 273, Afler Germany had been three-and-twenty years without a head, the electors fixed on Rodolf of Habsburg-, a prince of ancient family and of considerable possessions in Switzerland, and along the Upper Rhine. Rodolf was an able, sensible monarch, and he turned all his efforts to the establishing of peace and tranquillity within the empire. He naturally sought to aggrandize his family. The rebellion of Ottocar, king of Bohemia, gave him the disposal of Austria, Syria. 1283. and Carniola, which, with tlie consent of the diet, he bestowed on his son Albert, and Carinthia on Meinhard landgraf of Tyrol, whose daughter Albert married. This was the origin of the possessions of the house of Austria. The electors refused to choose Albert king* of the Romans 1291. in his father's lifetime; and on the death of Rodolf they gave the imperial dignity to Adolf of Nassau. Albert, how- ever, raised a strong party against him, and got himself 1298. elected. Adolf fought for his dignity, but fell, as was said, by the hand of Albert. Albert was active, ambitious, un- quiet, but unsuccessful in his projects, and hated by his neigh- 1308. bors and subjects. He was murdered by his nephew John, from whom he withheld his inheritance. Some of the princeb are said to have been consenting to the deed. 1309. Henry VII. of Luxemburg was elected. His reign is chiefly distinguished by his attempts to establish the imperial authority in Italy. In this he met some partial success, but died suddenly in the midst of his projects. 1314. Louis of Bavaria was chosen by one part of the electors, Frederic of Austria by another. The battle of Miihldorf 1322. finally decided in favor of Louis. This emperor also crossed the Alps to contend against the pope and Robert king of Na- ples ; but he derived little credit from his expedition : his whole reign was occupied in the contest with the holy see. 1347. Charles IV., son of John king of Bohemia, next purchased the empire. This monarch loved pomp and parade, and lived 355. in great splendor. He annexed JBrandenburg and Silesia to Bohemia. By his Golden Bull he ascertained the preroga- tives of the electoral college. He procured his son Wences- laus to be appointed his successor. 1378. Wenceslaus was addicted to pleasure. His Bohemian no- CHAP. VII. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 253 bles, thinking- he favored the people too much, confined him, a. d. under the pretext of his violence and immorality, and gave 1394 him in custody to the duke of Austria. He escaped. The 1400. spiritual electors and the palatine deposed him, and he gave a willing assent to this act, satisfied with his paternal king- dom of Bohemia. Frederic duke of Brunswick was chosen in his stead, but was murdered immediately afterwards by his private enemies. Rupert, palatine of the Rhine, was then chosen. On his death, the choice fell on Jobst of Luxemburg, margraf of Mo- 1410 ravia. He, too, died within a short time, and all the voices declared for Sigismund, brother of VVenceslaus, and king of Hungary. Few princes have united more crowns than Sigismund. By his first wife, Mary of Anjou, he got Hungary, Dalmatia, Bosnia : his brother left him Bohemia ; the pope gave him the imperial crown, and to these he joined Moravia, Lusatia, Brandenburg, and Silesia, The chief stain on the memory of Sigismund is his violation of the safe-conduct given to Huss when going to Constance. This involved him in an eighteen 1414. years' war against Zisca, Procopius, and the other Hussite leaders. Sigismund had been engaged in war with the Otto- mans, and narrowly escaped being taken by them at Nico- 1396. polis. His poverty obliged him to sell several of the imperial rights and claims. The imperial dignity now pa,ssed to the house of Austria, there to continue. Albert duke of Austria had married the heiress of Sigismund. But the Hungarians made it a condi- tion at his coronation that he would not accept the imperial crown. The Bohemians also made conditions with him. The 1437 electors vainly tried to induce the margraf of Brandenburg to accept the crown. At length the Hungarians gave their con- sent, and Albert was elected emperor ; but just as he was en- 1438. gaging in active hostilities with the Turks, he was surprised 1439 by death. Ladislaus, the posthumous son of Albert, succeeded his 1440 father in Hungary and Bohemia. Albert's second cousin, Frederic duke of Styria, was chosen emperor. His long reign of fifty-three years occupied the most interesting part of the fifteenth century. He was an insignificant prince, yet he had influence enough to have his son Maximilian elected king of the Romans during hip life ; and his posterity still possess the dominions of the house of Austria, all of which were reunited 1493 in his time, or in that of his son. 22 254 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II Switzerland. Switzerland formed a part of the kingdom of Aries or Bur- A. D. gundy, and, with the rest of the dominions of Rodolf, was 1032. united to the German empire. It contained a numerous and powerful nobility, and several rich ecclesiastical lords. Its towns of Zuric, Basle, Berne, and Friburg rose into import- ance. Among the nobles, the counts of Habsburg gradually became the most powerful : they were advocates to several convents, some of which had estates in the ibrest-cantons of Schwytz and Underwald. The people of these cantons re- posed confidence in Rodolf, the first emperor of the house of Habsburg : they distrusted his son Albert, who justified their suspicions ; for, not satisfied with the rights which, as advo- cate to the convents, he possessed over a part of the forest- cantons, he, when elected emperor, sent imperial bailiffs to administer justice in the whole of these cantons. The people were indignant at this attempt to reduce them to servitude. Three men, Stauffacher of Schwytz, Furst of Uri, Melchthal of Underwald, each with ten companions, met by night in a secret valley, and swore to assert the liberty of their country. /308, The three cantons rose in arms, and expelled the imperial officers. Albert was shortly afterwards assassinated by his nephew, Henry VIL, the next emperor, was little inclined to strengtiien the house of Austria; but Leopold, the son of Albert, led a considerable force into the mountains, and was utterly defeated by those brave peasants at Morgarten, the 1315. Marathon of Switzerland, Lucerne now joined the confederacy : before the middle of the fourteenth century it was augmented by the accession of Zurich, Berne, Zug, and Glaris, These eight were called the ancient cantons. Friburg, Soleure, Basle, Schaffhausen, and Appenzel afterwards became parts of the body. The same conflict as wds carried on in Lombardy between the cities and the rural nobility prevailed here, and with the same results. The house of Austria sold the greater part of its possessions to Zurich and Berne, The abbot of St, Gall, and the remaining lay and spiritual lords, entered into leagues with different cantons. At the beginning of the fifteenth century, Switzerland was acknowledged as a free indepen- dent country. Their defeats of Louis XI, and the duke of Burgundy placed the Swiss as soldiers in the very first rank. France. 1270, On the death of St. Louis, his son Philip III,, the Bold, who had accompanied him, made peace with Tunis, and re- CHAP. Vri. DECLINE OP THE PAPAL POWER. 255 turned to Frcnce. Philip engaged in a war with Arag-on, a. d in defence of his uncle, Charles of Anjou's claim to Sicily; in 1270 which war he did not meet with much success. On the death of his uncle Alfonso, who had been invested with the county of Poitou, and part of Auvergne and Saintonge, and who also held in right of his wife, heiress of Raymond VII. of Toulouse, the remains of that fief, Philip reunited the whole to the crown of France. Philip IV., the Fair, a rapacious and ambitious prince, at- 1235.. tempted to reunite, by force, some of the remaining great fiefs. He outwitted Edward I. of England, and got possession of Guienne, which he held for some time. He acted with t?imilar injustice in the case of Flanders; but the total defeat of his army at Courtray by the Flemings gave a check to his 1302. injustice in that quarter. On a sentence of forfeiture passed against the count, Philip took possession of Angouleme and ]ja Marche ; he also acquired the city of Lyons and its terri- tory, which had been given by Louis IV. with his daughter Matilda to the king of Burgundy, and had gone with that king- dom to the empire in 1032. Frederic Barbarossa, having given all the royal rights over the city to the archbishop, St. Louis was called in as a mediator between the chapter and the city, as also was Philip III., who forced the new archbishop to take an oath of fealty to himself At length a spirited archbishop resisted tiiis usurpation, and Philip IV. laid siege to the city, 1310. wliich submitted, and was united to the crown. Philip the Fair was the first king who convoked the states- 1302. general, or the representatives of the three estates of the kingdom. They were first convened to give weiglit to the king's cause in his dispute witli Boniface VIII. ; afterwards 1314. for the imposition of taxes. The reign of Philip was dis- graced by the suppression of the order of Knights Templars, 1311. and the barbarous tortures inflicted on its most distinsfuished members. Philip had three sons, Louis Hutin, Philip the Long, and Charles the Fair, all of whom reigned in France; and one daughter Isabella, married to Edward II. of England. Louis X., Hutin, survived his father but a year. He left 1314 one daughter, Jane, and his queen pregnant. Louis had pos-^ sessed, by his mother, the kingdom of Navarre, and the coun- ties of Champagne and Brie. His brother Philip assumed the regency of both France and Navarre, and then made a treaty ^.vith the duke of Burgundy, uncle of Jane, by which it was agreed, that if the queen should have a daughter, the two princesses, or the survivor, should take the inheritance of their grandmother, and renounce all right to the crown of I'Vance. But this was not to take place till they had attained 256 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II the age of consent, when, if they should refuse, their clai?n was to remain, and right to he done them. Philip was mean- time, as governor, to receive the homage of the vassals, and govern all these realms. In case of the birth of a male heir, the treaty was not to take effect. The queen brought forth a son, who died within four days. The treaty was now evi- dently become absolute, and Philip should have governed, as regent or governor, till Jane came of age to accept or refuse A. D. the contract made by her uncle. But, instead of so doing 1317. Philip went to Rheims, and had himself crowned, though o] posed by the duke of Burgundy and by his own brother Charles. He thence went to Paris and convened an assembly of prelates, barons, and burgesses of that city, who declared him their lawful sovereign. The duke of Burgundy defend- ed the rights of his niece, till, on the prospect of a marriage with the daughter of Philip, he gave up, in her name, not only her claim to France, but her right to Navarre and Champagne. This is the first occasion on which the right of females to tlie crown of France was ever discussed, 1322. Philip died, leaving three daughters, and his brother Charles mounted the throne. Charles, on his death, left his queen pregnant. Philip of Valois, grandson of Philip the Bold, took the regency, and on the queen bringing forth a 1328. daughter, he was crowned king. So that the principle of the exclusion of females was now fully established. No com- petitor appeared in France ; but Edward III. of England put in a claim in right of his mother, Isabella, sister to the last three kings. In every point of view this claim was unjust. If the Salic law was not valid, the claims of the daughters of the last three monarchs were superior to his ; if it was valid, all female claims were alike extinguished. But Ed- ward maintained that thouofh a female could not inherit her- self, she could transmit a title to her male issue ; yet here again he was foiled ; for, admitting this distinction, which is contrary to all rule, Jane, daughter of Louis Hutin, was mar- ^ ried and had a son who was nearer to the crown than Ed- ward. The English monarch, however, thought himself strong enough to make his claim good by force of arms, and he commenced that series of wars between France and Eng- land which lasted during a space of 120 years, and cost so much blood and treasure to both. In the reign of Philip the crown acquired Dauphine, left to it by the will of the last of its princes, on condition of the king's eldest son being styled Dauphin. 1350. After the taking of Calais by Edward a truce was con- cluded, during which Philip died, and was succeeded by his CHAP. VII, DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 257 son John, a prince in every way deserving- of a better fortune than he experienced. During the captivity of John, atler the unfortunate battle of Poitiers, France v^^as in a most wretched state : the peasantry, driven to madness by the op- pression and insolence of their lords, broke out into the cele- ^_ p brated insurrection called the Jacquerie^ and every horrid 1358 enormity was perpetrated by them. Charles, son of John, the regent of France, now agreed to the peace of Bretigni, and John was liberated. On some difficulty arising with respect to some of the articles, this honorable prince returned to England to adjust them. He died while there at the Savoy 1364 palace. Charles V,, the Wise, turned all his thoughts to restorinjj France to her former state of power and independence. He broke the peace of Bretigni, and stripped the English of nearly all their possessions in that country. This able, judi- cious, and excellent monarch was, unfortunately for France, 1380. carried off by death, leaving one son, a boy of thirteen years, under the care of three ambitious uncles, the dukes of Anjou, Berri, and Burgundy. During the minority of Charles VI. the nation was dread- fully harassed by excessive taxes, which were wantonly ex- pended. Seditions broke out in Paris and elsewhere, which were severely punished. Wlien Charles assumed the reins 1389. of government, his new ministers proved equally oppressive. A few years afterwards the intellect of the king became de- 1393. ranged, and was never fully restored. The princes returned to power. Burgundy was at the head of affiiirs, but was op- posed by the duke of Orleans the king's brother. The duke 1404. of Burgundy dying, was succeeded by liis son named John Sans Peur : he and the duke of Orleans were reconciled ; but soon after the latter was assassinated in the streets of 1407, Paris, and the duke of Burgundy avowed the deed. The queen and all the princes of the blood united against the assassin ; 3'^et such was his power, that after making a slight apology to the king, he was pardoned, and obiained the management of affairs. The princes took arms under the father-in-law of the young duke of Orleans, the count of Armagnac, from whom their party was named. The dauphin played the two factions against each other ; but he and his next brother dying, the rank fell to Charles, the khig's youngest son. Armagnac, now constable of France, was at the head of affairs. His 1417. severity revived the Burgundian party in Paris ; he made the queen, the infamous Isabel of Bavaria, his enemy, by detect- ing her gallantries. She joined her old foe, the duke of Bur- 22* 258 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. gundy. A horrid insurrection was excited in Paris, and 1418! Armagnac and all his party, to the number of three or four thousand, were massacred in one day. A reconciliation now took place between the duke of Burgundy and the dauphin ; but, at their interview, the duke was murdered by some of the attendants of the latter. Henry V. had renewed the war with France, had won the battle of Azincourt, and conquered Normandy. Filled with rage against the supposed author of the murder, the whole of the Burgundian party, with Philip, son of the late duke, at their head, and joined by the queen, agreed to the treaty of 1420. Troyes with Henry, in which it was stipulated that on his marriage with Catherine, daughter of Charles VI., he should become regent, and succeed to the kingdom on the death of his father-in-law, to the exclusion of the dauphin and all the princes of the blood. Henry, during two years, governed the north of France, and his infant son, Henry VL, was, on the 1422. death of Charles, proclaimed king of France and England. Charles VII. was acknowledged only in the central prov- inces and in Languedoc, Poitou, and Dauphine. The duke of Bedford governed with vigor for young Henry, and the war was carried on to the advantage of the English. Charles, though brave and talented, was sunk in despair and pleasure. At length, the heroic Maid of Orleans appeared ; the affairs of Charles took a new turn ; Burgundy returned to his duty, 1449. ^^^ tJ^^ English were expelled from France. Master of his kingdom, Charles turned all his thoughts to restoring and extending the royal authority. He suppressed some risings of the nobles, and he formed his celebrated companies of or- dinance, a body of about 9000 cavalry, the first standing army maintained in Europe. 1461. Louis XL, the Tiberius of France, showed the power es- tablished by his father to be a despotism. The nobility saw 1464. ^^^^ approaching ruin of their independence. A confederacy, named The League of the Public Weal, was formed against the crown, in which all the princes and great vassals shared, headed by the king's brother, Charles duke of Berri. By the peace of Conflans Louis was compelled to give Charles the duchy of Normandy as an appanage ;* but he soon deprived 1442 ^^™ ^^ ^^' ^^d ^^ ^^^t gave him Guienne, where he died. Having diverted by money the invasion of Edward IV. of England, Louis turned all his thoughts to oppose the duke of Burgundy. * An appanage was a provision made for a younger son of a king of France. It generally consisted of an extensive fief held of the crown. CHAP. VII. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 259 John h"*d given the duchy of Burgundy as an appanage to his third son Philip, and by marriage with the heiress of the count of Flanders he had gotten that province, Artois, Franche-Comte, and the Nivernois. Philip the Good, his grand- son, had acquired all the other provinces that compose the Netherlands. Charles the Bold, the present duke, vi^as proud and ambitious : he engaged in war with Lorraine with suc- cess ; but being offended with the Swiss, he attacked them, a. d. and was defeated at Granson, in the Pays de Vaud, and again 1476. at Morat, near Friburg, with prodigious loss. This day broke the power of Burgundy : Charles, with inferior forces, gave at Nancy battle to the duke of Lorraine, and perished in the 1477 fight. Charles left an only child, a daughter, named Mary. The true policy of Louis was evidently to obtain her in marriage for the dauphin ; but he preferred setting up a claim to the duchy, as having been an appanage, and therefore incapable of descent to females ; and he seized on Artois and Franche- Comte. This and other acts of perfidy incensed Mary, and she married Maximilian, son of the emperor of Germany. Mary did not long survive: she left a son, Philip, and a daugh- 1477 ter, Margaret. At the peace of Arras, the latter was con- tracted to the dauphin, and Franche-Comte and Artois were 1482. to be her dower. In this reign Provence was united to the French crown, by the will of Charles of Anjou. Charles VIIL was but thirteen years of age on the death 1483., of his father. Louis had appointed his daughter Anne, mar- ried to the lord of Beaujeu, to be regent. This was contested with her by the duke of Orleans, afterwards Louis XIL ; but the lady of Beaujeu stood her ground, and ruled France, in spite of the Orleans party and their ally the duke of Britany. This last duke, like the duke of Burgundy, died leaving an only daughter. Her hand was sought by the duke of Orleans, whom she preferred herself, by the lord of Albret, of the family of Foix, and by Maximilian king of the Romans, now a widower. The French regent carried on a vigorous war against Britany. The duchess Anne, having no other means of escaping Albret, was married by proxy to Maximilian; but 1489 was ultimately compelled to espouse Charles VIIL, who was already betrothed to the daughter of Maximilian. This last was enraged at the slight put on himself and his daughter, but was appeased by Charles restoring Artois and Franche- Comte. Thus was France, at length, consolidated into one great monarchy : the feudal system was at an end ; no internal dis- 260 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II turbances were to be found, and she could now enter with dignity on the large theatre of Europe. England — The Plantagenets. 1274. Edward I., from tlie commencement of his reign, directed his attention to the correction of abuses and the exact admin istration of the laws. While thus engaged, an opportunity offered of interfering in Wales, and be reduced that country 282. under the crown of England, from which it has never since been separated. A dispute arising about the right to the suc- cession to the Scottish crown, that nation referred the ques tion to Edward. The English king appeared with a large army on the frontiers, advanced a claim of feudal superiority over that king"dom, to which the Scots were forced to submit, and he then gave the crown to the candidate whose claim 12%. appeared best founded. The Scots- soon after took arms for their independence. Etlward entered and conquered the whole country ; but still the spirit of the nation rose, and Ed- ward died on an expedition against that kingdom. It is gratifying to see vice punish itself: by his eagerness in this, flagrantly unjust attempt on Scotland, Edward nearly lost Guienne to the French king ; the parliament, of which the commons were now become an essential part, acquired vigor, 1299. and the king was forced to give the Confirmation of tlie Char- ters by which the charters of Liberties and of the Forests; were confirmed, and to bind liimself to levy no contributions without the consent of the people. Edward was a monarch of great talent and capacity. 1307 Edward II. was the very opposite of his father; he aban- doned himself entirely to the direction of his favorites, at first of Piers Gavestone, and, after his death, of Hugh Spencer. In his wars with Scotland he reaped nothing but disgrace. His army was utterly defeated by the Scots at Bannockburn. Edward was married to Isabella, daughter of the king of France. She and the nobles conspired and deposed the king, and he was barbarously murdered by his keepers at Berkele}' castle. A mild, inoffensive prince, he was unfit for those tur- bulent times. 1327. Edward III. was but fourteen years old when his father was deposed, and the queen was declared regent during his minority. She and her paramour Mortimer governed with such tyranny, that Edward was enabled to seize the reins of government, and to have Mortimer executed for his crimes. Unjust and expensive wars with France and Scotland, in which, no doubt, brilliant victories were g-ained, occupied nearly the whole of this reign. Owing to the king's conso CHAP. VII. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 261 quent great demand for supplies, parliament increased in power and influence, and three great principles were estab- lished ; to wit, the illegality of raising- money without con- sent; the necessity of the concurrence of the two houses for any alteration of the laws ; and the right of the commons to inquire into public abuses, and to impeach ministers. Edward instituted the order of tlie Garter. His reigfn was the noon of chivalry, of which himself and his son, the Black Prince, were the mirrors. ^, u, Richard II., son of the Black Prince, succeeded his grand- 137 father, at the age of eleven years. In the fifth year of his reign broke out, in consequence of oppressive taxation, the 1381 great insurrection of the villeins, headed by Wat Tyler, Jack Straw, and others, in the suppression of which the king showed such courage and presence of mind as gave great hopes of his future excellence. But these hopes were de- ceived: Richard was proud, indolent, fond of pomp and ex- pense, and attached to favorites. Various methods were em- ployed to restrain him, but without effect : he had succeeded in obtaining power nearly absolute, when the duke of Here- ford, who had been unjustly banished, returned, during the king's absence in Ireland, to claim the inheritance of his f ither, the duke of Lancaster. All ranks and orders flocked to his standard ; the king, on his return, was deserted by his troops; he threw himself into Flint castle, where, induced by the base treachery and perjury of the earl of Northum- berland, he surrendered. He was led to London, deposed by parliament, forced to abdicate, confined in Pomfret castle, and there murdered. 1399 Richard had no children; he had declared his cousin, Roger Mortimer, earl of March, son of Philippa, only daughter of Lionel duke of Clarence, second son to Edward III., his suc- cessor. Roger was killed in Ireland, and his eldest son was a boy of but seven years of age. Henry duke of Lancaster was son to John, third son of Edward III. ; he had therefore evidently no right to the crown. But on the deposition of Richard he made a challenge of the crown, in terms in which were strangely mingled right of descent,* conquest, and merit. At all events, he was placed on the throne by the unanimous voice ^^ lords and commons ; and as with Henry's small means it is idle to talk offeree, he was plainly a lawful * It was a vulvar notion that Edmund earl of Lancaster, and not Edward I., was the eldest son of Henry III.; but on account of some personal de- formity, he had been set aside, and his brother imposed on the nation. The present duke of Lancaster was his heir by his mother; and if that story was true he was the true heir to the crown. 262 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. monarch, and no usurper. The constitution, however, re A. D. ceived advantage from the defect in his title, and the com- 1402. mons advanced greatly in importance and influence. The Percies rebelled against Henry ; but he defeated them and their allies at Shrewsbury, and effectually crushed them. His government was firm and vigorous, and advantageous to the nation ; and, but for the crimes by which the crown was ac- quired, he would be deserving of esteem as a monarch. His mind is said to have been harassed by remorse for what he had done, and no acts of unnecessary cruelty sully his reign. 1431. Henry V. succeeded with universal favor. He was young, brave, affable, and generous. He had not been long" on the throne w^hen he eno-acred in liis wars with France, which gave England the pride of Azincourt, and placed his son on the throne of that country. In the midst of his glory he died in his thirty-fourth year at Paris. 1422. Henry VI. beino- but a year old at his accession, his uncles, the dukes of Bedford and Gloucester, administered the public affairs, and the bishop of Winchester had charge of the king's person. Notwithstanding the great abilities of the duke of Bedford, the English affairs declined in France, and before the king was of age, nearly all the acquisitions of his father in that country were lost. After the death of the duke of Bedford, the duke of Gloucester and the bishop of Winches- ter, now a cardinal, contended for the direction of the king's 1443. councils. In the affair of the young monarch's marriage the cardinal was victorious, and married him to Margaret of An jou, daughter of Regnier, titular king of Naples, a princess of masculine spirit and great ability and address. The duke 1447. of Gloucester was afterwards thrown into prison and mur- dered, a deed in which his uncle the cardinal, and perhaps the queen, was deeply concerned. A claimant to the crown now appeared. Richard duke of York was son to the earl of Cambridge, by Anne, sister of the late earl of March, in whom ended the males of the house of Mortimer. The rights of that family, therefore, centered in the duke of York, who was thus descended by his mother from the only daughter of the duke of Clarence, second son of Edward III. ; whereas the king was descended from the duke of Lancaster, thii'd son of that monarch. The duke of York was a man of most amiable manners, of large posses- sions, of extensive connexions and influence. The loss of France, the hatred of the king's ministers, and, above all, the murder of the duke of Gloucester, had alienated the affec- tions of the people. A large body of the nobility, and the commons in general, sided with the duke of York, and re- CHAP. VII. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 26^} course was had to arms. The battle of St. Alban's gamed a. n by the Yorkists, was the commencement of a struggle which 145.'. lasted thirty years, and in which were fought twelve pitched battles. The battles of Blore-heath and Northampton v/ere 14G0 gained by the York party. In the last the king was taken prisoner : but the spirit of Margaret was unbroken ; she col- lected a large army, to which the duke of York was impru- dent enough to give battle at Wakefield, where he was de- feated and slain. Here the queen and her friends commenced that ferocious system which, being imitated by the other party, casts on these wars such an aspect of horror and barbarity. The head of the duke of York was cut off, and fixed on the gates of York ; his son, the earl of Rutland, was murdered m cold blood ; the earl of Salisbury and other noblemen were executed by martial law. The claims of the duke descended to his son Edward, who gained the battle of Mortimer's Cross. The Yorkists were 1461 defeated at St. Alban's. Edward now assumed the crown by a somewhat irregular popular election. Edward IV. was handsome, brave, affable ; but licentious, and barbarously cruel. The Lancastrians were defeated with great slaughter at Towton, Henry and Margaret fled to Scot- 1461 land ; but the indefatigable queen went to France, and in- ducing Louis XI. to assist her with some troops and money, she returned and raised another army, but was again totally 1464. defeated at Hexham. Margaret fled to France, and Henry, being discovered, was thrown into the Tower. The hopes of the Lancastrians seemed now quite crushed, when a cool- ness arising between Edward and the great earl of Warwick, called the king-maker, the latter entered into a treaty with Margaret, and drove Edward out of the kingdom, and re- stored Henry ; but in less than six months Edward returned, and Warwick was defeated and slain at the battle of Barnet. The very day of this battle, Margaret and her son, prince 1471 Edward, landed at Weymouth. Though at first overwhelmed at the tidings of the defeat and death of Warwick, she re- sumed her wonted spirit, collected an army, and marched to Tewkesbury. Here fortune proved once more adverse; the Lancastrian army was totally routed, the queen and prince taken, and the latter murdered, almost in the presence of Ed- ward. Henry soon afterwards died, murdered, as was said, by the duke of Gloucester in the Tower, and the hopes of the Lancastrians now seemed extinct. Edward V. was, it is said, with his brother the duke of 1483 Vork, murdered in the Tower by their uncle, the duke of Gloucester, who usurped the crown under the title of Rich- 2ii 266 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART 11. ard III. The duke of Buckingham, who had aided Richard in his projects, being discontented, invited over the earl of Richmond, who had sheltered himself in Britany ; but hav- ing taken arms before the arrival of this nobleman, he was seized and executed by order of Richard. Richmond at his landing was joined by many ; Richard hastened to oppose ^. D. him : the engagement took place on the Held of Bosworth. 485. Richard was slain fighting bravely, and Richmond was sa- luted king on the field of battle, by the title of Henry VII. With Richard III. ended the line of Plantagenet, which had governed England with glory, on the whole, during three cen- turies. The new house was called that of Tudor, from the family name of Henry VII. The title of Henry was exposed to all the defects in the original Lancastrian title ; and even supposing that to be good, he was not the true heir of that family ; for he claimed through his mother Maro-aret, sole heiress of the duke of Somerset, sprung from John of Gaunt, duke of Lancaster ; but the line of Somerset derived from, one of the children of John of Gaunt, bv Catherine Swvnford, durinsf the life of his duchess, and was therefore illegitimate, and even adulte- rous; and though Richard II. had legitimated these children, they were never conceived to have any claim to the crown ; and farther, the mother of Henry was still alive. Edward IV. had left daughters, of whose title there could be no doubt, and Henry was to be married to Elizabeth, the eldest of them ; but he had an aversion to that family, and he would not ap- pear to owe his crown to his wife. During all his reign he was very tender on this subject of his title. i486. After a good deal of delay, he married the princess Eliza- beth, but he never loved her. The duchess of Burgundy, sister of Edward IV., raised up two impostors against him, each pretending to be Richard duke of York,* who had es- caped from the Tower ; hut the vigilance of the king easily crushed all attempts against his crown. The chief defect in Henry's character was avarice ; his great object was the de- pression of the nobility, a point the more easily to be effect- ed, as most of them had perished in the civil wars. The landed proprietors obtained power to alienate their estates ; and as commerce had greatly increased, luxury extended, and many of the commons had amassed wealth, the object nearest Henry's heart was rapidly effected, though we are * The fate of this prince and his brother is involved in singular mystery It may very reasonably ba doubted wiiether Perkin Warbeck was an impos- tor or not. CHAP. VII. DECLLNE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 267 not, perhaps, to compliment his sagacity with having- fore- seen it. Wars bettceen France and England. As they were now at an end, the present seems a good oc- casion of giving a consecutive view of these useless and dis- astrous wars. When Edward III. laid claim to the crown of France,* his a. d. first care was to strengthen himself by alliances with the ^'^'^^ duke of Brabant, the count of Hainault, his father-in-law, and other princes near the Rhine ; and as the English had been for some time connected by trade with the Flemings, and that people, who were in rebellion against their earl, were governed by James van Artiveld, a brewer of Ghent, Edward sought to gain that demagogue to his side, and he succeeded in his object. Thus supported, Edward collected an army, and entered France; but nothing of moment oc- 1339 curred in this first campaign, and the funds of the English monarch being exhausted, he was obliged to return home. The following year Edward gained a naval victory over the French, and entered France at the head of 100,000 men ; but Philip declined engaging, and a truce was concluded for a year. During the truce, aifairs took such a turn in Britany as engaged the two kingdoms again in war. Charles of Blois, nephew to the French king, had married the daughter of the duke of Britany, upon whose death the count de Montford, the next heir male, seized the duchy. Feeling he could not hold it against the power of France, he went over to Eng- land, and offered to do homage for it to Edward. Edward accepted the proposal, and sent over troops to assist his vas- sal, Montford had meantime been taken prisoner ; but his wife maintained his cause with masculine energy. This strug- gle was terminated by a truce for three years, on honorable 1343. terms for Edward and the countess. The truce was broken the next year. Edward invaded 1344 Normandy with an army of 30,000 men. Philip advanced 1346 at the head of 90,000. The English king, fearing to be sur- rounded, retreated towards Flanders. The bridges over the Sornme were broken down, and a French force was on the opposite side ; but the English, having discovered a ford, passed over and drove off the French. As the rear-guard of the English was passing, the army of Philip came up ; but, the tide rising, it could not pass, and had to go round by the bridge of Abbeville. Fearing to march over the plains of * See D 22f». ."'t. *268 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART IL Picardy, exposed to the numerous cavalry of tlie FrencJi, Edward resolved to give battle, and he drew up his troops in three lines on a rising ground near the village of Crecy : the French advanced also in three lines ; but they were fatigued with their march, and disordered. The battle began about three o'clock in the day (Aug. 26), and ended in a complete victory on the part of the English. The French lost 40,000 :nen, among whom were several of the nobility, 1200 knights, and 1400 gentlemen. Edward now invested Calais, which surrendered after a ^iege of twelve months. The inhabitants were expelled, and the town peopled with English. A truce was concluded, which the dreadful plague that ravaged Europe at that time caused to be prolonged. During the truce Philip died, and was succeeded by his son John. Charles king of Navarre, sumamed the Bad, son of Jane, daughter of Louis Hutin, entered secretly into cor- respondence with the king of England, into which he drew even the dauphin ; but that prince afterwards repenting, be- trayed the king of Navarre to his father, who threw him into prison. Philip, brother of the king of Navarre, put all his fortresses into a state of defence, and called on Edward for 1356 assistance. The war was renewed. Edward the Black Prince, eldest son of the king of Eng- land, commanded in Guienne. He ventured with an army of 12,000 men to advance into the French territory. John collected a force of 60,000 men, and came up with him at Maupertuis, near Poitiers. The Black Prince offered to sur- render his conquests for a safe retreat : he was refused : he then prepared for battle, and drew up his little army with the utmost skill (Sep. 19). The usual impetuosity of the French hurried them to the attack, and the battle ended in the utter rout of the French army, and the captivity of their king. The generosity of the Black Prince to his captive, only paralleled by that of Alp Arslan,* is well known. John was 1357. led to Bourdeaux, and thence to England, and a truce was concluded for two years. France was now in a complete state of anarchy ; but the truce and the want of money prevented Edward's deriving any advantage from it. At the expiration of the trace, he invaded and ravaged that kingdom ; but finding he could not make a durable impression, he concluded the peace of Bre- 13G0. tigni. The tenns of this peace were, that John should pay three millions of crowns of gold for his ransom ; that Edward ♦ See p 189. CHAP. Vir. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 269 should give up all claim to the crown of France, and to Nor- mandy, Touraine, Maine, and Anjou, for whicJi he was to re- ceive Poitou, Saintono-e, Lagenois, Perigord, the Limousin, Quercy, and other neighboring places, with Calais, Guisnes, Montreuil, and Ponthieu ; all in full sovereignty, no homage for them or Guienne to be due to the crown of France. Charles V. succeeding John, who died soon after the peace of Bretigni, the terms of which were never executed, some of the Gascon nobles appealed to him, as the superior lord, against the heavy taxes laid on them by the Black Prince, in consequence of his expedition to Spain. That able monarch, who had now terminated the disorders of his kingdom, sum- moned the prince to appear in his court at Paris to answer the complaint of his vassals. Edward replied that he would, but it would be at the head of 60,000 men. But his health was declining ; he was obliged to return to England ; and a. d. the war terminated in the English being stripped of Guienne, 1370. except Bourdeaux and Bayonne, and of all their conquests but Calais. During the reign of Richard II. the war was carried on languidly. One of its most remarkable events was the duke of Gloucester, the king's uncle, having the hardihood to march 1380 out of Calais at the head of 2000 horse and 8000 foot, enter the heart of France, and ravage all the country till he joined his allies in Britany. The duke of Burgundy came within sight with a much superior army ; but such was the terror the French felt of the English, that he did not venture to attack them. Some years afterwards, the king of France 1386 made preparations for invading England ; but his fleet was dispersed by a storm, and many of the ships taken by the English. The Gascons put themselves, in this reign, once more under the government of England. Both parties were now anxious for peace ; but as the terms could not be ad- 1396 jnsted, they agreed on a truce for twenty-five years, and Richard was affianced to Isabella, daughter of Charles, e princess only seven years old. On the murder of Richard, the French king made some 1401. show of avenging his death ; but on the princess Isabella being given up, he renewed the truce with Henry IV. Towards the end of his reign Henry began to take some part in the quarrels of the Orleans and Burgundy factions in France : he 1411 sent a small body of troops to the aid of the latter, and after- wards a larger to that of the former. Henry IV. had when dying exhorted his son not to let the 1415 English nation remain long at rest. Henry V. therefore, 23* 270 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART 11 taking advantage of the distracted state of France,* sent am- bassadors to Paris with most exorbitant proposals. He de- manded the crown of France (or at least reserved his right to it), Normandy, Touraine, Maine, Guienne, and the homage of Britany and Flanders, the princess Catherine in marriage, and 2,000,000 crowns of gold as her dower, and the arrear of king John's ransom. The French offered him Guienne and Saintonge, and a dower of 800,000 crowns. Henry forth- with prepared for war; he collected a fleet and army, con- sisting of 6000 men-at-arms and 24,000 foot, at Southampton, landed in Normandy, and took the town of Harfleur. Having dismissed his transports, he was obliged to march his army to Calais by land. An army of 14,000 men-at-arms and 40,000 foot, under the constable d'Albert, was now collected in Nor- mandy. Henry offered to give up Harfleur for a safe passage to Calais: this offer was rejected: he marched by slow jour- neys till he reached the Somme, which he intended passing where Edward had passed, but found it strongly guarded : he at length seized a passage near St. Quintin, and got safely over. He now marched for Calais; but on ascending the heights near Blangi (Oct. 25) he saw the whole French army drawn up on the plain of Azincourt. Henry's army was now reduced by disease and the sword to about 15,000 men. Hig situation was similar to that of Edward at Crecy, and of the Black Prince at Poitiers, and he made the same judicious dis- positions. The French acted with the same impetuosity and imprudence: the final result was similar. Of the French 10,000 were slain, among whom were the constable himself and some of the chief nobility ; 14,000 were made prisoners, among whom were the dukes of Orleans and Bourbon, and many other nobles of high rank. The English lost but forty men. Want of funds preventing Henry, like his predeces- sors, from taking full advantage of this victory, he returned to England, having made a truce with the enemy. During this truce the animosity between the Armagnac and Burgundian parties raged with the greatest violence. Henry collected an army of 25,000 men, and landed in Nor- mandy: several towns surrendered, and, being reinforced with 15,000 more, he formed the siege of Rouen. The queen and the duke of Burgundy now made a treaty with him simi- lar to that afterwards made at Troyes ; but before it was com- pleted the dauphin and duke of Burgundy entered into a secret treaty to share the supreme power, and expel the in- vader. But the murder of the duke taking place, his son in- * See p. 228. CHAP. VII. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL P0\VL:R. 271 stantly formed a leag-ue with tlie king of England, and the treaty of Troyes was concluded. All the north of France was rapidly conquered, and the dauphin driven beyond the a. d. Ijoire. In this state of affairs, Henry V. died. 1422, The duke of Bedford prosecuted the war with vigor. The battle of Verneuil, in which the only army of the king of 1424. France was defeated with great loss, seemed to have given the finishing stroke to his fortunes. Bedford resolved to pene- trate into the south of France, and for that purpose formed the siege of Orleans. Every effort was made to defend this city, 1428 on which the hopes of France now seemed to depend. The siege was tedious, but the English were gradually gaining ground, when that wonderful visionary, Joan of Arc, appeared to restore the sinking destiny of France. A secret horror thrilled the English soldiers, which their officers either shared or could not remove ; defeat attended them everywhere ; the provinces and towns of France returned joyfully to their al- legiance ; the duke of Burgundy was reconciled to his sove- reign, and the English were, in a few years, driven out of every part of France but Calais. Thus, happily for both 1450 countries, ended all the magnificent projects of the conquest of France. Scotland. From a very early period Scotland had been governed by kings. These were frequently engaged in wars and alliances with the northern princes of the heptarchy. When Duncan king of Scotland was murdered by Macbeth, an army was sent by Edward the Confessor against the usurper, and Mal- colm, the rightful heir, was restored to the throne. This prince espoused the sister of Edgar Atheling, and many of the English fled to Scotland from the tyranny of the Con- queror. The Scots began now to make occasional inroads into England. In one of these, William king of Scotland was taken prisoner by Henry II., and, as a part of the condi- tions of his liberty, was forced to do homage for his whole kingdom, the Scottish kings having hitherto done so only for Cumberland, which they held. Richard I., however, re- nounced this right. On the death of Alexander III., near a century afterwards, 1286 a dispute arose about the succession to the Scottish throne. That monarch having left no descendant but a granddaugh- ter, who did not long survive him, the right fell to the de- scendants of David earl of Huntingdon, third son of David 1, ; of these John Baliol was grandson of Margaret, the earl's eldest daughter ; Robert Bruce was son of Isabel, his second 272 OUTLINES OF HISTORY PART II. dauofliter. The rules of succession not bemfj at that time well established, it was a doubtful question which was the true heir. To avoid a recourse to arms, the parliament of Scotland determined to refer the matter to the arbitration of Edward L, a prince extolled for wisdom and prudence, Ed- ward seized this occasion of obtaining the sovereignty of Scotland : he appeared on the frontier with a large army, and compelled all the Scottish nobles, including the two candi- dates, to swear fealty to him as liege lord ; he made them give him possession of the kingdom, and then declaring Baliol the A. D. true heir, put him in possession of it, on his renewing his 1292. oath of fealty. The Scottish nation, and even their king, were indignant at being thus trepanned and degraded ; a secret alliance was formed with France ; a dispensation of the king's oath of fealty was procured from the pope ; and, on being summoned to appear in an English parliament at Newcastle, Baliol re- 1296. fused to attend. Edward entered Scotland at the head of 30,000 foot and 4000 horse, and quickly overran and subdued the entire kingdom. Baliol was forced to submit and implore forgiveness, English garrisons were placed in the fortresses, and earl Warrenne left governor. This earl being oblio-ed to return to Ensrland on account of his health, the administration was left in the hands of Ormsby and Cressingham, who oppressed the people without mercy. A gentleman, named William Wallace, was so provoked as to kill an English officer. Knowing he had no mercy to ex- pect, he fled to the woods and collected a party, with whom he continually harassed the English ; numbers joined him ; several of the principal barons countenanced him ; and the whole country was on the eve of rising, when W^arrenne col- lected an army of 40,000 men, and suddenly returned. Mak- ing an attack on the camp of Wallace, near Stirling, the English were totally routed, and Cressingham slain. The nation now rose, and bestowed on Wallace the title of regent. The English were expelled ; but Edward, who had been in Flanders, returned, collected an army of 80,000 men, and entered the country. The Scots ventured to give him battle at Falkirk (June 22), when they were routed with great 298. slaughter. They still carried on the contest; but Wallace was betrayed by his friend Sir John Monteith, and the mtrepid 305. patriot was executed in London as a rebel. Robert Bruce, who had been in the English service, now stepped forward to defend his own and his country's rights. The Scottish nation rose once more ; the English were driven out of the country, and Bruce was crowned at Scone. Ed- CHAP. VII. DECLINE OF THE FATAL POWER. 275 ward now found he had all his work to do over again ; he sent an army, under Aymer de Valence earl of Pembroke, who defeated Bruce, and forced him to take shelter in the Western Isles. The king- was himself advancing, deter- mined to wreak his vengeance on the Scots, when he sick- a. d. ened and died at Carlisle, with his last breath charging his 13U7 son to prosecute the war. Edward 11. was anxious to get back to England, and after a few feeble efforts he left Scotland. Bruce, who had returned, made himself master of the whole khigdom except a few for- tresses, and even made inroads into England. Edward was roused ; he collected a large force, and entered Scotland. The English army was 80,000 strong; that of Bruce did not exceed 30,000. But he ventured to give them battle at Ban- nockburn, near Stirling (June 14,) where he totally defeated 1314. them. This victor}?^, one of the most glorious ever obtained, secured the independence of Scotland, and reduced to nothing all the hopes founded on the iniquitous attempt of Edward I. One more fruitless effort was made by Edward, and a truce 1323. was then concluded for thirteen years. On the death of Robert Bruce, who left a son, a minor, Edward III. secretly encouraged the son of John Baliol to put forward his claim to the Scottish kingdom, raised a small 1332. army, with which he landed on the coast of Fife, and ad- vanced into the heart of the country, where he defeated the Scottish army of 30,000 men, under the earl of Mar. He then took Perth, and was crowned at Scone. But having dismissed the greater part of his English followers, he was soon after driven back into England. He here made large offers to Edward, particularly engaging to renew the homage which had been given up by Mortimer in Edward's minority, if he would assist him to regain his throne. Edward collected a large army ; the Scots encountered him at Halidon-hill, near Berwick (July 19), and were defeated with the loss of nearly 1333 20,000 men and the chief of their nobility. But still Scot- land was unconquered. The English forces might overrun and destroy the country ; but as soon as they retired, the na- tives repossessed it, and again bade them defiance. David, the son of Robert Bruce, had taken refuge in France, but had returned, and driven Baliol out of Scotland. 1346 At the solicitation of the king of France, with whom he had made an alliance, he invaded England. Queen Philippa, at the head of 12,000 men, met him at Neville's Cross, near Durham (October 17,) and the Scottish king was defeated and taken prisoner. After a captivity of ten years, he was released for a ransom of 100,000 marks. 276 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II A. D. Richard II. invaded Scotland, at the head of 60,000 men 1385. and ravaged the country, as usual; but in the mean time 30,000 Scots retaliated on the west of England, and Richard 1401. returned without having effected any thing. Henry IV. led an army into Scotland to no purpose. The Scots immediately 1402. after invaded England, but were defeated by the Percies at Humbledown. The Scots afterwards aided the Percies in their rebellion. Robert III. of Scotland was a feeble prince : his brother, the duke of Albany, seized the government and aimed at the throne : to effect this purpose, he resolved to remove his nephews; and he threw David, the elder, into prison, where he perished of hunger. Robert, to save James, his younger 1407. son, sent him to France ; but the ship was taken by the Eng- lish, and Henry IV. refused to restore the young prince to liberty. Robert died of grief; and now, by possessing the person of the young king, Henry was able to keep the duke of Albany in dependence, and secure his kingdom from in- roads. He, however, gave the young monarch an excellent education. Ever since the time of Edward III., the French and Scot- tish nations had been in strict alliance against the common enemy. When Henry V. had had such a career of success in France, the Scottish nation and the regent saw plainly that they must submit if that country was conquered, and a 1421. body of 7000 men was sent to the aid of the dauphin, who treated them with great favor. Throughout the war, Scottish volunteers crowded to the French standard ; and, in the reign of Henry VI., the duke of Bedford recommended it as the best policy, to marry the young king of Scots to the king's cousin, the daughter of the earl of Somerset, and give him 1423. his liberty. This was done, and James, during his short reign, proved one of the greatest of the Scottish monarchs. 1437. He was murdered by his kinsman the earl of Athol. During the wars of the Roses, Scotland was too much distracted by factions to be able to take any advantage of the state of Eng- land. In the reign of Henry VII., James IV. gave counte- nance and assistance to Perkin Warbeck; but the war was 1502. happily terminated by the marriage of the Scottish monarch with Margaret, eldest daughter of Henry. Scandmavia. Denmark and Norway we have seen early formed into monarchies. Sweden remained longer divided into small in- dependent districts. The Swedes and Goths at length agreed to form one state, to be governed alternately by a Goth of tlie CHAP. VII. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 277 race of Svercher, and a Swede of that of Eric. The natural y^. d. consequence was endless assassination. In the 14th century 1153. the race of Odis in Sweden was extinct, and a foreigner was placed on the throne. In the same century, the ancient lines in Denmark and Norway ended with Waldemar and Olaf Margaret, daughter of the former, mother of the latter, was heiress to both. She defeated Albert of Mecklenburg king of Sweden, and forced him to abdicate, and then, by the Union 1398 of Calmar, united the three Scandinavian kingrdoms. Mar- garet, having no children, was succeeded by her nephew Eric, of the ducal house of Pomerania, but he was driven out of the three kingdoms. Christopher, a duke of Bavaria, was 1439 invited to Denmark, and the other kingdoms submitted to his government. On his death Christian, son of the count of 1448 Oldenburg, was chosen king of Denmark, and by his mother, who was sister to the count of Holstein, he obtained that country, which was now made a duchy. Norway followed 1469. the example of Denmark ; but Carl Cnutson and Steno Sture maintained the independence of Sweden against him and his two successors. Poland. The Poles are a portion of the Slavonians, the last great race which arrived in Europe. They were at first divided into several small states, for ever at war with each other. When they embraced the Christian religion, they united un- der the government of a duke. In the thirteenth century, 1295. Przemysl, of the house of the Piasti, assumed the royal dig- nity. This race ruled Poland five hundred years, and it ended with Casimir the Great, in 1370. He was succeeded by his 1370. sister's son, Louis of Anjou, king of Hungary, also named the Great. This king left only daughters: Sigismund of Luxemburg, the husband of Mary, the eldest, was king of 1382. Hungary, and Louis had provided for the continued union of the two crowns ; but the Poles and Hedwig, his other daugh- ter, rejected that arrangement, and that princess gave her 1386. hand to Jagellon, great-prince of Lithuania, who with his people embraced the Christian religion. The kingdom flour- ished greatly \mdcr this king : its export of corn was con- siderable. In the reign of his son, by the choice of the Hun- 1437. garians, the two countries were again united ; but this young monarch lost both life and crown in the battle of Varna, 1444 against the Turkish sultan Moorad. His brother Casimir succeeded him in Poland, and was one of the greatest princes of his time. He made great ac- quisitions from the Teutonic order of knights. Casimir reign- 24 278 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II ed nearly half a century, and saw Vladislaus, one of his sons king of Hungary and Bohemia* Hungary, The house of Arpad ruled four hundred years in Hungary, A. D. and ended with Andrew III. On the death of this monarch, 1301. the people were split into various parties; that of Charles 310. Robert, of the Neapolitan branch of the house of Anjou, pre- vailed, and he was called to the throne. His vigor and wis- dom, in the course of a long reign, raised the kingdom to great 1343. glory ; and the long reign also of his son Louis still further increased its power and dignity. But Louis unfortunately 1382. died just as the Ottoman power was growing formidable on the frontiers, and the kingdom was again distracted by fac- 1386. tion. Sigismund, a stranger, was chosen king, and reigned for more than half a century. He lost the battle of Nicopolis to the Turks ; but circumstances prevented their attempting to follow up their victory. Sigismund was succeeded in the empire and in Hungary by his son-in-law, Albert of Austria. 1437. Albert's successor, Ladislaus, being a posthumous child, the Hungarians gave the crown, for his minority, to Vladislaus king of Poland. On his death John Hunniades was made re- 1456. gent, and at the battle of Belgrade he gave an effectual check 1458. to the Ottoman power. The young king lived but two years after Hunniades ; and the nation then chose Matthias the sou of the valiant John Hunniades, to be their sovereign. Mat- thias was the greatest prince of his age, and in his wars with Austria and Bohemia victory always attended him. On his 1490. death, the Hungarians elected Vladislaus, son of Casimir king of Poland, already king of Bohemia, The Ottomans. When the Mongols of Cbingis Khan liad burst through tlie barriers of Khowaresm over Persia and Lesser Asia, Suleiman, 1224. one of the noblest of the Turkish tribe of Oghuz, migrated at the head of 50,000 souls from Khorassan to Armenia. After remaining seven years in that country, Suleiman prepared to return to his former abode ; but chancing to be drowned in crossing the Euphrates at Jaaber, his followers dispersed. A part remained in Syria, another part went to Lesser Asia. Of the four sons of Suleiman, two returned to Khorassan ; the two younger, Dindar and Ortoghrul, retired with four hundred families to the mountains east of Erzeroom, and thence roved westwards, to seek a retreat in the dominions of Ala-ed-deen, the great prince of the Seljookians of Icorium. On their way, they came to where two armies were fighting ; HAP. VII. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. : 279 Ortoghrul chivalrously resolved to assist the weaker, and his aid turned the scale. It was- Ala-ed-deen vi^hom he made victorious over an army of Tatars ; and the grateful sultan bestowed honors and pasture-land on his ally. This land, the cradle of the Ottoman power, is the Sanjak of Sultan Oni, the ancient Phrygia Epictetos. Here they fed their herds on the mountains in summer, and in winter descended into the plain ; and they lived in amity with the neighboring subjects of the Greek emperors. Osman, the son of Ortoghrul, resolved on conquest. His dervishes excited the courage of his soldiers, and he estab- a. u. li&hed a kingdom in Bithynia, of which Brusa, at the foot of 129'3 the Mysian Olympus, became the capital. It is from this monarch that the western Turks derive their appellation of (!)ttomans, or more properly Osmans. In the time of his son Orchan, a great part of Lesser Asia 1326 was subdued by the Turkish arms. The isles of Greece felt their power : the court of Constantinople was split into fac- tions ; civil war raged in the empire ; each party sought the aid of the Turks. John Cantacuzenes, a man of talent and virtue, on ascending the throne, felt that its strength was gone, arid retired to the solitude of mount Athos. His suc- cessor, John Palaeologus, was sunk in pleasure. Under the reign of Orchan the Ottoman institutions, one of which was the formation of the corps of Janizaries {Yeni-cheri, new sol- diers) were established, chiefly under the direction of his brother and vizier, the able Ala-ed-deen. Moorad (Amurath), the son and successor of Orchan, took 1359 Adrianople, the second city of the empire, and made it the European capital of his dominions. By marriage he acquired the greater part of Kermian, and by purchase he gained Hamid. Philippopolis was taken from the Greeks; but Moorad found a more obstinate resistance from the Servians and Bulgarians. He fell at Cossova, assassinated by a valiant 1389. Servian youth. Bayezeed (Bajezet) Yilderim, i. e. Lightning, a brave but headstrong prince, succeeded his lather, and his first act was to put to death his only brother. The forces of Western Europe, Germany, Hungary, and France, commanded by Sigismund, king of Hungary, the counts of Nevers, la Marche, and Eu, the admiral de Vienne, the marshal Boucicault, the lord of Coucy, and several others of the prime nobility of France and Germany, with 60,000 men, advanced to Nico- 1396 polls. Bayezeed led against them a more numerous host. The Christians fought with their wonted valor, but yielded to the numbers and the discipline of the Moslems : their 280 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. leaders were slain or made captive. Sio-ismund escaped to the Danube with five companions, and thence to Constanti- nople. Bosnia was overrun by Bayezeed, and he was pre- paring to invest Constantinople a second time, when the progress of his conquests westwards was checked by the ap- proach on the east of the Tatars under Timoor. Bayezeed A. D. hastened to oppose them. On the plains of Angora he fought 1402. with a courage worthy of his race, but was defeated and taken 1402. prisoner. Grief and vexation caused his death, and the con queror restored his body to the sepulchre of his fathers. The captivity and death of Bayezeed weakened and dis- tracted the Turkish power: the sons of the captive sultan contended with each other ; and it was only by the wisdom 1413. of Mohammed I. and his vizier Bayezeed that the empire re- gained its vigor. His son, Moorad II., a valiant and merci- 1422. ful hero, subdued the greater part of what remained to the Greek emperors. John VII. in vain sought aid in Europe ; in vain he visited Italy, and agreed to an union of the churches. The union was rejected by the Greek clergy, and theological controversy reigned more violently than ever in the falling empire of the East. Moorad having made peace with Hungary, adhered to it faithfully. But while he was at Magnesia, in Asia, the papal legate released the Hungarians from their oath, and they seized this opportunity of assailing the Ottoman do- . minions. King Vladislaus and John Hunniades marched to the Black Sea. Moorad appeared ; the battle was fought at 1444. Varna. In the front of his array Moorad displayed the vio- lated treaty. Victory was long on the side of the Christians, when Moorad, it is said, pointing to the treaty, called aloud on God to avenge their perjury, and at that moment the young king rushed amid the ranks of the Janizaries and fell, and victory declared for the sultan. This excellent prince, twice during his reign, resigned his crown for the enjoyment of a private life, but was each time recalled to the throne by the danger of the state. 1451. Moorad's son, Mohammed II., joined to the valor of his father a greater spirit of enterprise. The doom of Constanti- nople was now fixed. It had stood in magnificence for 1123 years, had seen its western rival more than once open her gates to the conqueror, while itself had but once submitted, and had quickly resumed its dignity ; but now its dynasty and its religion were to change, the rovers of the steppes were to lord it in the palace of the Caesars, and the crescent was to replace the glittering cross on the summit of its great temple. Mohammed invested the city : during fitly days the CHAP. VII. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 281 massive walls were assailed by artillery of enormous size and power. The Turks at length burst in : Constantino, the last of* the Caesars, fell at the breach, sword in hand, with a a. d. courage worthy of the greatest of those whom he represented. 1453. The city was plundered, the inhabitants sold into slavery. The Peloponnesus was speedily overrun, and the . little 1461 empire of Trebizond, which had lasted 258 years, submitted at the appearance of Mohammed. The Palaeologi in the Peloponnesus were forced to yield to the Ottoman arms ; but in Albania, George Castriot (called for his valor by the Turks Scanderberg, i. e. Prince Alexander) resisted the Turkish power with success as long as he lived. The battle of Bel- grade checked effectually the progress of Mohammed on the side of Hungary. The Servians were completely subdued. The voivode of Wallachia, the merciless Drakul, made a more vigorous defence ; but he was defeated, and that country also reduced to submission, Caramania was forced to submit to the rule of Mohammed ; but the knights of Rhodes repelled him from their island. The Tatars* — Timoor. Timoor (i, e. Iron) was descended from Berla, the Emir- 1335. ul-umera of Jagatai, the son of Chingis Khan. The youth of Timoor was spent in freebooting and the chase : in his twenty-seventh year he rendered important military service to the emir Husein of the house of Jagatai, who then ruled over Khorassan and Transoxiana, against the khan of Tur- kestan. The hand of the emir's sister was his reward ; but on her death within four years, Timoor cast off allegiance, and war broke out between him and the emir. On the death of the latter Timoor occupied the throne, and fixed his resi- dence at Samarkund. He turned his arms first against the sultan of the J etans (Getce?) a,nd the shah of Khowaresm, then subdued Khorassan, and ravaged Persia during three years: with the speed of light he now swept over Great Tatary, and shortly afterwards feasted his host on the banks 1391. of the Volga. A campaign of five years wasted Persia; and Bagdad, Mesopotamia, Koordistan, Armenia, and Georgia were conquered by the Tatars. Timoor next poured his 139a hordes over the fertile plains of India. The plunder of Delhi rewarded their efforts, and he pursued the flying Indians to * We consider the rfistinction between Turks and Tatars to have been clearly shown by M. Klaproth: the former are of Caucasian, the latter of Mongol race. Yet the Tatars of Timoor appear rather of mixed race ; at ieasl, Timoor himself is described of a fair and ruddv complexion, very dif- ferent from that of a Mongol. Tartar, the corruption of Tatar, owes its origin to a pun of St. Louis on Tatar and the Latin Tartarus. 24* 282 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PAR'l II the sources of the sacred Ganges. The same year the Tata; conqueror wintered on the plains of Karabagh, west of the Caspian; in the spring he laid waste Georgia, took Sivas, one of the finest and most populous cities of Lesser Asia, and cruelly put the garrison to death ; conquered all the A. D. towns to Aleppo, defeated there the Egyptian army, and took )t01. that city ; and, at length, made a general massacre of the in- habitants of Bagdad, Timoor wintered once more on the plains of Karabagh. The princes whom Bayezeed had robbed of their dominions had cast themselves on the protection of the Tatar, and Ti- moor prepared for war with the haughty Ottoman. Negotia- tion was tried in vain ; Bayezeed was hardened in obstinacy, and in the neighborhood of Angora, on the very plain where Pompeius had defeated Mithridates, the Turkish army of 120,000 men engaged the Tatar host of 700,000. From morn- 1402. ing to night of a burning day (July 20) endured this last battle of either monarch, and it ended in the total rout of the Turkish host, and the captivity of its leader. The tale of the iron caofe is a fabulous leo-end. The Tatars overran all Les- serAsia; Timoor reached Iconiuni. Bayezeed died of apo- 1403. plexy at Akshehr (March 8), and two years afterwards Ti- moor breathed his last on his marcli against China. Timoor left his empire to his grandson Peer Mohammed Jehangheer ; but this prince was unfortunate in the contest for the crown with his brother Khulleel Sultan, and the em- pire eventually fell into the hands of Shah Rokh, the virtuous son of Timoor. But at length the fortune of the house of Timoor was forced to yield before that of the Usbegs; and after a glorious struggle against Shybuk Khan the Usbeg, the able and celebrated Baber retired to Hindoostan, and founded that great empire, the nominal sovereign of which, his lineal descendant, still sits, a monument of fallen great- ness, in Delhi, beneath the protection of a British company of merchants. It was while Baber was on the throne that the Portuguese first appeared on the coast of Malabar. The Turkman tribes of the Black and the White Wether, so named from their standards, had fixed themselves on the western frontier of Persia. On the death of Timoor they advanced into that country : the former tribe established its empire in Aderbijan and the adjacent provinces ; the latter extended its power over nearly the whole of Persia. They encountered the arms both of the descendants of Timoor and the Ottoman sultans. CHAP. VII. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 283 S2)ain. The peninsula contained now four Christian kingdoms, Castile, Aragon, Navarre, and Portugal ; and one Mohamme- 'dan, Granada. Alfonso X., the Wise, king of Castile, was chiefly distin- a. d guished by his attachment to science, and by his code, the 1252 Siete Partidas. His son Sancho rebelled against him, and disquieted the latter part of his life. The reigns of Sancho and his two successors were periods of anarchy and turbu- lence. Peter the Cruel surpassed all his predecessors in 1350. tyranny and crime. A rebellion, headed by his illegitimate brother, Henry of Transtamara, supported by Aragon and Portugal, broke out, and drove him from his throne. Henry was aided by Bertrand du Guesclin and the companies of adventure who had been engaged in the wars between France and England. Peter fled to Guienne, and implored the aid of the Black Prince, promising to give him Biscay in case , he should restore him to his throne. The British prince en- tered Spain, recalled to his standard the companies of adven- 1367. ture, defeated Henry at the battle of Navarrete, and took du Guesclin prisoner. But Peter's ingratitude causing him to retire in disgust, Henry again appeared, and he defeated and 1369. slew with his own hand the savage tyrant. The reigns of Henry II. and his two successors, John I. and Henry III. (1363 — 1406) were tranquil ; and these princes merited the affection of the people by their observance of the laws. John II. being but fourteen months old at his 1406. accession, the government was wisely administered during his minority by his mother and his uncle Ferdinand. On his attaining his majority, the golden period terminated ; the re- mainder of his reign was a series of conspiracies and civil 1454 wars. Henry IV., son of John, was solemnly and unjustly deposed by a party of his factious nobles, who set up his 1465 brother Alfonso against him, and a civil war ensued. These nobles had accused Henry's queen of adultery, and maintain- ed that Joanna, their only child, was illegitimate. Accord- ingly, on the death of Alfonso, his sister Isabel was regarded as the heiress. She agreed to a treaty with Henry, by which 1469 the succession was secured to her ; but Henry took the first opportunity of rescinding the agreement, and on his death the parties had to appeal to arms. Isabel, who was married 1474. to Ferdinand infant of Aragon, was supported by that power. Joanna was betrothed to Alfonso king of Portugal, and her mother was a princess of that family ; she was, therefore, supported in her claim by the strength of that kingdom. The 284 OUTLINES OF HiSTORY. PART li. A. D. 1476 king of Portugal, however, waii defeated at Toro, and all Joanna's partisans gradually subinitted to Isabel. Aragon, though not so extensive as Castile, equalled it in power. Its government was better, its sovereigns wiser, its trade far more extensive. The ^alor of the Cid had given it Valencia; the Balearic isles were added to it; a long and sanguinary contest had, at the commencement of the four- teenth century, brought Sardinia under its dominion ; and in this century it acquired Naples and Sicily. 1410. On the death of Martin king of Aragon, the succession was disputed by five competitors, the count of Urgal, grandson of James, next brother to Peter IV. ; the duke of Gandia, grandson of James II. ; tlie duke of Calabria, son of Violante, youngest daughter of John I. ; Frederic count of Luna, natu- ral son of the younger Martin king of Sicily ; and Ferdinand, infant of Castile, son of the late king's sister. The cortes of Aragon, Catalonia, and Valencia named nine persons, three of each, to hear and decide the claims; and, after solemn de- liberation, the crown was adjudged to Ferdinand of Castile. 1416. This prince was succeeded by his son Alfonso V., who was made king of Naples, where he passed the greater part of his reign, governing Aragon by his brother and successor John 1479. II. On the death of John, the sceptre of Aragon passed to his son Ferdinand, who was married to Isabel queen of Cas- tile, and thus the two monarchies were united into one great kingdom, never again to be divided. Ferdinand now felt him- self strong enough to attack Granada, and end the conflict which had lasted for eight centuries. The war commenced , civil dissension rent the Moorish kingdom ; a party aided the Christian invaders ; yet the conquest of Granada cost ten years of bloody and incessant warfare. At length it surren- 1492. dered (Jan. 2), and Spain, in full strength and vigor, was prepared for her conflicts with France. The little kingdom of Navarre passed continually by fe- males to the French houses of Bigorre, Champagne, Evreux, Foix, and Albret. But the kings of Aragon had made them- selves masters of the greater part of it. Portugal. Alfonso X. of Castile, had obliged Alfonso, the Restaurador of Portugal, to swear that, for his conquest of Algarve, he 279. would attend him in his wars with fifty lances. Diniz, the able successor of the effeminate Sancho, prevailed on the king of Castile to abolish this mark of the dependence of Por- tugal. 1357. Pedro, the grandson of Diniz, was an able, just, and vigor- CHAP. VII. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 285 ous prince : he contended with spirit against the power of the church, which was excessive in Portui]^al, and held it in check. Ferdinand, his feeble son, left an only daughter, married to John king of Castile, and Portugal was in imminent danger a. d. of losing her independence. 1383 A conspiracy was formed against the queen-dowager, who was regent, and her partisans : John, a natural son of king Pedro, and grand master of the order of Avis, was at the head of it. The conspirators rushed into the castle where the queen resided, and Ruy Pereira slew before her eyes her favorite count Ourem. The people rose; the bishop of Lisbon was flung from the tower of his cathedral ; the queen fled to Castile; the master of Avis was appointed regent. The king of Castile (John I.) entered Portugal with an army. Most of the nobles were on his side : the commons were for Don John, and liberty. At the battle of Aljubarrota, 7000 Portu- 1385 guese defeated more than four times their number of Cas- tilians, and the master of Avis was proclaimed king of Por- tugal. His reign of forty-eight years was the most brilliant period Portugal had yet seen. The Portuguese chivalry 1415. crossed the strait, and conquered Ceuta from the Moors. Dis- covery was prosecuted along the coast of Africa, through the generous efforts of his son Don Henry, and Madeira and the Azores were added to his dominions. While his grandson 1459. Alfonso V. was carrying on war with success against the Moors of Fez, adventurous mariners had passed the line, set- tled on the Gold Coast, and discovered Congo. The Cape of Good Hope was doubled by Diaz. Discovery of America. The progress of the Portuguese along the coast of Afiica, the discovery of new nations, and the knowledge of the in- correctness of the ideas of the ancients respecting geogra- phy, aided by the compass, and the courage and skill acquired by navigating the stormy seas of the north, had prepared men for bold and distant voyages. The great problem was, the passage by sea to India: this the Portuguese sought by the ' circumnavigation of Africa. Christopher Columbus, a Genoese, a man of great naval skill and courage, by reflecting on the magnitude of the earth, now known to be globular, had con- jectured that, by sailing westwards, a ship might, after passing over a moderate space of sea, arrive at the coast of India. Pieces of carved wood, natural productions, and even the bodies of men had been thrown ashore in different places by the waves running from the west: various traditions were current of a land to the west having been formerly visited. 286 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II. All these circumstances combined, convinced Columbus that, by sailing due- west, a ship must, within a moderate space of time, reach a country which, he was firmly persuaded, must be India. Under this impression, he mace, as he thought him- self bound to do, the first proposal of attempting the discovery to his native city Genoa. Meeting with no encouragement there, he applied to the king of Portugal, in whose capital he resided ; but Don John was too firmly bent on the course which the Portuguese had been so long pursuing to heariien to him. Columbus now sent his brother Bartholomew to Henry VII. of England : he went in person to Ferdinand and Isabel of Spain. Bartholomew was taken by pirates, and did not reach England for a long time, by which means that coun- try probably lost the honor of the future discovery. Christo- pher, after long soliciting at the court of Castile, at lengtli obtained a small squadron from Isabel, elated with the recent ^ P conquest of Granada. 1492. With three small vessels, carrying but 90 men, Columbus sailed from the port of Palos on the 3d Aug. 1492. He steered westwards, and proceeded a long way without meeting any signs of land : his crews began to grow terrified and muti- nous : Columbus soothed and pacified them. At length, one morning (Oct. 12), the coast and w^oods of St. Salva.dor, one of the Bahamas, rose before them, — and the New World was discovered. Sailing farther on, they arrived at Cuba and His- paniola, or St. Domingo ; and Columbus returning to Spain with intelligence of his discoveries, all Europe was filled with wonder and conjectures. The new country was named West- India, so convinced were men that it could be no other than a part of India, of which they had such indistinct concep- 1493. tions. The next year Columbus discovered Puerto Rico, 1498. Guadaloupe, and Jamaica. In his third voyage he discovered Trinidad, and a part of South America, which he knew not to be a continent. The ungrateful return made to the ser- vices of this great man, are too well known, and too conso- nant to the usual practices of courts, to need mention. Ho 1506. died four years after his fourth and last voyage, poor and neglected, at Valladolid. While Columbus was prosecuting his discoveries to the west, the court of Portugal, having now ascertained Africa to be circumnavigable, had sent a fleet under the command of Vasco da Gama, round Africa, in quest of India. He sailed from the Tagus on the 9th of July, 1497, and on the 18th May, 1498, he reached the port of Calicut, on the western coast of India. CHAP. VII. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER. 287 The middle ages here terminate. They began in ignorance, anarchy, and confusion : kno'wledge and order now regain their dominion. The discordant elements of theocracy, mon- archy, feudalism, and democracy, which had been in ceaseless conflict during this period, have so modified one another, as to make the fit state of transition to the blended form which characterizes that which follows. OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. MODERN HISTORY. CHAP. I. VIEW OF THE STATE OF EUROPE. Introduction. At the commencement of the middle ages the great em- pire of Rome v;as fallen to pieces from internal corruption and decay : the stream of hardy population which poured down from the north had burst all the oppofing- mounds and dikes, and overflowed the whole of the western empire. Taste and learning, long declining, were almost extinct ; the Christian religion, now that of all parts of the empire, was corrupted and debased ; and in that state it was embraced by the rude conquerors, and farther degraded by the admixture of their barbarous tenets and practices. The clergy acquired from the superstitious fears of the people wealtii, influence, and power ; they ruled the laity with despotic sway, and bishops made kings tremble on their thrones: the pope, as head of the church, sought to draw all this power to himself, and then to make it a source of emolument. The ]3apal do- minion had finally attained a height unparalleled in the history of man ; but, like every other empire, its ascent only led to its descent. The extravagance of the papal pretensions became apparent when learning began to be cultivated, and its gradual decline has marked the last period of those ages. One great empire arose in Europe after the fall of Rome ; but it fell to pieces when the vigorous mind which had erected it was gone. Europe was divided into small states, and war, internal and external, raged without ceasing ; a haughty in- dependent nobility insulted kings, and tyrannized over the people. The barbarians of the North and the East, and the en- thusiastic warriors of the Koran, overran, pillaged, and de- stroyed the fairest regions of the West. The intercourse of nations, except in war, was small ; trade and commerce hardly existed ; the merchant was subject to be plundered openly by CHAP. I. VIEW OF THE STA'l E OF EUROPE. 289 the stranger-lord, and to be pillaged by the arbitrary taxation of his own. Gradually the night was seen to pass away ; monarchs be gan to extend their power, and to perceive that it was their true interest to protect the people against the tyranny of tlie nobles, and to bring these last under obedience ; the church used her extensive power for the same purpose ; the people gradually acquired wealth; their towns were secured by charters and immunities granted by the crown or the feudal lord, and where the crown was feeble, voluntary associations secured them from the rapacity of the nobles. The latter ac- quired a relish for luxury : to obtain money, they alienated or let their lands, and soon felt that they had transformed their obedient retainers into sturdy independent yeomen and citizens. The lamp of learning was relumed ; the study of the scho- lastic theology and philosophy, and of the Roman law, sharp- ened men's intellects ; travels into the East enlarged their knowledge of the earth ; the use of the mariner's compass emboldened their navigation ; gunpow^der changed the face of war ; paper, and at length the art of printing, gave a more rapid diffusion to knowledge ; the taking of Constantinople scattered the learning of the Greeks over the West ; schools and universities were numerous ; men were become eager for knowledge ; classical learning was, in Italy, cultivated with ardor, and a strong feeling of admiration for the institu- tions and philosophy of antiquity excited ; the discourses and writings of Wickliffe, Huss, and their disciples awakened be- yond the Alps attention to the important topics of religion ; the discovery of India and the New World filled men's minds with vague aspirations after adventure, conquest, wealth, and knowledge. A universal fermentation was going on. Such was the state of the European mind, at the com- mencement of modern history. The political condition of Europe was chiefly that of extensive monarchies, internally tranquil, and ready to turn their entire forces against each other. We will commence this part by a view of their re- spective conditions. England. The wars of the Roses had greatly thinned the Englisli nobility and gentry : they were weary of civil conflict, and ([uietiy submitted to the arbitrary rule of Henry VII. All the barriers of liberty erected under the Plantagenets were thrown down, and England became in this, and still more in the following reign, nearly an absolute monarchy. The 25 290 OUTLINES OF PIISTORY. PART III daughters of Henry VII. were married, one to I^ouis XII. king- of France, the other to the kinsf of Scotland. Wales ^ j5, was incorporated with England ; over Ireland she held a du- 1509. bious dominion. Henry was succeeded by his son of the same name. Frajice. All the great fiefs had been reunited to the crown. Pushed with power, her sovereign Charles VIII. now, at the invitation of Sforza duke of Milan, put forth his claims to the kingdom 1495. of Naples. At the head of 20,000 French, and 6000 Swiss, he speedily achieved the conquest of it. But the discontent of the Neapolitans, and the league of the pope, the emperor Maximilian, Ferdinand of Aragon and Castile, the Venetians, and the duke of Milan, forced Charles to leave that kingdom. On the banks of the Tanaro, in the Parmesan, the allied forces waited for the enfeebled French army as it emerged from the passes of the Apennines. The French, with a loss of 200 men, routed three times their number, leaving 3000 of them on the plain, 1498. Louis XII., named the Father of his People, asserted his claim to Milan and to N^aples : he conquered them both, but was unable to retain them. Germany. 1493. Maximilian succeeded his father Frederic in the empire. By marriage with the heiress of Burgundy he got all the pos- sessions of that house ; and on the death of his cousin Sig-is- mund archduke of Austria, the Austrian dominions fell to him. The diet of Worms, held during the reign of this emperor, established a perpetual public peace in Germany, by adopting vigorous measures for the suppression of private warfare, and by providing a paramount court of justice — the Imperial Chamber. Russia, Poland, Scandinavia. After casting off the yoke of the Tatars, the Russian princes exerted themselves to establish trade and communication 1505. with Western Europe : Vasilius kept up a good understand- ing with the emperor INIaximilian, and granted great privi- leges to the Hanse towns. The Poles and Russians now engaged in war with each 515. other, and the former lost Smolensko and Pleskov. In Scandinavia the contest for the independence of Sweden was prosecuted. The Russian tsar entered into a treaty of partition against Sweden, with Christian II. of Denmark. CHAP. I. VIEW OF THE STATE OF EUROPE. 291 Switzerland and Savoy. Louis XL, when dauphin, had led a body of troops into a. d. Switzerland, where the reception he met with, combined 1444. with the great victories of the Swiss over the duke of Bur- gundy, inspired him with such a respect for them, that he all ]iis life courted their alliance. His policy was followed by his successors. The Swiss now began to hire out their troops, and they played a conspicuous part in the wars of Italy. An attempt was made by the emperor Maximilian to revive the supremacy of the empire over the Swiss, and bring them under the jurisdiction of the imperial chamber; but in the war that ensued their success was decisive, and an honorable 1499 peace was made with them. Savoy had been latterly enfeebled by minorities. Its dukes were rather good than great princes, Italy. Philip, the last of the vile race of the Visconti, dukes of 1447 Milan, left only an illegitimate daughter, married to Fran- cesco Sforza, the great condottiere who commanded the troops of the duchy. Sforza made himself duke, and gov- 1450 erned with prudence and justice. His son Galeazzo was mur- dered ; but the widow. Bona of Savoy, maintained the ducliy 1478. for her son John Galeazzo. Lodovico Moro, brother of the murdered prince, destroyed his nephew by a slow poison. 1494. Fearing the king of Naples, whose daughter had been mar- ried to John Galeazzo, he excited Charles VIII. of France to assert his claims, derived from the house of Anjou, to Naples, promising him the aid of himself and other Italian powers. But Sforza afterwards joined the league formed against Charles; and Louis XII. advanced his claims to the Milanese, derived from his grandmother Valentina Visconti. He con- 1500 quered and held the duchy twelve years. The house of Este governed as va.ssals of the empire, or the church, with ducal title, Ferrara, Modena, and Reggio; the Gonzaga family ruled at Mantua, the Pico at Mirandola, the Malaspina at Massa, the Grimaldi at Monaco. At Rome, after some excellent, some indifferent popes, the papal chair was filled by Alexander VL, of the Spanish house 1492 of Borgia, a monster who might vie in vice with the Neros and Caligulas of ancient Rome. Llis only plan of politics was to secure a principality in Italy for his enterprising son, Caesar Borgia ; and neither father nor son was deficient in ^he courage and iniquity requisite for the attainment of that 292 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III object. Alexander was succeeded by the warlike Julius II., who added Bologna to the papal states. Venice had acquired the kingdom of Cyprus : she was now at the zenith of her power ; she carried on a lucrative trade with the East, and was highly favored by the Mameluke sul- tans; she was rich, and her army was the best in Italy. The discovery of the route to India by the Portuguese, and the conquest of Egypt by the Ottomans, gave her prosperity its death-blow. At Florence the wealthy and magnificent fannily of the Medici had been gradually increasing in infiuence. Cosimo de' Medici, called the Father of his Country, ^ferted a com- mandinsr influence in the state. After the death of his son Piero, a conspiracy was formed against his grandsons, and Ju- lian was murdered, but Lorenzo escaped. The latter was afterwards restored to his country, and compteted the destruc- tion of its liberties. The independence of Florence, as it was to fall, could not fall by a nobler hand. Lorenzo's patron- A. D. age of literature and the arts is known to every one.. His 1492. death was regarded as an event fatal ta all Italy. Louis XII. and Ferdinand of Spain having entered into a treaty for the conquest and partition of Naples, Frederic, the king of that country, could not resist such formidable oppo- nents. Naples was speedily conquered. The French army was enfeebled by the climate and disease, and disliked hy the- people. The wily Ferdinand and his general, Gonsalvo de Cordova, the Great Captain, took advantage of these circum- stances to drive the French a second time out of that kingdom. The League of Cambi'ay. 1509. Louis XIL, Maximilian, the king of Spain^ and pope Julius 11. entered at Cambray into a league against the Venetians. The republic opposed to them firmness in her senate, skill and courage in her generals, fidelity in her subjects. Jealousy soon broke out among the confederates, and the emperor, the pope, the king of Spain united with the Swiss and the Vene- tians to drive the French out of Italy. Louis was forced tO' give way : the victory of the Swiss at Novara was decisive. 1512. Maximilian, the son of Lodovico Sforza, was restored to the dukedom of Milan. Spain and Portugal. 1477. Before the taking of Granada the execrable tribunal of the inquisition had been planned by the minister Mendoza, and by Salez bishop of Cadiz, and in spite of the opposition of the people, the clergy, and even at first of the pope, introduced CHAP. I. VIEW OF THE STATE OF EUROPE. 293 into Castile. It was directed against the Jews ; Torquemada, a Dominican, was the first great inquisitor ; and the tribunal, ^, ^ in its first year, committed 2000 persons to the flames. Great 1481 opposition was made to it in Aragon ; but it was introduced there by force of arms. Leon, Valencia, and Sicily resisted also, but with as little success. On the reduction of Granada, liberty of conscience had been secured to the Moors ; but a council, presided over by the archbishops of Granada and To- ledo, decided that Ferdinand and Isabel were not bound to keep faith with the infidels, and the Moors were brought within this sanguinary jurisdiction- The erection of this ini- quitous tribunal, and its close alliance with the throne, have been the main cause of the future decline of Spain, and of her being at the present moment the most degraded of na- tions. Portugal was still in her golden age under Don Manuel, commencing her guilty but brilliant career in Asia, Turkey. Mohammed 11. was succeeded by his son Bayezeed, a prmce of mild, peaceable temper. After a reign of thirty years he was forced to resign his throne to his son Selim, one of the 1512. greatest and most cruel of the Ottoman monarchs. Selim commenced his reign by the murder of his brothers and nephews, and the massacre of 40,000 Sheeahs, or dissenters from the orthodox faith, and he engaged in war witli and de- feated, at Chaldiran near Tebreez, shah Ismail, the founder of the Suffavee dynasty in Persia. By force and negotiation he made himself master of Koordistan and Mesopotamia. As Kansoo Ghawree, the Mameluke sultan of Egypt, was the ally of Ismail, war against him was resolved on by Selim. The Mameluke advanced at the head of his array to the fron- tiers of Syria, and on the mead of Dabeek, not far from Aleppo, the hostile sultans engaged. The quantity of the 1616. Turkish artillery, and the inactivity of the Jelban (the second order of Egyptian troops), gave an easy victory to Selim. Gliawree, an old man of eighty years, died at a pool in the flight, and all Syria submitted. Peace was offered to and re- jected by the new sultan, Toomawn Beg. Selim crossed the desert, and entered Egypt. The treachery of Ghazalee, one of Toomawn's generals, and the superiority of his artillery, gave Selim another victory at Ridania, near Cairo, which city was taken, after a gallant resistance, and 50,000 of its inhabitants barbarously massacred. After bravely but vainly fighting for his empire, the "valiant, chivalrous, humane, up- right" Toomawn Beg was token, and, at the suggestions of 25* 294 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III A. D. the traitors Ghazalee and Khair Beg, hanged at one of the 1517. gates of Cairo ; and Egypt was reduced to a province. The last khalif of the house of Abbas was sent to Constantinople, but he died on the way. The Ottoman sultans have ever 1520. since taken that sacred title. Selim died, after a reign of eight years. Persia. During this period Persia witnessed a not unfreqoent oc- currence in the Mohammedan world — the erection of empire on the basis of religion. A family of sheikhs had long dwelt at Erdebil in that country. They passed their lives in the- practice of that mystic contemplation called Sot^eeism, and derived their name of Suffavee from Suffee-ed-deen, one of the most distinguished of their ancestors, who died in the be- ginning of the 14th century. At the close of the I5th cen- tury, Jooneid, one of them, began to meddle m polities, and he was driven from Erdebil by Jehan Shah, the descendant of Chingis, and then prince of the Black Wether. He took refug-e with Uzun Hassan, the powerful chief of the White Wether, who gave him his sister in marriage. Under pre- text of leading his followers against the infidel Gteorgians, he ravaged the country of the prince of Shirwan, against whom he fell in battle. His son Haider trod in his steps. He or- ganized his followers, and made them wear for distincticwi red caps, whence they, and afterwards all the Persians, were called by tlie Turks, in derision, Kuzzil Bashes (Red-heads). He also attacked the prince of Shirwan and besieged him in his castle of Gulistan ; but he fell in a conflict with the troops of Yacoob, prince of the Black Wether, who came to the re- 1488. lief of the besieged. His two sons were taken and confined ; the Yacoob's successor gave them liberty. The eldest, re- belling, was slain ; the younger, Ismael, then but seven years old, was saved by the prince of Ghilan. In the 15th year of his age, Ismail, at the head of 7000 of his adherents, made war on the prince of Shirwan, defeated him, and fixed his throne at Tebreez, the capital of Aderbi- 1501. Jan. He next ravaged a part of the dominions of the peace- ful Bayezeed II. The princes of the Black and the White Wether, and the shah of Mazenderan, were all vanquished by him. All the land from the Caspian to the Persian gulf obeyed him : he extended his conquests beyond the Oxus, and defeated the great khan of the Usbegs. His power was now at its zenith : he engaged in war with Selim I., under pretext of supporting the claims of Selim's nephews, and avenging the massacre of 40,000 Sheahs, slaughtered by order of the CHAP. II. TIMES OF CHARLES V. 295 Sultan. The Ottomans entered the Persian dominions: on the plains of Chaldiran, on the road to Tebreez, the armies of a. d. Ismail and Selim, each of 120,000 in number, encountered : 1514. victory declared in favor of the Turkish artillery, and Te- breez was taken and plundered. Want of supplies forced Selim to retreat, and Ismael subdued Georgia. He died shortly afterwards, and was succeeded by his son, Tamasp. 1523 CHAP. n. TIMES OF CHARLES V. Accession of Charles V. In the commencement of the sixteenth century the largest empire that Europe has seen since the time of Charlemagne, was ruled over by Charles, son of Philip, archduke of Aus- tria, and Joanna, heiress of Ferdinand and Isabel of Spain. From his grandmother he inherited the rich dominions of the house of Burgundy in the Low Countries; the death of Fer- dinand gave him Spain, Naples, Sicily, and the New World. On the death of his grandfather, Maximilian, he got the pos- 1519. sessions of the house of Austria, and he and Francis, king of France, becoming candidates for the imperial dignity, the majority of the electors declared for Charles. The Turks, under the warlike Selim I., were now the enemy dreaded by Europe ; and the chief question with the electors had been, which of the rival monarchs would be best calculated to defend the empire against them : the circum- stance of Charles's Austrian dominions had turned the beam in his favor. The only other power of consequence in Europe was England, now governed by the vain, capricious, haught}'- Henry VIII., but whose size and situation prevented her having any idea of extensive conquest. Charles, in the views of universal empire which he early conceived, had, therefore, apparently only Francis to impede him ; but his own charac- ter, and the strength and resources of his kingdom, gave the latter such advantages, that only ambition could have blinded the emperor to the plain fact, that France was then, as ever, unconquerable. But there was just at this period a moral power arising, more effectual to check the ambition of the emperor than even the chivalry of France. The great reform- ation of religion had now commenced. 296 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III The Reformation. The eyes of men had been gradually opened to the frauds and corruptions of the Romish church, and the rapacity of the court of Rome had alienated the minds of princes and people. The awakened love of knowledge led men to aspire after freedom of thought, and to feel heavy the yoke which tho church of Rome, though never less intolerant or arbitrary, imposed in all matters relating to religious doctrine. Menta emancipation was panted after. A proper occasion and a bold leader were all that were wanting to excite the flames of spiritual rebellion. The occasion was soon presented, and the leader appeared. Leo X., of the family of the Medici, now filled the papal chair. Like his family, he was devoted to literature and pleasure, and tasteful and magnificent in his ideas and ac- tions. It is not improbable that, as he is charged, he re- garded the religion of which he was the head as merely a gainful fable ; and as he was now engaged in rearing that splendid temple, the glory of modern Rome, he found it need- ful to put in practice every mode of raising money of which the papal chancery could furnish a precedent. The sale of indulgences appearing most likely to bring in a large supply, A. D. they were issued in great quantities, and the disposal of them 1.518 committed to the most active agents. The Dominicans sold in Germany. The scandalous language and conduct of some of these men aroused the indignation of Dr. Martin Luther, an Augustinian, and professor of theology in the university of Wittenburg, in Saxony. He wrote and preached against indulgences; he was listened to with admiration : opposition excited him ; he had, tiiough not profoundly learned, a strong sense of truth, and a vigorous imagination ; his eloanence was popular, his command of his native tongue great; his .soul was full of love to his coimtry and mankind, and his courage in maintaining vvliat he held to be true, invincible. He read, he meditated, he entered into the spirit of the Scripture, and he felt how contrary to it were the practices and the claims of the church of Rome. He fearlessly expressed what he honestly thought ; he was supported by his university and his prince, tiie elector of Saxony; he was summoned to Rome; but, at the request of the elector, cardinal Cajetan was sent to (xerman}', and Luther appeared and defended his opinions before the diet at Augsburg. When Charles obtained the empire, he was again summoned, and appeared before the diet 1521. at Worms. He was dismissed ; and, under the protection of CHAP. II. TIMES OF CHARLES V. 297 the elector of Saxony, he still continued to propagate his opinions through the north of Germany. In Switzerland, Ulric Zuinglius, a priest at Zurich, had, a. d. even earlier than Luther, opposed the sale of indulgences by l^l^* the Franciscans in that country. Not confining themselves to religious abuses, Zuinglius and his friends sought to unite religion with civil polity, and to preserve and exalt the tone of republican virtue and freedom. The opinions of the re- formers rapidly spread into France, the Low Countries, and England, already prepared for them by Wickliffe and his dis- ciples. Wars of Charles V. artd Francis I. Francis, count of Angouleme, on succeeding his father-in- 1515. law, the late king Louis XIL, was eager to signalize himself in the eyes of the world. He turned his views towards Italy, and resolved to recover Milan. The Swiss guarded the passes of the Alps against him: on bearing of has having entered boldly into Piedmont, they descended, and encountered the arms of France in the plain ; and modern times have wit- nessed few such obstinate conflicts as that which ensued on the field of Marignano, near Milan. The battle lasted two days, and the Swiss did not retire till one-half of their num- ber was slain. All the Milanese now surrendered ; Sforza resigned his claim for a pension, and Francis returned home, I5i6k leaving Charles duke of Bourbon governor. The rmperor Maximilian invaded Italy, but was repulsed, and he then made peace wnth France and Venice. The competition for the empire caused ill-will between Charles and Francis: each sought to gain Henry VIII. and his minister Wolsey. The art of the emperor prevailed over the frankness and generosity of the French king. The Spaniards were in rebellion ; Francis seized the op- portunity of recovering for John d'Albret, Navarre, which Ferdinand had unjustly seized. A French army entered and conquered it; but, venturing to advance into Spain, it was defeated, and Navarre recovered. Francis invaded the Low Countries without advantage. A league was now formed, between the pope, Henry VIIL, and Charles, against the king of France. The Milanese, disgusted with the insolence and exactions of the French, resolved to expel them, and put themselves u"der Francis Sforza, brother to their late duke. The pope hired Swiss, and formed an army under Prosper Colonna to assist them. The French were defeated ; Lau- trec, their commander, fled to Venice, and they lost every thing but Cremona, the castle of Milan, and a fev/ other 298 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. y^. D, places. Joy at this success is said to have terminated the life 1522 of Leo X. Francis sent money and 10,000 Swiss to Lautrec, who in- vaded the Milanese, but was defeated at Bicocca. Genoa, which was under the protection of France, was taken by Co- lonna, and the French now retained only Cremona. The 1523. new pope, Adrian VL, the Venetians, the Florentines, and the other Italian powers, joined in the league against Francis, who was now without an ally ; and the emperor and the king of England were preparing to invade France on the south, north, and east. To add to the French king's difficulties, a conspiracy of the constable of Bourbon, who had been most iniquitously deprived of his estates by the malice of the king's mother, was discovered, and the delay occasioned by it pre- vented his heading the army he had assembled. He, how- ever, sent 30,000 men, under admiral Bonnivet, into Italy. Colonna, who commanded in Milan, dying at this time, was succeeded by Lannoy, viceroy of Naples, who was chiefly directed by the duke of Bourbon (who had escaped and en- tered the emperor's service), and the marquis of Pescara. i524. Bonnivet was defeated at the Sesia. In this battle fell the celebrated chevalier Bayard. 1525 Having been successful against the armies which invaded France, the passion for recovering the Milanese seized the French monarch. He marched at the head of a large army into I'lly ; every place submitted : he sat down before Pavia, a town well garrisoned, and commanded by Ley va, one of the ablest Spanish officers. It was winter: every exertion was made by the imperial generals to collect an army : fatigue and the rigor of the season reduced that of the French, weakened by a large part of it having been sent against Na- ples. The imperial army approached ; prudence counselled retreat ; romantic honor determined the king to stay. The imperialists attacked the French in their intrenchments ; the garrison made a sally ; the Swiss deserted their post ; the rout became general ; and Francis, after beholding the flower of his nobility perish by his side, was forced to surrender himself a prisoner. (Feb. 2). In a few weeks not a Frenchman was to be seen in Italy. Francis was rigorously confined : hard terms were proposed to him, but indignantly rejected. When taken, he had writ- ten to his mother the regent, " All is lost but our honor ;*' and she exerted herself with vigor to put the kingdom into a posture of defence. Henry VIII., now alive to the danger of Charles acquiring a preponderating power, listened to her proposals of an alliance, to which he was stimulated bv Wol- CHAP. U. TIMES OF CHARLES V. 299 sey, whom Charles had hitherto cajoled by a promise of the papacy, but who had now learned how little reliance was to be placed on the word of that monarch. Francis, at his own desire, had been removed to Madrid. It was long before he could get a sight of the emperor ; but when he threatened to resign in favor of the dauphin, and had fallen into ill health, Charles, who found that if he. died he should lose all the advantages he proposed to derive from his captivity, and who also dreaded a confederacy against him, lowered his demands ; and a treaty was signed at Madrid, a. j,. by which Francis agreed to surrender Burgundy, and to give 1526. his two sons as hostages till it was performed. The exchange was made on the frontiers, and Francis set at liberty. The states of Burgundy being assembled, protested against this surrender of their province; the pope, Clement VII., absolved the king from the oath taken at Madrid ; and he and the kings of France and England, the Swiss, Venetians, Floren- tines, and Milanese, entered into an alliance, called the Holy League, to oblige the emperor to give up the sons of Francis for a reasonable ransom, and to reinstate Sforza in the duchy of Milan. The confederates took the field in Italy ; but, Francis ne- glecting to send sufficient reinforcements, Bourbon overran the Milanese ; and his troops beginning to mutiny for want of pay, he led them to Rome. In the assault on that city (May 6), Bourbon himself was slain ; but Rome was taken, and experienced from the troops of the pious Charles such calamities as had never been inflicted by any of her barbarian 1527 conquerors in former times. The pope himself was besieged in the castle of St. Angelo, and forced to surrender. He was put into close confinement till he should pay an enormous ransom. The hypocritical Charles put his court into mourn- ing, and ordered prayers to be ofi^ered up for his release, which he might have accomplished by a single line. Henry and Francis were preparing to invade the Low Countries. On hearing of the pope's captivity, they changed the scene of war : Henry supplied money, and Francis sent an army into Iraly under Lautrec. The pope was set at liberty ; but Lau- trec dying, and Doria, the Genoese admiral, persuading his countrymen to revolt, the affairs of the allies declined, and the French army was ruined before Naples. Suleiman, the great Turkish sultan, had now overrun Hun- gary, and threatened the Austrian dominions ; the reforma- tion was making great progress in Germany ; Charles was, therefore, as well inclined to peace as his adversaries. Mar- 1529 garet of Austria, aunt of the emperor, and Louisa, mother 300 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III of Francis, met at Cambray, and settled the terms of peace between them. Francis agreed to pay 2,000,000 crowns as a ransom for his sons, to give up all claims on Italy, and to resign the sovereignty of Flanders and Artois : Charles aban- doned all claim to Burgundy. The Italian states were not satisfied at being abandoned to the emperor ; but the dread of the Turks made him act with some generosity. He pardoned Sforza, and restored to him the duchy of Milan ; but the Florentines were reduced under the dominion of the house of Medici. Affairs of Germany. While Charles was engaged in the Italian wars, the opin- ions of the reformers had spread rapidly in Germany. While at enmity with the pope, the emperor was not very anxious to discourage them ; but now, apprehending danger from them to the imperial authority, he resolved to take measures A. D. for their suppression. A diet was, therefore, convoked at 1529. Spire, v hich confirmed the edict of that of Worms against Luther, and forbade any farther innovation in religion. Against this decree, the elector of Saxony, the landgraf of Hesse, the duke of Luneburg, the prince of Anhalt, and the deputies of fourteen cities, protested ; and hence they, and the reform- ed in general, were called Protestants. 1530. Charles returned to Germany, and assisted at a diet at Auo-sbursf : at which the confession of faith of the Protestants was read and defended by Melancthon and others. A decree was issued against them, and coercive measures resolved on. The Protestant princes met at Smalcalde, and entered into a league for mutual defence, and a secret alliance with the kino-s of France and England. The Turks were now men- acinf Huno-ary, and Charles saw that this was no time for violent measures. A treaty was, therefore, concluded, in which he granted the Protestants liberty of conscience till the meeting of a general council, and they engaged to assist him against the Turks. 1532. Suleiman entered Hungary at the head of 200,000 men. Charles took the command of 80,000 foot and 20,000 horse, besides a vast body of irregulars, near Vienna. The sultan retired ; and Charles returned to Spain, and engaged in a successful expedition against Tunis. While he was absent, the sect of the Anabaptists seized on the city of Miinster, and 1535 defended it for some time courageously against the troops of the bishop. CHAP. 11. TIMES OF CHARLES V. 301 Reneived War loitJi France. While Charles was in Africa, Francis revived his claim on Italy. The king of England/engao-ed about his divorce from Catherine of Aragon, declined having- to do with the affairs of the continent ; and the league of Smalcalde, indignant at the cruelties inflicted on some Protestants in Paris, refused to unite with Francis. The latter resolved, even without allies, to venture on war, under pretence of chastising the duke of Milan for the murder of his ambassador. He ap- proached Italy ; but instead of entering the Milanese, he seized a great part of the dominions of the duke of Savoy, who appealed in vain to Charles, whose exchequer was now completely empty. Meantime Sforza died without issue, and the rights, which had only been surrendered to him and his heirs, returned to Francis. Instead, however, of entering at once on the duchy, he wasted his time in negotiation, while Charles took possession of it as a vacant fief of the empire, though still pretending to own the equity of the claims of the French monarch. The emperor having now procured sufficient supplies of a. d. money, resolved on attempting the conquest of France. Hav- ■^^^^• ing driven the French out of Savoy, he invaded the southern provinces at the head of 50,000 men. Two other armies were ordered to enter Picardy and Champagne. The system adopted by Francis was defensive. From the Alps and Dauphine to Marseilles and the sea, the country was laid waste ; strong garrisons placed in Aries and Marseilles ; one French army strongly encamped near Avignon, another at Valence. After fruitlessly investing Aries and Marseilles, and spending two months in Provence, Charles retreated with the loss of one- half of his troops by disease and famine. An attempt by Francis on the Low Countries, was followed by a truce at Nice, under the mediation of the pope, Paul III. ^^^' The emperor suppressed an insurrection which had broken out in the city of Ghent; but he was forced to make conces- sions to the Protestants in Germany, to gain their assistance against Suleiman, who had seized a part of Hungary. But Ihe favorite object of Charles was the conquest of Algiers; and in the end of autumn he, contrary to the advice of Doria his admiral, landed in Africa with a large army ; but tem- pests scattered his fleet and destroyed his soldiers, and he was forced to re-embark, with the loss of the greater part of his 1541 men. The war between the rival monarchs broke out anew. The 1542. emperor was supported by the king of England and the Pro- 26 302 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. testant princes, to whom he had made farther concessions. Francis was allied with the kings of Denmark and Sweden, and he renewed the treaty he had formerly made with Sulei- A. D. man. During- two years, France. Spain, Italy, and the Low 1544. Countries were the scenes of war ; but the only battle of con- sequence was that of Cerisoles, g-ained by the Frencli, in which 10,000 Imperialists fell. A peace was concluded at Crespi. The chief articles were, that the emperor should give one of his own or his brother Ferdinand's daughters to the duke of Orleans, second son of Francis, and with her the duchy of Milan, and renounce all claim to Burgundy ; Fran- cis doing the same to Naples, Artois, and Flanders ; and that they should unite against the Turks. Affairs of Germany. Charles was chiefly led to make the peace of Crespi by his desire to humble the Protestant princes, and extend his power in the empire. He therefore made also a dishonorable truce with Suleiman, and entered into an alliance with the pope. A general council had been assembled at Trent ; but the Pro- testants, seeing the composition of it, refused to submit to its decrees. Charles, as his scliemes were not fully ripe, sought still to cajole them ; but they saw through his views, and had recourse to arms. Unable to resist them, he negotiated till he had collected an army ; but he still declined a battle. Mean- time Maurice, marquis of Misnia and Thuringia, a Protestani prince, who had not joined the confederates, secretly agreed to assist the emperor, on condition of getting the dignities and territory of his relative the elector of Saxony. He there- fore entered and overran the electorate. The elector returned with his troops to defend his dominions; the city of Ulm sub- mitted ; its example was followed by others, and the whole confederacy fell to pieces, leaving the elector of Saxony and 1547. the landgraf of Hesse at the mercy of the emperor. The pope, meantime, seeing the ultimate and real designs of the emperor, withdrew his troops, and Francis negotiated an alliance with him, Suleiman, England, and Venice, and encouraged and assisted with money the elector and the land- graf A conspiracy, headed by Fiesco, broke out at Genoa, and every thing seemed to combine to throw Charles into perplexity, when the death of Francis, and the suppression of Fiesco's conspiracy, encouraged him to proceed with vigor in Germany. The elector was defeated and taken prisoner at Mulhausen, and obliged to resign the electoral dignity ; the landgraf of Hesse, who was father-in-law to Maurice, submitted, on the elector of Brandenburg and Maurice be- CMAP. 11. TIMES OF CHARLES V. 303 coming- securities for his personal freedom ; but Charles, in contempt of them, made him a close prisoner. All the mem- bers of the Smalcaldic league were treated with the greatest rigor. Charles now thought he might proceed without opposition in enslaving the German nation. As the council had been a. d. removed from Trent to Bologna, and he could not now ex- 1548. pect to influence it as he desired, he protested against it, and had a system of doctrine drawn up and presented to the diet at Augsburg, to be conformed to till a proper council could be called. This system, called the Interim, sought to steer between the two parties, leaning, however, greatly to the church of Rome. It gave great offence at Rome, and could not be fully carried into effect in Germany. Shortly after- wards, Charles made a stretch of power even beyond estab- lishing the Interim. When pressed to set the landgraf of Hesse at liberty, he, by a public deed, annulled the bond which his securities had entered into with him. This began to open the eyes of the German princes, and they now mani- fested a spirit of resistance. His brother Ferdinand had been made king of the Romans by his influence ; but, anxious to transmit the empire to his son Philip, he tried to make the electors recall their choice, or at least place Philip next in succession to his uncle ; but the opposition made was so strong, that he was obliged to abandon his design. The Lutheran princes were now fully aware of the de- signs of the emperor, and Maurice saw that it was necessary to set bounds to them. Equal to Charles himself in dissimu- lation, he secretly made preparations against him, without losing his confidence. He contrived to get himself appointed general of the imperial army, sent to force the people of Mag- deburg to submit to the Interim, and after that object was effected, he, under various pretences, still kept that army in his pay. Charles, meanwhile, was residing at Inspruck, en- tirely occupied with the council, which had been brought back to Trent. Neither he nor Granville, his subtle prime minister, had any suspicion of the designs of Maurice, who had now formed a treaty with Henry II. of France. Having completed his preparations, he sent an embassy to demand the liberty of the landgraf It was refused. An army of 20,000 foot and 2000 horse being assembled, Maurice threw off the mask, and assigned his reasons for taking arms; namely, to secure the Protestant religion ; to maintain the German constitution ; to deliver the landgraf of Hesse from prison. The king of France added a manifesto, in which he 304 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. styled himself Protector of the Liberties of Germany and its captive Princes. The French troops having overrun Lorraine, Maurice traversed rapidly Upper Germany : the emperor negotiated. Maurice advanced with all the speed he could make ; and was so near surprising the emperor, that he was obliged to fly into the Alps in a litter, in the midst of a dark rainy night. The council of Trent broke up, and did not reassemble. A conference was held at Passau : the terms proposed in the name of the princes of the empire were rejected by the em peror. Maurice laid siege to Frankfort on the Main, and the haughty spirit of Charles was forced to bend. The treaty of A. D. Passau overthrew the fabric he had so long been raising, and 1552. placed the Protestant religion of Germany on a secure basis. His usual good fortune was now deserting Charles; he raised a large army, entered Lorraine, and laid siege to Metz ; but was forced to abandon it w^ith the loss of 30,000 men: he lost the footing he had established in Tuscany : the coast of Naples was ravaged by the Turkish fleet. In the following year he had some success in the Low Countries ; but the Austrians were unfortunate in Hungary. Germany was now so tranquil, that a diet assembled at Augsburg, and 1555. by what is called the Recess of Augsburg established reli- gious peace in Germany, to the satisfaction of all parties. 1556. To the surprise of all Europe, Charles abdicated his throne ; and, resigning his dominions to his son Philip, retired to spend the evening of his life in the monastery of St. Just in Spain. Having made a vain attempt to induce his brother Ferdinand to resign the dignity of king of the Romans, he left all his other dominions to Philip, now married to Mary queen of England, and formed for him a truce with France for five years. Ferdinand was chosen emperor by the electors. England. During the reign of Charles V., England was governed by Henry VIII., Edward VI., and Mary. Henry broke with the 1533. court of Rome, and seized on the monastic estates : he ex- ercised over his people the most arbitrary power that Europe, perhaps, has ever witnessed. Not merely his will, but his caprice, was law ; he dictated in religion, and murdered un- der form of justice. In his foreign wars he made small and 1513. useless acquisitions at vast expense. The victory of Flodden Field, gained in the early part of his reign over the Scots, whose king, James IV., fell in the field, was the greatest 1547 achieved in this period by the English arms. Under Edward VI. the Protestant religion was much favored ; but his sister CHAP. II TIMES OF CHARLES V. 305 Mary, a bigot, and wife of the dark, malignant Philip, exer- a. d. cised such cruelties against the professors of the reformed 1553 faith, as have affixed in the minds of posterity eternal odium to her name. In her reign Calais, which England had held since the reign of Edward III., was surprised and taken by 1557 the duke of Guise. Spain and Portugal. The commons of Spain made a stand in favor of their hereditary liberties, and they rose in arms against the des- potism of the emperor, under the command of the brave Pa- dilla ; but the nobles not joining them, as, if they had known their true interest, they should have done, the commons were crushed, and the liberties of Spain have been ever since in abeyance. By the talents, the valor, and the barbarous cruelty of Cor- tes and Pizarro, the empires of Mexico and Peru were at this time subjected to Spain. Don John III., a wretched bigot, with whom dates the de- cline of Portugal, introduced the inquisition and the new so- ciety of the Jesuits into that country. Priestly and regal authority conspired to oppress and degrade the nation. The Portuguese power was, meantime, under the valor and the ability of the great Albuquerque, Almeida, Castro, and others, extended from the gulf of Persia to the isles of Japan. At no period have greater actions been achieved : un- happily, they were disgraced by a spirit of savage cruelty and unprincipled rapacity. It all/. In the holy see the polished Leo X. was succeeded by the honesi, well-meaning Adrian VI. It then passed to the timid, imcertain Clement VIL, a Medici : next to the designing Paul III., only concerned to aggrandize the Farnesi, his own family : then to the lavish and tasteful Julius III. ; and, finally, to Paul IV., an aged monk, who fancied himself possessed of the power of a Gregory or an Innocent, and that the 16th century might be treated like the 13th. In Florence, Piero, son of Lorenzo de' Medici, had given up Pisa and Leghorn to the French, when Charles VIII. in- 1494 vaded Italy. He was in consequence forced to leave the city ; his palaces were plundered, and a price set on the head of the Medici. The old republican tumults ensued. Julian and John, the brothers of Piero, now dead, were restored by ihe 1.512. Spanish arms at the desire of pope Julius 11. ; and John suc- ceeding that pope under the name of Leo X., his influence 26* 306 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. ^ jj strengthened his brother, and, after the death of Julian, his 1516. nephew Lorenzo, son of Piero. Lorenzo, equal to any of his family in the qualities that distinguished them, had meditated the extension of his power from sea to sea; but his early death, in his 27th year, cut short all his great projects. He left an only child, the celebrated Catherme, afterwards queen of Fi'ance. Julius, the natural son of the brother of Lorenzo, who was murdered by the Pazzi, took the government. A conspiracy was formed against his power ; but he was supported by the emperor. He became pope as Clement VIL ; and Alexander, his own or Lorenzo IL's natural son, governed Florence. He was obliged to fly when the pope was besieged by the army of Bourbon ; but when Clement made peace with the em- peror, Charles gave his natural daughter Margaret in marriage to Alexander, and engaged to restore him to the wealth and power of his family. Florence resisted ; and after the peace of Cambray the imperial arms besieged it for ten months, and forced it to surrender, and the emperor declared Alexander hereditary duke of Florence. The rule of this protege of the pope and the emperor was, as was to be expected, tyrannical 1537. and oppressive. His death was owing to his vices. His cousin Lorenzino de' Medici, who had been the ready agent of his lust, resolved to destroy him. Under pretext of putting him in possession of the person of a lady whose beauty had in- flamed him, he decoyed him to his house, where he secretly murdered him. Lorenzino fled to Venice : the better-disposed citizens wished to re-establish the republic, but the Medici party forced the senate to declare duke Cosimo, descended from a brother of the first Cosimo. A subtle, cruel, and un- grateful tyrant, Cosimo oppressed the people, and banished 1557. those to whom he owed his power. He was himself but the mere slave of Spain. Cosimo added Sienna to his dominions, and in 1569 the pope, Pius V., conferred on him the title of Great duke of Tuscany. Genoa had, on account of her internal dissensions, put her- self under the protection of France, and her nobles had served in the army of Francis L She did not by this expe- dient escape the turbulence of the Adorni and Fregosi, whose feuds ran as high as ever. Andrew Doria determined to be the Timoleon of his country. He formed a league with Charles V., entered the port of Genoa, proclaimed an am- nesty, broke up the parties, and new-modelled the govern- ment, excluding only the Adorni and Fregosi from office. Doria sought neither power nor reward for himself; he never CHAP. II. TIMES OF CHARLES V. 307 bore the office of doge. He died, honored and lamented, in ^^ p, his 94th year. 15G0. Venice remained the most independent state in Italy, and was always on good terms with Charles V., by whose terri- tories she was now nearly surrounded. The popes had brought Bologna, Ravenna, and Ancona fully under their power. Parma and Piacenza were, with the consent of Charles V., given by Paul III. to his son Piero Farnese, and on his death to Ottavio Farnese, married to a natural daughter of the em- 1547 peror. Ottavio was succeeded by Alexander, the celebrated general of Philip II. Italy was now tranquil ; all her states either belonged to or were in amity and alliance with Spain. She had no disturb- ances to dread ; her ancient spirit declined ; she sank into luxury, occupied in the enjoyment of her arts and natural advantages. Denmark and Sweden. These countries do not yet enter on the great theatre of Europe. Christian II. had proved victorious, by the employ- ment of treachery and force, in the struggle for Swedish in- dependence. He was crowned at Stockholm, and he and his confederate, the archbishop of Upsala, by an almost unparal- leled piece of perfidy, publicly executed ninety-four of the Swedish nobles. But Gustavus Vasa, the son of one of those who were murdered, escaped from the prison in which he was confined, roused the miners of Dalecarlia to take arms for their country, and was successful in his first attempts; gradually all the people rose against the tyrant, Gustavus was elected king of Sweden, and he governed with wisdom 1523 and good policy. Gustavus established the Lutheran religion in Sweden, over which he reigned 37 years. 1560 Christian II. was for his tyranny deposed, and the crown given to his uncle Frederic duke of Holstein, who entered into an alliance with Gustavus and the Hanse towns against 1533 the deposed tyrant. Frederic's son. Christian III., was one of the best princes of the age. He also established the Lu- theran religion m his dominions. He died a year before Gus- 1559 tavus. Turkey. Suleiman I., called by the Christians the Great and the 152a Magnificent, by his own subjects the Lawgiver (Kanooni), the greatest of the Ottoman monarchs, succeeded his father Selim. In the first year of his reign a war broke out with Hungary, in which Belgrade and other fortresses were taken 1522 308 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III by the Ottomans. The following- year the island of Rhodes was conquered, after a most gallant defence made by the knights of St. John. In the second Hungarian campaign of ^ jy Suleiman he took Peterwaradin, and the Hungarian king, 1526. Ladislaus, lost the battle and his life on the plain of Mohacs, and Ofen, the capital of Hungary, opened her gates. In a J 529. third Hungarian campaign Ofen was taken by storm, Vienna was besieged : but Suleiman was forced to retire from before 1532. its walls. Suleiman again invaded Hungary at the head of 200,000 men ; but he was unable to overcome the resistance 1534. of the town of Gims. A war with Persia, in which Tebreez was again taken, and which gave Bagdad to Suleiman, next followed. Khair-ed-deen Barbarossa, the celebrated corsair, con- 1535. quered Tunis for Suleiman ; but it was retaken, and restored to Muley Hassan, by the emperor Charles V. Suleiman next conquered the isles of the Archipelago, and he fitted out a 1547. fleet in the Red Sea, to oppose the Portuguese in India. Two more campaigns against Hungary followed, and peace was at length concluded with Ferdinand and the emperor ; but war soon broke out again. A large fleet and army were sent against Malta, which the emperor had given to the knights 1565. of St. John ; but the valor of the knights forced them to retire with disgrace. Suleiman, the greatest of the Ottoman sul- tans, headed his armies in thirteen campaigns, and gave the empire its greatest extent, at W'hich it continued for more than a century ere it began to decrease. Genius and learn- ing were encouraged by this munificent prince, whose reign was the Augustan age of Turkey ; but the deaths of no less than ten princes of the blood, most of them his sons and grandchildren, fix an indelible stain on his memory. CHAP. III. TIMES OF PHILIP II. State of Europe at Philip's Accession. No monarch ever ascended a throne with fairer prospects than Philip II. ; none ever had himself more thoroughly to blame for the extinction of his brightest hopes. His father had left him Spain, humbled under absolute power, but riot yet degraded by it, Milan, Naples, and Sicily, the Nether- lands, Mexico, and Peru, now in the vigor of their gold and silver harvest ; he was married to the queen of England ; his uncle was emperor of Germany king of Bohemia and Hun- CHAP. III. TIMES OF PHILIP [I. 309 gary, and possessor of the Austrian dominions. Genoa and the Catholic cantons of Switzerland were allied with Spain ; Venice feared her; the pope was obliged to support a prince who proclaimed himself the defender of the faith. His nephew, Sebastian king- of Portugal, was a child. France, at1;er the death of Henry II., had fallen into weakness and confusion. Suleiman had been succeeded by Selim, a weak unenterprising prince. Finally, the Spanish armies were still the first in Europe, and were commanded by the duke of Savoy, Don John of Austria, and the prince of Parma, three of the greatest generals of the age. Philip's own character, thoughtful, reserved, patient, inde- fatigable, might seem well calculated to make the most of all these advantages ; but it was the very defect of his character that lost him them all. A gloomy superstition pervaded every region of his mind, and tinged every thought. Religion, with him, was the one thing needful ; but his religion consist- ed ia external observances, and in the belief of the absurdest doctrines of popery. Steadfastness in this religion justified every crime ; nothing was to stand in the way of his plan of reducing, the Christian world under the one faith and the one master. And all was sacrificed to this chimera. The first operations of Philip's reign were fortunate. The pope insisted on Henry II. not adhering to the truce of Vau- celles ; the war was renewed, and Philip's able general, Phil- ibert duke of Savoy, gained the battle of St. Quintin. The Spanish arms were everywhere successful, and the pope and Henry were glad to treat of peace ; a measure grateful to Philip, who was anxious to return to Spain, and who had all along had his doubts of the lawfulness of bearing arms against the pope. Mary of England was at this time dead, and her sister Elizabeth had ascended the throne. Philip and Henry were suitors for the favor of the young queen ; the former sought her hand. All parties were anxious for peace. A a. d. treaty was, therefore, easily entered into at Chateau Cam- 1559 bresis ; and as almost all the states of Europe were included in it as principals or allies, a general peace and repose was produced by it. Charles V. had died the year before ; Mary of England was dead ; Henry II. was killed at a tournament shortly after the peace ; the restless Paul IV. survived him but a few weeks. A new set of actors enter on the scene. France. Henry II. was succeeded by his eldest son, Francis II., the husband of Mary the young queen of Scotland. Protestant- 310 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. ism had made considerable progress in France. The king- of Navarre, the prince of Conde, the admiral Coligni, his brother Andelot, and several other persons of the highest rank, were attached to the reformed faith. The powerful family of Guise, princes of Lorraine, uncles to the young" queen, supported the old relig-ion. Francis was persuaded by them to revive the laws ag-ainst heresy. The A. D. Protestants (in France called Huguenots) saw their danger 1560. and resolved to anticipate it. A conspiracy was formed to seize the king. It was detected, and the accomplices pun- ished. But an assembly of the states was held, and the penal laws suspended. The Guises, however, resolved to proceed, and the king of Navarre and his brother the prince of Conde were seized and imprisoned. The sudden death of Francis checked their career. His young brother, Charles IX., came to the throne, and the queen-mother was appointed guardian. As " divide and goverji'^ was the maxim of Catherine, she gave high office and power to the Protestant leaders, as a counterpoise to the influence of the Guises. 1562. The policy of the queen did not produce the desired eflect. Animosity ran high between the two parties. The attend- ants of the duke of Guise insulted some Protestants at their worship, and sixty of the latter were slain. The Protestants all over France took arms ; fourteen armies were levied in different parts of the kingdom. The conflict was carried on with the most extreme virulence. Several of the principal cities of France, as Orleans, Rouen, Bourges, Lyons, Tours, were in the hands of the Huguenots. Philip of Spain sent 6000 men to aid the Catholics. Conde, the head of the Protestants, addressed himself to Elizabeth queen of England, and an army was levied in Germany by Andelot and led to Orleans. The king of Navarre and Montmorency had joined the Guise party : the former was killed at the siege of Rouen ; the latter commanded at the battle of Dreux, the first fought between the parties. 1563. The duke of Guise laid siege to Orleans. While engaged in it, he was assassinated by a Protestant gentleman named Poltrot. His death was an irreparable loss to his party, and they now willingly came to an accommodation with the Protestants. But the peace was intended only to lull the Protestants. Catherine, though utterly devoid of principle, had a hatred of the reformed faith, and a zeal for the ancient one. A meet- ing was concerted at Bayonne between Charles and his sister, the queen of Spain. Catherine accompanied her son ; the duke of Alva attended his mistress. Festivities and gaieties CHAP. ni. TIMES OF PHILIP II. 311 of every kind occupied each day. All apparently respired joy and peace : but the tempest was secretly brewed in the summer sky. A Holy League was formed between the courts of France and Spain : the glory of God was to be pro- a. d moted, heresy in the dominions of both extirpated. 1566 The Protestants of France soon learned what had been concerted. They flew to arms ; a battle was fought at St. Denis, in which they were worsted. They laid siege to 1568. Chartres, and forced the court to agree to a peace. This peace was of short duration : the queen-mother laid a scheme for seizing Conde and Coligni; they fled to Rochelle; the war was renewed. The duke of Anjou commanded the Catholics, and gained the famous battle of Jarnac, in which the prince of Conde was taken and murdered. Coligni hav- 1569 ing placed at the head of the Protestants the young king of Navarre and the young prince of Conde, made every effort to animate his party, and at length laid siege to Poitiers. The young duke of Guise threw himself into that town, and de- fended it with such valor and skill, that Coligni was forced to raise the siege. Secretly aided by Elizabeth, he collected a considerable force ; but at the battle of Moncontour he was wounded and defeated with the loss of nearly 10,000 men. The court deemed the adverse party now completely crushed, when, to their amazement, Coligni advanced with a large army, and prepared to lay siege to Paris, and the king was forced to make another treaty and peace with the Protestants. The treachery long meditated against the Protestants was now ripe. Charles assumed the appearance of the utmost liberality of sentiment: a marriage- was proposed between his sister Margaret and the young king of Navarre. All the great leaders of the Protestants went to Paris to the celebra- tion of it. They were received with smiles and caresses by the king and the queen-mother ; all was festivity till the eve of St. Bartholomew (Aug. 24) arrived, when, by the secret 1572. orders of the king, a bloody and indiscriminate massacre of the Protestants commenced. No rank or age was spared ; 500 gentlemen, including Coligni, and 10,000 inferior per- sons, perished in Paris alone, and a like carnage took place in all the great towns of the kingdom whither similar orders had been sent. It is computed that 60,000 persons were massacred. The Protestants throughout Europe were filled with horror and consternation. At Rome and Spain the account was re- ceived with ecstasy, and public thanks returned to heaven. But Charles did not dare to avow his real motives ; he pre- tended that a conspiracy of the Protestants had been detected, 312 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART HI and thus prevented. Instead of losing" courago, these now only respired vengeance. They took valiantly to their arms : the town of Sancerre stood a memorable sieixe. Rochelle held out eight months against the whole power of France ; and A, D. the duke of Anjou, after losing 24,000 men before it, was 1573. compelled to grant the citizens an advantageous peace. This was the fourth peace ; but the Protestants could put no trust in the perfidious monarch. They rejoiced at his 574. death, which soon afterwards occurred. He was succeeded by his brother, the duke of Anjou, Henry III,, who had been elected king of Poland. Henry, by the advice of his mother, sought to play the parties against each other, and thereby 1576. increase the royal authority. He gave most advantageous terms to the Protestants, now headed by his brother, the duke of Anjou, and the young king of Navarre. The Catholic part}', directed by the duke of Guise, were disgusted by this mea- 1577. sure: they formed their celebrated League; and the king, to weaken it, declared himself the head of it. The war was renewed ; but soon terminated by a new peace. The League looked up to Philip, the Huguenots to Elizabeth : the king, sunk in pleasure and in odious vices, was despised and dis- trusted by both parties. Tlie duke of Anjou was a restless ambitious prince : his death seemed to relieve the king from difficulties ; but it only plunged liim into greater. The king of Navarre was now the next iieir ; the League was revived ; the cardinal of Bourbon set up as a rival to the king of Na- varre : and the kinsf forced to declare war against the Hugfue- nots. Great valor and talent were displayed by the king of i587. Navarre. At Coutras he gained a complete victory over the royal army ; but the power of the League was still an over- match for the Huguenots. The king was driven from Paris, and threatened with degradation from his throne : his spirit was roused, and he caused the duke and the cardinal of Guise to be assassinated. The doctors of the Sorbonne declared the people released from their allegiance ; and the duke of Mayenne, brother to the duke of Guise, was chosen Lieuten- 1589. ant-general of the State royal and Crown of France. The king entered into an alliance with the king of Navarre, and both sovereigns advanced to Paris at the head of their armies. Jam.es Clement, a Dominican monk, here assassinated the king, with whom ended the line of Valois. The holy deed was, as usual, applauded throughout the Catholic world ; and Sixtus V. compared it with the Incarnation and the Resur- rection. The royal army abandoned the king of Navarre, now Henry FV., and the League proclaimed the cardinal of Bour- CHAP. III. TIMES OF PHILIP II. 313 bon, under the name of Charles X. Henry retired to Nor- mandy, followed by the troops of the League, under the duke of Mayenne. The queen of England sent him troops and money. His forces were inferior in number, but superior in a. d. valor, to those of the duke ; and at Ivry he gained a com- 1590 plete victory over him and his Spanish auxiliaries. Henry goon afterwards invested Paris; the duke of Parma hastened from the Low Countries to its relief; the siege was raised ; but the duke declined the proffered battle. Some fresh at- tempts on Paris were baffled ; the duke of Parma left 8000 men with the League ; the pope ordered all the Catholics to abandon Henry, and sent money and troops to the duke of Savoy, who had made himself master of Provence; tlie young duke of Guise made his escape from Tours. Elizabeth, on the other hand, again sent troops and money; H6nry laid siege to Rouen ; but the prince of Parma forced him to raise it, and again retreated without fighting. Lesdiguieres chased the duke of Savoy out of Provence ; and victories were gained by Turenne, and other generals of Henry. At length all parties grew weary of the war ; the duke 1593. of Mayenne was disgusted by the faction of the Sixteen in Paris, who were entirely in the Spanish interest; Henry was pressed by the Catholics of his party to declare himself on the article of religion, a thing he had hitherto avoided doing; the king of Spain, too, pressed the duke of Mayenne to call a meeting of the states, hoping to gain the crown for his own daughter Isabella. The states met ; Philip's ambas- sador exerted himself in vain to get a declaration in favor of the infanta ; the parliament of Paris declared that the Salic '5 successor in Bohemia and Hungary, and he made a faii.iiy compact with the court of Spain. The Protestants were alarmed ; the Bohemians and Hungarians had recourse to arms: the latter were easily quelled; but the former w^ie joined by the Protestants of Silesia, Moravia, and Upper Austria, and supported by an army of other German Protestants under count Mansfield. Thus began the Tliirty Years' War. 1619. ]\Iathias died, and Ferdinand was raised to the imperial throne. The Bohemians deposed him, and offered their crown to Frederic V., elector palatine, who, contrary to the advice of his father-in-law, James I. of England, accepted the fatal gift. He was supported by all the Protestant princes of the empire except the elector of Saxony, and by Bethlem Gabor, voivode of Transylvania, by a body of 8000 Dutch troops, and CHAP. IV. TIMES OF THE THIRTY YEARS' WAR. 325 by 2400 Eng-lish volunteers. Ferdinand was aided by the king" of Spain, by the archduke Albert, governor of the Netherlands, and the Catholic princes of the empire. Spinola led 24,000 men from the Low Countries, and ravaged the palatinate ; Frederic was defeated at Prague by the duke of a. d. Bavaria and general Baquoy. He and his adherents were 1620. put' to the ban of the empire ; Bethlem Gabor was defeated in Hungary; count Tilly completed the conquest of the pala- tinate ; Frederic was degraded, and his dignity of elector conferred on the duke of Bavaria. A league was formed, at the head of which was Christian 1625 IV. of Denmark, for the restoration of the palatine. But the troops of the league were unable to stand before the imperial- ists led by Tilly and Wallenstein, and Christian was forced to sue for peace. Ferdinand now thought the time was come for reducing the princes and prelates of the empire to the condition of those of other countries. He resolved to begin with the Protestants ; and he passed an edict ordering them 1629. to restore all the church lands, &c. that they had enjoyed since the peace of Passau. The Protestants remonstrated ; a diet was held at Ratisbon; the majority of the Catholic princes were for quieting them ; the spiritual electors second- ed the views of the emperor. The Protestants, to escape the meditated robbery, formed a secret alliance with Gustavus Adolphus, king of Sweden. Gustavus was a prhice of the highest military and civil talents : he was animated by a rational zeal for the Protest- ant religion, and he saw through the emperor's project of extending his dominion over the Baltic. Various other rea- sons combined to induce him to engage in war. The cardinal Richelieu, now minister in France, desirous to check the power of the house of Austria, eng-aged to give him an an- nual subsidy of 1,200,000 livres. Charles I. of England al- lowed 6000 men to be raised in the name of the marquis of Hamilton, to aid the king of Sweden, and numerous English and Scottish volunteers crowded to his standard. Gustavus entered Pomerania. The Protestant princes were at first fearful of joining- him ; but his well-timed decis- ion towards the elector of Brandenburg ended their hesitation. Being joined by the Saxons, he advanced towards Leipzig, where Tilly lay, who advanced into the plain of Buitenfeld to meet him. The numbers on each side were about 30,000 ; but Tilly's troops were all veterans. The Saxons, being raw troops, fled at the first onset : the skill of Gustavus and the vtilor of the Swedes gained a complete victory. 1631. The king of Sweden quicklv made himself master of the 28 326 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART II f whole country from the Elbe to the Rhine. The elector of ^ jj_ Saxony entered Bohemia, and took Prague. Tilly, in dis- 1632. puting the passage of the Lech with the Swedes, was killed. Gustavus took Augsburg, marched into Bavaria, and entered Munich. Wallenstein had meantime recovered Prague. The king of Sweden offered him battle near Niirnburg ; Wallen- stein declined it : a furious attack was for ten hours madt/ on his entrenchments, and tlie Swedes were repulsed with great loss. Soon after, hearing that Wallenstein had transferred his camp to Liitzen, Gustavus, though it was the depth of winter, and the imperial forces greatly exceeded his in num- ber, resolved to seek and engag-e him. The battle which en- sued is one of the hardest fought recorded in history. It lasted from day-break till night: the king of Sweden fell in the midst of the conflict. Night alone prevented the vic- tory of the Swedes being complete. The death of Gustavus cast a gloom over the Protestants ; they fell into factions : the Catholics were elated. But the Swedish regency (as Gustavus had left only one child, Chris- tina, of seven years) committed the management of the war to the chancellor Oxenstiern, a man of great ability, who, with the duke of Saxe-Weimar and generals Banier and Horn, prosecuted it with vigor. An event now occurred seemingly calculated to advance the Protestant cause. The emperor, whether justly or not is doubtful, suspecting the fidelity of Wallenstein, and fearing to deprive him of his command, had him secretly assassinated. But the loss of his genius was supplied by a large accession of Spanish and other troops, and by the junction of the dukes of Lorrain and Ba- 1634. varia. The imperial troops were commanded by the king of Hungary ; the duke of Saxe-Weimar and general Horn came up with them near Nordlingen, and a bloody battle ended in the total defeat of the Swedes. The German princes now deserted the Swedes, and made 1635. at Prague a treaty with the emperor, in which he receded from his former demands of the restitution of church property. The weight of the war now fell on the Swedes and French. France entered into an alliance with Holland, and war was declared against Spain. Richelieu raised five armies, one of which was sent into Germany, and placed under the duke of Saxe-Weimar. Non0 of these armies was very successful. The imperial general Galas was opposed to the duke of Weimar, and they fought with alternate advantage. In Up- per Germany, the Swedes, under Banier, gave the imperial- 1636. ists, under the elector of Saxony, a complete defeat at Wis- lock. CHAP. IV. TIMES OF THE THIRTY YE.VRS' WAR. 327 The emperor Ferdinand II. died, and was succeeded by his a. d. «on, of the same name. The same line of policy was pursued, 1^37 and the war continued. The duke of Weimar laid siege to I63a Rainfeld ; an imperial army advanced to its relief, and was totally defeated by the duke : the town surrendered, as did soon after Brisac, and other places. While Weimar triumphed on the Rhine, Banier was equally successful in Pomerania ; he reduced several towns, and cut to pieces some of the imperial troops. In the beg-inning- of the next campaign, the duke and Ban- 1539 ier took measures for penetrating into the heart of the Aus- trian dominions. Banier crossed the Elbe, beat every thing- that opposed him, entered Saxony, and totally defeated the Saxon army at Chemnitz. He invaded Bohemia, laid the country under contribution, fell on the imperialists under general Hofskirk at Brandeiz, and pursued them to the walls of Prague. He then repassed the Elbe, defeated the impe- rialists at Glatz, and drove the Saxons three times from their camp at Tirn. But the hopes of the Swedes were almost blighted by the loss of the duke of Saxe-Weimar, who died at this time, in his 36th year, by poison, as was strongly suspected. After a good deal of contest for his army, it was finally taken into the pay of the king of France, who thus became master of a great part of Aisatia and Brisgau. Under the command of the duke of Longueville it joined Banier at Erfurt; but the Swede found his genius cramped by their presence, and was no longer able to execute his bold and sudden projects. It was agreed to attack Piccolomini, the imperial general, in his camp at Saltzburg. This being found impracticable, the allies separated, and Banier attempted to penetrate into Franconia. Failing in thi.s, he marched through Hesse into Lunenburg. Piccolomini attempted to enter this duchy, but was unable to penetrate it : and as he marched for Franconia, he was attacked and nearly defeated by the Weimarian army. The emperor having convoked a diet at Ratisbon, Banier 164i formed a plan of surprising the city and dispersing the diet. Having joined the French army under Guebriant, they crossed the Danube on the ice, took 1500 of the imperial horse, and very nearly surprised the emperor himself The approach of a thaw disconcerted their plans; but they threw five hundred shot into the town, an insult that enraged Ferdi- nand beyond measure. Attempts at a pacification were made at Hamburgh by the French and Swedish plenipotentiaries and one of the Aulic counsellors; but the emperor refused to ratify the convention. 328 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. i\fler the attempt on Ratisbon, the French and Swedes separated; Banier marched through Bohemia, followed by Piccolomini and Gleen. He conducted his retreat in a most masterly manner to Zickau, where he was joined by Gue- briant, and they prepared to make head against the imperial- ists ; but Banier took a fever in consequence of the fatigues he had undergone, and died at Halberstadt, in the 41st year of his age. Torstenson, another of the pupils of Gustavus, was appointed to succeed him, and he left Sweden with a large sum of money and a considerable reinforcement; but, before his arrival, the allies under Guebriant had defeated Piccolomini at Wolfenbiittel. When Torstenson arrived the armies separated. A. D. The next spring, Guebriant totally defeated general Lam- 1642. boy, and made himself master of the electorate of Cologne, Piccolomini marched against Torstenson, who had defeated the duke of Saxe-Lauenburg, and invested Leipzig. The archduke Leopold and Piccolomini advanced to the relief of it ; and Buitenfeld was again witness to the triumph of Swe- dish valor. The news of this defeat filled the imperial court with con- sternation. Leipzig- surrendered; but Torstenson failed in his attempt on Friedburg. Guebriant was also successful on his side. 1643. Conferences for a peace were now opened ; but the death of Louis XIIL and of Richelieu checked them: eardmal Maz- arin, however, trod in the footsteps of his predecessor. The arms of France were successful. While the negotiations were pending, Torstenson marched into Holstein, to punish the hostility of the king of Denmark. Christian called on the emperor, who sent Galas thither ; but Galas feared to en- gage the Swedes. France then mediated a peace between Denmark and Sweden. The French, under Turenne, were successful against the Bavarians ; the voivode of Transylvania invaded Hungary ; and the imperial army there under Gotz was utterly ruined. A similar fate befell that under Gralas. 645. Torstenson invaded Bohemia ; a large army under Galas, Hasfeld, and others, was collected near Thabor. The Swe- dish general decoyed them from their advantageous position, and completely defeated them. Every place submitted ; the imperial family fled from Vienna : Brinn, however, held out against the Swedes. The Bavarians under Merci defeated Turenne at Marien- dal ; Turenne was reinforced by 8000 men, under the duke d'Enghien, and gave battle to the Bavarians on the plain of Nordiingen, which had been so fatal to the Swedes. After a CHAP. IV. TIMES OF THE TtHFlTY YEARS' WAR. 329 dreadfal conflict, victory declared for the French, with the loss of 4000 men. The elector of Saxony, unable to check the progress of the Swedish general Koningsmark, concluded a truce for six months. The latter joined Torstenson, who had, in spite of the archduke, carried his depredations to the gates of Vienna. They agreed to lay siege to Prague ; but the archduke secured that city against them ; and Torsten- son, who was dreadfully afflicted with the gout, returning to Sweden, was succeeded by Vrangel, who ably sustained the glory of the Swedish arms. The French and Swedes were everywhere successful ; the elector of Bavaria and other princes were forced to make separate peaces witli them ; the emperor alone was opposed to them; and though the elector a. d. of Bavaria had again joined him, the victory of Zummerhau- 1648. sen, gained by Turenne and Vrangel, and the invasion of Bavaria and Bohemia, compelled him to think at last seriously of peace. Negotiations had long been going on at Osnaburg and Munster. At last the Peace of Westphalia was sig-ned at the latter place on the 24th Oct. 1648. By this celebrated treaty France obtained Alsatia, Brisac, Metz, Verdun, and other territories ; Sweden got Upper Pomerania, Stetin, the Isle of Riigen, Bremen, &c. with three votes at the diet; compensation was made to the elector of Brandenburg and the duke of Mecklenburg for the loss of these territories; the Upper Palatinate and the electoral rank remained with the duke of Bavaria; Switzerland was declared independent of the empire; the pacihcation of Passau was fully confirmed; Lutherans and Catholics were placed on the same footing; the imperial chamber was to consist of twenty-six Catholic and twenty-four Protestant members ; six Protestants were admitted into the Aulic council ; an equal number of each party was to be summoned to the diet ; but in cases where it concerned either religion alone, only deputies of that religion should be called. France. Louis Xin. being a minor, his mother, Mary of Medici, a 161C weak, bigoted woman, was declared regent. She was gov- erned entirely by an Italian, named Concini, and his wife. Sully retired ; new maxims were adopted ; a double marriao;e and union with Spain was projected ; and the ruin of the 1613 Protestants meditated. The nobility, headed by the prince of Conde, revolted ; they were appeased by gifts ; they re- 1615 volted again, and were ag-ain appeased in the same way. Luines, the favorite of Louis, took advantage of his influ- 28* 330 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III ence over him to induce the young- prince to seize the reins A. D. of government. Louis ordered Concini to be arrested ; the Ifil'^'- captain of the guards shot him, under pretext of resistance ; his Vv'ife, the high-spirited Galligai, was condemned to death for sorcery and magic ; the regent was exiled to Blois. Lui- nes, from a page, was raised to the highest rank and offices- in the state. A conspiracy, headed by the duke of Epernon^ released the queen-mother. Guided by the great RicheUeu, she caballed against the court, which was obliged to enter into treaties advantageous to her and her party. She procured Richelieu a cardinal's hat, and a seat in the council. 1620. Louis, having united Beam to the crown, attempted, though the people were Protestants, to re-establish tliere the Catholic religion. The Huguenots were alarmed ; they Fssembled at Rochelle, and determined to throw off their allegiance, and to form a republic. Luines, now constable, took arms.. 1621. Having seduced, by bribes and promises, tlie duke of Bouillon^ and other of their leaders, he laid siege to Montaubart with. 25,000 men. The place was gallantly defended by the mar- quis la Force, and Luines was forced to retire with disgrace.. He died shortly afterwards, and was succeeded in his office of constable by the brave Lesdiguieres, who had renounced Calvinism. The Protestants were led by the duke of Rohan and his brother Soubise. The latter was defeated by the king" in person, v/ho laid siege to Montpellier, which was de- 1622. fended as bravely as Montauban. A peace was made> and the edict of Nantes confirmed. The haughty Richelieu became now prime minister. There were three parties whom he resolved to humble ; the nobility of France, the Huguenots, and the house of Austria. To accomplish these objects, he, in spite of the pope and the king of Spain, concluded a marriage between Charles prince of Wales and the king's sister Henrietta, as also an alliance between the two crowns and the United Provinces. A war with Spain was the consequence, in which a French army, united with the Venetians and the duke of Savoy, took the '625. Valteline, and restored it to the Grisons ; but Spinola reduced Breda, and the English failed in an attempt on Cadiz. The Huguenots rebelled, and were now encouraged by England. The duke of Buckingham appeared before Ro- chelle with 7000 men ; but he had laid his measures so ill, that the citizens refused to admit him, and after an ill-con- ducted attempt on the isle of Rhe, he returned home with diso-race. Richelieu laid siege to Rochelle ; and having run a mole across the harbor, compelled it to surrender. The duke of Rohan defended himself with vigor in Languedoc CHAP. IV. TIMES OF THE THIRTY YEARS' WAR. 331 but as England had made peace, he was forced to come to a. d. terms. The Protestants were continued in the enjoyment of 1629 all that had been secured by the edict of Nantes, only they were deprived of their fortified towns. Having- humbled the Protestants at home, and thereby brought the whole kingdom, nobility and all, under the control of the crown, Richelieu resolved, in furtherance of his re- maining object, to aid the Protestants in Germany ; and he formed the secret alliance which we have already noticed.* After the treaty of Prague, he openly joined the Swedes. Meantime he ruled France with a rod of iron : the queen- mother was banished, her son Gaston duke of Orleans obliged to beg his life, and the marshals Montmorency and Merillas publicly executed. Jn defiance of all his enemies, Richelieu retained his power till his death, in 1642, at the moment when the arms of France and Sweden had completely hum- bled the pride of the house of Austria, The minister died on the 4th of December : his royal master followed him on the 14th of the ensuing May. Louis had been married to Anne of Austria, daughter of Philip III. of Spain. Spain. The chief domestic incident that distinguished the reign of Philip III. was the expulsion of the Moriscoes. Impelled by the inquisition, and by the advice of his feeble and bigoted minister, the duke of Lerma, Philip issued an edict, com- manding all his Mohammedan subjects to quit the kingdom 1611 within thirty days. In despair the Moors took arms: they were subdued, and a million of industrious subjects driven out of Spain, whose fate it is, to be to Europe a standing ex- ample of the evils of civil and religious despotism. During this reign, attempts were made to extend the Spanish power in Italy. Philip IV. and his minister Olivarez were both men of 1621 more energy than their predecessors. It was determined to form the closest alliance with the emperor, and to attempt the reduction of the United Provinces, the truce with whom was expired. Notwithstanding, however, these magnificent projects, the power of Spain continued still to decline in this reign. The Spanish infantry was cut to pieces on the plains ^^^^' of Rocroi by the duke d'Enghien with an inferior force ; the Catalans rebelled ; the Portuguese threw off" the yoke ; and the independence of the Dutch was fully acknowledged. The 1643 worm was at the heart of the power of Spain. * See p. 291, 332 OUTLINES OF HISTORY PART III. Portugal. The Portuo-uese had long- been irritated by the despotism they were subject to. On the revolt of the Catalans, a law was passed to compel the Portuguese nobles to take arms for their reduction. A plot long formed now broke out. Olivarez had called away the Spanish garrison from Lisbon. The duchess of Mantua, styled the vice-queen, was driven away, and the grandson of the duke of Braganza, who had been de- prived of his right by Philip II., was proclaimed king, under the title of John IV. All Portugal acknowledged him ; ships were sent to the foreign settlements, and all expelled their A. D. Spanish governors. Brazil was recovered from the Dutch, 1640. and Portugal became once more independent. Ilaly. The dominions of Spain in Northern Italy, were divided from those of the emperor by the Valteline and Venice. Be- 1618. domar, the Spanish ambassador to the latter, formed, in con- junction with the governor of Milan and the viceroy of Na- ples, a nefarious project for murdering the senate, and getting- possession of Venice; but the senate, discovering in time the atrocious plot, executed the majority of the conspirators. 1620. Spain was more fortunate and less guilty in the Valteline, the Catholic inhabitants of which rose on and massacred their Protestant countrymen, and placed themselves under her pro- tection. The emperor and king of Spain eacli attempted to get the duchy of Mantua, after the death of the duke without heirs ; 1630. but Richelieu entered Italy with an army, and obliged the emperor to grant the investiture to Charles Gonzaga, duke of Nevers. England — The Civil War. An eventful period now commences in England. A new 1603. dynasty fills the throne, and the grand struggle begins be- tween liberty and absolute power. James VI. of Scotland, son of Mary, and descended from the eldest daughter of Henry VII., was, on the death of Elizabeth, placed by the free-will and choice of the English nation on her royal seat. This monarch was possessed of learning and abilities rather above the common rate ; but he was pedantic, mean, and pusillani- mous, shamefully subservient to unworthy favorites, and in his inglorious love of peace careless of the national honor. In the reign of tliis feeble prince, the English nation first learned to listen to the doctrines of the divine and indcfeasi- CHAP. IV. TIMES OF THE THIRTY YE.\R3' WAR. 335 ble rights of kings ; then, too, the church began to depart from the principles of the reformers, and some of her divines to approximate in their doctrines to those of the church of Rome, so generally odious to the nation. Every thing, in short, was done, as it were, to prepare the materials of the coming conflagration. In the reign of James, the nation took greatly to trade and maritime enterprise, and increased rapidly in wealth, intelli- gence, and love of freedom. Public events vi-ere few. The most remarkable was the Gmipowder Plot, a plan formed in the beginning of the king's reign by a few desperate Catho- lics to blow up the king and parliament, but fortunately dis- covered in time. The most laudable act of James's reign was the settlement and plantation of the north of Ireland. Charles I., of a harsh and arbitrary temper, endeavored to a. i>. put into practice the speculative tenets of his father. He saw 1625, not the state of the nation. English liberty had made great progress under the Plantagcnets : circumstances enabled the Tudors nearly to crush it ; but with the growth of wealth, and the freedom of religious opinion, the spirit of the nation had recovered its vigor. Charles was suspected, on account of his marriage with Henrietta, sister to the king of France, a bigoted Catholic, and his partiality towards the professors of tliat religion, of a secret design ag-ainst Protestantism. The Puritans, now a numerous party, were bitterly hostile to the church of England ; and the persecuting violence and silly superstition of archbishop Laud augmented their rancor. Re- fused the necessary supplies by the parliament, without giv- ing some security for liberty, the king had recourse to all the illegal modes of taxation employed by his predecessors. Ton- nage and poundage were levied ; all tiie oppressions of feudal- ism renewed ; for more than ten years no parliament assem- bled. An attempt being made to force Episcopacy upon the 1638. Scots, that nation took arms, and entered into the solemn LEAGUE AND COVENANT. A dreadful rebellion broke out in 16^1 Ireland, in which thousands of Protestants were barbarously massacred by the Catholics. The Long Parliament, which the king had assembled, advanced every day in their de- mands on him, and testified a spirit of determined hostility to the church. The impeachment, and illegal and unjust, thouo-h well-merited, condemnation of Strafford, the king's ablest and most obnoxious minister, showed him the spirit by which they were actuated. Charles, though reluctantly, still yielded to their demands ; but concession only produced further assump- tion. An invincible distrust of the king's sincerity, for which, indeed, there was abundant reason, haunted the minds of the 336 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. A. D. parliament, and prevented all accommodation. Both parties 1642. finally determined on the appeal to the sword. The king was supported by a large proportion of the an- cient nobility and gentry of the realm, many of whom had at first been zealous in checking theroyal excesses ; but now, seeing the exorbitant demands of the commons, resolved to sustain the throne. The Catholics were naturally unanimous in his favor; the western counties were in general well af fected to him. The chief strength of the parliament lay in the cities and great towns, and the eastern counties, and the lower orders were mostly on their side. It is idle to seek to extenuate the faults on either side ; to represent the one party as the champions of right and justice, the other as the inveterate foes of both. Each had much, indeed, to answer for: it was a struggle, the probable termination of which would be tyranny or anarchy ; yet impartiality will say, that the king was left no alternative, and that the balance of guilt was rather on the side of the parliament. Certainly, neither party is entitled to our unqualified approbation. But, in truth, the Civil War was inevitable ; it was the almost necessary result of the state of opinion then prevalent ; it was the tem- pest which was to purify the political atmosphere. The royal standard was raised at Nottingham (Aug. 22). The first battle was fought at Edgehill. In the course of three years, numerous engagements occurred between the troops of the king and those of the parliament, now joined by the Scots. Lansdown Hill, Round way Down, Newbury, Nantwich, Marston Moor, and other places, witnessed the successes and reverses of either party. At length the king 1645. received a final and fatal overthrow at Naseby (June 14), and unable any longer to make head, he fled for protection to the 1647. camp of the Scots at Newark. He was by them dishonorably surrendered to the parliament. After a confinement of some time, he was, by means of the sect of the Independents, who were all-powerful in the army, and were, therefore, now the 1649. prevailing party, brought to trial, condemned, and beheaded ; a sentence, even if morally just, which it undoubtedly was not, flagrantly illegal ; a sentence that filled Europe with amazement; and that, even if passed with purer motives than it was, by most of his judges, was an act of useless and per- nicious folly. A republic was now established. Holland. After the truce of 1609, the United Provinces were agi- tated by religious dissensions. The opinions of Calvin were maintained in all their rigor bv the followers of Gomer : a CHAP. IV. TIMES OF THE THIRTY YEARS' WAR. 337 milder system was advocated by Arminius. Prince Maurice sided with the former ; the patriotic functionary Barneveldt, who saw through the ambitious designs of the prince, sup- ported the latter. The Gomerists prevailed ; the Arminian preachers were banished. Barneveldt, at the age of 72, was brought to the block, under the base and iniquitous charge of a. d. "vexing the church of God." But the people saw the object 1619 of Maurice, and groans and murmurs, and the name of Bar- neveldt, attended him wherever he went. The Dutch were, during this period, usually allied with France against Spain, They extended their trade in the East and West Indies. In the former they founded Batavia, and laid the foundation of their future empire in those re- gions. Russia. That most extraordinary tyrant, Ivan IV. the Terrible, 1.598. was succeeded by his only remaining son, Fedor, with whom ended the house of Ruric. The boyars chose Boris, the brother of the empress. This prince governed well ; but an impostor appeared, pretending to be Dmitri, the eldest son of Ivan. After the death of Boris, the pseudo-Dmitri gained the throne, and his reign was praiseworthy. Suspected of a fondness for Polish manners, he was murdered by his boyars. Several false Dmitries appeared. At length, the nobles assembled to choose a sovereign. Three days they and the people fasted, and called upon God, and they then appointed 1613. Michaila Romanov, son of the archbishop Philocetus, and grandson, by his motlier, of the Tzar Ivan, a boy of but fifteen years. The new Tzar spent his reign in restoring Russia to its former state of power and order. His son Alexei extended the relations of the empire. He first sent an embassy to China, and made Tobolsk the staple of the Chinese trade. 1645. Turliey and Persia. The Turkish sultans Ahmed, Mustafa, Osman, Moorad IV., and Ibrahim were, all but the ill-fated Osman and Moorad, sunk in pleasure and sensual indulgence, and took little part in the affairs of Europe. Moorad conquered Bagdad, and restrained the power of the janizaries. Persia, under the rule of Abbas the Great, attained to con- siderable power. This truly great monarch was victorious 1582 in his wars against the Ottomans and the Usbegs; and he es- tablished a degree of tranquillity throughout his dominions, to which Persia had long been a stranger. After his death the 1627 Persian power began to decline. 29 Jio8 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. CHAP. V. TIMES OF LOUIS XIV. France^ to the Peace of the Pyrenees. A. D. Louis XIV. was a minor, his mother, Anne of Austria, re- 648. gent, and cardinal Mazarin minister. De Retz (afterwards cardinal) coadjutor archbishop of Paris, a man of unprincipled ambition, endeavored to excite the nobility and people against the minister. The parliament of Paris joined him. The queen was insulted whenever she appeared. Mazarin or- dered the president and some of the most factious members of the parliament to be arrested. The populace rose, and barri- 1577. cadoed the streets till the prisoners were released. Such was the commencement of the celibrated Fronde. The parliament of Paris proclaimed the cardinal a public enemy. The prince of Conti, the duke of Bouillon, and other nobles, joined them. Other parliaments followed their exam- ple. The great prince of Conde, at the request of the court, dispersed the undisciplined troops the parliament had raised. Matters were settled tor a time ; but Conde, Conti, and others were afterwards, by the advice of de Retz, arrested at the council-table. Their partisans took arms : the duke of Or- leans, uncle to the king, set himself at their head. The car- dinal was obliged to fly to Cologne. By the intrigues of him and de Retz the duke of Bouillon and his brother Turenne were detached from the malcontents, and Mazarin returned, 1651. escorted by 6000 men. Conde threw himself on the protection of Spain, and en- tered Paris at the head of a body of Spanish troops. Turenne led Louis within sight of his capital, and these two great gen- erals eno'ao-ed each other in the suburb of St. Antoine. The combat was long ; but the heroism of the daughter of the duke of Orleans, who ordered the guns of the Bastille to fire on the king's troops, decided it in favor of Conde. 1653. At length the king dismissed Mazarin, and the nation re- 1655. turned to its allegiance. Mazarin was, however, afterwards recalled, the nobles were punished, and the parliament hum- bled. The war with Spain had still continued ; it was now prose- cuted with vigor. Turenne and Conde were opposed to each 1656. other. At Arras and Valenciennes the talents of the rivals were fully displayed. The balance was even between the two parties; but Mazarin formed an alliance with Cromwell, CHAP. V. TIMES OF LOUIS XIV. 341 who now governed England, and the beam was turned. Dun- kirk was taken from Spain, and given to England. Ypres, Gravelines, and several other towns, surrendered to the arms a. d of France. Spain saw the necessity of peace, Mazarin and 1659 Don Louis de Haro, the Spanish minister, met in the Isle of Pheasants, in the Pyrenees, and settled the terms of a peace. Philip agreed to pardon the Catalans, and renounce all claim to Alsace; Louis to pardon Conde. The succession of Juliers was secured to the duke of Neuburg, and the infanta Maria Theresa was given in marriage to Louis. Mazarin died within less than a year after concluding the 1661 peace of the Pyrenees ; and Louis, now 21 years of age, took the reins of government into his own hands. England, to the Restoration. The parliament now governed England, and the strength the nation exhibited at this period is astonishing. Cromwell led an army into Ireland, and rapidly overran and conquered 1649 the whole kingdom. The Scots having proclaimed Charles II., Cromwell invaded and reduced that kingdom also. Charles 1650 entered England with a Scottish army ; but the battle of Wor- cester put an end to his hopes. Cromwell now dissolved the parliament, and governed alone, under the title of Protector. 1653 Success attended all his measures of foreign policy. He beat the Dutch, and forced their ships to strike their flag to the English. He took Jamaica from the Spaniards. Mazarin acknowledged him. The Venetians and Swiss sought his friendship. The northern courts respected his power. But at home his government was rigorous in the extreme ; and the despotism of Charles I. had never ventured on the tyr- anny and injustice exercised by this chief of the republic. On the death of Cromwell, his son Richard succeeded him 1658. in the protectorate ; but he soon resigned his dignity. The eyes of the nation, wearied of change and turmoil, were turned to the ancient line of their princes. General Monk, who commanded in Scotland, marched to London ; and the parlia- ment, reassembled under his protection, restored Charles II. 1660. to the throne of his ancestors. Wars till the Peace of Nimeguen. The Dutch had, on the death of William II. of Orange, 1576. abolished the dignity of stadtholder. The family of Orange being connected with the royal family of England, Charles II. wished to restore his nephew, William III., to the power of his ancestors, and he also hoped to make money by a war. The people of England were jealous of the commercial wealth 29* 342 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. ^ART III A. D. of Holland. War was, therefore, declared under false pre- 1664. texts. Squadrons were sent out to Africa and America. De Witt, pensionary of Holland, who directed the republic, fore- seeinof the desisfns of Eng-land, had formed an alliance with France. A large fleet was collected under admiral Opdam. 1665. I^ engaged the English fleet under the duke of York, but was totally defeated. Louis XIV. and the king of Denmark now came forward to aid the Dutch. The following year two most desperate sea-fights took place : the first lasted four days, and the fleets separated, leaving victory undecided. The next month the Dutch were defeated. Both parties growing weary of the w^ar, negotiations were opened at Breda ; but de Witt refused to consent to a suspension of hos- tilities. A Dutch fleet sailed up the Thames, and burned sev- 1667. eral ships of war at Chatham ; and de Ruyter, the Dutch ad- miral, rode triumphant in the Channel. The treaty of Breda was now concluded, in which England receded from some of her demands. She retained New-York, which she had con- quered ; she ceded her settlement at Surinam. Louis XIV. now commenced his career of war, the struggle between absolute monarchy and constitutional liberty. On the death of Philip IV. of Spain, who left only one son, 1665. Charles, a sickly infant, Louis, who, though at his marriage with the infanta lie had renounced all title to the succession of any part of the Spanish dominions, still secretly cherished the hope of obtaining them, had retracted the renunciation, and even laid claim, in right of his wife, to the immediate possession of the duchy of Brabant. This claim could only be decided by arms. At the head of 40,000 men Louis en- 1667. tered Flanders. Tournay, Douay, Lisle, and other towns sur- rendered. Another campaign, it was feared, would make him master of the Low Countries. All Europe was alarmed. A triple alliance was formed between England, Holland, and 1668. Sweden, to oblige Louis to adhere to, and Spain to accept of, the terms offered by the former at the end of the first cam- paign. France and Spain were equally displeased at this treaty, but agreed to treat; and a treaty was negotiated at Aix-la-Chapelle, by which Spain allowed Louis to retain the towns he had taken, and which he had had strongly fortified by the great Vauban. By a treaty with Portugal at this time, Spain acknowledged the independence of that crown. Louis was bent on revenge on Holland. A secret treaty 670. was made with the king of England, whom Louis engaged to assist in his project of establishing popery and despotism in that countrv, if he aided in subduino- the United Provinces; and Louis prepared to invade the States. As he could not CHAP. V. TIMES OF LOUIS XIV. 343 obtain a passage through the Spanish provinces, he, contrary to the faith of treaties, seized on the duchy of Lorrain. Charles, who was now become the pensioner of France, ob- tained under false pretexts a large grant from his parliament ; and a base and unsuccessful attempt was made on the Dutch Smyrna fleet, while the treaty subsisted with the States. At a. d length both monarchs, under the most frivolous pretences, do- 1672 clared war against the United Provinces. The combined fleets of France and England were more than 100 sail. A French army of 120,000 men appeared on the frontiers. The States put forth all their energies. The command of the army was intrusted to William III. of Orange, now 23 years of age. De Witt and de Ruyter attended to the navy. The latter put to sea with 90 sail of large, and 40 of small vessels, to take vengeance on the English for their perfidious attempt on the Smyrna fleet. The English had been joined by the French ; and their combined force was 120 sail, when de Ruyter came in sight of them in South wold Bay. A despe- rate engagement terminated in no decisive advantage to either side. Louis divided his army into three bodies, under Turenne, Conde and Chamilli, and Luxemburg : the bishop of Mimster and the elector of Cologne were his allies. Several towns surrendered. He passed the Rhine. Nimeguen and Utrecht opened their gates. All the provinces but Holland and Zea- land submitted. Holland opened its sluices, and inundated the country; but the councils of the state were distracted by the Orange and republican parties. Offers were made to surrender Maestricht and ail the frontier towns beyond the limits of the seven provinces, and to pay the expenses of the . war. They were haughtily rejected. The prince of Orange was declared stadtholder, and in a moment of popular frenzy the great and good de Witt and his brother were torn to pieces. It was resolved never to submit: ships were even prepared to carry these modern Phocaeans to the East Indies, if unable to retain their country and liberty. The combined fleets, with an army on board, approached 1673 the coast of Holland. In a manner almost miraculous they were carried out to sea, and afterwards prevented landing their forces by violent storms. Those who regarded this as the interference of providence cannot justly be accused of su- perstition. Meanwhile, Louis had returned to Versailles. The emperor and the elector of Brandenburg had shown a dispo- sition to assist the States. The king of Spain had sent them some forces, and the aspect of their affairs was brightening. The Dutch fleet, under van Tromp and de Ruyter, engaged 344 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III the combined French and English fleets under prince Rupert, in three actions, off the coast of Holland. They were, as usual, long- and obstinately foug'ht, and, as usual, undecisive. The French took Maestricht. The prince of Orange re- took Naerden. The imperialists under Montecuculi having vainly attempted the passage of the Rhine, laid siege to Bonn. The prince of Orange joined them. Bonn surrendered. The greater part of the electorate of Cologne w&s conquered ; and the communication beinof thus cut off between France and" the United Provinces, Louis was obliged to recall his forces and abandon his conquests. A congress held at Cologne could settle nothing. The house of Austria was terrified at the projects of Louis; the emperor and the king of Spain, signed a treaty with the Dutch, and Spain declared war. A. D. Charles, unable to get supplies from his parliament, made 1674. peace with Holland. Louis also was desirous of peace ; but the allies were eager for war. Charles in vain tried to me- diate. In the next campaign Louis exerted great energy.. At the head of one of his armies he conquered Franche- Comte. A furious but indecisive battle was fougfht at Seneffe in Brabant, between Turenne and the prince of Or- ange. The prince took Grave, the last town the French held in the United Provinces. Tur«nne was successful on the side of Germany : he overran the Palatinate ; but his laurels were tarnished by the horrible cruelties and excesses com- mitted by his troops. 1675. Louis again vainly sought peace. In the next campaign nothing of importance took place in Flanders. In Germany Turenne was killed by a cannon-ball, and the French army forced to recross the Rhine. 1676. The next year th6 French were successful in Flanders, taking Conde and Bouchain. The imperialists took Philips- burg. The French fleet defeated the combined Dutch and Spanish fleets in the Mediterranean, and rode triumphant in that sea. 1677 The Dutch were now as anxious for peace as Louis ; but the prince of Orange wishing 'to continue the war, another campaign was opened. Louis took Valenciennes, Cambray, and St. Omer, and defeated the prince at Mount Cassal, when he attempted the relief of this last town. The French arms under Crequi and other generals were successful on the Rhine. Spain was torn by factions. A congress had been sitting all this while at Nimeguen, and a conditional treaty was entered into between France and the Dutch. The prince of Orange married in this year the daughter of the duke of York. '^ yAiAV. V. TIMES OF LOUIS XIV. 345 Tn the following year, Louis took Ghent and Ypres. The a. d Dutch were terrified, and signed a separate peace at Nime- 1678. guen. The allies clamored : the prince of Orange sought to break it by an attack on a French army ; but all were finally obliged to accede to it. By this treaty Louis retained Franche- Comte and Cambray, Tourney, Valenciennes, and several other towns in the Low Countries, and his power was now by far the most formidable in Europe. England, to the Revolution. The object of Charles IL M^as to establish absolute power and popery ; and the people, recovering from their delirium of loyalty, gradually became jealous and suspicious of him. Episcopacy having been restored, an iniquitous attempt was 1668. made to force it on Scotland. The detestable barbarity of the government was opposed by the fierce bigotry and fanati- cism of the people, and horrible cruelties were exercised to subdue them. The awakened fears and bigotry of the nation caused a Popish Plot to be got up in England, and several 1678. innocent Catholics were judicially murdered. The jealousy of the commons against the designs of the court was ever alive, and it drove them into some measures not compatible with justice and policy. It was attempted to exclude the duke of York, a known papist, from the crown, and the Test Act was passed. But the court, by taking advantage of circumstances, particularly of the Ryehouse Plot, and secretly supplied with money by Louis, advanced rapidly in the career of despotism, or rather approached nearer the precipice over which it was to be whirled. Russel and Sidney were publicly executed ; 1683 passive obedience was preached ; justice was perverted. In this state of affairs the king died. He expired in the 1685. faith of the church of Rome, which he had long secretly pro- fessed. It was indeed, morally speaking, a matter of little importance what the religious sentiments were of such a heartless, selfish profligate. It is an instance of the effect of popular manners and showy qualities on the minds of the vulgar, that this prince, the mean pensioner of France, the conspirer against the religion and liberties of his people, every one of whose acts tended to disgrace the nation, was, like Edward IV. and Henry VIII., instead of being detested, rather a favorite with the country at large. James II., in his fanatic zeal for popery, would hearken to no remonstrance of prudence. The duke of Monmouth, a natural son of the late king, took up arms in the west of England ; but was defeated, and he and numbers of his ad- herents executed by order of the relentless tyrant. The king 346 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PARI III. proceeded in his design of changing the religion of the coun- try, and attempted to place Papists in the church and univer- sities. Having- ordered his declaration of indulofence to be read in the pulpit, tlie primate and six bishops petitioned against it. They were committed to the Tower, tried, and acquitted. The joy of the people at this event was no warn- ing to the king. The Whigs and Tories (the parties into which the nation was now divided) coalesced on the birth of a young prince, and invited over the prince of Orange to de- liver the nation. The prince embarked with a large force. A. D. The troops of James deserted him. He and his queen and 1688. son fled to France. The throne was declared vacant, and the prince and princess of Orange proclaimed king and queen of England. The Bill of Rights, and, at a subsequent period, the Act of Settlement, were passed for the security of the nation. Such was the revolution of 1688, justly called Glorious; the noblest instance history presents of the salutary and ir- resistible power of public opinion, directed by wisdom, and aiming at just and worthy ends. It is an event to which Eng- land, as long as her name and her language exist, must look back with pride and gratitude ; it stands a mMe monument of bloodless resistance, amidst the scenes O'f cruelty, slaugh- ter, and oppression which deform the domains of history. Be- fore its radiance, absolute power, passive obedience, and their kindred doctrines, fled like spectres of the night, to conceal themselves from human view. Wars to the Peace of Ryswick. After the peace of Nimeguen, Louis proceeded to act in the most arbitrary and insolent manner. He treacherously made himself master of Strasburg, and demanded Alost from the 1683. Spaniards. The Turks had at this time invaded Hungary, and occupied the imperial arms. Joined by the Hungarian malcon- tents, who had invited them, the Turkish army advanced towards Vienna. The vizier laid siege to that city ; but the German princes collected their forces, and, under the command of 1684, John Sobieski, king of Poland, came to its relief The Turks were seized with a panic, and fled ; and they were finally driven out of Hungary. Louis, who had suspended his ope- rations during the siege of Vienna, now reduced Luxemburg, Courtray, and Dixmund. The emperor and Spain were forced to conclude a truce with him. He was now at the height of his power : he had a most extensive marine ; had chastised the pirate states of Africa, trampled on the power and inde- pendence of Genoa, and insulted the dignity of the pope. In CHAP. V. TIMES OF LOUIS XIV. 347 the ig-norance of his bigotry, he revoked the edict of Nantz, a. d. treated his Protestant subjects with all the injustice and cru- 1G85 elty that blind fanaticism could dictate, and thereby lost to France thousands of industrious citizens, who augmented the wealth and the armies of his enemies, A league was formed at Augsburg, to restrain the en- 1687. croachments of France. Spain and Holland joined it, as also did Denmark, Sweden, and Savoy, and, finally, England, now governed by William. The emperor Leopold was at the head of the confederacy. Louis assembled two large armies in 1689. Flanders ; a third was opposed to the Spaniards in Catalonia ; another entered and ravaged the palatinate in a most barbar- ous and fiendish manner, a conduct almost peculiar to the French among civilized nations. But this detestable policy did not avail Louis ; his troops were unsuccessful on all sides ; and he lost Mentz and Bonn. In the next campaign he was 1690. more fortunate : the mareschal de Catinat reduced all Savov; Luxemburof and Boufflers defeated the allies at Fleurus, and Catalonia was thrown into confusion. The Turks were suc- cessful in Hungary. The French fleet defeated the com- bined Dutch and English off Beachy-head. The following 1691. year, though Louis took Mons, he and his allies the Turks, made little progress. Louis, the ensuing spring, took Na- mur : and the kinsi" of England made an unsuccessful attack on the French army at Steenkirk ; Catinat was driven back, 1692. and the duke of Savoy ravaged Dauphine. Waradin was taken from the Turks. The French fleet was defeated off La Hogue. Next year, Luxemburg defeated, at Landen, the 1693. allies, commanded by the king of England ; and Catinat, those under the duke of Savoy, at the river Cisola. A French squadron dispersed and captured several ships of the Smyrna fleet. Meanwhile, France was internally suffering the effects of war. Agriculture and commerce languished ; and, in the next campaiofn, nothing of importance was done. In the cam- paign of 1695, William recovered Namur. In the following, 1696. no signal event occurred, xlll parties were now tired of war. A congress was opened at Ryswick, near Delft, and a treaty 1697. concluded, by which Louis made great concessions, acknow- ledging William III., and restoring to Spain almost all the places that had been united to France, and giving back Lor- rain and Bar to their native princes. The gallant sultan, Mustafa II., was totally defeated at Zenta, in Hungary, by 1699 prince Eugene of Savoy, and forced to conclude a peace at Carlowitz. Tranquillity was thus for a time restored. 348 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART 111 England. A. D. The cause of James was supported in Scotland by the brave 1689. but cruel viscount Dundee. At the battle of Killicranky, he was killed in the midst of victory. The Presbyterian religion was re-established in that kingdom. James himself passing over to Ireland, the Catholics armed in his favor. They were repulsed in their attempt on Derry, and William soon landed 690. in Ireland, and gained the decisive battle of the Boyne. James fled to France. William invested Limerick without success; but the following year, his general, de Ginckel, defeated the 1691. Irish at Aughrim, took Athlone, and Limerick surrendered on conditions w^hich were not subsequently very rigidly ad- hered to by the victorious party. The government of William III., the ablest prince of his age, and one of the best and greatest monarchs that have sat on the English throne, was now firmly established with the consent and support of the majority of the British nation, thouo-h a strong faction still clung to the cause of the banished yrant. Spanish Succession. Charles II. of Spain had no children, and his health was declining. The claimants of the crown were Louis XIV. and the dauphin, and the emperor and the king of the Ro- mans. Both Louis and Leopold were equally related to Charles: they were grandsons of Philip III., and married to daughters of Philip IV. A third competitor was the electoral prince of Bavaria. Right of birth was with the Bourbons, as the king and the dauphin were descended from the eldest in- fantas; but the imperial family pleaded the renunciations made bv Louis XIII. and XIV., and, as the descendants of Maximilian, the right of male representation. The electoral prince claimed in right of his mother, the only surviving child of the emperor Ijcopold by the infanta Margaret, second daughter of Philip IV., who had declared her descendants heir to the crown, in preference to those of his eldest daugh- ter. It was for the interest of Europe that the Bavarian prince should succeed ; but he was unable to contend with his rivals. No power Vv'as inclined for war. Louis and Leopold secretly intrigued at Madrid. The body of the Spanish nation was for the former; the queen and her party for the emperor, egs.' Meantime France, England, and Holland secretly signed a treaty of partition, to give Spain, America, and the Nether- lands to the electoral prince ; Naples, Sicily, some places in CHAP. V. TIMES OF LOUIS XIV. 349 Italy and Spain to the dauphin ; and the duchy of Milan to Charles, the emperor's second son. This treaty coming to the knowledge of the court of Spain, filled it with rage. The king made a will in favor of the electoral prince. England and Holland were well pleased a. d. at this; but the sudden death of that prince revived their 1699 apprehensions. A second treaty of partition was secretly signed by the same powers, giving the electoral prince's part 1700 to the archduke Charles, and Milan to the duke of Lorrain, who was to cede his territories to the dauphin ; and care was taken to prevent, in any case, the crown of Spain being united to that of France or the empire. The emperor rejected the treaty of partition, and the king of Spain nominated the archduke his heir. The nobles and clergy of Spain were for the Bourbons. The archbishop of Toledo prevailed on the king to write to consult the pope ; and Innocent XIL, aware that the liberties of Italy depended on restraining the imperial power, required him to prefer the family of Bourbon. A new will was secretly made, in which 1701. the duke of Anjou, second son of the dauphin, was declared heir. Charles died soon afterwards, and Louis, after some hesitation, accepting the succession, the young king was crowned, under the title of Philip V. ; and England and Hol- land found it necessary to acknowledge him. Leopold dis- puted his title, and sent an army into Italy, to support his claim to Milan. He met there with signal success : the Eng- lish and Dutch, after some fruitless negotiations with France, resolved to support him. He gained the elector of Branden- burg by creating him king of Prussia ; and the king of Den- mark was ready to aid him. A treaty, called the Grand Alliance, was signed by the plenipotentiaries of the emperor, the States General, and the king of England. The avowed objects of it were, to procure the emperor satisfaction respecting the Spanish succession, to prevent the union of the French and Spanish monarchies, &c. Neither England nor Holland would acree to support the emperor in his demand of all the Spanish dominions. On the death of William III., his successor, queen Anne, 17055 declared her resolution to adhere to the Grand Alliance, and war was declared by the three powers against France. In the first campaign, the French defeated the imperialists on the Upper Rhine; but the earl of Marlborough made great progress in Flanders, and the combined fleets of England and Holland captured tlie Spanish galleons, and took and burned a French fleet in Vigo bay. The duke of Savoy, long irreso- l70;i. lute, at length joined the allies, as did also the king of For 30 350 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART lit. tugal. The elector of Bavaria and Marshal Villars defeated the imperialists at Hochstadt. The French had the advantage in Italy and Alsace. In Flanders, the genius of Marlboroug-h kept them in check. The emperor now directed his son Charles to assume the title of king of Spain. A. D. The emperor was almost besieged in his capital by the 1704. Hungarian malcontents on one side, and the French and Bavarians on the other. Marlborough, as the United Prov- inces were now secured, resolved to march into Germany, to the aid of Leopold. He crossed the Rhine at Coblentz, and meeting prince Eugene at Mondelsheim, a junction was agreed on between the allies and the imperial troops under the duke of Baden. They forced the intrenchments of the elector of Bavaria at Donawert. The elector was reinforced by 30.000 French under Tallard : prince Eugene joined Marlborough with 20,000. Each army consisted of about 60,000 men, when they engaged (Aug. 13) near the village of Blenheim, on the banks of the Danube. The victory of the allies was signal; 30,000 French and Bavarians vvere killed, wounded, and taken : the loss of the allies was 5000 killed, and 7000 wounded. All Bavaria was overran; the victors crossed the Rhine, and entered Alsace. In Italy and Spain the advantage was on the side of the French ; but the important fortress of Gibraltar was taken by the English. 1705. Next year the French maintained their superiority in Italy; but in Spain almost the whole cf Valencia and Catalonia sub- mitted to Charles. In Flanders Marlborough was unable to effect any thing. Leopold died this year. 1706. Louis now resolved to strain every nerve to maintain an army in Germany, support his grandson in Spain, strip the duke of Savoy of his dominions, and act offensively in Flan- ders. The ardor of Villeroy in the latter country destroyed all his projects: this general, though with a superior force, gave battle to Marlborough at Ramillies, and was defeated, with the loss of 7000 killed, and 6000 prisoners. All Brabant, and nearly all Spanish Flanders, submitted to the conquerors. In Italy the French, under the duke of Orleans, were attacked and driven out of their camp before Turin, by prince Eugene ; and the house of Bourbon in consequence lost all the territo- ries it claimed in Italy. In Spain the French and Spaniards were repulsed in their attack on Barcelona, and the English and Portuguese entered Madrid, which tliey were, however, unable to retain. Most advantajreous terms were now offered by Louis to the allies ; but the self-interest of Marlborough, Eugene, and the pensionary Heinsius, prevented their being CHAP. V. TIMES OF LOUIS XIV. 353 accepted, though without any farther effusion of blood all the objects of the grand alliance might now be attained. Louis collected all his energies : his troops being obliged a. d to evacuate Milan, Mantua, and Modena, he sent them to the 1'707 aid of his grandson ; and (April 26) the duke of Berwick (a natural son of James II.) gained a most decisive victory over the confederates, under the earl of Galway and the marquis las Minas, at Almanza. The duke of Orleans re- duced Valencia and part of Aragon. Prince Eugene and the duke of Savoy entered France and laid siege to Toulon, but were forced to abandon the enterprise. Enraged by a 1708. futile attempt of Louis in favor of the son of James II., the English parliament adopted most vigorous measures for con- tinuing the war. Marlborough passed over to Flanders, where the French had taken Ghent and Bruges ; and though not yet joined by Eugene, he crossed the Scheld, and came up with the French army, commanded by the duke of Vendome, at Oudenarde. The battle was obstinate, and lasted till night, during which the French fled, leaving the glory of the victory with the allies. Prince Eugene now formed the siege of and took Lisle ; and Ghent and Bruges were recov- ered. The French had rather the advantage in Spain and Italy ; but Sardinia and Minorca surrendered to the English admiral Leake. Again Louis offered the most honorable and advantageous 1709. terms to the allies : he was willing to cede all the Spanish dominions to Charles, to give back to the emperor all his conquests on the Upper Rhine, to acknowledge the succession established in England, the king of Prussia, &c. — in a word, to do every thing that justice could possibly demand. Again the passions and selfishness of those three above-named per- sons retarded the repose of Europe. The French monarch appealed to his people, and, though wasted by famine, they resolved on new efforts. The allied army, 100,000 strong, was formed on the plains of Lisle. Villars, who commanded the French forces, covered Douay and Arras. Eugene and Marlborough, deeming it imprudent to attack him, drew off, and sat down before Tour- nay. That strong city was reduced. They invested Mons. Villars encamped within a league of it, at Malplaquet. The allies attacked him (Sept. 11.) in the strong position he occu- pied : the contest was obstinate and bloody : the allies re- mained masters of the field, with the loss of 15,000 men ; the French retreated, with the loss of 10,000, the armies having been of nearly equal strength. Mons surrendered. Little of importance was done elsewhere. Louis again applied for 1710. 30* 354 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III peace, and a conference was appointed at Gertruydenburg. He was willing to make still farther concessions ; but the in- solence and extravagance of the demands of the States, to whom the negotiation was committed, were such, that it was not possible for him with any honor to accede to them. Eu- gene and Marlborough reduced Douay, and other towns. Villars declined a battle. In Spain, Philip and Charles en- gaged each other at Almenara and Saragossa, and Charles was victorious in each conflict. He entered Madrid. More troops arriving from France, the Spanish nobles made every effort for Philip. Vendome took the command, and forced the English general Stanhope to surrender, with 5000 men, at Brihuega, but was himself beatten at Villa Viciosa by count Staremburg, with a far inferior force. A great portion of the English nation was now grown tired of the expenses of the war ; a change had taken place in its A. D. ministry, the Tories having come into power ; the emperor *711. Joseph was dead, and his brother Charles had succeeded him in the empire. As by the grand alliance the imperial and Spanish crowns could not be held by the same person, a great difficulty in the way of adjustment was now removed. After an inactive campaign, conferences for peace were opened at Utrecht, where the treaties were at last signed, on the 31st of March, 1713, by the plenipotentiaries of France, England, Portugal, the United Provinces, Prussia, and Savoy ; the em- peror and the king of Spain refusing to be included. It was stipulated that Philip should renounce all title to the crown of France, and the dukes of Berri and Orleans to that of Spain ; that in case of the failure of male issue of Philip, the duke of Savoy should succeed to the crown of Spain ; that Naples, Milan, and the Spanish territories on the Tuscan coast should be ceded to the house of Austria, and that house secured in the possession of the Spanish Netherlands ; that the Rhine should be the boundary between France and Ger- many, &c. &c. The acquisitions of England were chiefly in America: she was to retain Gibraltar and Minorca, to have the Asiento or contract for supplying the Spanish settlements with negroes for thirty years ; and Louis acknowledged the settlement of the English throne. But the real gain was on the side of Louis, who obtained all that the war had been en- gaged in to prevent his acquiring. This treaty brought well- merited odium on the English ministry. 1714 The follov;ing year the emperor made peace at Rastadt, on less favorable terms than were offered him at Utrecht. The king of Spain also acceded to the pacification, and Europe rested from war. CHAt. V. TIMES OF LOUIS XIV. 355 In this year died Louis XIV,, the disturber of Europe for nearly half a century. His grandson and successor being a minor, the duke of Orleans was appointed regent. North of Europe — Peter the Great — Charles XII. The people of Denmark, to escape the tyranny of the no- a. r bles, solemnly surrendered their liberties to Frederick III., in 1670 1661. His successor. Christian V., made war on Charles XI. of Sweden, whose father, Charles X., had been called to the throne, on the abdication of Christina, daughter of Gusta- vus Adolphus. Charles XII., a minor, succeeded his father, 1697 Charles XL Alexei of Russia was followed by his son Theodore, who, dying early, appointed his half-brother Peter to succeed ; but 1682. his sister Sophia, aided by the Strelitzes, attempted to secure the power for herself Peter being but ten years of age, she made his imbecile brother Ivan tsar, and associated Peter with him. At the age of seventeen Peter succeeded in sub- verting the power of Sophia, and obtained the full royal dig- nity and influence. He defeated the Turks at Azoph, which 1696. opened to him the Black Sea. He formed vast plans for the improvement of his empire, and he spent a year in Holland and England, making himself acquainted with the useful arts. Eager to distinguish himself in war, he joined the kings of 1701. Poland and Denmark against the young king of Sweden. Charles, though a youth, showed himself a hero. He made an alliance with Holland and England, landed in Denmark, laid siege to Copenhagen, and forced the king to a peace. The Russians had, meantime, besieged Narva with 80,000 men. Charles hasted thither with 10,000, forced their in- trenchments, killed 18,000, and took 30,000 prisoners. Next year he defeated the Poles and Saxons on the Duna, and 1702. overran Livonia, Courland, and Lithuania. Augustus elector of Saxony was king of Poland : his new subjects were dissatisfied with him. Charles formed the de- sign of dethroning him by their means. He defeated him at Clissau, between Warsaw and Cracow, and this last city sur- rendered. Augustus engaged him again at Pultausk, and was again defeated. He fled to Thorn. The throne was 1703 pronounced vacant by the diet, in which the intrigues of Charles prevailed, and Stanislaus Leczinzky was chosen king. 1704. Peter, having retaken Narva, sent 60,000 men into Poland: a Saxon army entered it under general Schalemburg; but Charles soon drove the Russians out of the country, and his general Renschild defeated Schalemburg at Frauenstadt with 1706. great slaughter. The king of Sweden entered and overran 356 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. A. D. Saxony, and forced Augustus to recognize Stanislaus. Having 1707. made the emperor comply with his demands, Charles re- turned to Poland, with 40,000 men. He attempted, though it was winter, to m.arch to Moscow ; but the Tsar had de- stroyed the roads. Urged by Mazeppa, chief of the Cossacks, who offered to join him with 30,000 men, and supply him 1708. with provisions, he entered the Ukraine. Here he encoun- tered nothing but disappointment. Mazeppa's plans had been discovered ; no supplies were provided : general Lewenhaupt, whom he had ordered to join him with 15,000 men from Livo- nia, arrived with his army reduced to 4000 men. Though urged by his ministers to retreat, or to winter in the Ukraine, he madly resolved to proceed. He laid siege to Pultowa, a strong town. His army was now reduced to less than 30,000 men ; the Tzar, at the head of 70,000, approached to its relief. Charles, leaving 7000 to conduct the siege, advanced to give 1709. him battle. (July 8). The result of the conflict was that Charles, with 300 men, sought a refuge with the Turks at Bender. The entire Swedish army were killed or taken. Augustus recovered Poland ; and, but for the emperor and the maritime powers, Sweden would have been dismem- bered. After an abode of nearly five years in Turkey, Charles re- turned to his own dominions, and conducted the war against the Danes and Saxons. He was at length killed before the 1718. fortress of Fredericshall, in Norway. His sister Ulrica was crowned queen. Peter, justly styled the Great, having given his country a rank among European powers, introduced into her civilization and the arts, and founded a capital in the north of his domin- ions, took the title of emperor. But he never was able to subdue the native ferocity of his own temper, and he put to death his son Alexis for no just cause. He left his crown to 1725. his wife, the famous Catherine I. England. The chief domestic events in Great Britain were the union with Scotland, accomplished in 1706, and the settlement of .701. the crown on Sophia, duchess dowager of Hanover, and her heirs, being Protestants. This princess was daughter of Elizabeth, daughter of James L, who wa? married to the un fortunate elector palatine. CHAP. VI. PERIOD OF COMPARATIVE REPOSE. 357 CHAP. VL PERIOD OF COMPARATIVE REPOSE. England. On the death of queen Anne, George elector of Hanover a. d was, by virtue of the act of settlement, proclaimed king. The Yi^^ power of the state was now committed to the Whigs, and the late Tory ministers, who had been desirous of securing the succession of the son of James II., now called the Pretender, were impeached of high treason. Louis XIV. had refused to take any share in the projects of the Pretender, but, on his death, the regent of France secretly encouraged him. His partisans rose in arms in the Highlands of Scotland and the 1715. west of England. The English rebels were forced to surren- der at Preston ; and the battle of Sheriff-Muir, though not de- cisive, crushed the hopes of the northern rebels. The Pre- tender himself landed in Scotland, but, finding his affairs des- perate, retired. In this reign was passed the act for making parliaments septennial instead of triennial, which they had previously 1727. been. George II. succeeded his father. Tlie Quadruple Alliance. Philip V. had, after the death of his first queen, married 1714. Elizabeth Farnese, presumptive heiress of Parma, Placentia, and Tuscany. She was a woman of spirit, and governed that weak monarch ; she was herself directed by Alberoni, a na- tive of Placentia. This bold statesman formed the project of recovering all the dominions ceded at the peace of Utrecht, especially those in Italy. He labored to put the finances of Spain on the best footing; he intrigued in every court; he persuaded Philip that his renunciation of the crown of France was invalid, and that he had even a right to the regency of that kmgdom. Alberoni encouraged the Scottish Jacobites, and inflamed the French malcontents, and a plot was formed for a rising in Poitou, and a seizure of the person of the regent. The exorbitant ambition of the court of Spain determined the regent to enter into an alliance with England, Holland, and the emperor, to maintain the treaty of Utrecht. This was called the Quadruple Alliance. One of its articles was, that the duke of Savoy should exchange Sicily with the emperor for Sardinia, of which he was to take the title of kmg ; and by another, Don Carlos, son of the young queen 358 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III of Spain, was to succeed to Parma, Placentia, and Tuscany on the death of the present possessors without issue. A. D. This alliance made no change in the conduct of the court 1718. of Spain, who had already taken possession of Sardinia and a part of Sicily, and France and England declared war against her. An English fleet, under Sir George Byng, entered the Mediterranean, defeated the Spanish fleet near Sicily, an that island and Sardinia were recovered. The duke of Ber wick reduced St. Sebastian and Fontarabia, and Philip wa obliged to dismiss Alberoni, and accede to the terms of th 1720. quadruple alliance. 1725. A private treaty was afterwards concluded between the emperor and the king of Spain at Vienna. This treaty gave umbrage to England, France, and Holland ; and to counteract it, one was concluded at Hanover between them and Prussia, 1726. Denmark, and Sweden. The emperor and the king of Spahi remained quiet; but the English fitted out three fleets, one of which, under admiral Hosier, was sent to the West Indies to block up the galleons at Porto Bello ; but the attempt was a complete failure. The Spaniards, in return, laid seige to Gibraltar. By the mediation of France a treaty was made 1729. at Seville, by which it was agreed that all the stipulations of the quadruple alliance should be fulfilled. 1731. The treaty of Seville was confirmed by the emperor, and the Spanish troops took possession of Parma and Placentia. The contracting powers agreed to guaranty the Pragmatic Sanction, or law by which the emperor secured to his female heirs the succession of the Austrian dominions in case of his dying without male issue, and the peace of Europe was now restored. 1733. But, on the death of Augustus king of Poland, Stanislaus, who was recommended by the king of France, who had mar- ried his daughter, being a second time chosen king, the em- peror and the Russians made the Poles proceed to another election, and choose the elector of Saxony, son of Augustus. Tlie king of France entered into an alliance with the kings of Spain and Sardinia, and war was commenced against the emperor in Germany and Italy. The French arms were suc- cessful in Germany. In two campaigns the Spaniards be- came masters of Naples and Sicily; the troops of France and Savoy took Milan and other places, and gave the imperialists two complete defeats at Parma and at Guastella. The em- peror was now desirous of peace ; and as the pacific Fleury directed the councils of France, a treaty was easily brought 1735. about. Stanislaus was to resign his claim to the crown of Poland for the ducliy of Lorrain, tlie duke of Lorrain being CHAP. VI. PERIOD OF COMPARATIVE REPOSE. 359 secured by Louis an annual pension of 3,500,000 livres till the death of John Gaston, the last of the house of Medici, and in that event the duchy of Tuscany ; the emperor was to ac- knowledge Don Carlos as king of the two Sicilies, and to re- ceive the duchies of Parma and Placentia ; Novara and Tor- tona were to be given to the king of Sardinia ; France was to give back her conquests in Germany, and to guaranty the a. d Pragmatic Sanction. Peace was made at Vienna on these 1738. terms. Russia. Catherine reigned but two years after the death of Peter. She died in the 38th year of her age, and her son Peter became 1727. emperor. After a short reign of tliree years, Peter also died. The Dolgoruki family, as the male line of the house of Romanov 1730 expired in him, thought this a favorable occasion for gaining the love of the nation by limiting the imperial authority. Deputies were sent to offer the crown, on certain conditions, to Anne, the widow of the duke of Courland, and daughter of the Tsar Ivan, brother of Peter tiie Great. She accepted the conditions; but when she found herself fixed on the throne, she tore the contract, and ruled with absolute power. Having no children, Anne fixed on marrying the daughter of her sister Catherine, duchess of Mecklenburg, also named Anne, to some foreign prince, and settling the succession on the offspring of their marriage. The princess was, therefore, united to Anton Ulrich of JBrunswick-Bevern, by whom she bare a son named Ivan, who succeeded the empress. 1740. Turkish wars. The Turks had, in 1669, taken Candia from the Venetians. By the peace of Carlowitz (1699), the Venetians obtained the Morea, and some places in Dalmatia. While Charles XII. was in Turkey, a war broke out between the Turks and Russians; but the Tsar, who had advanced to the Pruth, be- ing greatly outnumbered by the army of the vizier, was glad to conclude a treaty. 1711. Immediately after the peace of Utrecht, sultan Ahmed III. 1715 declared war against the Venetians, and overran the Morea. The emperor Ciiarles VI., as guarantee of the peace of Carlowitz, declared war against the Turks, and prince Eu- gene gave the troops of the sultan a total defeat at Peter- waradin. He laid siege to Belgrade, defeated an army that 1717 came to its relief, and compelled it to surrender. A peace was made at Passarowitz, by which the Turks 1718 360 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART L surrendered Belgrade and the Bannat of Temiswar, but re- tained the Morea. 4 D. Under the pretext of the incursions of the Nog-ai Tatars 1736. not being checked, the empress of Russia declared war against Turkey. A Russian army, under Miinnich, took pos- session of the Crimea. In the following campaign the town 1737. of OczacofF was taken by storm. The emperor now joined the Russians, as he was bound to do by treaty ; but the im- perial arms met little success, and a peace was concluded, to which the Russian empress, though her forces had gained a great victory at Chotin, was obliged to accede. Belgrade, 1739. Sabatch, and the Austrian part of Servia, were ceded to Turkey ; Russia retained Azoph. Persia — Nadir Shah. The dynasty of the Suffavies had occupied the throne of Persia for 220 years. Their latter princes had been etfemi- nate sensualists, and capricious tyrants. In the reign of 1722. Shah Hoossein, Mahmood, an Affghan prince, invaded Persia, defeated the troops of Hoossein, and forced him to abdicate in his favor. Tamasp, the son of Hoossem, struggled inef- 1725. fectually against the usurper. The Turks and the Russians invaded Persia. Mahmood dying, was succeeded by Ashraff, a valiant Affghan chief : but Tamasp was now .«;upported by Nadir Kooli, who, from a low rank in one of the Turkish tribes in Kliorassan, had, by his valor and talents, raised him- self to power and importance. The fortune of war was ad- 1'!'29. verse to the Affghan monarch; he was defeated, and after- wards slain. Nadir was presented by Shah Tamasp with the four finest provinces of the empire. He turned his arms with success against the Turks ; but while he was absent in Khorassan, Tamasp marched against them, was defeated, and reduced to make an ignominious peace. Nadir, inveigliing against this national disgrace, dethroned the unhappy prince, and occu- 732. pied his place. He then commenced operations anew against the Turkish forces, and defeated them. Offended at a breach of friendship by the emperor of India, Nadir invaded that country. One great victory, near Delhi, laid the power of 1738. the descendant of Timoor at his feet. Upwards of 30,000,000 sterling of booty, and the annexation of the country west of the Indus to his dominions, rewarded the victory of Nadir, who committed less crimes in so great a conquest than almost any Asiatic victor. He afterwards subdued the kings of Bok- hara and Khowaresm, and gained a final victory over the Turks in Armenia. For the last five years of his life. Nadir A. n CHAP. VII. TIMES OF FREDERIC II. 361 exercised the most dreadful tyranny : he blinded his brave son, Riza Kooli, massacred his subjects by thousands, and was at length assassinated by his own officers. His nephew, 1747 Adil Shah, seized on the supreme power, and murdered all the family of Nadir but his grandson, Shah Rokh, who ruled Khorassan while Persia was struggled for by contending chiefs. CHAP. VII. TIMES OF FREDERIC II. The Silesian Wars. The emperor Charles VI. was succeeded in his hereditary 1740. dominions by his daughter Maria Theresa, who was in her twenty- fourth year, and married to Francis duke of Lorrain, now grand duke of Tuscany. Various princes laid claim to the whole or a part of her dominions ; but allegiance was readily sworn to her by all her subjects, and by her volunta- rily taking the oath of their ancient sovereigns, she com- pletely gained the affections of the Hungarians. The first power by which she was assailed was Prussia. 174,. Frederic William, the late king, had amassed a considerable treasure, and formed an army of 60,000 men. His son, Fred- eric II., was young, talented, and ambitious : he resolved to take advantage of the present state of the queen of Hungary, and he revived an antiquated claim to a part of Silesia. At the head of 30,000 men he overran a great part of that prov- ince, and took Breslau, its capital. He offered to aid the queen with men and money to protect the rest of her domin- ions, and to assist in obtaining the imperial throne for her husband, if she would cede to him Lower Silesia. Maria re- fused, and sent an army against him : their forces met at Molwitz, near Neiss, and the superiority of the Prussian in- fantry won the day. France had guarantied the Pragmatic Sanction, and Fleury wished to observe it; but the princes and the young nobility were eager for war, and represented that the time was come tor humbling the house of Austria, and exalting that of Bour- bon, by diminishing the Austrian dominions, and raising to the imperial dignity the elector of Bavaria, the stipendiary of France. The moderation of Louis yielded to these brilliant pros- pects: treaties of spoliation and division were made Vv'ith the 31 362 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. elector of Bavaria and the kings of Prussia and Poland. The French forces were put in motion ; Louis appointed the elec- tor of Bavaria to be his lieutenant-g-eneral, with the marshals Belleisle and Broglio under him. The king of England, fear- ing for his German dominions, concluded a treaty of neutrality for Hanover. The elector of Bavaria, being joined by Broglio, surprised Passau, and entering Upper Austria, took Lintz and menaced Vienna. The queen fled to Hungary, and, with her infant son in her arms, called on the assembled nobles for protection. They swore to defend her cause till death.* These were not idle words ; crowds of warriors rushed to the field. To the astonishment of her enemies, 30,000 Hungarians marched to the relief of Vienna. The elector retired into Bohemia, where, joined by 15,000 Saxons, he took Prague, and having A. D, been crowned king of Bohemia, proceeded to Frankfort, where 1742. he was chosen emperor under the name of Charles VII. The English nation was eager for war; the pacific Sir Robert Walpole was obliged to retire from the helm of the state ; his successors resolved to assist the queen of Hungary; troops were sent to the Netherlands, and a subsidy voted to the queen. Meantime, the Austrians had recovered Lintz, and they entered Bavaria, and took Munich. Another army advanced against the king of Prussia, who had entered Mo- ravia, wliich was to be a part of his share of the spoil. He retired before it, abandoning Olmutz which he had taken. The Austrians now intended uniting all their forces against Broglio and Belleisle ; but the king of Prussia, having been reinforced, marched to tiieir aid, and gave battle to prince Charles of Lorrain at Czaslau, where, after an obstinate con- flict, the prince was forced to retire with the loss of 4000 men. Immediately after this battle, the king of Prussia made at Breslau a separate treaty with the queen of Hungary, who ceded to him Silesia and Glatz, on condition of his neutrality. A treaty was at the same time concluded with the king of Poland. The court of France was filled with indignation at the conduct of the king of Prussia. Broglio and Belleisle retired under the walls of Prague, and offered to surrender all their conquests in Bohemia for permission to retire. The queen insisted on their surrendering as prisoners of war. They in- dignantly refused. Maillebois, who commanded on the Rhine, marched with 49,000 men to their relief. Being joined by 30,000 Bavarians and French, he entered Bohemia ; but, un- * Moriamur pro rege nostro Maria Theresa. CHAP. VII. TIMES OF FREDERIC II. , 363 able to join Broglio and Belleisle, he was oblio-ed to retire to the Palatinate. The French were blockaded in Prag-ue. Belleisle made a most gallant defence, and at last secretly left the city, and conducted his army in safety to Egra in the mid-winter, and through a country possessed by the enemy. The Spaniards had sent an army to seize the Italian do- minions of the house of Austria; but by the active exertions i)f the English fleet, and of the kiiig of Sardinia and the Austrian general Traun, they gained little advantage. The court of Versailles now made offers of peace on most equi- table terms ; but the queen, elated with success, rejected all pacific measures. The imperialists were defeated at Bran- nau ; the French were driven towards the Rhine; and the emperor was obliged to take refuge at Frankfort, where he lived in indigence and obscurity. The British and Hanoverian troops under the earl of Stair, and the Austrians under the duke of Aremburg, marched from the Low Countries towards German}'-. The French army under the duke of Noailles was posted near Frankfort. The king of England had arrived in the camp of the allies, Noa- illes had cut off all their supplies. It was expected that they must surrender, or be cut to pieces in their retreat. The re- treat began: their route lay between a mountain and the Main. Noailles had taken possession of the village of Det- tingen in their front. His dispositions were admirable ; but havhig repassed the river, his nephew, the duke of Gram- mont, advanced (June 26), into a small plain to engage tlie allies. Noailles saw, but could not remedy, this act of im- prudence : the impetuosity of the French was forced to yield to the steadiness of the allies, and they were driven over the Main with the loss of 5000 men. The victory was produc- tive of no important results. The haughty conduct of Maria Theresa began now to give great offence in the empire ; several princes entered inlo a private negotiation with Charles VII. ; the king of Prussia promised his aid on his usual terms — increase of territory. A a. d. family compact was entered into between France and Spain, 1744 and an invasion of England attempted in favor of the pre- tender. In Italy, the French and Spaniards were successful. A treaty was formed at Frankfort between the emperor, the king of Prussia, the elector palatine, and the landgraf of Hesse Cassel. The French arms were victorious in Flan- ders: the king of Prussia invaded Bohemia; but he was driven out of it with the loss of 20,000 men, and all his bag- gage and artillery. The emperor had recovered his domin- 364 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III ions and capital ; but, on the retreat of tlie Prussians, he was A. D. ao-ain expecting to lose them, when death came to his relief. 1745. His son Maximilian, being only seventeen years of age, con- cluded a treaty of peace with the queen of Hungary. She ag'reed to recognize the imperial dignity of his late father, and to put him in possession of all his hereditary dominions; and he renounced all claim to any part of the Austrian suc- cession, and promised to give his vote for the grand duke of Tuscany at the ensuing election of an emper&r. France and Spain resolved to continue the war. Elizabeth Farnese, who still directed the councils of the latter, was de- termined to gain a sovereignty in Italy for her second son Philip. The republic of Genoa concluded an alliance with the house of Bourbon : the army of the confederates was more than double that opposed to it, and Milan, Pavia, and several other towns were taken. A large French army marched to the Main, to hold the queen of Hungary in check ; another of 76,000 men, under marshal Saxe, invested Tour- nay. The allied army of 50,000 men resolved to attempt its relief. The king and dauphin were in the French camp, and Saxe posted his troops strongly behind the village of Fonte- noy. (April 30). The allies attacked : the action commenced at nine, and lasted till three. The efforts made by the British infantry were incredible ; but not being duly supported by the Dutch and Austrians, they were obliged to retire, after having lost 10,000 men. The victory of the French cost them nearly an equal loss. But Tournay, Ghent, Ostend, and several other towns, became their rewai*d. The grand duke was meanwhile elected emperor, under the title of Francis I. The king of Prussia gained two bloody victories over the Austrian troops, and he entered Saxony and took Dresden. Peace was then concluded between him and the queen of Hungary, and the king of Poland. ..746. Brussels was taken by marshal Saxe, and all Flanders,. Hainault, and Brabant reduced. Prince Charles of Lorrain was unable to check the progress of Saxe ; Namur surren- dered, and the indecisive battle of Roucoux ended the cam- paign. In Italy, the arms of France and her allies were less successful : an attack on the camp of prince Lichtenstein at St. Lazaro failed, with great loss. The king of Sardinia formed a junction with the Austrians ; the French and Span- iards were driven under the walls of Genoa, and forced to retire into France and Savoy ; and Genoa surrendered, and ^vas treated in worse than the usual Austrian mode in Italy. The Austrians, under count Brown, 50,000 strong, invaded CHAP. VII. TIMES OF FREDERIC II. 365 Provence, but were soon obliged to retire, and the Genoese rose and expelled them from their city. The French, under Lowendahl, invaded the United Prov- jj^. u, inces, and took several towns. The Dutch, become suspi- 1747 cious of their rulers, renewed, in the person of William Henry, prince of Orange, the dignity of stadtholder, which had been discontinued since the death of William III. New energy was infused into their councils. The allies, under the duke of Cumberland, gave battle to Saxe at Val, on his way to in- vest Maestricht ; but, the British not being properly supported, the advantage remained with the French. Bergen-op-Zoom was besieged, and carried by assault by Lowendahl. Nice and Villafranca were meanwhile taken by Belleisle in Italy, and an army of Austrian s and Piedmontese formed, but were forced to raise the siege of Genoa. The English were suc- cessful at sea. Louis became anxious for peace. A congress was opened at Aix-la-Chapelle. Saxe laid 1743 siege to Maestricht : while he was occupied in it, a cessation of arms was ordered, and peace was concluded at tne end of the year. Parma, Placentia, and Guastalia were ceded to Philip, with provision against their being united to the crown of Spain, or of the Two Sicilies. Silesia and Glatz were guarantied to the king of Prussia, whose selfish policy began the war, and who was the only real gainer by it. France and England, by all their waste of blood and treasure, gained — nothing. England. During these continental wars, England had enjoyed inter- nal tranquillity, till, in 1715, Charles Edward, son of the pre- tender, landed in the north of Scotland, and was joined by several of the Highland clans. There being no adequate force there to oppose them, they took possession of Dunkeld, Perth, Dundee, and Edinburgh. At Preston Pans they de- feated the royal troops. After some delay, they marched into England, took Carlisle, and advanced as far as Derby. But not finding themselves to be joined by the English Jacobites, they retreated homewards. Carlisle was retaken by the duke of Cumberland ; but Stirling fell into the hands of the rebels, and general Hawley, who was coming to its relief, was routed by them at Falkirk. On the advance of the duke of Cum- berland, the pretender retired northwards, followed by the j royal army. The final and fatal battle to the hopes of the { pretender was fought at Culloden (April 16). After long 174c i skulking in various disguises, and experiencing a fidelity and i honor creditable to the national character, he made his escape 366 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III to France. The barbarity exercised by the victors would dis- - -^race the best of causes. Perhaps, few greater instances of .^uman folly could be shown than this blind attachment to an obstinate, tyrannical, and bigoted family. Russia. In the semi-barbarous court of Russia, revolution succeeded' revolution, and ended in placing Elizabeth, daughter of Peter the Great and Catherine, on the throne. She nominated as A. D. her successor Chai'les Peter Ulriek, duke of Holstein, son of 1744. her sister Anna. She had him styled Grand Prince, and he espoused Sophia Augustus, princess of Anhalt-Zerbst, who- took the name of Catherine Alexievna. This prince had had his choice of the crowns of Sweden and Russia. He unfor- tunately chose the latter. The Seven Years'^ War. Europe enjoyed but short repose after the peace of Aix- la-Chapelle. France and England still quarrelled about boundaries in America, and still carried on war in India. England, as war seemed inevitable, wished to make it solely a naval one ; and it was arranged to put Hanover under the protection of the king of Prussia. The court of France was displeased at this project; and the court of Vienna hoped, by means of this displeasure, to recover Silesia, and to free itself from the fears it entertained of the ambition of Frederic. The 1755. houses of Bourbon and Habsburg laid aside their jealousy, of two hundred and eighty years' standing, and concluded an alliance : they were joined by Sweden and Saxony. The empress of Russia, who was bound to aid the king of Prussia in protecting Hanover, declared against him. Spain, Portugal, the Italian powers, and the United Provinces remained neu- tral. Prussia and England stood alone. 1756. The island of Minorca was taken by the French ; and their arms were successful in India and America. The king of Prussia entered Saxony, and made himself master of Dresden : he invaded Bohemia, and routed the Austrians at Lowesitz ; the Saxon army surrendered at Ebenhert. 1757. The marshal d'Estrees passed the Rhine, with eighty thousand men, to invade Hanover. The duke of Cumber- land, with forty thousand Hanoverians and Hessians, attempt- ed its defence, but was driven across the Weser ; and the French became masters of the electorate. The Prussians entered Bohemia in four divisions : that commanded by the prince of Bevern obliged the Austrians to retire at Reichen berg. This division, and that of marshal Schwerin, united CHAP. Vll. TIMES OF FREDERIC II. 367 with the one led by the king, engaged tlie Austrian army under prince Charles of Lorrain and count Brown, at Prague. The Prussians were victorious, and besieged the Austrians in that town ; but having been defeated at Colin, they raised the siege, and evacuated Bohemia. The combined German and French army had meantime advanced into Saxony: the king of Prussia hastened to Dresden, assembled an army, and at the village of Rosbach (Nov. 5) gave them battle, with but half their number of men. His victory was brilliant, his loss being but five hundred, while that of the enemy w-as nine thousand killed, wounded, and taken. The Austrians had de- feated the prince of Bevem, and taken Breslau. Frederic gave them battle, and defeated them at Lissa : Breslau was recovered. The Russians, who had entered the Prussian do- minions, w^ere forced, by want of provisions, to return home : the Swedes were driven under the walls of Stralsund : the Hanoverians rose against the French ; but the English were unsuccessful in North America, and at sea. At the head of the Hanoverians, prince Ferdinand of a. d Brunswick obliged the French to cross the Rhine, and de- m>8. feated them at Crevelt. The king of Prussia recovered Schweidnitz, and invested Olmutz; but the approach of a large Russian force obliged him to raise the siege. At Zorn- dorf he defeated them with great slaughter. At Hochkirchen he was himself defeated by the Austrians : he afterwards forced them to retire into Bohemia. Marshal Daun was obliged to retire from before Dresden, and Frederic entered it in triumph. The Eno-lish admirals Hawke and Anson restored the lus- tre of the British arms at sea. In America, the islands of Cape Breton and St. John's were taken by general Amherst ; the French settlements on the coast of Africa were reduced. In India, the advantage was on the side of the French. At the commencement of the next campaign, the Prussian 1759 arms were victorious on all sides. The French had made themselves masters of Frankfort on the Main. Prince Fer- dinand, with an inferior force, attacked the duke of Broglio at Bergen, in its vicinity, but was forced to retire with some loss. The French reduced Minden, Mimster, and some other places. To save Hanover, the prince found it necessary to give them battle : the conflict took place (Aug. 8) at Minden: the French were defeated. The blame of the vic- tory not being complete was laid on lord George Sackville, the English commander. The Russians defeated the Prussian general Wedel in Sile 5ia. Frederic attacked the combined Austrian and Russian 368 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. army, of eighty thousand men, at Cunersdorf ; and the hor- rible carnage of the day ended in the defeat of the Prussians : yet Frederic, almost immediately after, forced his enemies to act on the defensive. The French army in Westphalia was extremely numerous : a portion of it was defeated by prince Ferdinand at Warburg but the French remained masters of Hesse. The Austrian and Russians poured into the dominions and conquests of Frederic, and in his camp at Lignitz he was in danger of be- ing surrounded by three hostile armies. He advanced to meet, and defeated that of general Laudohn, and thus escaped but the Russians and Austrians entered Brandenburg, and pillaged Berlin. Frederic rushed into Saxony at the head of fifty thousand men, followed by Daun with seventy thou- sand men ; and at Torgau the Prussian monarch gained a hard-fought battle. The English took the island of Guadaloupe, in the West Indies : Crown Point and Ticonderoga were taken by gene- ral Amherst. Quebec, after the defeat of the French army by general Wolf, surrendered. The British arms were vic- torious in India. Admirals Boscawen and Hawke defeated the French fleets off Cape Lagos and Belleisle. A. D. George II. died ; but his successor resolved to continue the 1761. war. A family compact was concluded between the courts of Versailles and Madrid. Prince Ferdinand repelled an at- tack of the French armies at Kirche Denkern ; and Belleisle was taken by a British force. 1762. War was now mutually declared by the courts of London and Madrid. Portugal, refusing to join the alliance against England, was invaded by the Spaniards; but they were driven out of it by the British and native troops. Prince Ferdinand was everywhere successful in Westphalia. The death of the empress of Russia relieved the king of Prussia from his apparently desperate situation. Peter III. was mild and pacific : he made a peace and alliance with the Prussian monarch. Frederic carried on the war with vigor against the Austrians ; but the dethronement and death of his Russian ally perplexed him, as he knew not what the policy of Catherine II. might be : she continued the peace, but recalled her troops. Frederic recovered Silesia. A ces- sation of arms was made for Saxony and Silesia. Frederic ravaged Bohemia and Franconia. The British fleets and troops took Martinique and the Havannah, in the West Indies, and Manilla, in the Philippine islands. Negotiations for peace had long been going on, and rr.n. the definitive treaty was signed at Paris (Feb. 10) ; and •HAP VII. TIMES OF FREDERIC 11. 369 aoout the same time another at Hubertsburg, between tlie em- press-queen ana ^he king of Prussia. England obtained all Canada, and the islands of St. John and Cape Breton, great part of Louisiana, her conquests on the Senegal, the island of Grenada : all her other conquests she restored. Prussia and Austria agreed to place themselves on the footing they were on at the commencement of hos- tilities. Thus ended the Seven Years* War — a war which had caused such an effusion of blood and treasure: it ended with- out being productive of any real advantage to any one of the parties. Suppression of the Jesuits. Europe now reposed from war. This period of tranquillity is marked by the suppression of the order of the Jesuits. This order was founded by a soldier, Ignatius Loyola, in the time of Charles V. Retaining his military ideas, Ignatius imposed on the members of his new order the strictest obe- dience ; but his rules were simple and innocent. His suc- cessors, Lainez and Aquaviva, formed it into an institution which might vie with any of ancient or modem times. It speedily developed its powers ; the Jesuits became directors of the consciences of the great, and teachers of the young ; they excelled in learning ; they were the most zealous of missionaries. Forming a body, whose soul was the ;.'eneral of the order at Rome, they were the chief stay of papal power, and on them rested the remaining faint hopes of regaining spiritual dominion. But with all its great qualities and high aspirations, the order was fated to meet with no final suc- cess ; the spirit of the age was against it ; its assumptions were too high, its moral system too lax, its intrigues and movements too dark and complicated. The marquis of Pombal, the Richelieu of Portugal, hated the order, which stood in his way : vile calumnies were forged against them, and they were expelled from Portugal. The example was followed by France, then by Spain, Na- ples, and finally by Austria. Their property was seized by the rapacious governments: Spain and Portugal, the most bigoted nations, were their most relentless persecutors. It was the expulsion of the Moriseoes on a minor scale. The unhappy fathers were forced on shipboard, and landed in the papal states. The good Clement XIII. remonstrated — ^he a.d. could do no more — in their favor: the excellent Clement 1773. XIV. yielded ^o the torrent, and suppressed the order 370 OUTLINES Of" HISTORY. PART TIT. First Partition of Poland. An event now occurred which throws into the shade all that we have previously seen of injustice and aggression. A. D. The empress Catherine 11. the northern Clytemnestra, had 1762. ascended the throne of her deposed and murdered husband, and had piously restored to the clergy their beards, pictures, and revenues, of which he had deprived them. Augustus III. king of Poland dying, the diet assembled at Warsaw to choose a successor proved a storm}'^ one : the pacific empress considerately sent a body of troops thither to preserve the peace ; and Stanislaus Poniatovsky, the candidate whom she 1764. favored, was of course elected. He mounted the throne in tranquillity ; but that state did not long endure. Animosities broke out between the Catholic party and that of the dissi- dents, who demanded an equality of rights: the latter were supported by the empress of Russia and the king of Prussia. Catherine fomented tlie disorders; her troops behaved with the greatest insolence; a civil war, and a war against the Russian intruders, agitated the unhappy country. At length the time seemed to be arrived for the execution of a project, first conceived by the royal philosopher of Sans Souci, — the tranquillizing of Poland by its dismemberment. Religion ex- cited some qualms in the mind of Maria Theresa ; it was, however, forced to yield to the arguments of her enlightened son, .Tns:>ph. On the part of Catherine, no one looked for scruples. The plunderers would act with some faint semblance ol justice ; some ridiculous old claims were therefore trumped up against Poland. The king and people appealed to justice ; a weak appeal against Russian bayonets. All good men be held witli abhorrence the flagrant breach of divine and human laws, and the hypocrisy employed to veil it : the remainmv powers of Europe were not in a condition to interfere. A third part of Poland was divided among the diademed rob- bers. A diet was called to sanction the dismemberment of their country ; three foreign armies were at hand to prevent tumult: money and promises were distributed, and a majority of six votes in the senate, of one in the assembly of nuncios, sanctioned this detestable iniquity.' The ravished provinces were, perhaps, better under their new owners; for Frederic and Catherine were both wise sovereigns, and Joseph thought himself an adept in legislative wisdom ; but eternal infamy will pursue their names, and tlu partition of Poland disgrace the eighteenth century of the Christian era. CHAP. VII. TIMES OF FREDERIC II. 371 Turkish War. The affairs of Poland involved Russia in a war with Tur- key. Large armies on both sides advanced towards the Dan- a. d. ube. The war commenced with the ravage of the frontiers. 1769 In the spring the standard of the pi-ophet was displayed. 1'he Russians were driven by the vizier beyond the Dneister. The able vizier was recalled ; his successor crossed the Dneister, and was defeated : Chotin and other fortresses were taken. A Russian fleet sailed round Europe, and appeared in the 1770 Grecian seas. The Turks had driven the Russians out of Moldavia and Wallachia ; but the vizier was defeated near the mouth of the Pruth. Bender was stormed, after a siege of two months, and experienced Russian barbarity. The Greeks of the Morea rose at the call of Russia ; the pasha of Bosnia entered it with 30,000 men ; at Modon the Jiopes of Greece were crushed. The Turkish fleet was defeated at Epidaurus, and again defeated at Chios, and burnt at Chesme. Syria and Egypt were in rebellion. The plague broke oul at Yassy, and spread to Moscow, where 90,000 persons died of it. The Russians broke into and seized the Crimea. The jani- 1772 zaries rose, murdered their aga, and set fire to their camp. Ali, the Egyptian pasha, fell in battle against his brother-in- law Mohammed, and his head was sent to Constantinople. The Russians crossed the Danube : they were twice forced 1773 to raise the siege of Silistria, and they lost at Varna the greater part of their artillery. Hassan Pasha swore to the sultan to drive them over the Danube, and he performed his oath. Mustafa III. died, and appointed his brother Abd-ul-Hamed 1774. to succeed, instead of his young son Selim. As no largesses were distributed, the janizaries would serve no longer. " Peace is necessary," said the mufti to the sultan, " since thy people will fight no more." Catherine was also anxious to end the war, and peace was concluded at Kainargi. The free navigation of the Black Sea and some territory were ceded to Russia. American Revolutionary War. Northern America had been chiefl}'^ colonized by the Eng- lish ; the settlements of the Dutch and French were acquired by conquest. All these colonies were in the enjoyment of liberal and popular constitutions; the country was highly fertile, population rapidly increased, the energy and the bold- ness of youth animated the people, and crowds of colonists 372 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART 111. from Europe annually arrived on their shores. 'J'he mother country being oppressed by debt, a plan was devised to make j^ jj the colonies contribute to her relief, and a stamp-duty on va- 1765. rious articles was imposed. The Americans remonstrated ; a 1766. change took place in the ministry, and the act was repealed. The spirit of oppression on the one hand, and of resistance on the other, still continued ; and when the parliament im- posed a duty on tea, the Americans refused to pay it, and at Boston the tea was flung into the sea. The British parlia- ment passed bills for shutting up the port of Boston, and al 1774. tering the constitution of Massachusetts. The colonists called a provincial congress, and addressed a manly petition to the king. It was not received. The king and parliament in their wisdom, or rather in their pride, determined on what are called strons;' 'measures, and a civil war began. 1775. In the contest between England and her American colonies, the first blood was shed at Lexington, in New-England. Eight hundred British grenadiers and light infantry were sent out from Boston, for the purpose of destroying some military stores collected at Concord. On receiving intellig'ence of this movement, the provincials of that neighborhood rose en masse. A small body of them, appearing at Lexington, were fired upon by the British, who then proceeded to Concord and destroyed the public stores; but they were here attacked with such spirit by the provincials, as to compel their imme- diate retreat to Boston, with the loss of sixty-five killed and two hundred and eight wounded and prisoners. From this day, (April 18th,) the British were ibrmally besieged in Boston. On the 17th June, the provincials, having thrown up a re- doubt on Bunker's Hill, a position which commanded Boston, were attacked by 3000 British, under generals Howe and Pigot. The British were twice repulsed with heavy loss. On the third attack, being reinforced, and the Americans having exhausted their ammunition, the redoubt was carried with the loss of 1054 British, and 450 Americans. General Montgomery entered Canada with a small force, and fell in an unsuccessful attempt on (Quebec. The first provincial congress had assembled at Concord, Massachusetts, in 1774. A second ass3mbled at Philadelphia (May 1775), appointed John Hancock their president, and George Washington commander-in-chief of the provincial forces. He joined the army at Cambridge in July, and held the British under general Howe closely besieged in Boston till March, 1776, when the town was evacuated, and Washing 1776. ton entered it in triumph. The British admiral Sir Peter Parker, with a heuvy nava CHAP. VII. TIMES OF FREDERIC IT. 375 force, was defeated in an attempt on Charleston, the capital of South Carolina, bv four hundred militia and soldiers of the line intrenched on Sullivan's Island, under colonel Moultrie. On the 4th of July, 1776, the congress declared the inde- pendence of the United States of America. New- York was occupied by the British, under general Howe, and the Americans were compelled to retreat from New-Jersey. The latter, however, was soon recovered by a. d. general Washington, in the decisive actions of Trenton and 1777 Princeton. General Washington, with an inferior force, hazarded an engagement with Sir W. Howe, near the river Brandywine, and was defeated with the loss of 1200 men. This was the first action in which the marquis de La Fayette was engaged. He was a young French nobleman, who had abandoned his brilliant prospects at the court of his sovereign, to embrace the cause of liberty. The English took Philadelphia, and defeated the republic- ans, who attacked them at Germantown ; but general Bur- goyne, who, having reduced Ticonderoga, was advancing to join general Howe, was attacked at Saratoga, by colonel Ar- nold : general Gates coming up with a considerable force, prepared to surround Burgoyne, who, after a fruitless attempt to force his way, was obliged to fall back on Saratoga, and there to capitulate. His troops, 5790 in number, were to be sent to England, and not to serve again in North America during the war. The killed, wounded, and prisoners in the preceding part of the expedition, amounted to upwards of 4000 men. France had long been watching the progress of the con- 1778. test. This last event decided her, and an alliance was formed with the infant republic. The court of Spain soon afler fol- lowed her example. An indecisive engagement took place between the Briti.sh and French fleets off Ushant : Sir Henry Clinton toolv the chief command in America: he forthwith abandoned Philadelphia, and retired to New- York. An at- tempt on Rhode Island, by the American general Sullivan and the French admiral d'Estaine, proved a failure. Com- missioners were sent out from England to treat with the Americans ; but as the latter insisted on the recosfnition of their independence, nothing could be effected. Savannah, the capital of Georgia, having been taken by colonel Campbell with 2000 British troops, the whole prov- ince of Georgia seemed reunited to the British crown. An 1779. unsuccessful attempt was made to recover Savannah by gen- eral Lincoln, aided by a naval force under d'Estaine. 376 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. A. D. 1780. Charleston capitulated to general Clinton, and the province of South Carolina was forced into a temporary submission to the British. A provincial force, consisting principally of mi- litia, imder general Gates, was defeated at Camden by the British under earl Cornwallis and lord Rawdon. In this cam- paign occurred the defection of Arnold, and the detection and execution of the British major Andre as a spy. Sir George Rodney defeated the Spanish fleet off cape St. Vin- cent, and thrice engaged, though not with decided success, the French fleet under count de Guichen. The jealousy of the continental powers of Europe novv showed itself, by the armed neutrality, which they all^under the o;uidance of the tsarina of Russia, now entered into to resist the right of search and blockade claimed by England. A correspondence between Holland and the United States relating to a loan and treaty being discovered, England de- clared war against the Dutch ; and t.lie island of St. Eustatia, a rich magazine of wealth, was taken and plundered by a nrval force under admiral Rodney, While his fleet was weak- enea by a detachment sent to England with the produce of the sales of confiscated property, the French were enabled to gain a superiority on the American coast, which led to the total ruin of the British army in America. 1781. The Spaniards laid siege to Gibraltar, which was gallantly defended ; but Minorca was forced to surrender. Indecisive sea-actions were fought betw^een Sir Hyde Parker and the Dutch, and between Sir S. Hood and the count de Grasse. The island of Tobago surrendered to the French. The French admiral nov/ resolved to assist the Americans with vigor. They had defeated colonel Tarleton at the Cow- pens, in Carolina, and, though not victorious in their attack on Cornwallis at Guilford, had caused him considerable loss. General Greene was defeated by lord Rawdon at Hobkirk ; but soon after attacked the British force under colonel Stew- art at Eutaw Springs, and overthrew them with a loss on their side of eleven hundred men, including prisoners and wounded. This action terminated the war in South Caro- lina. Earl Cornwallis having retreated from Carolina, took a sta- tion at Yorktown, on York river, in Virginia, and had fortified it and Gloucester on the opposite bank. The count de Grasse, with a French fleet of 28 sail, havingr entered the Chesa- peake, prevented admiral Greaves alfording any relief to Cornwallis, and general Clinton failed to send any aid from New- York. A combined American and French army, under Washington and Rochambeau, besieged him, and afl;er some CHAP. VII. TIMES OF FREDERIC II. 379 weeks Cornwallis was compelled to capitulate. The troops, 7000 in number, were made prisoners of war ; the ships be- came prizes to the French. ^ p The war in America was now ended. The British ministry 1782. was changed. England saw the folly of protracting a useless and destructive contest. She acknowledged (Jan. 20) the 1783 independence of the United States. A new constitution of government was formed, and Washington was chosen presi- dent. Of the injustice of this war on the part of England, few now have any doubt ; its importance, as an example, has been felt in every subsequent struggle for liberty which the world has witnessed. India. The conquests of the Portuguese in the East were amaz- ingly rapid. At the time they fell under the yoke of Spain, [1580 they were all-powerful on the coasts of India, possessed the Moluccas, the coast of Ceylon, the isles of Sunda, and the trade of China and Japan. The Dutch used to purchase the products of the East at Lisbon, and distribute them over Eu- rope. Philip II. having prohibited all intercourse with them as rebels, they made their way to India, and formed a settle- ment in Java, and an East India company was established. While Portugal was united with Spain, they made constant 1595. war on her in the East, and in a few years they left her no- thing there but Goa. The English appeared in India a few years after the Dutch. 1600 They also had formed a company. Their first settlements were in Java, Banda, Amboyna, and Poleron. The Dutch were jealous of them, and the rival companies carried on war against each other. A treaty was concluded to arrange their 1623. differences; but the Dutch, regardless of it, barbarously mas- sacred the English at Amboyna and other places, and ex- pelled them from the Spice Islands. The supineness of James I., and afterwards the civil wars of England, prevented the nation attending to the East. Cromwell had a British spirit; the company throve in his time : Charles II. betrayed and oppressed it. The great Colbert had formed a French East India com- 1664. pany ; their chief settlement was at Pondicherry, on the Coromandel coast. Thus the three greatest maritime powers were established in India, and the wars of Europe were now to be extended to that distaftt region. During the war of the succession, the French had taken 1746. Ihe English settlement of Madras. At the peace o*" Aix-la- SHU OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. Chapelle it was restored. M. Dupleix, the governor of Pon- dicherry, formed a grand plan for gaining territory for the French India Company. Having a good body of troops under him, he, by their valor, and his own intrigues, managed to have the candidate he sided with appointed subahdar of the Becan, and to get the nabobship of the (^arnatic for Chunda Sahib, for whose life he was himself appointed nabob of that province. Dupleix aimed at obtaining all the country be- tween Masulipatam, Goa, and Cape Comorin. Mohammed Ali, son of the late nabob of Arcot, implored the assistance A. I), of the English, who gave him some reinforcements, and sev- 1751. eral actions took place. In this war the famous Clive first appeared ; with a small force he took Arcot, and when Chunda Sahib besieged it with a large army, he defended it with amazing talent and courage, and repelled the assailants. Re- inforced by colonel Kirkpatrick, he pursued and defeated the enemy on the plains of Arni. The rajah of Tanjore, and other princes, joined the English : Chunda and the French were several times defeated. Mohammed was acknowledged nabob of Arcot ; the French lost the greater part of their ac- quisitions ; and peace was about to be made, when a new war broke out in Europe. The three rival companies had early established factories in Bengal ; but the good policy of the Mogul government pre- 1696. vented their having any garrison or wcrks of defence. On occasion of a rebellion of the rajahs west of the Hooglee, the factories augmented their soldiery and declared for the nabob, who gave them permission to put their settlements in a state of defence. The Dutch then fortified their factory at Hoog- lee, the French theirs at Chandemagore, and the English theirs of Fort William at Calcutta. The English obtained some advantages from the court of Delhi, and increased their wealth and power. Suraj-ud- 1756. Dowlah, the subahdar of Bengal, Bahar, and Orissa, ofifended at their abuse of their privileges, and by their protecting a nobleman who had fled from his vengeance, suddenly marched with 50,000 men against Calcutta. After an ineffectual re- sistance, the governor and all but 200 of the garrison of Fort William escaped on shipboard. Mr. Holwell, who now took the command, soon saw himself and his unhappy companions immured by the cruel subahdar in the Black Hole, where nearly the whole perished. The affairs of the English in Bengal seemed now entirely ruined. 1757. But the affairs of the compar^ on the coast of Coromandel being now settled, admiral Watson took on board colonel Clive and some troops, and sailed for Calcutta. That town CHAP. VII. TIMES OF FREDERIC II. 381 was recovered, Hoog-lee reduced, and the subahdar oblig-ed to sue for peace. He agreed to restore every thing-, and to allow the presidency to extend over thirty-eig'ht neig-hboring' villages. The English now turned their arms against the French, and besieged and took Chandernagore. Clive aimed at farther humbling the subahdar, who was backward in. ful- filling the treaty. In artifice, dissimulation, and what else is dignified with the name of policy, he was a full match for an Asiatic : he secretly gained Jaffier, the commander of the troops of the province, and he persuaded the subahdar to dis- band the forces he had collected at Plassy. Clive advanced to take that important post; but the subahdar had reassembled his army, and occupied it. His forces were 50,000 foot, and 18,000 horse; those of Clive 1000 Europeans, and 2000 Se- poys ; yet he ventured to give battle, and gained a victory. Jaffier was acknowledged by him subahdar. Suraj-ud-Dowlali was taken and put to death by order of the son of Jaffier ; and the latter agreed to pay his allies the sum of 2,750,000 pounds sterling, and to enlarge tlieir territory. The war was carried on between the French and English ^ jy in the Carnatic. Count Lally, the French commander, being 1758. largely reinforced from home, reduced Cudalore and Fort St. David. Next year he failed in an attempt on Madras. The 1759 British now took the field, and reduced Masulipatam and Con- jeveram. Wandewash was reduced by colonel Coote, who defeated a strong army led by Lally to attempt its recovery. Surat was taken by an English force from Bombay; and the Dutch were well castigated in Bengal for their designs against the English in that quarter. The English had deposed their ally Jaffier in Bengal (1760), and placed Cossim on the musniid. Their cupidity made them seize a pretext for making war on this prince : they de- prived him of the whole province of Bengal, and Jaffier was again declared subahdar. The Great Mogul and the nabob 1765 of Oude in vain supported Cossim : they were obliged to sue for peace. In the Mysore a war was carried on, mostly to the advantage of the English, against Hyder Ali. Durino- the American war, the French lost all their set- tlements in India. The company carried on a vigorous war against Hyder Ali and the Mahrattas. Colonels Baillie and 1778 Fletcher were with their whole force taken or slain by Hyder and his son Tippoo; but Sir Eyre Coote defeated them in 1781. several engagements. After the death of his father, Tippoo continued the war^ The English had now an extensive empire in India. Much is it to be deplored that in the acquisition and management 382 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III of it, the rights of humanity and justice were so frequently trampled upon. It is an important inquiry what has been or is to be the advantage or evil to India and Britain from their close connexion. Persia. A. D. When the dynasty of Nadir had been extinguished in Per- ^^^^' sia, the sovereignty of that country was contended for by the different rival chiefs, whose claims were all successively forced to yield to the power and the merit of Kerreem Khan, a chief of the native Persian tribe of Zend. The reign c' this excellent prince, who occupied the throne twenty-six years, is a delightful object of contemplation amid the scenes of barbarity characteristic of eastern despotism. Justice, clemency, moderation, goodness of heart, distinguished all his actions. He lived and died happily amidst a grateful and 1779. contented people. On the death of Kerreem Khan, his brothers and nephews contended for the vacant throne. After the usual series of 1789. atrocities attendant on such an event, the power remained in the hands of Lootf Ali Khan, a youth of astonishing military talent and courage ; but having behaved with ingratitude to the able and virtuous Hajee Ibrahim, governor of Sheeraz, to whom he was chiefly indebted for his throne, the latter, seeing that he had no security for his life but in depriving the king of the power to injure him, entered into a secret treaty with Aga Mohammed Khan, chief of the Kajirs, a Turkish tribe, settled in Mazenderan by Abbas the Great, who was now grown so powerful as openly to aspire to the empire. Lootf Ali Khan, after struggling for his crown with a heroism 1795. rarely paralleled, fell at length into the hands of his cruel rival, by whom he was put to death, with every refinement of barbarity. This unhappy prince was but twenty-five years old. Aga Mohammed was uncle to the present king of Per- 1796. sia ; and by his vigor and cruelty, he left the kingdom to his successor in the state of obedience it has ever since main tained. CHAP. VIII. TIMES OF THE FRENCH REVOLUTION AND EMPIRE. State of Europe, Literature now exerted a much more powerful influence over the public mind than it had done at any preceding period. A set of men, many of them of talents of the first order, ar CHAP VIII. FRENCH REVOLUTION AND EMPIRE. 383 rogating to themselves the exclusive title of philosophers, and actuated at first, perhaps, by a zeal for truth, carried on an incessant warfare against all that they were pleased to de- signate as superstition and vulgar prejudice. But theirs was not that philosophy which, elevated above all low and grovel- ing passions, and irradiated by light from heaven, views with pity rather than contempt the aberrations of man, and seeks by mild and gentle methods to lead liim into the way of truth. It was heartless, cold, and cheerless; its summurn bonum was sensual indulgence or literary fame, and few of its pro- fessors displayed any real dignity of soul : its favorite weapon was ridicule ; it attacked not alone the absurdities of the popular faith, but it levelled its shafts at the sublim.est truths of religion; it shook the firmest bases of social order, and sought to rob man of all lofty hopes and aspirations. Every mode of composition, from the highest science and most seri- ous history down to the lightest tale, was made the vehicle of this philosophy, with which was often joined a sickly, affected sensibility, calculated to gain it admittance even into the female bosom. The consequence was, as might be ex- pected, a general laxity of principle. The chief seat of this philosophy was France, where a court, corrupt and profligate beyond, perhaps, any which Europe had yet witnessed, had utterly degraded the minds of the upper classes of society. The efl^brts of the virtuous J.ouis XVI. to stem this torrent were unavailing: national vice was not to escape its merited chastisement. The middle orders were disgusted and galled by the privileges of the noblesse, and their excessive pride and insolence; the writings of the philosophers, and the scandalous lives of many of the clergy, had shaken their reverence for religion; the abuses and oppression of arbitrary and extravagant government were keenly felt ; the glorious struggle of the English for liberty in the last century, and the dignity and prosperity consequent on it, awaked the aspirations of the better disposed; the achievement of American independence filled the minds of many enthusiasts with vague ideas of freedom and happi- ness beneath republican institutions ; and the lower orders in general looked forward to any change as a benefit. It was a time of innovation, turmoil, and violent change. The English colonies had thrown off the bridle of the mother country, whom she curbed too straitly. The kingdom of Poland had been most nefariously dismembered. Gustavus III. of Sweden had overthrown the aristocracy, and made liimself absolute. A contest arose in the United Provinces,, a i>. between the party of the stadtholder and those who wished 1772. 384 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. to make the government of a more republican form, which drew the attention of all the principal powers: the respective ^. D. parties appealed to arms, and by Prussian aid the republicans 1787. were crushed. All these were but preludes to the storm which was soon to burst over Europe. 1787. The east of Europe was meantime precipitated into war. The Turkish sultan, apprehensive of the designs of the tsarina and the emperor Joseph, declared war against Russia. The Turks commenced by the bombardment of Kilburn, on the Dneiper; but, while forming the trenches, they were at- tacked by Suvaroff, and nearly their whole tbrce destroyed. Joseph now took part in tbe war, and opened it by a treach- erous attempt on Belgrade : he entered the Turkish domin- ions at the head of a considerable force; but he reaped little 1788. military fame, and could only boast of the reduction of Choczim. The king of Sweden now entered into the war at the in- stigation of the king of Prussia and the Porte, and severe naval conflicts took place in the Baltic ; but several of Gus- tavus's officers refused obedience to him, and the Danes pre- pared to attack him on the side of Norway. A Russian flo- tilla, under the prince of Nassau Siegen, defeated Hassan, the capudan-pasha, off" Oczakoff". In three other conflicts he was equally unfortunate. The siege of Oczakoff" was formed by prince Potemkin : the town was taken by assault, and the inhabitants butchered and pillaged by the soldiery. 1789. Abd-ul-hamed, dying suddenly, was succeeded by hisnephew Selim III. ; but success did not revisit the Ottoman arms. On the plains of Rimnik they failed before the Austrians and Russians, and Belgrade surrendered to the Austrian general Laudohn. But disease and chau'rin at the resistance offered to his innovations in the Netherlands, and the discontents in i790. Hungary, terminated the existence of Joseph ; and his brother Leopold, grand duke of Tuscany, who succeeded him, after some unsuccessful efforts, concluded an armistice with Selim. On the part of the Russians, Ismael, a strong town in Bes- sarabia, was taken by assault by Suvaroff", during the very middle of winter. The ferocious warriors massacred in this assault fifty thousand Turks : their own loss was, according to their veracious commander, four thousand three hundred ; according to others, fifteen thousand. In the Baltic, the Rus- sian fleet was completely defeated by that of tlie Swedes, commanded by Gustavns in person ; and preliminaries for a peace were soon afterwards asfreed on. The war was carried on with vigor in Turkey : the Moslems were defeated at CHAP. VIII. FRENCH REVOLUTION AND EMPIRE. 385 Maczjn, and Bahada, and the tsarina at length ag-reed that a a. d congress should be held at Yassy to arrange the terms of a 1791 peace, which was concluded in the following year. An attempt made by the patriotic portion of the Polish nation to regain their independence was crushed by the arms of the Russian despot, and the nation fell back into its former state of degradation. Frederic 11. of Prussia had died in 1786. Catherine sur- vived him ten years, and lived to witness the horrors of the French revolution. The French Revolution. The disordered state of the French finances induced the 1787 court, displeased with the parliament of Paris, to assemble the Notables; that is, persons selected from the privileged orders. This measure produced no advantage, and all classes called for a meeting of the states-general. This national council was at length convoked, and met at Versailles; but 1789 the commons were thought to a.ssume so much power, and to encroach so on the other orders, that the king dismissed Necker, his minister of finance, and ordered some regiments to advance towards the capital. The populace, excited by the democrats, committed several outrages, and they took and demolished the fortress named the Bastile. The privi- leges of the nobility and clergy were soon abolished. The king was obliged to recall Necker, and to transfer the assem- bly to Paris, where the mob was at the devotion of the demo- crats. The property of the church was now transferred to the nation; the kingdom was divided into departments; change followed change without intermission ; the king, for peace sake, assented to every thing; but commotion and bloodshed prevailed in different parts of the kingdom. The power of the democrats still increased, and the famous 1790. Jacobin club was formed by them. Several of the nobility and of the royal family quitted France. A project being formed for the emperor and other powers to assist the king in the recovery of his authority, of which he was now nearly 1791. deprived, he and the royal family endeavored to escape out of France ; but they were stopped at Varennes, and forced to return to Paris. The Jacobin and Cordelier factions loudly demanded his death, and a violent riot took place in the Champ de Mars. A constitutional code was at this time completed. Brissot, the leader of the Jacobins, procured a declaration 1792. of war against Austria, and La Fayette invaded the Nether- lands, but he was unsuccessful. A Prussian army, undei A. D. 386 OUTLINES OF HrSTORY. PART III. the duke of Brunswick, approached the French frontier; but the violent and silly manifesto he put forth served only to in- jure the cause it advocated. The Jacobins, urged on by their atrocious leaders, excited the populace ; the king and royal family were put into confinement. Numbers of the nobility and others were murdered to prevent their joining the Prus- sians. Royalty was abolished. The Jacobins split into the Girondists, headed by Brissot and Roland, and the Jacobins, led by Robespierre, Danton, and Marat, three daring men whose bosoms knew not remorse. Disease and want of sup- plies forcing the Prussians and Austrians, who had nearly reached Paris, to retire, Dumouriez invaded the Netherlands, and, as the people were in his favor, speedily reduced them. Savoy was conquered, Germany invaded. The measure of Jacobin guilt was now nearly filled up: they brought their 1793. amiable and unhappy king to trial, and judicially murdered him. This iniquitous act was followed by a declaration of war against the kings of England and Spain and the stadt- holder of Holland. Dumouriez invaded Holland, and reduced several towns ; but he was defeated by tlie Austrians at Neer-Winden. The French arms were unfortunate also in Germany. Dumouriez formed a plan for restoring a king and constitutional govern- ment to France; but it being detected, he was forced to take refuge with the Austrians. An English army, under the duke of York, was now in Holland. Dampierre, Dumou- riez's successor, was defeated and slain. The French lost almost all their conquests; their raw levies were cut to pieces ; yet, under Hoche, they were again successful. The English failed in an attack on Dunkirk: the Austrians were driven within their own boundaries. The French and Spaniards fought with various success at the Pyrenees. A savage civil war now broke out in the island of St. Domingfo. At home, the Brissotine party was overthrown, and all the heads of it executed : the infamous duke of Orleans also suffered the fate he had so long merited. The monsters now too shed the blood of the unhappy queen. A revolt having broken out in the south of France, it was quenched in blood ; and the city of livons had a bitter expe- rience of republican humanity. A war was carried on in La Vendee by the friends of royalty and religion ; but for- tune favored the enemies of both. The English, aided by Spain and Naples, had taken possession of Toulon ; they were forced, however, to abandon it. 1794. The war in the Netherlands was carried on with great vigor : the French troops were commanded by Pichegru and CHAF. VIII. FRENCH REVOLUTION AND EMPIRE. 387 Jourdan. After a variety of fortune, and the battle of Fleurus, gained by the latter, the tide ran in favor of the French, and the whole of the Netherlands were subdued. In Germany, Jourdan defeated Clairfait, and reduced Juliers and Cologne. In France, the guillotine was pouring out blood in all quar- ters at the command of Robespierre and his ruthless asso- ciates ; but at last Justice awoke a little from her slumber, and the tyrant himself met the fate he more than deserved. Danton had already experienced it, and Marat had fallen by the hand of Charlotte Corde. Howe on the 1st of June defeated the French fleet. The Corsicans placed themselves under the king of England. But the French were victorious at the Pyrenees, and in Holland they met with uniform success. The middle ranks of the Dutch were in their favor ; a revolution took place, and the a. d. people of the United Provinces, under the name of allies, be- 1795. came the subjects of France. Europe, to the peace of Campo Formio. Wliile exclaiming against the horrors of the French revo- 1792. lution, the royal spoilers fell again on unhappy Poland, and tore away some more of her limbs. The Poles, led by the brave Kosciuszko, took arms, and made a brave resistance ; but the defeat at Matchewitz broke their hopes, which finally expired when Warsaw was taken, and its garrison massacred by the ferocious Suvaroff. A new division of plumier now 1795. took place. How rarely are uncontrolled power and a due sense of justice to be found in union ! Glutted with spoil, and now desirous of repose, the king of Prussia made a peace with France. In that country there nad been a reaction, and the Jacobins were murdered and guillotined in their turn. The king of Spain was forced to seek for peace. In Germany there was some severe fighting between Jourdan and Clairfait. The Vendeans rose again, but were speedily crushed. Lord Bridport and admiral Corn- wallis were successful against the French fleets. Most of the foreign possessions of the French and Dutch were re- duced by the English. An insurrection broke out in Paris, but it was easily quelled. The constitution was now re- modelled. Numerous conflicts took place in Germany; but the 1796 French, under Jourdan and Moreau, were unable to withstand the Austrians, commanded by the archduke Charles. The retreat of Moreau to the Rhine, ranks as one of the most mas- terly in history. Brilliant success attended the arms of the republic in Italy, 388 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. under the young- Bonaparte. The victories of Monte Notte and Monte Lezino compelled the king- of Sardinia to sue for peace, with loss of territory. The forcing-, with excessive loss, of the bridg-e of Lodi, opened Lombardy to the French. The pope, the princes of Tuscany, Modena, and Parma, were obliged to purchase safety by money, books, pictures, and statues. Mantua was besieged : the Austrians, who had been reinforced, approaching- to its relief, were defeated at Lonato and Castiglione, and Mantua was reinvested. The Trans and Cis-Padane republics were at this time erected. The English were deprived of Corsica. Spain was now at length induced to join in the war against Eng-land, and a mutiny which broke out in the navy of the latter power seemed to threaten her existence. A. D. Every attempt was made to relieve Mantua, and several *~97. actions were fought. At Rivoli the Austrians, under Alvinzi, struggled in vain with the utmost heroism, and Mantua was at length obliged to capitulate. The territories of the pope were next overrun, and he was forced to surrender the greater part of them, and pay large sums of money. Bona- parte then led his army northwards, resolved to invade the hereditary dominions of the emperor. He overran Carinthia and part of Styria, Carniola, and Istria ; but by the desire of the directory, who now governed France, he made proposals of peace, and articles were signed at Leoben. Vrit c-o now was to be favored with a new constitution by the I'' reach empirics. The vile oligarchy who ruled it were paralyzed with terror : while they negotiated, French troops seized all their towns, and Venice, after an independent ex- istence of more than 1000 years, submitted, without striking a blow, to be blotted out of the list of nations ; and who will deplore the fate of an oligarchy of whom history records hardly a single noble or generous action ] Genoa, a name dearer to liberty, underwent a similar fate, and beca'.ne the Ligurian republic. Peace was at length concluded at Campo Formio. Austria got Venice and the greater part of her territory ; but she lost the Netherlands and her Italian dominions. The Ionian isl- ands fell to France. Affairs to the assumption of the chief power by Bonaparte. 1798. Rome was pillaged, and a republic erected there. The machinations of the French produced a revolution in Switzer- land, and that republic was united to France. Some of the cantons refused submission : they fought with the valor of patriots, but they were constrained to yield to superior power. CHAP. VIII. FRENCH REVOLUTION AND EMPIRE. 389 Malta was now treacherously assailed and taken by Bona- parte, on his way to Egypt, whither, with their usual regard to good faith and justice, the directory had sent him. He landed near Alexandria, stormed that town, and massacred the inhabitants. The Mamelukes were routed at Embaba, and Cairo submitted. Meanwhile the English admiral Nel- son destroyed (Aug. 1) the French fleet at Aboukir. A rebellion broke out in Ireland ; but after a short strug- gle, the insurgents, not being aided by France, were forced to submit. The tsar now took share in the war, and the em- peror of Austria and the king of Naples also prepared to en- gage in it. The Neapolitan troops invaded the Roman territory, but a. d were driven back. The French advanced ; the king fled to ^'^99. Palermo ; Capua surrendered. The peasantry and populace of Naples fought, but in vain, in defence of their country. Naples was entered. The French were anxious to obtain possession of the Orison country. At Ostrach and Stockach, Jourdan was defeated by the archduke Charles. A Russian army under Suvaroff* entered Italy, and in union with the Austrians defeated the French at Cassano, and drove them to Milan and Genoa. Al- exandria was taken, and the French, under Joubert and Mo- reau, were routed at Novi. Suvaroff" marched into Switzer- land, where there had been some severe fighting. Korsakoff had led another Russian army into that country. Massena, the French commander, attacked and defeated this last offi- cer, and Zurich was taken by storm. The Austrians in Italy reduced Coni, and invested Genoa. Bonaparte having reduced Egypt, turned his thoughts to Syria. General Regnier, with 12,000 men, was sent towards that country, ruled over by the sanguinary Jezzar, who was aided by Sir Sidney Smith, and some troops of the Porte. At Al-Arish, Regnier defeated a body of Mamelukes. Bonaparte soon joined the army; Al-Arish and Gaza surrendered: Jaffa was taken by storm. Acre was, as of old, gallantly defended by a Christian hero, Sir Sidney Smith, and Bonaparte was obliged to raise the siege, and return to Egypt. Desaix had been there engaged against the Mamelukes in Upper Egypt, and had driven them beyond the Cataracts. A Turkish army under the vizier having landed in Egypt, and taken Aboukir, Bonaparte attacked and defeated them, and recovered tlie fort. Soon afterwards, seeing that nothing more was to be gained in Egypt, he secretly returned to Prance, leaving the command to Kleber, who defeated a Turkish division ; but his troops being in want of every thing, 33* A. D. 390 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART IIL he signed a convention with the vizier to quit the country. Lord Keith declared it should not be executed, and Kleber asfain attacked and defeated the Turks. The English, Austrians, and Neapolitans recovered the papal territories. The English and Russians landed in Hol- land ; but after obtaining some advantages over general Van- dan;me, they were obliged to negotiate a retreat. The joy of the directory at this success was damped by the appearance of Bonaparte. A revolution in the government was effected ; it was made consular, and Bonaparte was chosen first consul, with Cambaceres and Le Brun for his collearjues. Affairs till the peace of Amiens. 1800. Bonaparte, anxious to consolidate his power, made pacific overtures to England, which were rejected : the minister and the nation were bent on war. The long-sought union with Ireland was proposed this year, and in the following year car- ried into effect. The first consul resolved to prosecute the war with vigor. He joined the army assembled at Geneva, crossed Mont St. Bernard, and descended into Italy. The country to the Po was speedily subdued, and that river passed. Genoa had sur- rendered to the Austrians. The Austrian general Melas was defeated at Montebello. On the plains of Marengo, between Alessandria and Tortona, the armies fought (June 14) again : victory seemed ready to declare for the Austrians, when the arrival of the divisions of Monnier and Desaix turned the for- tune of the day, and gave the first consul the glory of a con- queror. A truce, and the surrender of Genoa and other strong places, were the immediate result. In Germany, Moreau penetrated into Bavaria : a negotia- tion was inefi^ectually entered into; the war recommenced, and the defeat of Hohenlinden (Dec, 3) led to the treaty of Lu- neville, by which Francis gave up more territory in Germany, and consented to the transfer of Tuscany to the duke of Parma. 1801. The fickle tsar Paul had been gained over by the French. He detained the ships of the English, and prevailed on Den- mark and Sweden to engage in an armed neutrality. The English, who considered their existence to depend on their maritime superiority, sent a large fleet to the Baltic, under Sir Hyde Parker, to break up the confederacy. The Danes were "first attacked ; lord Nelson destroyed their line of de- fence before Copenhagen, and they sued for peace: the king of Sweden agreed to treat. The tsar Paul was murdered by CHAP. VIII. FRENCH REVOLUTION AND EMPIRE. 391 conspirators, and his son Alexander was inclined to England. The kino- of Prussia, who had seized on Hanover, now de- clared himself ready to renew his amity with Great Britain. An English army, under Sir Ralph Abercrombie, had ar- rived in Egypt. Immediately on its landing a battle ensued, which the English gained with the loss of their general. Grand Cairo surrendered. Its example was followed by Alexandria, and the French agreed to evacuate the country. - Peace was signed at Amiens. The English consented to a. d. give up all their conquests but Ceylon and Trinidad ; the 1802 - Ionian islands were to form a republic ; Malta to be restored to the knights. Affairs of Europe to the treaty of Tilsit. Bonaparte was now declared chief consul for life. He re- stored the Catholic religion, and gave new constitutions to France, Genoa, and Switzerland. A force was sent to St. Domingo, where Toussaint I'Ouverture, a negro, had erected a republic. That chief was treacherously seized and sent to France ; but the French were unable fully to recover the island- Disputes arising respecting the fulfilment of the treaty of 1803. Amiens, the war was resumed. Hanover was invaded and reduced by the French; Holland was dragged into the war, and immediately lost her colonies. In St. Domingo the French power was finally overthrown, and Dessalines made 1804. chief of the republic. Bonaparte at length ventured to assume the imperial dig- nity, and the princes of Europe mostly acknowledged their new associate, who insulted and domineered over the greater part of the continent. The following year, after bestowing a new constitution on 1805. Holland, Napoleon made himself king of Italy, adding the Ligurian republic to his kingdom. This last act of injustice induced the emperors of Austria and Russia to enter into a confederacy with Great Britain, and the glorious victory gained by Nelson off Trafalgar (Oct. 21) over the combined fleets of France and Spain, gave spirits to the allies ; but the French poured over the Rhine, and drove back the Austrians. At Ulm 20,000 Austrians surrendered. Vienna was entered by Napoleon : the Austrians and Russians were completely defeated at Austerlitz (Dec. 2). Francis lost courage, and concluded a treaty at Presburg, by which he gave up more (territory, including Venice, acknowledged the king of Italy and two new kings, namelv, those of Bavaria and VViirtem- burs. 392. OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART IIi The French invaded Naples, and Joseph Bonaparte was seated on the throne of that country. A victory was gained at Maida (July 4) by the English, and the Calabrians rose ; but the power of the usurper was too great for resistance. Holland was also made a kingdom for Louis Bonaparte. At the command of Napoleon, his two new German kings, and some other princes, detached themselves from the Germanic body, and formed the confederacy of the Rhine, in alliance with France. The king of Prussia, who had been encouraged to seize Hanover, finding that in some late negotiations be- tween France and England its restoration had been offered, and otherwise disgusted with his friend the emperor, rushed precipitately into a war : he imprudently gave the chief command to the duke of Brunswick. The French advanced with rapidity. A Prussian army of 6000 men w^as defeated at Saalfeld. Near Jena and Auerstadt (Oct. 14) the Prussian- and Saxon army of 110,000 men was attacked by that of the French of 150,000, and defeated. Erfurt was taken ; prince Hohenlohe and his army surrendered at Prentzlau : Berlin- was entered. The king of Holland conquered to the Weser : Jerome Bonaparte subdued Silesia: general Bliicher and 9400 men capitulated at Ratkau : the Poles were excited to rise. The Russians, who were now advancing, met and de- feated the French at Pultusk, and repulsed them at Golomyn. At Berlin, Bonaparte declared the British isles in a state of blockade, and, by what he called the continental system, pro- hibited all intercourse with them. A. D. The Turks now shared in the war. The Russian emperor 1807. foolishly quarrelled with the Porte, and overran its northern provinces. An English fleet fruitlessly menaced Constanti- nople, and an ineffectual attempt was made on Egypt. The war was renewed in the north, and a desperate but indecisive battle was fought at Prussian Eylau ; Dantzig was taken by Lefevre. The allies sustained a defeat at Friedland (June 14), which was followed by the capture of Konigsburg, and the treaty of Tilsit, which deprived the king of Prussia of one-third of his dominions, and erected the kingdom of Westphalia for Jerome Bonaparte. Affairs to the treaty of Vienna. An expedition, little creditable to England, was sent out against Denmark, a power with whom she was at peace. Copenhagen was bombarded, and all the ships and naval stores carried away. A rupture ensued between Russia and England. 1808. The demands made by France on the regent of Portugal CHAP. VIII. FRENCH REVOLUTION AND EMTIRE. 393 were so unjust, that that prmce, at the desire of the British cabinet, departed for the Brazils. Portugal was occupied by the French. Intrigues were set on foot in Spain ; the king-, Charles IV., resigned in favor of his son Ferdinand. The a. d royal family were decoyed to Bayonne ; both father and son 180& were terrified into abdication, and the crown transferred to Joseph Bonaparte. Large bodies of troops had already been sent into Spain, and no opposition was dreaded ; but the peo- ple rose in all quarters, and proclaimed Ferdinand VII. : the French fleet at Cadiz was obliged to surrender, as also the army of Dupont at Baylen. Sarago.^sa was heroically de- fended against the troops of Joseph, who at length raised the siege. The Portuo-uese rose also aofainst the French. A British army landed and defeated the French general Junot at Vi- meiro (Aug. 21). By a convention made at Cintra, the French evacuated that kingdom. A Russian fleet was taken in the Tagus. In the north of Europe, Sweden was liard pressed by the Russians and Danes. The conduct of Gustavus bordering on insanity, he was the next year dethroned, and his uncle made king m his place. The French were victorious in Spain, defeating Blake at Reynosa, and Castanos at Tudela. Napoleon arrived, and Madrid was taken. An English army, under Sir John Moore, had advanced as far as Salamanca ; but it was forced to re- treat. At Corunna it was atta,cked (Jan. 16), and general 1S09. Moore mortally wounded. Encouraged by the resistance made by the Spaniards, the emperor of Austria resolved anew on war: it commenced in Bavaria. Napoleon having driven back the Austrian s at Eckmuhl, advanced rapidly and occupied Vienna. At Aspern and Essling, after dreadful slaughter on both sides, the victory remained with the Austrians. The battle of Wagram ter- minated in favor of the French. A most ill-conceived project of creating a diversion in Hol- land was formed by the British cabinet. An army of 39,000 men, under the earl of Cathcart, sailed to Walcheren, and took Middleburg and Flushing ; but a large force being col- lected at Antwerp, and a fever breaking out among the troops, nothing further could be effected by such a waste of lives and treasure. The emperor Francis was now constrained to make peace, with additional loss of territory. In the preceding year, iSelini III. had been murdered, and Mahmood, the present 394 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART Hi sultan, was seated on the Turkish throne. Peace was con- cluded between England and the Porte. Progress of the Peninsular War. The French were now masters of Spain to Old Castile. Saragossa had stood a second siege with less success than formerly, 20,000 of its defenders being said to have perished. Marshal Soult entered Portugal, and took Oporto. Sir A. Wellesley advanced against him, and drove him back into Spain. The Spaniards defeated marshal Ney at San Payo in Gallicia. Sir A. Wellesley entered Spain and defeated the French at Talavera de la Reyna (July 28) ; but the enemy being reinforced, and the co-operation of the Spaniards not to be depended on, he fell back. Gerona was taken by the French, after a gallant defence. One Spanish army was de- feated at Ocana, and another at Alba de Tormes. A. D An army of 30,000 Portuguese was raised and paid by the 1810. British government. The French army approached Portugal, took Astorga and Cindad Rodrigo, and, under Massena, passed the frontier and reduced Almeida. At the pass of Busaco they were repelled. A fortified line was made from the Ta- gus to the ocean, behind which ^he allies were posted. Mas- sena feared to assail it : after a month's inaction he fell back to Santarem. In the south Seville was taken by the French ; but Cadiz, now the scat of government, was secured against them. 1811. Massena at length commenced his retreat, closely followed ' by the allies. A sharp action occurred at Fuentes d' Honor, after which Almeida surrendered. Badajoz having been captured by Mortier, Sir W. Beresford laid siege to it. Soult advancing with 23,000 men to its relief, the combined armies of 26,000 gave him battle at the Albuera (May 16), and gained the honor of the day. The siege was resumed by Sir A. Wellesley, now lord Wellington ; but on the approach of Soult and Marmont he retired across the Tagrus. In An- dalusia the French were defeated at Barrosa by general Gra- ham. They had the advantage in the north of Spain, and Tarragona, Murviedro, and Valencia fell into their hands. The revolution commenced this year in South America. 1812. A change having taken place in the government of Spain, tlie war was resumed with spirit. Lord Wellington reduced Ciudad Rodrigo and Badajoz. Salamanca also fell, and a de- cisive victory was gained (July 22) over Marmont in its vicinity. Madrid, Seville, Valladolid were recovered ; the French raised the siege of Cadiz ; but lord Wellington failed in an attack on Burgos. CHAP. VIII. FRENCH REVOLUTION AND EMPIRE. S95 The Invasion of Russia, and fall of Napoleon. Alexander was mortified at the condition to which he was a. d. reduced, and he defied Napoleon. The latter formed the hold 1^^^ project of invading Russia : an immense army was assembled ; Lithuania was occupied; Napoleon advanced to Smolensk; Oudinot and Macdonald were directed to join, and to get be- tween the great Russian army and St. Petersburg. The for- mer was defeated by Wittgenstein at Polotsk; prince Ba- gration engaged Davoust at Mohilofi'; Wittgenstein com- pletely routed Oudinot a second time at Polotsk. Smolensk was abandoned to the enemy. At Borodino (Sept. 7) a general battle was fought, and the French re- pulsed with a loss of 40,000 men ; but Napoleon being rein- forced, pushed on for Moscow, and KutusofF, the Russian commander, not feeling himself strong enough to contend with him, he reached that city, but found it in flames. Thus disappointed of supplies, he offered in vain to treat. He then commenced his retreat. It was mid-winter ; the sufferings of the army were dreadful. The Russians closely pursued ; and of the immense host which had entered Russia, not more than 30,(M)0, exclusive of the Austrians, passed the frontiers. The dead and prisoners exceeded 300,000 in number. Alexander had already concluded a league with Sweden, whose councils were directed by the French marshal Berna- dotte, who had been chosen crown-prince. He now roused the king of Prussia to resistance. A treaty was formed be- tween them. The combined armies fought the new levies of Napoleon at Liitzen ; the action was indecisive, and they 1813 were repulsed at Bautzen. A truce was made ; during its continuance the emperor of Austria joined the alliance, as did Sweden now openly. The allied army of 180,000 men was commanded by the Austrian prince Schwarzenburg. The battle of Katzbacli, gained by the Prussian general Bliicher, delivered Silesia. An indecisive action took place at Dresden : Vandarame was defeated at Culm, and Ney at Juterbock. Napoleon concen- trated his forces at Leipzig, where (October 18) the allies attacked and totally defeated him. The city was taken : the king of Bavaria joined the league ; and his troops, combined with the Austrians, defeated, at Hanau, the French as they were retreating from Leipzig. Holland now flung off the yoke, and recalled the prince of Orange. At Frankfort the allied monarchs put forth a declaration of the justice and moderation of their views. In Spain, lord Wellington being reinforced, and now well 1813 396 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III supported by tlie Spaniards, crossed the Douro, and marched northwards. At Vittoria (Jwne 21) he engaged and totally- defeated the French army, commanded by marshal Jourdan, Pampeluna was blockaded ; St. Sebastian besieged ; marshal Soult in vain endeavored to check their progress. St. Sebas- tian fell, and the allies entered France. A. D. France was now invaded north and south. The armies 1814. from Germany met little check. Murat, the king of Naples, abandoned Napoleon. The allies appeared before Paris, and that haughty capital capitulated. In the south the allied arms were still crowned with success ; and Bourdeaux proclaimed Louis XVIII. Napoleon was obliged to sign an act of abdication ; and the island of Elba, with a sufficient income, was assigned him for his residence. Louis XVIII. w^as restored ; as were the pope, and the other sovereigns who had been deprived of their do- minions. All Europe was now at peace. 1815. While a congress was engaged in arranging the affairs of Europe, news arrived that Napoleon had left Elba, and landed in France. He was received everywhere with enthusiasm by the army, and Louis was obliged to quit France, and to seek a refuge in the Netherlands. The allied princes issued a strong manifesto, and large armies were assembled to op- pose the usurper. Some partial advantages attended his first operations; but on the field of Waterloo (June 18), his last battle was fought. The genius of Wellington and the steadi- ness of the British troops were triumphant. After a brief reign of 100 days, he fled to the sea-coast, where he surren- dered himself to a British naval commander : and six years afterwards, he who had lorded it over the nations expired a captive on a rock of the Atlantic. Louis XVIII. was recon- ducted to his capital by the allied armies, and firmly seated on his throne ; and the convulsions which had agitated Eu- rope for a quarter of a century at length terminated. After the destruction of the power of Napoleon, the allied sovereigns undertook to remodel different parts of Europe, and they proceeded to their object with what they deemed expe- diency in view, but with too little regard to popular feelings or to national and hereaitary rights. Denmark was forced to yield Norway to Sweden, and take in exchange Riigen and Pomerania ; and then to give these to Prussia for Lauenburg. Prussia, always grasping, received a large portion of the do- minions of the king of Saxony, who had been guilty of the crime of fidelity to Napoleon. Austria extended her sway, now odious to the people, over the north of Italy. Genoa was forced to submit to become a part of the dominions of the CHAP. VIII. FRENCH REVOLUTION AND EMPIRE. 399 king' of Sardinia. The Netherlands and the United Provinces were formed into a kingdom for the prince of Orang-e: a large part of Poland composed one for the emperor of Rus- sia, A new confederation for mutual defence, and the pre- vention of internal war, was entered into by the sovereign states of Germany, who promised representative constitutions to their subjects, — a promise which but few of tliem have kept. England, the choragus of the great drama which was now concluded, who had shed her blood, and lavished her treasure so unsparingly, remained covered with glory, but deeply immersed in debt. She had, during this period, ex- tended her dominion over nearly the whole peninsula of In- dia ; and the realms, once ruled by the house of Timoor, now bow beneath her commercial sceptre. United Stales of America. During the w^ars which convulsed Europe, after the ac- complishment of their freedom, the Americans had been ad- vancing in a steady march of national prosperity. An attempt of the French directory to enlist them in their struggle with the other powers of Europe, led to a short war with France, which was not attended with any important consequences. The second president, John Adams, directed his efforts to the formation of a navy ; and two of the American frigates, the a. d. Constellation and Constitution, captured French frigates of 1799 superior force, in the war with the republic. From t!jis pe- riod a strict neutrality being observed, the Americans acquired most of the carrying trade of the belligerent powers in Eu- rope, and extended their commerce into every part of the world. Napoleon was the first to invade this privilege of the 1806 Americans in the Berlin and Milan decrees, issued to prevent them from trading with Great Britain ; which were followed by the British orders in council, prohibiting them from inter- course with France. A farther cause of irritation against Great Britain, existed in the custom of searching American vessels on the ocean, and impressing from them British seamen. This was even 1807 carried so far, that the commander of a British frigate, the Leopard, after demanding four seamen from the American frigate Chesapeake, and being refused, fired a broadside into her, and compelled her commander, taken by surprise, to sur- render the men. Three of their number were Americans. The depredations of both the French and English on Ameri- can commerce, had become so extensive, that the congress, on the recommendation of the third president, Mr. Jefferson, ordered an embargo, prohibiting all commerce with foreign 400 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III countries. This measure, however, being found to operate ^ P too harshly on the interests of the commercial states of the 1809. union, the embarofo law was repealed, and a non-intercourse with France and England was substituted. An offer was made on the part of the United States, that the non-intercourse should be discontinued towards either France or England, as soon as they respectively should cease to violate the commerce of the republic. Napoleon's minister havinsr informed the American agent at Paris that the Berlin and Milan decrees were revoked, the non-intercourse law, as 1811. regarded France, was annulled. But as the official notice of this act was withheld. Great Britain, with good reason, doubted the revocation of the French decrees. When a formal an- nouncement of their revocation was made by France, the British orders in council were also revoked. But in the mean- time, the United States had declared war with Great Britain 1812. (June 18), and as the questions of search and impressment were still unsettled, the war was continued, notwithstanding the revocation of the orders in council. The first object of the United States was the conquest of Canada. General William Hull, with a force sufficient for the reduction of Upper Canada, passed into that province, but after wasting some time in parade and indecision, he sur- rendered his whole force, the fortress at Detroit, and the en- tire territory of Michigan, to the British. For this act, he was aft'^rwards tried, sentenced to be shot, and pardoned. Oil llie 19th of August, the American frigate Constitution, captain Hull, captured the British frigate Guerriere, reducing her to a complete wreck in 15 minutes. This was the first of a series of naval victories which have completely destroyed the proud claim of Britain to the empire of the ocean. It was speedily followed (Oct. 25), by the capture of the British frigate Macedonian, by the American frigate United States, under the command of captain Decatur, off the Western Isles. In November an attempt was made on Queenstown, in Up- per Canada, which, afler a severe action, and a heavy loss on both sides in killed and wounded, resulted in the capture of 1000 Americans. In December, the frigate Constitution, captain Bainbridge, captured the British frigate Java, off the coast of Brazil, after an action of one hour, in which the Java was reduced to an unmanageable wreck. General Winchester, with 750 men, 1813. was attacked near the river Raisin, by a superior force of British and Indians, under general Proctor ; and af\er being sur- rendered prisoners of war, many of his men were massacred CHAP. VIII. FRENCH REVOLUTION AND EMPIRE, 403 by the Indians. (Jan, 22), An attack on fort Meig-s, by the British, was successfully resisted by general Harrison (May). An expedition against York, in Upper Canada, under the command of general Pike, was completely successful. After an obstinate defence, the place was carried with a loss of 750 on the British side. The heroic Pike was mortally wounded by the explosion of a magazine. Fort George and fort Erie were shortly afterwards taken by the Americans, after a brisk action. An attempt was made by the British naval force which blockaded the Chesapeake, on Norfolk; and, on its failure, Hampton, a village 18 miles from Norfolk, was taken and given up to rapine and plunder. The American frigate Chesapeake was captured by the British frigate Shannon, off Boston harbor, under circumstances which, fairly considered, tend materially to diminish the glory of the victory. Fort Sandusky was most ably defended against general Proctor, with 1200 British and Indians, by major Croghan, with 160 Americans. (Aug, 1). In September, the American fleet on lake Erie, under the command of captain Perry, captured the whole British squad- ron under captain Barclay, after a well-contested action of three hours, Detroit was soon after retaken, and a superior force of British and Indians, under general Proctor, routed by the Americans under general Harrison, The fortune of the day was decided by a mounted regiment under colonel Johnson, who slew with his own hand, during the action, the celebrated Indian warrior Tecumseh, Extensive preparations were made for renewing the inva- sion of Canada, during the autumn ; but the expedition was abandoned, apparently for want of concert among the leading officers, and fort George and fort Niagara fell into the hands of the British, Overtures of peace being made on the part of Great Britain, a, d commissioners on both sides were appointed to meet at Ghent 181 ». for the purpose of negotiating a treaty. A part of the district of Maine, east of Penobscot river, was occupied by the British. Naval victories were achieved by the American commanders. Porter, Warrington, and Bid- die, and the victories at Chippeway and Niagara witnessed the improved discipline and coolness of the American land forces. A British force landed from the fleet in the Chesapeake, and, conducted by general Ross, succeeded in penetrating to the city of Washington, where they destroyed the public buildings, library, and records ; a piece of vandalism which 404 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III has scarcely a parallel in modern warfare, and which one of their own ablest statesmen has pronounced a disgrace to the British nation. A subsequent attempt on Baltimore resulted in the defeat of the British, and tlie death of general Ross. The British squadron on lake Champlain, consisting of 17 vessels, under the command of captain Downie, was defeated by the American squadron of 14 vessels, under captain M'Donough ; and on the same day, tlie British army under general Prevost was repulsed, with heavy loss, in an attempt to storm the forts at Plattsburg. 1815. Sir Edward Packenham, with 14,000 men, made a descent on New-Orleans, (Jan. 8), which was defended by general Jackson with six thousand men, principally militia. After a well-contested action, the British were repulsed with the loss of 700 killed, 1400 wounded, and 500 prisoners. The Ameri- can loss was 13 killed, 39 wounded, and 19 missing. The treaty of peace had been signed at Ghent, Dec. 24, 1814, and ratified by the prince regent of England Dec. 28. It was ratified by the president of the United States, Feb. 1815. From the events of this war, the Americans have learnt that their land forces are more fit for the resistance of inva- sion, than for foreign conquest ; and that their best instru- ment of national defence is a well-disciplined navy: the same events have taught other nations, that this people, once sup- posed to be for ever wedded to commerce and peace, has some claims to a character for ability and courage in war. CHAP. IX. TIMES OF THE RESTORATION AND LOUIS PHILLirPE. State of Europe. The ideas of liberty and equality which had been gene- rated by the French Revolution now began to progress towards their true development. The mass of the people were gradually becoming more enlightened, and in most of Europe, though they were compelled to suffer the existence of kings and nobility, they discussed more freely the cha- racter and tendency of monarchy and aristocracy. They had seen men, sprung from the humblest stations of life, achieve, by their own exertions, the proudest and most glorious actions, and had seen some of them sit upon tlie CHAP. IX. RESTORATION AND LOUIS PHILIPPE. 4()5 thrones to which they had long believed their hereditary- kings had a divine right. This, almost as much as the more extensive spread of education and refinement, broke the charm by which they had so long been held, and made the seats of kings and nobility very unstable. Violent storms and short calms were the principal features of the time. France. The evils and distress produced by long and expensive wars were now apparent. Lyons and Grenoble were dis- tracted by riots, and conspiracies were detected in every quarter. The foreign troops left France, and at the Con- gress of Aix-la-Chapelle, she was admitted as a party to the Quadruple Alliance. In the mean time, the ministry Avas divided into factions, and continually involved in dis- sensions with the king. Disputes were frequent between the nobility, the chambers, and the people, and infringe- ments upon the liberty of the press and derangements in the administering of the laws were as constantly com- plained of by all whose rights were concerned. The royal- ists and the liberals were continuall}^ striving to advance the particular interests which they favored. The murder of the duke of Berri caused party spirit to rage beyond all bounds, and violent commotions occurred in the chamber of deputies. Laws were passed, authorizing the arrest of persons merely suspected of treason, the censorship of the press, and infringement of the election laws. In conse- quence of these acts, it was announced at the session of the chambers that conspiracy continually existed in France. In 1821, further restrictions of the press were proposed, but in consequence of the strength of the opposition, the ministry resigned. Several insurrections occurred during the year 1822. A conspiracy Avas detected having for its object the promotion of the interest of young Napoleon, and a few more insurrections occurred. ^ In 1823, 100,000 men were sent into Spain to arrest the progress of democracy in that country, and to force its government to reconcile its sentiments to those of the other governments of Europe. The war terminated favorably for France, of Avhich circumstance the king availed himself in order to gain some popularity with the army and the people. Though it lasted but six months, the expense was more than two hundred millions of francs, Avhich caused loud complaints from the liberal party. In September, 1824, Louis XVIII. died. His brother. 406 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. Charles X., became king, and was crowned at Rheims in May, 1826. The independence of Ilayti was acknow- ledo-ed and commercial intercourse established with the Spanish American republics, a treaty of commerce con- cluded with Great Britain and another with Brazil. The opposition gained a great triumph (1827) in defeating the bill for the further restriction of the press. The ministry dissolved the chamber with force, thereby hoping to secure a large majority at the next election. But the liberal party triumphed, and Paris was filled with rejoicings. France interfered (1828) in the dispute between Turkey and Greece, and sent a force to the assistance of the latter country. In the organization of a new ministry, (1829,) prince Polignac, an unpopular ultra-royalist, was intrusted with the portfolio of foreign affairs. This hastened the crisis which had become inevitable. Though France was prosperous in her external appearance, yet the people were irritated beyond endurance by seeing their most valued liberties trampled upon and torn from them. At the opening of the session of the chambers, (1830,) the king announced his determination to maintain his policy, if necessary, by force of arms, and also announced the declaration of war against Algiers. The deputies being firm yet respectful in their declaration that concurrence no longer existed between the government and the nation, the chamber was prorogued. The new election produced a still stronger majority against the ministry. An ordinance being presented to the king by the ministry, which sus- pended the liberty of the press, several of the liberal journals refused to obey. This brought on the revolution of the Three Days. The king abdicated, and, at the invita- tion of the deputies, Louis Philippe of Orleans ascended the throne. Many alterations favorable to popular rights were made in the constitution, which Louis Philippe swore to maintain. The first event under his reign was the trial of the ministers of the late king for high treason. They were found guilty, and sentenced to imprisonment for life. Alarming riots occurred in Paris, (1830,) in consequence of an attempt to celebrate the anniversary of the assassina- tion of the duke of Berri. A change of ministers succeeded. Riots still occurred in Paris and Lyons, and in his tour through the kingdom, Louis Philippe found it in a condi- tion bordering on anarchy. War was declared against Portugal, but it was of short duration. Amid the frequent riots, the anniversary of the Three Days occurred, and it was celebrated in the most splendid manner. Fifty thou- CHAP. IX. RESTORATION AND LOUIS PHILIPPE. 407 sand men were sent to Belgium, to assist that country in its struggle with the Dutch. On the arrival of the news of the fall of Warsaw, riots broke out in every direction. Mobs attacked the hotels of the ministers, and revolution again threatened. But the army and the ministry con- tinuing loyal, concessions were made and the danger averted. The most important acts of the assembly during its session were, the abolition of the hereditary peerage, an appropriation of a large sum for the relief of the working classes, and the perpetual banishment of the Bourbon and Napoleon families. Great distress among the workmen of Lyons produced an insurrection, which was suppressed by the duke of Orleans and marshal Soult. Measures were taken to relieve the workmen. In 1832, the difficulty Math the United States was adjusted. The Asiatic cholera appeared and spread so rapidly that the chambers were obliged to adjourn, and the prime minister was attacked and died. The terror and distress caused by this disease could not suppress the spirit of insurrection. Riots occurred in Paris at the funeral of general Lamarque, and continued several days ; being suppressed only with bloodshed. The expedition into Belgium and the war in Algiers both proving successful, rendered the government popular for a time with all classes. An attempt was made to assassinate the king, in November, but the person who nuide the attempt escaped in the crowd. The year 1833 was one of comparative calm. No out- breaks occurred, both parties contenting themselves with Avarring upon each other through the journals. Some of the leading members of the republican associations were arrested and tried for conspiracy, but found to be innocent of the charge. In March, 1834, the chamber of deputies annulled a treaty concluded in 1831, by the duke de Broglie and general Sebastiani with the American minister, by refusing to pay the indemnity to the United States for the injuries inflicted upon American ships and commerce. In conse- quence, the ministry was reorganized, under the presi- dency, however, as before, of marshal Soult. Manufactures and trade being greatly depressed, serious riots occurred; lirst at Lyons and Marseilles, and then at Paris. In April, a treaty was concluded at London, between Great Britain, France, Spain and Portugal, which was commonly called the Quadruple Alliance. A difficulty occurring between the king and marshal Soult, the latter resigned his post as president of the council, and was succeeded by marshal 408 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. Girard. The prisons were filled with persons accused of participating in the various insurrections, and the number was so great that government was at a loss to know how to dispose of them. The president of the council was of opinion that an amnesty should be granted; and that mea- sure being resisted by the king and other members of the council, tiie president resigned his post. The whole ministry was dissolved, and a new one formed, under the presidency of Maret, duke of Bassano. This lasted but four days, and gave place to the former one, under the presidency of marshal Mortier, with Guizot and Thiers as leading mem- bers. In February, 1835, a difference with the chambers was the cause of the dissolution of the ministry. Marshal Soult formed a new ministry, after a great deal of exertion, but it fell to pieces in four weeks. The deputies expressed a desire that the former ministers should resume their places, and the king assented, naming the duke of Broglie as pre- sident of the council and minister of foreign affairs. In April, the chamber of deputies acknowledged the validity of the American claims, and made no further difficulty in providing for their payment. Of about 1200 prisoners held for being concerned in the riots, only 164 were tried. The trials lasted till the middle of August, when 52 were sen- tenced to imprisonment for life, and the Paris prisoners escaped from the place wliere they were confined. In July, at the anniversary of the Revolution of 1830, while the king was reviewing the troops of the line and the national guards, an " infernal machine" exploded near where the king was standing, killing forty persons, among whom was marshal Mortier. The king escaped without injury. The assassin was arrested, and, with tAVO accom- plices, executed. Attempts were made by the ministry to strengthen the power of the king, by presenting to the chambers three laws for their approval. One almost anni- hilating the liberty of the press, another allowing the jurors to vote by ballot, and a third empowering the minister of justice to constitute as many courts of assize as may be necessary to proceed simultaneously against rioters. The laws were sanctioned by the chambers after much opposi- tion. In 1836, the trial of the Paris insurgents was concluded, and nineteen or twenty condemned to be transported for life. A deficit occurring in the revenue, a difficulty was brought about between the king and the deputies. The result was the resignation of the ministry, in February. A CHAP. IX. RESTOllATION AND LOUIS PHILIPPE. 409 new one was formed under the presidency of Thiers. In June, a third attempt was made upon the life of Louis Philippe. He was shot at as he was leaving the Tuileries in his carriage. No injury was done, and the assassin, an enthusiastic young republican, was tried by the peers, and guillotined on the 11th of July. The new ministry was very active, and their policy was of a bolder tone than the preceding one. But a difficulty soon ensued between the king and his ministers, and Thiers and five of the others resigned. In September, a new ministry was formed, with count Mole as president and minister of foreign affairs. They endeavored to tranquillize the public mind at home and maintain friendly relations abroad. The ministers of Charles X. who had been imprisoned, were set at liberty. In October, Louis Napoleon Bonaparte made an attempt at insurrection at Strasburg, but having few followers, he was taken and shipped off to America. The other conspirators were arraigned before the court of assize of the Lower Rhine, but the jury refused to convict them. In December, another attempt was made upon the life of Louis Philippe by a workman named Meunier. The king narrowly es- caped. Meunier was brought to trial and banished for ten years. In January, 1837, the ministry made new attempts to fortify the executive branch of the government. Several measures, with that object, were rejected by the chamber of deputies. The ministry were divided upon the pro- priety of a dissolution of the chamber, and Guizot and three others resigned their places. A new organization took place, but it was far from satisfactory. In the course of the summer, an improvement took place in the affairs of the French in xilgiers, and the course of events in Spain appeared more propitious. The chamber of deputies still continuing at variance with the ministry, it was dissolved on the 4th of October. The government had expectations that the newly elected chamber would be more favorable to them than the other had been, but its expectations were disappointed. They met in December, but nothing impor- tant occurred. In February, 1838, a measure was presented by a liberal member, for reducing the interest on the public debt, which was adopted. The government sustained a defeat of the measures which they recommended. Another plot to destroy the king's life was discovered, and the person in whose hands the machine that was to do the work was ■found, was tried and sentenced to deportation. The minis- 410 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. try pursued a very dictatorial course towards some of the weaker sovereign states. Prince Louis Napoleon had re- turned from America to Europe, and published a pamphlet under an assumed name, setting forth his claims to the throne of France. The person whose name he had assumed was arrested and condemned to imprisonment for five years, and to pay a heavy fine. The government then demanded of the Swiss confederacy the expulsion of the prince from their territory, where he had taken refuge on his return. The Swiss were not disposed to yield to the demand, and hostilities would have commenced had not prince Louis voluntarily quit Switzerland. AVar was declared against Mexico, and the republic of La Plata. The ministry met with the most strenuous opposition in most of their mea- sures, and Guizot and Thiers, at the head of their respective parties, exerted themselves to effect its overthrow. In January, 1839, the ministry thought it prudent to retire before the storm would break upon them, and they resigned their places. Marshal Soult was commissioned to organize a new ministry ; but he declared it impossible without the ministry could comprehend Theirs. The king would not agree to that, and recalled his former ministers, and dissolved the chamber of deputies. The appeal to the electors was unsuccessful ; the opposition triumphed, and count Mole and his colleagues once more resigned. (March 9th). For two months, the greatest confusion pervaded every department of the government. A ministry could not be organized till the middle of May, when marshal Soult was prevailed upon to accept the post of president of the council and minister of foreign affairs. The council was composed of widely different elements; the only thing they could agree upon to keep them together was the mm- action upon all the questions of difference betAveen the parties which divided the chambers and the country. In consequence, nothing of moment occurred during the legis- lative session, which ended in August. On the re-assem- bling of the chambers in December, the state of French affairs in Africa and Syria, and the feeble and uncertain policy of the ministers, produced great embarrassment. In the course of a month, the government found themselves in a minority on a question of appropriation of 500,000 francs to the duke of Nemours, on his marriage. In Februar}^ 1840, the ministers resigned their places, and the king found a council decidedly liberal his only resource for carrying on the government. Thiers was ap- pointed president of the council and minister of foreign CHAP. IX. RESTORATION AND LOUIS PHILIPPE. 411 affairs, and the rest of the ministry -were of the same party. Great expectations were entertained by the people in regard to the new ministry, but they were disappointed. The measures and policy of the ultra-royalists who had pre- ceded them were continued. The severe laws against the liberty of the press, and the narrow confinement of the right of suffrage, were not attempted to be repealed or modified. The reduction of the interest on the public debt was rejected by the peers. A considerable sum was ap- propriated by the chambers during the session, for the con- struction of railroads and steam vessels ; and another, of 1,000,000 francs, for the purpose of bringing the remains of Napoleon from St. Helena, to be interred with great pomp and ceremony in the capital of his former empire. Tuwards the close of the session, Thiers made great efforts to induce the great European powers to allow the pasha of Egypt to retain possession of Syria; but he failed in accom- plishing his object. The other powers of Europe concluded a treaty among themselves, without waiting for the acqui- escence of France. The announcement of this treaty pro- duced the greatest excitement in France, and war was generally demanded. The army and navy Avere augmented, and great activity prevailed at all the ports and arsenals of the country. In the mean time, events occurred which prevented the king from assenting to the design of declaring Avar against four of the great powers of Europe. One was the landing of Louis Napoleon Bonaparte at Boulogne, with the hope of producing a revolution in his favor. No one joined him, and he was arrested and imprisoned in the fortress of Ham. The other was the fifth attempt to as- sassinate the king. He was fired at Avith a musket loaded with six balls, while reviewing the national guard, in Octo- ber, but, as before, escaped all injury. The assassin was injured by the bursting of the gun, and afterwards was guillotined. The king's being unAvilling to denounce the treaty by which France had been dishonored, was the cause of the resignation of Thiers and his colleagues. A new ministry was organized, A\^ith marshal Soult as its presi- dent, and Guizot as minister of foreign affairs, and deci- dedly the most influential member. This ministry was well supported and gradually gained the confidence of the nation. The emperor Napoleon's remains arrived in France in December, and the deposition of them in the dome of the Invalids produced far less excitement than expected. The year 1841 opened with brilliant prospects for the new ministry. The plan for the fortification of the city ot 412 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III Paris was submitted to the chambers and approved in February. The object of the ministry was the preservation of the peace of Europe, as they prochiimed, and their policy was systematically directed to that end for the rest of their term of service as a council. The most important events which occurred between the close of the session of the chambers in June, and their assembling in December, were the tumults at Toulouse and other places in the South, on occasion of a new assessment of taxes, Avhich were promptly quelled by a military force ; an unsuccessful attempt on the lives of three of the king's sons, for which the guilty was condemned to deportation ; and the diminution of the army by about 100,000 men. In April, 1842, Hermann, the minister of finance died, and was succeeded by Lacave-Saplagne ; but the policy of the administration continued precisely as before. In May, while the deputies were discussing a law authorizing the construction of nine hvmdred leagues of railroad, a shock- ing accident occurred on the railroad between Paris and Versailles, by which two hundred persons lost their lives, among whom was the circumnavigator, Dumont d'Urville, and his family. The passage of the law, however, was not prevented by this accident. The duke of Orleans, heir ap- parent to the throne, was thrown off the carriage in which he was riding and killed. This caused much discussion in the chamber of deputies in regard to the regency, in case of the death of the king before the count of Paris should become of age. It was finally decided that the duke of Nemours, who was personally unpopular, should be the regent. For three or four years after the settlement of this question, France remained comparatively calm ; the Guizot ministry growing stronger every day, maintaining peace with the rest of Europe, and developing the resources of the nation. The only events of importance that occurred Avere the taking of the Marquesas and Society Islands in the Pacific Ocean, and the interchange of visits between Louis Philippe and queen Victoria. The latter is some- thing anomalous in French history. After the short calm, the factions resumed their disputes; and, with the aid of the clubs and an ultra-deiuocratic press, they kept the populace of Paris in a constant excitement. On the part of the king, either from necessity or the desire of power, the principles which he had recognised in 1830 were violated and disowned by him. Great efforts were made by the ministry to give as much power to the king as was possible. CHAP. IX. RESTORATION AND LOUIS PHILIPPE. 413 This, and the spread of the socialist and communist prin- ciples, hastened the progress of things to a crisis. Great Britain. The peace of 1815 found the poorer classes, particularly those inhabiting the manufacturing districts, in a state of destitution. Extensive failures of the crops in 1816 and 1817 increased the distress to such an extent that in June, 1819, serious riots broke out through a large extent of country. These were followed by mass meetings, at which radical measures of reform were proposed and advocated by popular speakers. The government interfered, and at Manchester, a large mob was dispersed and many persons killed. This increased the excitement. Parliament forbade the keeping of fire-arms by the populace, private military exercise, the unauthorized assembling of mass meetings, and the publication of inflammatory or irreligious writings. The death of George III., in January, 1820, was produc- tive of very little change in the social condition of the nation. The return of agricultural prosperity, the increase of the foreign demand for manufactures, and the renewal of specie payments alone caused discontent to subside. A conspiracy to assassinate the ministers, of which Arthur ThistleAvood was the leader, was detected soon after the return of prosperity, and Thistle wood executed. The disgraceful trial of the queen tended to exasperate all classes and parties. But the pursuing malice of her enemies was arrested by her death in August, 1821, and the king, George IV., regained a portion of his former popularity by making a tour through the country. But the diminution of one evil only increased another. By in- creasing the value of money, parliament had decreased the value of every thing else. Rents rose, and thousands of the peasantry, of Ireland especially, were unable to pay their landlords. Ireland was already torn by social and religious differences, and it now became a prey to riots, secret mur- ders, and every species of violence. Nor has its condition materially improved up to the present time. During the Greek struggle for independence, the subjects of Great Britain were allowed to aid the patriots, and many availed themselves of the privilege. In 1825, the nation- ality of the new American republics was acknowledged, and, during the same year, the king prohibited the former privilege of assisting the Greeks. The year 1826 was sig- nalized by mammoth schemes of speculation, followed by a sudden collapse, and ruinous bankruptcies. Bank after 35* 414 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. Dank "broke, the currency became disordered, and the con- sequent distress was so great that it called for the imme- diate interposition of government. The same j^ear. Great Britain united with Russia to induce or compel Turkey to acknowledge the freedom of Greece ; and, in the next year, the treaty of London, for the settlement of that question, was concluded between Great Britain, Russia, and France. In 1829, the Catholic Relief Bill was passed, which, in a great degree, removed the civil disabilities from the Roman Catholics. In June, 1830, George IV. died, and was suc- ceeded by his brother, AVilliam IV. In 1831, after the Whigs came into power, the Reform Bill, regulating parlia- mentary representation, was passed. The first session of the reformed parliament was opened on the 29th of January, 1833, and brought to a close on the 29th of the following August. Among its most important acts, were two, regulating the juries and the clergy of Ire- land, together with the "Irish coercion act," which im- posed stringent regulations upon the inhabitants of that country. The act for the abolition of slavery in the West India colonies was also passed — twenty millions of pounds being granted to the proprietors as an indemnification. The charter of the East India Company was renewed for the term of twenty years, under certain restrictions. The second session under the new Reform Bill was occupied with the afiairs of Ireland, where much disorder continued to prevail. The king, being opposed to the changes introduced by the Whigs, dismissed the ministry, and engaged Sir Robert Peel to form another. But the Whigs kept the favor of the nation and a majority in parliament. The new ministry, therefore, kept their places but a short time. They resigned their places, and Viscount Melbourne was employed, and succeeded in forming a ministry which continued during the rest of the reign of William. The most important acts passed during the remaining two years of the reign were — one reforming the municipal corporations; the marriage act, which permitted marriage by any ceremony that the parties preferred, or merely before a magistrate ; an act for the registering of births, deaths, and marriages, and regula- tions respecting Canada and Ireland, On the 20th of June, 1837, the king died. William was succeeded by his niece, Alexandrina Victoria, under the title of Victoria I. She was in her nineteenth year. The immediate consequence of the accession of a female to the throne, was the separation of Hanover from the rest of the kingdom, and its retrocession to the male line of the family. CHAP. IX. RESTORATION AND LOUIS PHILIPPE. 415 The queen found Canada in revolt ; Ireland in agitation ; England discontented ; parties exasperated ; and every other cause of disorder aggravated by the movements of the Re- Eoal Associations, organized and conducted by O'Connell. lOrd Durham was appointed governor-general of Canada, and given almost dictatorial povi^ers. Bills for the relief ot Ireland were passed. But discontent was not suppressed. In 1808, a large portion of the population banded themselves together under the name of Chartists, claiming the adop- tion, as fundamental law, of a charter, which would grant universal suffrage, vote by ballot, annvial parliaments, the abolition of property qualifications in members of the House of Commons, and their remuneration by money. The same year, the Anti-Corn-Law League was formed, the members of which strenuously advocated the doctrines of free trade. The influence of these two associations has been felt se- riously in England to the present day. On the lOtli of February, 1840, queen Victoria married prince Albert of Saxe-Coburg-Gotha, to whom parliament voted thirty thousand pounds. Soon after this event, diffi- culties occurred with the United States, with the Afghans, and with the Chinese. The latter occurred in consequence of the efforts by the Chinese to suppress the illicit intro- duction of opium into their empire by British vessels. Collisions between the natives and the English followed, and war was soon declared. Sir Henry Gough, the English commander, after various triumphs over the Chinese, ap- peared before the city of Nankin, when a treaty of peace was concluded. (August, 1842.) Great Britain received twenty-one millions of dollars, the island of Hong Kong, and admission into several Chinese ports. In the same year, the difficulties with the United States and with Af- ghanistan were settled by treaty. The Melbourne ministry continued under Victoria till 1841, when it lost the confidence of parliament, and a new ministry was formed, with Sir Robert Peel at its head. The parliamentary session of 1842 was distinguished by the enactment of a new corn-law, in which the duties previously imposed were in some degree reduced. In 1843 the Free Church of Scotland was instituted, by about four hundred clergymen, who would no longer submit to civil interven- tion in religious affairs. In Ireland, affairs had reached a crisis, and O'Connell, with a number of the leading re- pealers, Avas arrested. After trial, O'Connell was sentenced to imprisonment for twelve months, to pay a fine of two thousand pounds, and to give sureties in the sum of ten 416 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. thousand pounds to keep the peace for seven years. In 1844, this decision of the jud,o;es was reversed by the House of Lords. The Peel ministry continued in office until December, 1845, when a difference occurrino- amono; its members, lord Wellington resigned his post,°and he was followed by the entire cabinet. But from the difficulty of organizing another, Sir Robert Peel was again called to resume his office. In 1846, the Oregon treaty was concluded with the United States, and the British corn-laws were repealed. The most important events of the year 1847 were the distress and agitation in Irelan'd,"'the war in India the efforts to repress the disorders in Canada, and the ten- dency of the masses towards the causes which produced the convulsions of the following year. Spam. For six years after his restoration, Ferdinand VII pur- sued a career of absolute despotism. The officers and sup- porters of Joseph Bonaparte were driven from the country or thrown into prison; the Inquisition was re-established- monkish tyranny resumed its sway, and every form of justice or of popular right was openly violated. This head- long course of blind bigotry was the cause of violent com- motions. Ihe army became discontented; bands of guerillas ravaged different quarters; and various conspiracies were termed, either for petty revenge or the overthrow of the government. While growing weaker at home, the govern- ment was rendering itself contemptible abroad. In 18^0 Florida was ceded to the United States for five millions^of dollars. Ihe ministry was changed twenty-five times in u ^^^""^-a ^'"'"'''^ ^^'^ P^"^^' *^^^ American colonies re- volted and an attempt to send an army against them was attended by the defection of four battalions, who chose their own leaders, proclaimed the constitution of 1812 and took possession of La Caracca. The attempts made to dislodge them failed; and advancing through the country, they ex- cited a spirit of revolt among the people, and called upon them to re-establish the constitution. They were joined bv the royal troops; so that Ferdinand, as contemptible for his weakness as he was odious for his tyranny, declared him- self willing to summon the Cortes of 1812, and submit to the constitution of that year. A new ministry was ap- pointed, the Inquisition abolished, and an enti're change effected m the offices of the government. But the country was torn by factions, and these popular victories failed to restore peace. CHAP. IX. RESTORATION AND LOUIS PHILIPPE. 417 In March, 1821, the cortes declared the whole country in danger. In September, an extraordinary cortes was summoned, and about the same time, news was received that Mexico had declared herself independent, that Lima AA'as occupied by the Chilians, and that other losses had occurred in the West Indies. The troubles abroad quieted, in some degree, the dissensions at home. The king sanc- tioned a few vigorous measures passed by the cortes ; but they did not render the Spanish arms successful in America, nor increase the popularity of Ferdinand. Military riots occurred, even in the royal palace; and an attempt to restore despotism by overthrowing the constitution, was defeated by the national guards, xi new ministry, favor- able to liberal principles, was appointed, and the king, whose authority was noAV extremely weak, made every concession demanded of him. Not long after, the apostoli- cal party favorable to despotism and monkish rule was defeated, and its leaders driven from the country. The other European powers interfered ; and the French ambas- sador at Madrid demanded the restoration of Ferdinand to power, preparatory to his effecting permanent arrangements with the people. The ministers of Prussia, Austria, and llussia made similar demands ; while England advised the cortes to yield, offering her mediation. The Spanish go- vernment answered in a note, indignantly repelling the foreign interference. The French stationed 100,000 men near the Pyrenees, from whence they marched towards Madrid, proclaiming that they came to deliver the country from the evils of civil war. Ferdinand, who had entailed wretchedness upon the nation, was now passive. The French declared the sove- reignty of the king, and nullified all the acts of the cortes. War being declared against France, Ferdinand prosecuted it with his usual weakness, vacillation, and blindness. In a short time, his army of 120,000 men was beaten, and the greater part of the country in the hands of the French. A guerilla warfare succeeded, which was conducted with all the circumstances of crime and barbarity usually attendant upon a desultory warfare. In June, the theatre of war was transferred to the southern provinces. On the 15th of July, the heights of Corunna were carried by general Bourck after a bloody action of five hours. Skirmishes occurred from time to time until the 1st of October, when Ferdinand, under the protection of the French, returned to the capital. His first act was declaring the proceedings of the provi- sional cortes void. In November, the war terminated. 418 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. Forty-five thousand French soldiers remained in Spain until the national army could be organized. The defeated re- publicans were imprisoned and executed in great numbers. But the re-establishment of the Inquisition was successfully resisted. As the king was suspected of being favorable to the con- stitutionalists, some of the adherents of despotism formed a plot to displace him and raise Don Carlos to the throne. These were called Carlists. They caused much disturb- ance during the three foUoAving years ; and, with the fre- quent change of ministers and the conduct of the king, were the source of much distress among the people. In 1825, Spain lost the castle of St. Juan de Ulloa, and early in the next year, Callao, near Lima — her last possession on the American continent. In 1829, the army in Mexico sur- rendered to the patriots, under general Santa Anna, The same year was signalized by the birth of a royal princess, on which occasion the cortes declared the crown hereditary in the female lines. But two years after, while Ferdinand was suffering from a violent attack of sickness, Calomarde, the minister, induced the weak monarch to revoke the decree, and transfer the right of succession to Don Carlos. The king recovered unexpectedly, and Calomarde was dis- missed. The right of succession was restored to the infanta Maria Isabella, and her mother appointed regent of the kingdom. Ferdinand died in 1833. This brought on civil war, which was commenced by Don Carlos, who claimed the throne, and continued with variable success, until 1839. Through the energy of the queen's generalissimo, Don Baldomera Espartero, it resulted in her favor. In the mean time, the court was in a distracted condition. Ministers resigned almost as soon as they were installed. The regency, the Carlists, and the queen's adherents struggled for the mastery. The constitution of 1812 being adopted under a modified form in 1837, revived tht " ' constitutional party, which was again divided by the secession of the extreme liberals. In 1840, the queen regent resigned, and her office fell upon the new minister, Espartero. He displayed the same energy which had distinguished him on the battle- field. Charges of cruelty while suppressing the insurrec- tionists were soon brought against him, and they affected his popularity. Quarrels with the cortes and the new ministry followed, and in 1843 he was driven from the country. In Octoljer of the, same year, the young queen attained her majority, and was acknowledged as queen of CHAP. IX. RESTORATION A^'D LOUIS PHILIPPE. 419 Spain by all the European po-vvers under the title of Isa- bella II. A new and more aristocratic constitution was adopted, and a new ministry formed under general Narvaez, the great opponent of Espartero. Since that time, Spain has enjoyed an unusual degree of tranquillity — only broken by an occasional quarrel of the factions that continue to exist, the intrigues of the minister, or the childish squabbles of Isabella and. her royal consort. Poiiugal. Soon after arriving in his kingdom from his long exile in Brazil, the Portuguese monarch swore to maintain the new constitution. By this were secured freedom of person and of property, the liberty of the press, legal equality, the abolition of privileges, the admission of all citizens to any office, and national sovereignty. Several attempts at insur- rection were suppressed, and in 1823, the different depart- ments of government were re-organized. In the mean time, Brazil had separated from the parent country; and the queen and several of the nobility formed a plot to over- throw the government. Dom Miguel, with a party of nobles and officers, declared against the cortes, and general Sepulveda attempted to carry off the king. The army joined the malcontents, and the king was compelled to name a new ministry and to nullify the constitution of 1822. The king was then requested to resume absolute power, the promotion of which was declared to be the object of the counter-revolution. He refused, and propo- sals were made for drafting a new constitution, but they Avere opposed by the queen, assisted by French influence. The king still adhering to the system of moderation and liberalism, the queen resolved to annihilate it at a single blow. On the 30th of April, 1824, Dom Miguel put himself at the head of the army, and declared his intention to com- plete what he had begun before. On the same day, more than a hundred ministers and officers were arrested, and none allowed access to the king. The foreign ambassadors protested against this violence, but Dom Miguel declared that his object was to frustrate a conspiracy which aimed at the lives of the king and queen. The king ordered the troops to retire, and the release of the imprisoned persons. But the infant issued orders on his own authority, and the king was kept in a condition little better than imprison- ment. The foreign ambassadors interfering, John, with his two daughters, and the diplomatic corps, was secretly con- 420 OUTLINES or HISTORY. PART III. veyed on board an English ship, where he summoned the infant to his presence. The prince obeyed, confessed that he had been deceived, and was pardoned. Soon after, the king returned ashore and resumed his liberal policy ; but his designs were baffled by Spanish intrigue, which revived the opposition of the queen and the bigoted patriarch of Lisbon. Conspiracies were detected, and several changes of ministers occurred. On the 13th of November, 1825, the independence of Brazil was acknowledged, and four months after, the king died. In April, 1826, a new constitution was granted, b> which the cortes was divided into two chambers. In May, Dom Pedro offered the throne to his daughter. Donna Maria, on condition of her marrying her uncle Miguel. But, by the assistance of Spain, a party had already been formed to overthrow the new constitution and proclaim Dom Miguel king. Aramante and the marquis of Abrantes headed the insurgents, while a Spanish army assembled on the frontier. An appeal being made to England, 15,000 British troops were landed at Lisbon, and in a short time the in- surrection was suppressed. Next year, Dom Miguel was appointed regent. Ilis arrival from Vienna in 1828 occa- sioned another insurrection, the object of which was to place him on the throne. At the same time, the officers of the garrisons favorable to the liberal policy were removed, and an arrangement made fur sending Dom Miguel to Villa Vicosa, where he might be proclaimed king while protected by Aramante's troops. This scheme was frustrated by the energy of Mr. Lamb, the British minister. The order for the departure of the English troops was counteracted, and prevented the pa^anent of the loan made to Dom Miguel under the guarantee of the British government. Subse- quently, when the troops were withdraAvn, the prince suc- ceeded in crushing the constitutional part^^ Miguel directed all his efforts towards consolidating his own power, and the only means he employed was cruelty. The prisons were filled with his late opponents, and the roads were crowded with fugitives, flying from home and their country. The cortes declared him lawful king of Portugal. In 1830, the number of prisoners confined for political causes had swelled to 40,000, and the other countries of Europe were filled with Portuguese refugees. By his arbi- trary acts, the king drew upon him the opposition of Great Britain, which sent a fleet to the Tagus in 1831, which forced from him some humiliating concessions. Two months after, a French fleet appeared in that river, and demanded CHAP. IX. RESTORATION AND LOUIS PHILIPPE. 421 redress for injuries committed by the Portuguese on French subjects. All the demands of the French were submitted to. Soon after an insurrection occurred, which was only suppressed with bloodshed. Meanwhile, Dom Pedro was preparing an expedition whose object was the expulsion of his brother and the promotion of his own daughter. Donna Maria da Gloria, to the throne. On the 8th of July, 1832, Dom Pedro landed at Oporto, and seizing that city, maintained it against the efforts of the opposite faction. In July, 1833, the fleet of Dom Miguel was totally defeated off Cape St. Yincent by Sir Charles Napier, and in the same month his army was routed by the count da Villaflor. Lisbon was speedily reduced, and Dom Pedro assumed the government in the name of his daughter. The Miguel faction was still in arms, and its forces led by general Bourmont, a Frenchman. This leader made a des- perate attempt to carry the city of Oporto, but being repulsed, his forces retired to two strong fortresses, where they would have protracted the war, but for the union of a Spanish army with the queen's troops. On the 2Gth of May, 1&34, Dom Miguel signed a capitulation, by virtue of which he abandoned Portugal. The cortes re-established the constitution of 1826, and gave their sanction to his holding the regency. When order was in some degree restored, Dom Pedro suddenly died. His death gave rise to dissensions between the queen and her faithful ministers, in consequence of which marshal Saldanha, a democratic leader, became prime minister. The object of this appoint- ment was to gain favor with the masses; but it failed. Saldanha lost his former influence, and factions became more violent than ever. In March, 1835, the queen's hus- band died. In April, 1836, she married duke Ferdinand of Saxe-Coburg-Cohary, who was disliked both by the cortes and the people, and new troubles were the consequence. Five months after the second marriage of the queen, an insurrection occurred, which was joined in by the troops, and the queen was compelled to dismiss her ministers. The constitution of 1822 was again proclaimed. Lisbon was ruled l)y the national guard and the clubs, which sup- pressed all counter-revolutionary efforts. The new constitu- tion was constructed principally upon democratic principles. Difficulties occurred with England and Spain, Avhich occa- sioned the dissolution of the cortes, and the organization of another, which speedily came to terms with the British government. In 1841, Russia, Prussia, Austria, and the pope acknowledged the title of Donna Maria, which cou- 422 OUTLINES OF HISTOEY. PART IIT. tributed to give stability to her throne. Early in 1842, the friends of the late Dom Pedro, aided by the troops at Lisbon, effected an overthroAv of ministers, and restored the guardians of the queen, who had been appointed by the late regent. These were the duke of Ferceira and Costa Cabral. Under their management, a new treaty was concluded with Eng- land, the public expenditure lessened, additional taxes imposed, and the number of the cortes lessened. Some of these measures being found oppressive, the people strove to prevent their execution by plots and insurrections. The most formidable of these occurred at Torres Novas, in February, 1844. The insurgents, mostly of the army, seized the fortress of Almeida. This was besieged by the government troops, and captured after an obstinate resist- ance. Civil war continued to distract Portugal, and her government is still in the hands of rulers who evince a total incapacity for the duties of their stations. Itahj. Italy enjoyed a degree of prosperity under Napoleon un- known to her for ages; but with the old state of things, returned misery and anarchy. According to the regula- tions of the congress of Vienna, the king of Sardinia was reinstated, and received, as additional territory, the duchy of Geneva. The new Lombardo-Venetian kingdom was given to Austria; the Po was constituted the boundary between Parma and the Popedom; Ferdinand of Austria became grand-duke of Tuscany; Ferdinand IV. was recog- nised as king of the Two Sicilies, and the minor states were principally given to Austria. Thus Italy was little more than a province of that empire. But the desire of liberty led to the formation of various clubs and secret political societies, of which the principal were the famous Carbonari. Their object was the deliverance of Italy from foreign rule, and the establishment of a democratic government for the whole peninsula. The leaders of these institutions were men of talents, influential with the people, and controlling, in a great degree, the popular press. From the year 1820 till the expulsion of the pope in 1848, these men devoted their whole efforts to the accomplishment of their object; their exertions producing serious riots in Naples, Sicily, and Piedmont. In the month of March, 1820, more than 600,000 mem- bers were added to the Carbonari. In the next year, they attempted to revolutionize Naples and Piedmont, but were suppressed by an Austrian army. At the congress of Lay- CHAP. IX. RESTORATION AND LOUIS PHILIPPE. 423 back and Verona, the sovereigns of Europe resolved upon an armed intervention to quell the revolutionary spirit. Yet, in 1825, a conspiracy was detected at Rome, having for its object the overthrow of Austrian rule and the esta- blishment of a consolidated government. Soon afterwards, all secret societies were prohibited, tribunals supported by columns of troops were appointed to punish the authors of revolutions, and proscriptions, banishments, and execution - followed. The press, schools, and universities were closeij watched, and the education of youth confided to the Jesuits. These measures, however, did not prevent occasional out- breaks. Meanwhile, gome changes had taken place in the Papal States. In 1823, pope Pius VII. died. He was succeeded by cardinal Annibal della Genga, under the title of Leo XII. He died in 1829, and was succeeded by cardinal Castiglione, who died in 1830. In the next year, Gregory XVI. became pope. The French revolution of 1830 revived the spirit of in- surrection in Italy. The Austrian government took prompt and vigorous measures to crush any outbreaks in the Lom- bardo- Venetian kingdom, and the other parts of Italy were easily approached by the troops in that quarter. The out- breaks at Bologna and Modena were speedily quelled, and were followed by a period of external tranquillity. When Ferdinand L ascended the throne of Austria, he liberated the imprisoned Italians, and granted an amnesty for politi- cal ojffences ; but the country continued in a disturbed con- dition until the death of Gregory XVI., in 1846. He was succeeded by Pius IX., whose accession Avas the signal for the movement of many of the elements which produced the stormy events of 1848. Germany and Prussia. In 1815, the Germanic League was formed of the states composing the old German empire. The principal objects of this confederacy were the independence of the constituent states ; prevention of hostilities between one state and another ; the security of each state from civil war ; the es- tablishment of representative constitutions ; legal equality of religious sects ; the exercise of a common civil law, by which the citizens of one state may enjoy civil and religious privileges in another. These states were too loosely held together, either to be formidable in war or tranquil in peace. From 1816 to the present time, Germany has been 424 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. suffering from internal distractions, and, with respect to the control of Europe, politically dead. The political history of Germany, apart from its most powerful states, Austria and Prussia, has been of little importance since 1820, Some commotion was caused in the states by the French revolution of 1830, but it subsided when it was ascertained that the policy of Louis Philippe was favorable to peace. In 1831, the diet prohibited all interference of the subjects with the affairs of the govern- ment, either by petition or otherwise. A censorship of the press was also recommended. In 1834, authors of liberal pamphlets were forbidden to publish their productions. In 1840, the people united with the government in preparing for a war with France, in consequence of the hostile attitude assumed by that country concerning the eastern question ; but the storm passed away, and Germany fell back to her former inefficiency. In 1840, the preaching of John Konge, a Catholic priest, against an exhibition of the so-called Holy Coat at Treves, excited a commotion throughout Germany, and resulted in the secession of large numbers from the Catholic communion, and their subsequent formation of a new religious body, called the German Catholic church. The NetJierlands. The union of the states composing the Netherlands did not produce tranquillity. The bitterness of feeling engen- dered by religious differences and the remembrance of the old national hatred produced, on the one part, stringent measures of government against the French Catholic mis- sionaries who had been the cause of much disturbance; and, on the other, an excommunication from the pope against some distinguished ecclesiastics who had sworn allegiance to the king. Amid insurrections and disturb- ances of various kinds, the government found time to esta- blish pauper colonies for the relief of the poor, to build canals, and organize agricultural societies. Troubles oc- curred with the natives of the East Indies, but all were settled advantageously for the Netherlands. Trade revived, and a joint-stock company, for the promotion of various branches of industry, was founded by the king. The Nether- lands rendered great aid to Great Britain in suppressing the slave trade. By a treaty with that poAver, in 1824, the Netherlands received full possession of the English portion of Sumatra in exchange for the Dutch territories on the main land of India. In 1829, religious and political animosities became so CHAP. IX. RESTORATION AND LOUIS PHILIPPE. 425 violent, that government resolved to change its policy from concession to firm resistance. The Belgian petitions for redress were thrown aside, and laws passed against the liberty of the press. Some editors were arrested and tried for treason; and being found guilty, were banished. Amid the uproar caused by these proceedings, news of the French revolution arrived. All Brussels took arms instantly. The troops fired on the mob, but they were driven back and the people took possession of the arsenal. On the 27th of August, the royal arms were torn down, and the people chose new municipal ofiicers. The revolution spread through southern Netherlands, and an address was presented to the king, asking for a complete change in the administration. The king refused, and sent an army towards Brussels, under command of his sons, prince Frederick, and the prince of Orange. The latter entered Brussels with his troops, and after consultation with the deputations from the city and from Liege, became satisfied of the necessity of a separation of Holland and Belgium. He laid the matter before the king, and he declared his determination to refer all to the states-general. The people again took to arms; so that when the states-general met in September, they had to choose between anarchy and separation. On the 29th of September, they declared, by a large majority, the legisla- tive and administrative separation of Holland and Belgium. When the news of this declaration reached Brussels, another outbreak ensued, which resulted in the triumph of the people and the choice of popular officers. The burghers, appealing for aid to the king, prince Frederick, after issuing a proclamation, advanced upon the city. Every preparation was made for resistance by the insurgents, headed by the political clubs and factious Frenchmen. The battle began on the 23d. The people fought behind their barricades, and boiling oil, rockets, stones, and every variety of missile were used against the troops. Part of the city was reduced to ashes. Women armed themselves and fought behind the barricades ; and, after a four days' struggle, the prince was driven off, with the loss of 4000 men. After the victory of the people, the provisional government declared the provinces separated from Holland should form an independent state. Three parties immediately appeared; one favorable to an alliance Avith France ; one desiring a regency under the prince of Orange ; and another, headed by De Potter, a banished editor, anxious for a democracy, with the Catholic religion as the religion of the state. The country was in a state of 426 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. anarchy, brutal violence and rapine being paramount every- where. Some Belgian troops irritated the commandant of the citadel of Antwerp, lieutenant-general Chasse, and he bombarded the city for seven hours, with the most destruc- tive elfect. On the 3d of February, 1831, the new congress elected the duke of Nemours, son of Louis Philippe, king of Bel- gium ; but the French monarch declined the crown for his son. A regency was appointed, and the government went into operation. At length prince Leopold was elected king, and war with Holland ensued, which, but for the interfe- rence of France, would have ended in the total conquest of Belgium. In 1832, the leading powers of Europe acknow- ledged the independence of Belgium, and recommended to the king of Holland a suspension of hostilities. But Hol- land being dissatisfied, both countries prepared for war. France and England agreed in convention, that Belgium should surrender Yenloo, and Holland Antwerp, by the 2d of November; and that if Holland refused to comply, England should blockade her ports while a French army marched against Antv/erp. Both events occurred. Ma,rshal Gerard, with a French army, gained possession of Antwerp at the close of the year 1832, after which hostilities were suspended. But it was not till 1839, that, through the mediation of the five great powers, Holland acknowledged the Belgic nationality. King William abdicated the throne of Holland the next year in favor of his son, William II. Austria. The influence of Austria over the other countries of Europe has been increasing since the congress of Aix-la- Chapelle. Her domestic policy is cruel and despotic. In 1819, a censorship of all literary institutions was established, with a law intended to suppress liberal opinions, liberal writings, and secret societies. In the same year, a congress at Vienna adopted a constitution, which was subsequently acknowledged as law by the whole Germanic body. Austria possessed the strongest influence in the congresses of Trap- pau, Laybach, and Verona, which decided the political affairs of Italy, Spain, and Greece. In all these, the principles of legitimacy and armed interference with the small, states were established as rules of conduct by the Holy Alliance. Austria was opposed to the recognition of Greek indepen- dence, and bore a full share in exciting the troubles in Portugal and Spain. She acted as mediator between Russia and Turkey, in the war between those powers. In the CHAP. IX. RESTORATION AND LOUIS PHILIPPE. 427 mean time, every means were adopted to banish liberal opinions. The subjects were forbidden to speak of the government, even in praise. Learning and education were discouraged. In 1820, while the emperor Francis was at Lay bach, he said he wanted no learned men, but good, loyal subjects. The military force successfully resisted all the attempts at revolt consequent upon the French revolution of 1830. On the 2d of March, 1835, Francis II. died, and was succeeded by his son, Ferdinand I. No change followed in the Aus- trian policy. In November, 1846, Austria united with Russia and Prussia in annihilating the nationality of Cra- cow, the last relic of the old Polish kingdom. The territory around Cracow was annexed to Austria. This event, which produced a great sensation in Europe, increased the discon- tent and spirit of insurrection which had long existed in the central provinces, particularly Hungary and Bohemia. When Pius IX. ascended the papal chair, he was suspected of favoring liberal opinions ; and Ferdinand poured his best troops, by large detachments, into Italy. In the summer of 1847, an Austrian army seized Ferrara. Another army appeared on the borders of Sardinia, and all the northern provinces were in like manner watched and occupied. The plot to assassinate the pope was believed to be the result of Austrian intrigue. The commotions in Vienna continu- ing, the designs of Austria upon Italy were in a great degree checked. Russia. The subsiding of the violent commotions which attended the destruction of the power of Napoleon found Russia a power of the greatest influence. After the peace of Vienna, Alexander directed his attention to the development of the resources of his country with energy and success. His military power was a source of terror to the neighboring nations, and his domestic affairs were directed in such a manner as to re-organize the various branches of govern- ment and society. He died December 1st, 1825, and was succeeded by his brother Nicholas. As the elder brother, Constantine Caesarowitsch, renounced his right to the throne, a revolt occurred in the army, during which a conspiracy of the old Russian nobility, which had existed for years, was detected. The disturbance was suppressed and several of the conspirators executed. The next year, a war began with Persia, concerning the Persian succession. Russia prosecuted it with vigor, and by treaty, in 1827, gained a 428 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART in. large accession of territory and the payment of all expenses. In 1828, war was declared against Turkey, caused by the relations of Eussia with the Greeks. An army of 115,000 men, entering Turkey, took possession of the Upper Danube* The mountain fortresses of Choumla and Varna, where the flower of the sultan's army was concentrated, were attacked, and Choumla taken, after a two months' siege ; but an early winter and the prevalence of disease exposed the Russians to great losses. Another division of troops marched through Caucasus into Asiatic Turkey, seized several strongholds, and destroyed a flotilla on the Black Sea. When winter had terminated the campaign, various attempts to settle the difiiculty Avere made by the European poAvers, but to no effect. In the middle of winter hostilities recommenced. In Europe, the Turks lost several fortresses and a portion of their fleet. In Asia the contest Avas more serious. A great deal of hard fighting took place, but the Turks were every- where defeated. In August, 1829, the great city of SIIa^o was taken. A week later, Adrianople fell. On the 14th of September, a treaty of peace was signed, by AA^hich the boundaries of Turkey Avere adjusted, and an indemnity made to Russia for all expenses. This war Avas soon followed by the revolution in Poland, which crushed the hope of freedom in that country. Since the peace of Adrianople, Russia has taken advantage of SA^ery opportunity to extend her influence over Turkey. She has made repeated attacks upon Persia. The war waged with the brave mountaineers of Caucasus has been a series of defeats and humiliations to Russia for many years. In the mean time, the emperor Nicholas has displayed great zeal for internal improvements and the cause of education in his dominions. Sweden. The union of Sweden and NorAvay is a mere political relation — the habits, feelings, and interests of the people of the two countries being rather antagonistical. Swedish society presents the predominating feature of aristocracy ; NorAvegian, that of democracy. Charles XIV. appeared to be peculiarly fitted for the reconciliation of difierences, which, under a less enlightened and more bigoted monarch, Avould have produced serious results. He possessed the confidence of the army and a majority of the nation; and he pursued a policy marked Avith moderation and wisdom. In 1823, some conspiracies for restoring to the throne the exiled house of Wasa were detected, and their design frus- CHAP. IX. RESTORATION AND LOUIS PHILIPPE. 429 trated by the vigilance of the public officers. Their repeti- tion was prevented by an amicable arrangement with the crown. The judicial power was separated from the execu- tive, and various reforms were made with regard to com- merce, agriculture, and the administration of justice. Treaties were entered into with Great Britain and the United States, which served to strengthen the government. In 1824, the king of Norway endeavored to prevail upon the storthing, or congress of the nation, to give him an abso- lute veto and the appointment of the president of the stor- thing, to create a hereditary nobility, and other acts. The proposals were unanimously rejected, although the king was personally popular. The tumults of 1830 did not dis- turb the tranquillity of the Scandinavian empire. Internal improvements of various kinds then occupied the attention of government, and several important canals were con- structed. In 1834, the proceedings of the national diet were opened to the public. In 1840, a law was passed, by which the diet meets every three years, instead of every five. Charles XIV. died on the 8th of March, 1844, aged 80 years, and was succeeded by his son, Oscar I. Latterly the history of Sweden presents nothing of importance, save the government's protestation against the incorporation of the territory around Cracow with the dominions of Austria. Tm'key, In 1817, Mahmoud VI. seized Moldavia and Wallachia, which had partly been ceded to Russia by the treaty of 1812, under pretence that Russia favored the rebellion of the Greeks. The moderation of the emperor Alexander, joined with the mediation of Austria and England, served to prevent an outbreak immediately. When the emperor Nicholas succeeded Alexander, he demanded and obtained satisfaction. In 1826, the measures pursued by the sultan in exterminating the janizaries caused an insurrection in Constantinople, during which 6000 houses were burned. Military despotism being established, Mahmoud conducted himself with equal ferocity against his own subjects and the rebel Greeks. At the same period he re-organized his army after the European form, and, among other improve- ments, adopted the European dress. But these reforms rendered him so unpopular with the people that he was obliged to suspend them. The war with Russia began in 1828, and at the close, by the treaty of Adrianople, Turkey surrendered Moldavia and Wallachia, acknowledged the 430 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. independence of Greece, and lost a district of Asiatic Turkey. Mahmoud then resumed his projects of civil and military reform; but they caused insurrections which required two years to suppress. Then followed the war with Mehemet Ali, pasha of Egypt. That officer had refused to pay tribute, in virtue of the assistance he had given the sultan during the Turkish war; and when irritated by the high tone of the Turkish court, he sent his son, Ibrahim pasha, with an army into Syria. Ibrahim reduced Acre, routed 25,000 Turks, and then advanced against their main body. In December, 1832, the army of the sultan was totally defeated at Konieh ; and though Russia assisted Turkey by a squadron and a military force, ]Mahmoud was compelled to surrender Syria to the pasha. In 1839, hostilities were renewed, and in June the Turks were routed at Nezib, near Aleppo. Mahmoud died before the news reached him. He was succeeded by his eldest son, Abdul Medgid, a youth of sixteen. Two weeks after, the Turkish jQeet, under the capudan pasha, went over to the enemy. On the 15th of Jul}', 1840, the war terminated. By a treaty concluded at London, between Great Britain, Russia, Prussia, and Aus- tria, Syria was restored to Turkey, and Mehemet Ali obliged to content himself with Egypt. After the settlement of this difficulty, the sultan directed his attention to the introduction of European customs ; but his designs were everyAvhere opposed, and the people were excited to hatred and the more active to sedition. For five years, some of the provinces were in revolt ; and the utmost exertions of the sultan to restore order and re-organize the social and political systems only produced mortifying re- sults. In 1846, war occurred with Greece, and it Avas con- ducted with all the barbarity and devastation usual with the Turks and the Greeks. Greece. The revolution by which the Greeks threw off the Turkish yoke was the first great event in that country after the congress of Vienna. The first attempt at rebellion was made in 1821 ; but not receiving the expected aid from Russia, the Greeks were suppressed. Then the patriots and their wives and children were treated with the greatest degree of cruelty. Soon after, the inhabitants of the Morea revolted, and some skirmishes ensued, followed by massacre and devastation. In Cyprus, where no insurrection had taken place, the Turks murdered most of the inhabitants CHAP. IX. RESTORATION AND LOUIS PHILIPrE. 431 and burned sixty-two villages. Like outrages were com- mitted at Rhodes, Pergamos, and Sm3'rna. The Greek fleet blockaded all the ports of the iEgean Sea. A Greek force took Tripolissa by storm, and massacred 8000 Turks. The Turks desolated the peninsula of Cassandra and slaughtered 3000 persons. In January, 1822, depvities from various parts of Greece formed themselves into a provisional government and pro- claimed a constitution. A Turkish fleet and army appeared before Scio, and after wasting the island and massacring thousands, sold 41,000 of the people as slaves. Forty Greeks, devoting themselves to death, fired a part of the Turkish fleet, and more than 2000 men perished. In Cara- Veria, 5000 Christian families Avere slaughtered. Skirmish- ing of a severe character was carried on in the Morea, until August, 1823, when the Greeks united their forces and routed 20,000 Turks, Avith great slaughter, near Napoli. Numbers of the Turkish vessels were destroyed by tempests and the Greek fire. The sultan resolved on a war of ex- termination, lie sent a second army into Greece; but part of it was defeated at Thermopylae, by the Greek Ulyssus, and soon after another detachment was routed at Cheronea by the same leader. On the 20th of August, Marco Boz- zaris defeated 20,000 Turks at Agrapha, in a night attack. The victory cost the Greeks the death of Bozzaris. The Turks attacked Ipsara: but after an obstinate and bloody contest, they were driven oif. On the main land, the Greeks were equally successful. The third siege of Missolonghi, which lasted from April till October of the year 1825, terminated in the defeat of the Turks, with the loss of 9000 men. A fourth attack was attended with the same result. But it was taken finally, in 1826. The sufierings of the Greeks on this occasion awakened the sympathy of Europe. The three great powers united in their favor, and societies were everyAvhere formed for their relief. In the mean time, the Egyptian allies of the sultan overran the Morea, and the Greeks Avere reduced to extremity. The sultan rejecting the mediation of the three great poAvers, the Turkish and Egyptian fleet of one hundred and ten vessels Avas annihilated, in the bay of Navarino, by an English, French, and Russian fleet. In 1828, a body of French troops entered Greece, and, through the influence of France and England, the Egyptian pasha withdrew his troops from the Morea. In the next year, the sultan signed the articles submitted to him by the three great poAvers, acknowledging the independence of Greece. 432 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART HI. Some skirmishing occurred after this, but the independence of Greece was secured by the treaty of Adrianople, in Sep- tember. Prince Leopold of Saxe-Coburg was chosen by the allied powers to be the king of Greece. But he declined accept- ing it, and Otho of Bavaria became the king. The country was in a state of anarchy, which continued until 1843, when the king was compelled to call a national assembly for the purpose of forming a new constitution. This con- stitution, which is monarchical, was completed in 18-44. The intrigues of European powers and the quarrels of factions have prevented the realization of the hopes the friends of Greece conceived in 1829. The United States of America. James Monroe, the fifth president of the United States, was inaugurated March 4th, 1821. In 1824, a treaty was concluded Avith Russia, by which that power abandoned that part of Oregon south of 54° 40^. In the same year, a treaty was concluded with England, for the suppression of the slave trade. In 1825, Lafayette visited the land whose independence he had helped to establish, and was every- Avhere received with demonstrations of respect and grati- tude. The sixth president of the Union was John Quincy Adams, under whose administration several treaties were concluded with the Indian tribes, by which portions of Georgia, Arkansas, and Missouri were ceded to the United States. Other treaties were concluded with the republic of Colombia, Denmark, and Central America. On the 4th of July, 182G, two ex-presidents, Jefi'erson and Adams, died. In 1828, the passage of a new tariff bill caused violent com- motions in the Southern States ; and in the same year, general Andrew Jackson was elected president by a large majority. The tariff question continued to be agitated, and during the sessions of congress from 1829 till 1832, it formed the principal subject. In 1832, a new bill was passed, lowering the rate of duties considerably. But the South were dissatisfied, and demanded its repeal. A convention was held in South Carolina, which declared both tariff acts null and void, and declared, that if the n-ational government endeavored to enforce them, the Union would be dissolved. The advocates of these measures were called Nullifiers. The president issued a proclamation, declaring his intention to maintain the integrity of the Union. Civil war seemed in- evitable, when Henry Clay proposed his Compromise Act, which met with the support of the Southern members. CHAP. IX. RESTORATION AND LOUIS PHILIPPE. 433 This danger was scarcely averted, when a new source of contention arose from the president's vetoing a bill for the re-charter of the United States Bank. This virtually abo- lished the institution, which produced derangement and distress throughout the mercantile world. The large cities were opposed to the measures of the president ; and petitions from the great trading and moneyed interests, praying for a restoration of the charter of the bank, poured into con- gress. The president maintained his opposition to the bank, and wound up its concerns. The warlike attitude of the president towards France was modified by the opposi- tion of congress, and the difficulty was adjusted, through the mediation of Great Britain. An outrage of some whites, in Florida, caused the Seminole war — a protracted and un- satisfactory contest. The abolition of the national bank caused the chartering of a vast number of state banks, which produced a great deal of wild speculation and a paper currency of enormous amount. Amid social and political troubles, general Jackson's second term of office expired. The next president, Martin Van Buren, was a strenuous advocate of the Jackson policy. The Seminole war continued, attended with all the horrors of Indian warfare. The everglades of Florida afforded the Indians a secure refuge. Another Indian war, with Black Hawk and his followers, in the west, was ended in 1832, by the capture of that chief. In the same year, the cholera visited the country. The government acknowledged the independence of Texas, and a number of volunteers joined the Texan troops opposed to the army of Mexico. At the battle of San Jacinto, the Mexicans were defeated and Santa Anna, the Mexican president, was captured and conducted to AVashington, where he signed a treaty acknowledging Texan independence. The year of president Van Buren's inauguration saw the bursting of the storm which had been pending over every department of industry since the aboli- tion of the national bank. Almost all the banks in the country either broke or suspended specie payments. Busi- ness of every kind was brought to a stand, and mechanics and laborers were reduced to extreme distress. The Florida war was continued, and Osceola, the most prominent Semi- nole leader, captured. Petitions for the convening of an extra session of congress were laid before the president, but were disregarded. At the regular session, in December, little was done with the object of relieving the general distress, the attention of congress being directed to afi'airs on the Canada border. 37 434 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. Canada had revolted, and parties of Americans crossed the boundary to assist the insurgents. A special message was issued by the president, forbidding the citizens to cross the boundary with the object of assisting the Canadians, and general Scott, with some New York troops, was ordered to the border. On the night of the 28th of December, a party of British militia burned the steamboat Caroline, and sent it over Niagara. An angry correspondence with the British minister was the consequence of this affair, but nothing serious occurred. In 1838 the banks resumed specie pay- ments. Another difficulty occurred with Great Britain, on the Maine boundary question, during which war was anti- cipated by both countries. In 1839, the banks again suspended. Next year, general Harrison was elected to the presidency by a large majority. A complete change of policy was the consequence. A spe- cial session of congress was called to meet in May, and it was expected the cardinal principles of the AVhig party would be carried out. General Harrison died in one month after his inauguration, and was succeeded by vice-president Tyler. In May, congress met. Its first great measure, the bill for the establishment of the United States Bank, was vetoed by president Tyler. A second bill met the same treatment, and the consequence was, the resignation of the cabinet, with the exception of Mr. Webster. A new tariff bill was passed, and its effect was soon seen in the revival of trade and business. In 1842, the Maine boundary ques- tion was settled by Mr. Webster and lord Ashburton. In 1844, James K. Polk was elected to the presidency by the Democratic party. Next year, Florida and Iowa were admitted into the Union, and the treaty by which Texas was annexed became a law. In 1846, a treaty was con- cluded with Great Britain, by which the parallel of 49° was recognised as the boundary of the territory of Oregon. Congress passed bills reducing the tariff, establishing the warehouse system, and the sub-treasury. In the mean time, Mexico protested against the annexation of Texas, and her minister declared it a cause of war. The president ordered colonel Taylor into Texas, with a corps of observation. In March, 1846, orders were given him to take a position on the Rio Grande, the disputed boundary line between Mexico and Texas. Colonel Taylor built Fort Brown, opposite Matamoras, against which the Mexicans protested. The Mexican army finally crossed the Rio Grande, and attacked the small American force, on the road leading from Fort Brown. They were defeated in the two battles of the 8th CHAP. IX. RESTORATION AND LOUIS PHILIPPE. 43.5 and 9th of May, and driven across the river, vrith much slaughter. At the same time, Fort Brown was bombarded, but made a successful resistance. Matamoras was taken on the 18th, and then war was declared against Mexico by the United States. Colonel Tavlor was raised to the rank of major-general, and received a large reinforcement of troops- During the summer, Mier, Reynoso, and Camargo were taken, and on the 19th of September, the American ^rmy, numbering 7000 strong, appeared before Monterey. This strong fortress and city was defended by 12,000 men, under general Ampudia. After a four days' battle, the city capitulated- Saltillo, Parras, and Victoria were next taken, and on the 22d of February, general Taylor, with about 5000 men, encamped at the strong mountain pass of Angos- tura, near Buena Vista. Here he was attacked by general Santa Anna, with 20,000 men. The battle began early on the 23d. The Americans relied principally on their artillery, which did great execution among the Mexican cavalry. The nature of the ground prevented the cavalry from acting pro- perly. The battle was obstinately contested, and at night both armies occupied the same ground they did when the battle began- During the night, Santa Anna retreated, his army being in a starving condition. His loss was 2000 men; general Taylor's, about 700. From want of military stores, general Taylor retired to Monterey, where he re- mained till the close of the war. In the mean time, general Kearny, and colonels Fremont, Price, and Doniphan conducted expeditions against New Mexico and California. Several battles were fought, and the principal towns fell into the hands of the American troops- Colonel Doniphan's march through the enemy's country, with but 900 men, displayed great military resolu- tion and perseverance. During the march, he encountered and defeated 4000 men, on the banks of the Sacramento, (February 28th, 1847.) In March, 1847, general Scott, commander-in-chief of the American army, landed near Vera Cruz, with 11,000 men. Batteries were opened upon the city of Vera Cruz and the castle of St. Juan de Ulloa, and, on the 27th of March, both surrendered. Soon after, Alvarado and Zacotalpam were captured. Early in the next month, general Scott marched for the Mexican capital. On the 17th he reached the moun- tain pass of Cerro Gordo, where Santa Anna was posted, with 11,000 men. Next day, the Americans, numbering 7000, stormed the works and routed the Mexicans. They pressed forward, and Jalapa, Perote, and Puebla were cap- 436 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. tured without resistance. Six thousand prisoners and a great quantity of military stores Avere taken. On the 18th of August, the Americans reached San Augustin, near the city of Mexico. On the 19th and 20th, Contreras, San An- tonia, and Churubusco were taken — the latter after an ob- stinate struggle. In these battles, 15,000 Mexicans were posted in almost impregnable positions, while the attacking force numbered altogether but 7000 men. An armistice was concluded, which lasted till the Gth of Septeml>er. On the 8th, general Worth stormed the works of Molino del Rey, and carried them, but with a heavy loss. On the 12th, the batteries opened upon Chapultepec, one of the strongest fortresses in Mexico. Next day, it was carried by storm. At the same time the assault on the cit}^ commenced. Gene- ral Twiggs bombarded the southern walls, general Worth swept the works on the San Cosme road, and general Quitman those on the Tacubaya. Night found both columns in the city, and before morning Santa Anna, with his remnant of an army, fled. On the 14th, the Americans entered Mexico in triumph. This, however, did not close the war. On the 25th of September, Santa Anna appeared before Puebla, and bombarded it until the 1st of October, when he retreated. On the 9th, general Lane won the battle of Huamantla, and soon after captured Atlixco. These were the last important events of the war. Mexico and Central America. From the year 1813 till 1821, various Mexican chiefs struggled for the independence t f their country. In the last mentioned year, Iturbide and other chiefs united against the Spanish army. Next year, Iturbide assumed the title of emperor Augustin I. After a reign of ten months, he was driven from the country, and a federal republic esta- blished. Vittoria became president, but party spirit pre- vented the restoration of peace. In 1828, the two factions came to open war, each advocating the claims of a candidate to the presidency, and in the end appealing to the sword. Spain attempted to regain her authority, but was frustrated by general Santa Anna. A civil war folloAved, during which Guerrero was deposed and general Bustamente elected vice- president by the army. Under his rule, order was, in some measure, restored, and business revived. In 1831, president Pedrazza returned from France. Bustamente ordered him to leave the country. Santa Anna revolted in Vera Cruz, and another revolt occurred at Tampico. Santa Anna be- came president in 1833. In the next year, congress abo- CHAP. IX. RESTORATION AND LOUIS PHILIPPE. 437 lished convents and abrogated the authority of the pope. This caused insurrections so serious that congress adjourned, and the power of Santa Anna increased. Several of the states declared themselves independent, but, vrith the ex- ception of Texas, they were soon reduced. The army under Santa Anna was routed at San Jacinto, in April, 1836, and the independence of Texas was virtually secured. General Bustamente regained power, and by his miserable policy, involved the country in a war with France. In November, 1838, a French squadron reduced St. Juan de Ulloa. Santa Anna displayed some energy in defending Vera Cruz ; but through the mediation of the British minister, the dispute was soon settled. At the expiration of Bustamente's term, he was succeeded by Santa Anna. Since that time, with the exception of the period of the war with the United States, civil broils have occupied the history of Mexico. Central America, once Guatemala, declared itself inde- pendent of Spain in 1821. It was united to Mexico, under Iturbide, but when he fell, it became a separate government. On the 22d of November, 1824, the constituent congress completed the organization of the government, adopting a constitution similar to that of the United States. Arce was elected first president. The quarrels of factions, civil war, and social misery of every kind, marked the period of his administration. The people of St. Salvador marched against those of Guatemala, but were defeated by Arce, who per- petrated the greatest outrages. In 1829, general Morazon, of St. Salvador, captured the city of Guatemala, which se- cured his election to the presidency. He endeavored to restore order, and develope the domestic resources of the country. In 1838, an insurrection occurred, under Carrera, a half-Indian. To political animosities he added the hatred of one race to another. In 1842, Morazon was taken and shot; and since his death the country has been torn by civil dissensions. The war between the United States and Mexico produced no disturbance in Central America. It is thought that foreign industry will yet develope the resources of the country, and make it a great commercial mart. South America. The republic of Colombia comprises three provinces — Venezuela, Quito, and New Grenada. The first general congress met in March, 1821, and decided upon the adop- tion of a representative constitution. In June, the Spanish array was totally routed at Carabobo. Next year, Bolivar took Panama, and defeated Murgeon, at Curiaco. A month 37* 438 OUTLINES OP HISTORY. PART III. afterwards, Sucre gained the battle of Pichincha, after which the Spanish authorities surrendered. In 1824, Boli- var marched to assist the patriots of Peru, and in his ab- sence, the government was administered by Santander. The country was rapidly advancing in prosperity, when the revolt of Paez occurred. That officer kept all the northern provinces in turmoil until the return of Bolivar, in 1827. In March, 1828, a convention for redressing grievances was summoned to meet at Ocana; but it did nothing. Bolivar then assumed the supreme authority, abolished the constitution, and appointed a series of ojBBcers. The republican party were aroused, and attempts were made to assassinate Bolivar, but they failed, and the con- spirators were executed. Bolivar endeavored to make him- self perpetual president of Peru, which brought on a war with that country. Through the influence of Paez, Venu- zuela declared herself independent, an event which caused the resignation of Bolivar, after he had formally denied all intention of aiming at the kingly dignity. In the same year, Quito declared her independence, and the remainder of Colombia was formed into the republic of New Grenada. The three states soon after entered into friendly relations with each other, with regard to trade and national policy. But, like most of the states of South America, their later history is made up of petty quarrels, unworthy of a record. Peru declared itself independent in 1821. General San Martin was appointed dictator, and in 1822, a congress met at Lima. This body adopted a constitution, which, from its monarchical character, gave gi*eat dissatisfaction. In 1823, La Serna, the Spanish commander, defeated the re- publicans, but was prevented from improving his victory by dissensions in his army. Peru was then assisted by Colombia, which sent Bolivar and Sucre to their aid. The Peruvians were divided into factions, and the weakness of the enemy alone saved the country. Bolivar became dic- tator. In December, 1824, Sucre gained the great battle of Ayacucho, which secured the independence of Peru. Bolivar tried to impose a monarchical constitution on the country, but his design was opposed, and be afterwards instigated the war against Colombia. Peace was concluded in 1829, after the Peruvians had experienced several defeats. Gamarra became president, but his intrigues with the presi- dent of Bolivia led to his overthrow, in 1836. Santa Cruz seized the government, but was compelled to abdicate, in consequence of a war with Chili. War was declared against Bolivia, and it continued until 1842, when, through the CHAP. IX. RESTORATION AND LOUIS PHILIPPE. 439 mediation of Chili, peace was restored. Since that time the country has been a prey to faction and domestic misrule. After the failure of the attempt of Bolivar to impose a constitution upon the people of Bolivia, that country re- mained in a very unsettled condition until 1829, when the elevation of Santa Cruz to the chief magistracy restored order. During two years, prosperity attended his policy; but, thirsting for power, he involved the country in a war with Peru. He conquered that republic, and endeavored to unite it with Bolivia ; but the interference of Chili caused his overthrow. Since the last war with Peru, which termi- nated in 1842, the country has been very unsettled. Brazil remained a monarchy until 1820, when it obtained a constitution similar to the one adopted at that time in Portugal. The example of surrounding countries soon roused a republican spirit among the people. Serious riots broke out at Rio Janeiro. In May, 1822, the prince-regent assumed the title of perpetual defender of Brazil, and con- vened a national assembly to frame a constitution. This was pronounced null and void by the cortes of Portugal, and the prince-regent ordered home. The assembly then declared the separation of Brazil from Portugal, and Dom Pedro was named constitutional emperor, in October, 1822. The first acts of Pom Pedro were well calculated to aug- ment the difficulties he met with on his ascending the throne. The republicans were gaining ground. Dom Pedro forbade secret societies, and the suspected republicans were thrown into prison. In November, 1823, the assembly was driven from its hall by armed force. In 1824, a new constitution was framed, upon principles of hereditary and constitutional monarchy. The emperor and the assembly mutually restricted each other's powers. The press was free, and other religions, besides the Catholic, were tole- rated. Pernambuco opposed this constitution, but was taken by assault, after an obstinate resistance. In Novem- ber, 1825, Portugal acknowledged the independence of Brazil, and the example Avas followed by other European powers. A short war with La Plata followed, concerning the Banda Orienta, and it resulted in the independence of that province. Disputes between the emperor and the assembly were frequent, and they increased to such an ex- tent, that, in April, 1831, the emperor abdicated in favor of his son, Dom Pedro II., then only nine years old. The prince maintained his authority until his death, within a few years, amid the quarrels of parties, which kept society in a state of anarchy. 440 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. In 1819, the provinces of La Plata adopted a constitution modelled after that of the United States. The country, however, continued unsettled until May, 1822, when a con- gress met, and by a series of acts restored public tranquil- lity. Trade revived very fast, and the country seemed to be free from faction. In 1822, the independence of La Plata was recognised by the United States, and Great Britain en- tered into a treaty with her in 1825. In December of 1825 war broke out with Brazil, which resulted in the formation of a new republic from the Banda Orienta. Civil war dis- tracted and desolated the country in 1829, and it continued until 1835, when general Rosas was unanimously called to the presidency. He assumed dictatorial powers, and since that period, factious strife has only been suspended during hostility with other countries. The independence of Chili was secured in 1817 ; but the new government was not able to establish order. Three congresses assembled at different periods, for the purpose of framing a constitution, but they failed in accomplishing their object. The country was agitated by the disputes between the advocates of a central government and those who favored a federal constitution. In 1828, the constitu- tion was adopted, under the administration of general Pinto. Prieto, the successor of Pinto, restored order, and procured the passage of many useful laws. In 1837, Chili declared war against Peru, and successfully prosecuted it until 1839, when Santa Cruz was expelled from Peru. Chili is at pre- sent the most tranquil and prosperous of the South American states. CHAP. X. TIMES OF THE CONTINENTAL REVOLUTIONS. France. The approach of an outbreak among the people of Paris might have been easily gathered from the movements of the democratic leaders. They instituted reform-banquets, at which the measures of government were freely discussed, and attempts made to excite a veneration for the men who had fallen martyrs to the popular cause, and an emulation of their actions. Feeling certain of their strength, and CHAP. X. THE CONTINENTAL REVOLUTIONS. 441 anxious to bring things to a crisis, the democrats appointed the 22d of February, 1848, for a monster banquet. This was forbidden by the ministry. The opposition deputies protested against the prohibition, and the ministry yielded, permitting the banquet to be held, under certain restrictions. Every measure was adopted by the government to prevent an outbreak. The troops in Paris were increased to 100,000. On the day appointed for the banquet, crowds collected in the principal streets, and the mob attempted to erect barri- cades. At the same time, Odillon Barrot laid before the chambers a proposition for impeaching the ministers. The next day the excitement increased, and Guizot and his col- leagues resigned. A new ministry was formed under count Mole. The municipal guards joined the people, but by sunset, order was restored. During the night, the soldiers, after being pelted and fired upon by the people, fired upon them in turn. This was what the democrat leaders had been aiming to effect. By parading and exhibiting the dead bodies, the people were excited to fury, and that fury was turned against the king. On the 24th, barricades were constructed, houses and public edifices stormed and demolished, and arms seized in every quarter. The troops joined the people in denouncing the king. The Tuileries was taken and plundered. Louis Philippe abdicated in favor of his grandson, the count of Paris, and fled to England. In the mean time, the duchess of Orleans, mother to the count of Paris, appeared in the chamber of deputies, but her title as regent and that of her son were disregarded. A number of deputies proclaimed a republic, and organized a provisional government. This consisted of Dupont de I'Eure, Lamartine, Arago, Ledru PvoUin, and Gamier Pages. From the steps of the Hotel de Ville, the republic was announced to the people. It was received with enthusiasm by the majority, but there was still a strong minority opposed to it. The penalty of death for political ofi'ences was abolished, every slave on French soil emancipated, and the qualifications for citizenship de- termined. By the 1st of March, order was, in a great measure, secured, and the new government went into opera- tion. During the elections in April, the Red Republicans were somewhat turbulent, but Lamartine triumphed. An executive committee of five members took the place of the provisional government. It consisted of Arago, Pages, Marie, Lamartine, and Rollin. Riots continued until the 15th of May, when 50,000 persons invaded the assembly and declared the government at an end. The army, how- 442 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. ever, remained true to the government, and the mob was dispersed. On the 23d of June, an insurrection occurred, instigated by clubs of workmen, discharged from the public workshops. It was the most terrible outbreak France had witnessed since the Reign of Terror. In a few hours, strong barri- cades were thrown up in and around Paris, and 200,000 insurgents were in arms. General Cavaignac was appointed commander-in-chief of the French army, and after a four days' battle, he succeeded in driving the insurgents from their works and restoring peace. About 30,000 persons were killed, the loss of the military being very great. Many distinguished officers were among the killed. General Ca- vaignac was subsequently appointed president of the coun- cil, and his vigorous measures secured tranquillity. On the 12th of November, the constitution was proclaimed, and at the general election held the same month, Louis Napoleon Bonaparte was chosen president by a large majority. Soon after the election, it was determined to send a French army into Italy, under general Oudinot, for the purpose of restor- ing the exiled pope to his dominions. This caused numerous riots in France, and at Lyons the municipal authorities were driven from the city, and a temporary Red Republican government formed. About 1000 persons were killed or wounded before order was secured. A conspiracy was discovev^^d about the same time, the object of which was the overthrow of the government and the establishment of a democratic and social republic. Towards the close of 1849, the ministry was dissolved by president Bonaparte, and the designs of the president to concentrate power in himself were very apparent. Great Britain. In 1848, the evils to which Ireland had long been a prey reached their climax. Famine and pestilence desolated the country, and brought about a state of things almost impa- ralleled in history. The principal cause of the misery of the people was the failure of the potato crops — that being their staple article of food. Thousands died daily. The scarcity of provisions upon the continent prevented the arrival of any aid from that quarter. Government took means to alleviate the distress, and large quantities of provisions were sent from the United States. But the relief was only partial. In India, a war with the Sikhs was the conse- quence of disputes with the native chiefs, and the English experienced a humiliating defeat. But, in the end, the CHAP. X. THE CONTINENTAL rtEYOLUTIONS. 443 Sikhs were routed and the Punjaub territory annexed to British India. Great Britain entered her protest against the annexation of the Cracow republic to Austria. She in- terfered in the domestic affairs of Spain, endeavoring to restore order. Vigorous measures suppressed the repeal agitation in Ireland, the Chartist effort in England, and the riots in Scotland. The war with China was quickly brought to a close. The new republic of France was recognised as such soon after its formation, though Louis Philippe was received by the government with every mark of attention and condolence. Great Britain remonstrated against the atrocities committed by Austria upon the Hungarian and Polish patriots. She promptly supported the sultan of Turkey in his refusal to deliver the Hungarian refugees into the hands of Russia, and, united with France, undoubt- edly prevented a war between Russia and Turkey. Italy. In 1848, Pius IX. gave a new constitution to his people, and reformed manv abuses. He also resisted the interfe- rence of Austria. Still the people of the Papal States were so oppressed, that in the latter part of that year, they rose in insurrection, drove the pope from the country, abolished the college of cardinals, and proclaimed a republic. A con- stitution was framed, and a provisional government esta- blished. While all were watching the result of the movement, the French army, under general Oudinot, landed at Civita Yecchia, and marched for Rome. On the 26th of April, the constituent assembly declared its permanence, and pro- tested against French interference. A triumvirate of dis tinguished republican leaders formed the executive of the government. The siege began on the 30th of April. The Romans, filled with the most heroic and determined spirit, were commanded by Garibaldi, Mazzini, and other distin- guished chiefs. The French were repulsed in three suc- cessive attacks. On the 13th of May, Oudinot attempted to cross into Rome by a bridge, but the bridge was blown up and the French repulsed. A blockade followed, which lasted until June, when the French, after hard fighting, obtained possession of several important points. A storm- ing of the city was tried on the 15th, but the French were compelled to retire. Towards the close of the month, the triumvirate opened negotiations with Oudinot. A capitula- tion was the consequence, and on the 3d of July, the French entered Rome. The republican leaders fled. A temporary government was established, the cardinals restored to power, 444 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART HI. and the pope invited to return. Vigorous measures were adopted for the suppression of liberal opinions, and the In- quisition re-established. The pope has at length returned to his dominions, and a calm has succeeded the attempt of the masses to choose their own government. Germany and Prussia. The revolutionary spirit developed throughout Europe, in 1848, powerfully affected both Germany and Prussia. Every part of these countries was agitated by riots for some months after the revolution in France. The king of Bavaria was compelled to abdicate, and other rulers were driven from their dominions. An outbreak in Prussia forced the king to disband a large part of his army, to grant a new consti- tution, and to appear to take the lead in reforming abuses. The diet at Frankfort was the scene of violent debates, con- cerning; a union of all Central and Northern Germanv. The imperial crown Avas offered to the king of Prussia, but he declined it. The country is still in a distracted state. Its division into petty states, destitute of national sympathy, prevents it from occupying the position among the European powers to which it is justly entitled. Belgium and Holland were affected by the revolutionary spirit, but the succeeding calm left both countries in the same condition as before the disturbance. Austria, Insurrections occurred in Vienna soon after the revolu- tion in France, and the people so far succeeded, that prince Metternich fled from the country, the emperor Ferdinand abdicated in favor of his son Joseph, and a liberal constitu- tion was given to the people. In the mean time, the diet of Hungary adopted measures for securing to the people of that country their ancient privileges. In May, 1848, the pope having declared war against Austria, several skirmishes took place, in which the heroism of the Italians was credit- ably displayed. The dissensions in Hungary increased to civil war, so that the government was compelled to send a large army into the province. But the Hungarians, stimu- lated by the eloquence of Kossuth, and led by Bem, Dem- binski, and Georgey, displayed 'the greatest heroism and enthusiasm for their country's cause. The ablest Austrian generals were everywhere defeated by them, and their cause seemed to be triumphant. But the emperor of Kussia, anxious to crush the spirit of revolution and of liberty, sent an army of 120,000 men into Hungary, to assist the Aus- CHAP. X, THE CONTINENTAL REVOLUTIONS. 445 trians. The Hungarians struggled against such odds with considerable success, until the latter part of 1849, when general Georgey surrendered a force of 30,000 men to the Austro-Russian army. This opened to the latter the key of the Hungarian position, and produced a disastrous ter- mination to the insurrection. The Hungarian army was disbanded, its leaders escaped, and the country was again brought under Austrian authority. Kossuth and his fellow chieftains fled to Turkey. The emperor of Russia demanded their surrender, but the sultan refused to comply. Since the crushing of the insurrection, the Austrians have in- flicted the most cruel and barbarous treatment upon the unfortunate patriots, which has awakened a feeling of in- dignation throughout the greater portion of Europe and America. Russia and Turhey. Russia took a decided part in the events of 1848, on the side of legitimacy. The emperor was opposed to the revolu- tion in France, and frowned upon the struggles of the republicans in Italy and Germany. When the war between Austria and Hungary was raging, he declared his intention of applying the strength of his empire to resist the attempts of the republicans. When the Hungarian leaders took refuge in Turkey, he demanded their surrender, and threat- ened war in case of refusal. But his demand was not com- plied with, nor did he carry his threat into operation. The sultan gave Kossuth and the other Hungarian leaders a place of residence in his dominions, and some of them, em- bracing the Mohammedan faith, received ofiice in the army and other marks of his favor. The United States. Early in 1848, a treaty of peace was concluded between the United States and Mexico. The Rio Grande was ac- knowledged by the Mexican government as the boundary of Texas, and the valuable territories of California and New Mexico were ceded to the United States. In November, the same year, the Whigs elected general Zachary Taylor to the presidency. The discovery of the immense mineral wealth of California caused a vast number of emigrants from all parts of the world to seek that territory, and cities and states are springing up on the shores of the Pacific, which, till within a few years, were almost unknown. The quantity of gold obtained in California has realized the most sanguine expectations, and rewarded the hardest toil. In 1849, the 38 446 OUTLINES OF HISTORY. PART III. country was visited by the scourge of the cholera, which, among thousands of victims, carried away many who had filled distinguished situations, among whom were generals Gaines, and Worth, and ex-president Polk. Since that event, the exciting debates in congress, upon the subject of slavery, the dismissal of M. Poussin, the French minister to the United States, and some unsuccessful attempts to gain possession of Cuba, by citizens of the United States, have been the only events which have disturbed the internal peace, and external relations of the country. During the congressional session of 1849-50, the excite- ment upon the slavery question increased to an extent which threatened the dismemberment of the Union. In the Senate, a committee of thirteen of the most prominent statesmen, at the head of whom was Henry Clay, was ap- pointed to bring about an adjustment of the vexed question. They reported a Compromise Bill, providing for the ad- mission of California into the Union, the recapture of slaves fleeing from one state into another, the settlement of the claim of Texas on New Mexico, and giving a territorial government to Utah. This bill was discussed in the Senate for two months, and the ablest statesmen displayed their talents in speaking upon either side of the question. Finally, the Compromise measure was defeated. But each of the objects of the bill was afterwards provided for sepa- rately. While the bill was pending, the nation was suddenly called upon to mourn the loss of its chief magistrate. Pre- sident Taylor died on the 9th of July, 1850. Millard Fill- more, the vice-president, then became president. The members of the cabinet appointed by general Taylor im- mediately resigned ; and president Fillmore framed a new cabinet, at the head of which was Daniel Webster, as Secretary of State. (i^^^g^n@)!^s FOR EXAMINATION OF STUDENTS IN THE OUTLIIVES OF HISTORY CHAPTER I. INTRODUCTION. Of Man— p. 15. What are the three principal stems of the human race? What does the first contain? — the second 1 — the third? Can all tribes be easily brought under these divisions 1 Original Seat of Man — p. 15. What is the s^eneral opinion, founded on scripture, relating to the flood 1 How do some interpret the words of scripture concerning iti What do they infer? On what mountains do they suppose the first stem of the human race to have taken refuge 1 — the second stem or Mongols 1 — the third or Negro race ? Are these questions of historical importance 1 447 448 auESTioNS. Original State of Man — p. 16. What was the first form of government 1 — the first nour- ishment of man 'J Where was probably his first seat? What did man gradually become ] Whence arose monarchies 1 In what state does the historian propose to consider man 1 What IS private and public felicity the result of? To what race must the history of the world mainly confine itself J Why ] Ethiopians — p. 17. Who are the ^Ethiopians'? For whom has this race fur- nished slaves in all ages of the world ? What has modern travel discovered in the interior of Africa ? Why are the revolutions of this country unknown ? The Chinese — p. 18. In what respects do the Mongols rank above the Ethio- pians? What has rendered the Chinese nation an object of curiosity ? What is the extent of the Chinese empire ? What has always been its form of government? Describe the con- dition of China. In what respects has it always remained the same? What is said of their writing and literature? What book of Con-fu-tsee or Confucius is mentioned ? What marked feature presents itself in the Chinese character? Is there any system of religion in Con-fu-tsee's book ? How far back does the uncertain history of China extend ? — the certain ? Whence did the founders of the state come ? Where were the first seats of civilization '! How many dynasties have the Chinese had? Which is the most remarkable? When did it reign ? For what was it distinguished ? What ended it ? Whence did China first receive its religion ? — when ? What afterwards became the religion of the state ? What has always remained unaltered in China ? India — p. 20. To what race do the inhabitants of India belong? What do we find here ? When does India first appear in the his- tory of the world ? What is said of the antiquity of this na- tion ? What has the religion of India effected ? What is said of the system of castes? What has always been the condition of India? Of what is India an instance? Who first conquered it? — who next? Who ruled it after Alex- ander? Who conquered it 120 years after Alexander's death? To whom did his possessions west of the Indus fall ? What did Eucratides do? Who eventually overran India? What has been its condition for the last 1000 years? auESTioNS. 449 CHAPTER II. THE ANCIENT STATES OF CENTRAL AND WESTERN ASIA. Bactria — p. 21. Where did a rnig-hty empire exist in remote ages 1 Where is Bactria 1 What race spread over Iran 1 Where is Iran 1 What was the chief seat of the Indo-Persian race 1 Who ruled here 1 What system of religion prevailed in Bactria ? Who corrupted it 1 — who restored it ] To whom did it pass ? Who extinguished it in blood ] Where does it yet linger ? What did it worship! What were its character and tendency! Babylon and Assyria — p. 22. In what history are the empires of Babylon and Assyria recognized 1 Which was the more ancient 1 What was its capita] ] What was the capital of Assyria 1 Where did the Babylonians dwell 1 What was their character 1 To what were they exposed 1 Who built Babylon 1 Who enlarged it ] Who farther improved it 1 What was the extent of his dominions'? What nations conquered Babylon in the reign of his son 1 Where was the Assyrian empire 1 Is its his- tory well known] Who were the Chaldeans'? Who rose to the highest rank among them 1 How were they supported 1 — how occupied! What is observed of their pretended wis- dom'? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where was Babylon situated '? — Nineveh '? Where is the Tigris? — the Euphrates'? Where Babylonia'? — Assyria! — how bounded ! Egypt— ^. 23. Of what was Egypt the seat ! Whence did a branch of the Caucasian race come ! By what strait ! Where did it found an empire first ! — where next ! — where lastly ! When was this ! What was the state of Egypt in Abraham's time ? What power did the priests exercise in this empire! What secured their independence ! Was the king independent of the priests! Of what does the history of Joseph inform usl What monarchs ruled over Egypt! What other powers sub- dued it! What subsisted through every shock! Describe the effects of the system of castes. How were the lower orders in Egypt employed ! What remains of their labors still exist! What is observed of the knowledge of Egypt? — of its monuments ! 3S* 450 QUESTIONS Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is the strait of Babelmandeb % What lies east of if? — whatwestl Where is Nubia'? — Upper Eg-ypti — Lower Egypt ■? What is the chief river of Egypt ] Wheie is Memphis T— Thebes ] PhoBnicia — p. 25. What race settled on the Persian Gulf? Where did it settle a colony ] What were these colonists called ? What was their chief city ] Where did they build Tyre? For what were they celebrated ? What increased their tradt ? What places did their ships visit? What was their chiet colony? What rendered them formidable? W^hat was ther character of their merchants? — their religion and goverii- ment? Questmis to be answered from Maps. Where is the Persian Gulf? Give the boundaries of Syria- - Phoenicia. Where was Tyre? — Sidon? Which way from Tyre is Italv ? — Spain ? — Carthage ? — the JDgean sea ? Philistines — p. 25. For what are the Philistines celebrated? Where did they dwell ? How many cities and kings had they ? How did they subsist ? What did they worship ? Arabia — p. 26. What has always been the condition of the Arabs? How are they governed? What animals chiefly support them? By what names are they called in scripture ? What did they worship ? Israelites — p. 26. Who was the founder of the nation of the Israelites ? In what country did he settle by God's command? How was he rewarded ? Who brought the family to Egypt ? How long did they remain there? Where did they dwell ? Why did the new dynasty of Egypt oppress them ? — how ? Relate the story of Moses. What caused him to flee to Arabia? How did he live there? Why did he return to Egypt? How did he compel the Egyptian monarch to let the Israelites de- part? Ho vv did Pharaoh perish? What change had taken place in the Israelites during their residence in Egypt? Who became their king ? What was the object of God's dealings with this people ? Where was the law given ? What was auESTioNs. 451 intrusted to their sacerdotal order? How were they main- tained] What services did they render to the community'? How were they divided 1 Which of these divisions possessed lands 1 Why was trade discouraged among the Israelites 1 What feasts had they 1 What is said of their constitution ? How long- were the Israelites detained in the deserts of Ara- bia ] — why ] Where did Moses then lead them 1 Who suc- ceeded him '? What river did Joshua lead the Israelites overT What country did they conquer 1 What did the people then do] How were they punished ? Who occasionally rose to lead them against their enemies ] What is said of the proph- ets? Who exercised the sovereign power contrary to the intention of the lawgiver 1 Who again divided the temporal from the spiritual power? What did the people demand of Samuel? What were the Israelites now called? For what were they now distinguished ? How was their faith cor- rupted ? What three sects sprang up among them ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Arabia ? — how bounded ? How is Palestine bounded ? Which way from Egypt is Arabia ? — Palestine ? From what mountains does the Euphrates spring ? What countries lie between these mountains and Egypt? Where is Jerusalem? Which way from Tyre? Which way from Palestine is the Red Sea ? — Egypt ? — India ? — Africa? Where is Palmyra ? Which way from Babylon ? — from the Euphra- tes ? Which way from Palestine is Babylon ? — Persia ? Medes and Persians — p. 32. What has been the usual form of government in Western Asia? What has been the general tenor of its history? What power ruled over Asia ? Where is Media? Who was its first monarch ? Who took Nineveh ? Who drove out the Scythians from Asia? What slates existed in Lesser Asia, or Asia Minor ? W^hat dissolved them ? What thir- teen kingdoms rose from their ruins ? What began in the time of Gyges, king of Lydia ? With whom did Ardys war? Who drove out the Cimmerians? Who ruled Asia Minor? Between whom did war arise ? Who mediated ? What was the result ? Where did the Persians dwell ? Who united them and conquered the Medes ? What empire did he found ? What king of Lydia did he conquer ? How was he treated ? What country submitted to Cyrus in consequence of the de- feat of CrcBsus? When Cyrus had conquered Babylonia, what people did he free ? What city did Cyrus found for his capital ? — why ? What was Cyrus's last expedition ? — his 452 auESTioxs. character 1 Who succeeded him ? What country did he conquer 1 How did he die 3 What was the condition of Persia under Darius Hystaspes 1 What city rebelled ] Who reduced if? Who attempted to conquer Barce and Cyrenel — with what success ] How did Darius succeed against the Scythians'? What islands and continent did he next attack? Where was he defeated ? What prevented a second attempt against Greece 1 What was Darius's character 7 Who was Xerxes] What country did he attack] What strait did his army pass over ] Where was his fleet destroyed ] What was the consequence ] With whom did Xerxes leave his army] Whither did he fly ] What took place next year] How did Xerxes end his days] Whom did his assassins accuse of murdering him ] What was the consequence ? Who succeeded Xerxes] How did he punish Artabanus] Who quelled the rebellion in Egypt] — effectually] What was the surname and character of Artaxerxes ] Describe the slate of Persia after his death ] In what reign did the Per- sian empire submit to Greece ] Who rebelled against Arta- xerxes II. ] Where did the brothers meet in battle ] What was the result] What did the admirable retreat of the Ten Thousand betray to Greece ] What Spartan king threatened the Persian monarchy ] How was the blow averted ] What was the greatest extent of the Persian empire] What was the condition of its subject states under Cyrus] What did Darius attempt ] What was the consequence ] Questions to be answered from Maps. How was Media bounded ] — Persia ] Where is Asia Mi- nor] In what part of it is Cilicia] — Phrygia] — Lydia] Where is the Black Sea ] Where is Babylonia ] Where was Pasagarda ] — Persepolis ] — Susa ] Which way from Susa is Egypt ] On what part of the African coast are Barce and Cyrene ] — which way from the island of Crete ] — from Greece ] Where is the Hellespont ] — Scythia ] — Thrace ] Which way from Asia Minor is Greece] What divides them ] Where is Marathon ] — Salamis ] — Boeotia ] — Ionia ] — Cunaxa] — the Euxine Sea] — Sparta] What countries lie between the Indus and the Mediterranean ] Where is Thrace ] — Caucasus ] aUESTiONS. 453 CHAPTER III. GREECE. Early State of Greece — p. 37- What country is supposed once to have existed where the iEgean sea is ? Where was there a sea spread ? What change took place I To whom is the erection of the most ancient and massy remains of architecture in Greece as- cribed ? Of what race were they 1 Whence did they enter Greece 1 Where are their chief remains 1 Who succeeded them] What countries did they overrun 7 Whence came they] Did they originate the religion of Greece] Who came next and overcame the Pelasgians] What legends are referred to their contests ] Which is the heroic aofe of Greece ] What is the chief historic event of this time ] What were the character and chief actions of Minos ] De- scribe the character and institutions of the Achseans ] What was the religion of Greece 1 What nations added to its dei- ties and rites ] Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Greece ] — the ^gean Sea ] — the Bosphorus 1 — Thessaly] — Thrace] — Peloponnesus] — Italy] — Troy] Which way from Greece is Egypt ] — Phoenicia] — Phrygia] — Crete \ Dorian Migration — p. 39. Who was the head of the Achaean race ] When were chey disunited ] Who invaded Greece and overran Pelopon- nesus] What three provinces became their property] What islands did they settle ] Who retreated to Attica] Whither did a portion of them migrate and settle a country afterwards called Ionia] Where had the iEolians before settled ] Who favored the settlement of the lonians] What places did the Dorians, from Crete, take ] What were thus formed by tlicse lonians, Dorians, and ^olians ] Questions to be answered from Maps. In what part of Greece is Doris ] In what part of Pelo- ponnesus is Arcadia] — Achaia or Achaea] — Laconia] — Mes- senia] — Argolis] Where is vEgina] In what part of Asia Minor is the Hermus ] — Cyzicus ] — Caria ] — Ionia ] — CnidusT — Halicarnassus ] Where is Rhodes ] 454 QUESTIONS Sparta — p. 40. Which was the first state of Greece at this period 1 Who were at the head of it ] Which was the first order in the state under the kings'! — the second 1 — the lowest] Who was Lycurgus] Whither did he go to form his famous code of laws 1 What was the object of all Dorian legislation 1 How did Lycurgus divide the lands'! — who tilled if! — who held the government! How were the Spartans and Periceci engaged "! What error is noticed ! Who were the Gerusia or senate '! What power had the people 1 — the Helots "! Who were the Ephori 1 What powers had they 1 Describe some of the institutions of Lycurgus. What was their tendency'! Questions to be answered from Maps. In what part of Peloponnesus is Laconia'! What is its chief city '! Which way from Sparta is Crete '! — Athens ■! — Argos '! — Corinth ! — Messene "! Of what state was Athens the capital city '! Which way from Athens is Megara ? Athens — p. 41. What cities rose into importance before Athens 1 Is the story of Cecrops a fable ] \Vhat prince first united the petty states of Attica ! What proves his power small 7 When did his family lose the throne ! Who obtained the direction of affairs] Whom did his son Codrus expel '! — whither'! Wfien was an aristocracy established in Athens? — in what form'! What is an Olympiad 1 W^hen did the first begin? When did Draco promulgate his severe laws? How were they regarded ? Who attempted twelve years after to be- come tyrant of Athens ? W^ho besieged him in the citadel ? What was the result? What misfortunes followed ? What prophet purified the city, and prepared the way for Solon's system? What was Solon's first object? Of what did he deprive the nobility? What council did he establish? What did he make the people swear? Did Jiis laws put an end to the internal broils? Who were the Thetes? W^here was Solon gone ? Who obtained the sovereign power ? Who expelled him ? W^ho restored and expelled him again ? What did Peisistratus eleven years afterwards? Who succeeded him ? Who murdered Hipparchus ? Who drove Hippias into Asia? What alterations did Cleisthenes make in the constitution? What people attempted to restore the old aris- tocracy ? What was established ? i QUESTIONS. 455 CHAPTER IV. GREECE, TO HER SUBVERSION BY THE MACEDONIANS. The Persian War — p. 46. What states now came into conflict 1 What cities revolted from Persia 1 Who aided them ] Who sent to Greece to demand homage? What islands gave it? What Persian generals were sent to subdue Greece ? Where were they defeated? Whom did the Athenians send against Naxos? How was his failure punished? Who raised Athens to a leading state? — how? What was the only hope of Athens? What island was at war with Athens? What reconciled them, and united all the Grecian states ? What force did Xerxes lead into Greece ?-"when? What fleet had he? Where was he first opposed ? — by whom ? What was the result? Where had the Persian fleet suffered ? What city did the Persian army take and burn? At what strait were they totally defeated ? Whither did Xerxes fly ? Whom did he leave in command ? With what force ? Where was he totally defeated next year? Where was a Persian fleet defeated on the same day ? How did Athens profit by these events? Why was the command of the Grecian states trans- ferred to Athens? What arrangement was made with Athens? What befel Sparta? Whom did Athens assist against Sparta? How did the rebellion end ? What did Athens ac- complish while at the height of her power ? Who were her great men at this period ? How were they treated ? Questions to he answered from Maps. Where is ^gina? Where is Laurium? Which way from Greece is Ionia ? What sea lies between them? Where is Naxos ? Where is the Hellespont ? What does it sepa- rate ? Where is Thessaly ? — Thermopylae ? — Artemisium ? — PlatEea ? — Mycale ? — Piraeus ? — Cyprus ? TVie Peloponnesian War — p. 48. Who was now the leading man at Athens? How did he seek power ? What was his character ? What islands did he reduce ? By what other means did he extend the power of Athens? What naval powers rivalled Athens? What caused a quarrel between them ? Which sought aid of Athens ? Who declared war with Athens ? Who invaded Attica? What other misfortunes befel Athens? What passed at Platff'a? Who was Brasidas? — Nicias? — Demos- 456 auESTiONS. thenesi — Alcibiades? Where were Grecian colonies settled] Who was Gelon 1 Who induced the Athenians to interfere in the wars of Sicily 1 Who was sent thither ] Why was he recalled] Whither did he flee? Who was sent to Sicily from Sparta ] Who was sent by Athens against him ] What was the result! What was now the condition of Athens! Who fortified Decelia] By whose advice ] How long- did the Athenians hold out 1 What happened at Mgos 1 What then ensued ] What did the Thebans and Corinthians pro- pose ? What was the answer of the victorious Lacedaemo- nians l How was the power of Athens cramped ] W^ho governed her 1 How long had the Peloponnesian war con- tinued ] What ended with it ? What kind of supremacy had Athens attained ] Describe its effects. Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Euboea? — Samos? — Corcyra? — Corinth? — Sicily? — Syracuse ? — Decelia ? — the river JSgos ? — Clazomenae ? — Cyprus ? — Lemnos ? — Imbrus ? — Scyrus ? LacedcBmonian Dominion — p. 51. What state had now gained the empire of Greece ? How was it lost ? Who drove out her Thirty Tyrants from Athens ? How was the navy of Athens restored ? What did Sparta seek? What foreign power exercised influence in Greece ? What had Xenophon's retreat of the 10,000 revealed ? How was Agesilaus employed ? What policy did Persia adopt? What were the terms of the treaty of Antalcidas ? How was it viewed ? Theban Dominion — p. 52. How had Sparta gained the city of Thebes? What acta did Sparta perform while at the height of her power? What was done by the democratic party at Thebes ? W^ho guided the Theban affairs? — who joined them? What towns were gained? Who was recalled from Asia? Who sent to the Persian king ? What did he direct ? What states obeyed ? Who refused ? Where was the question decided by arms? Who were defeated ? Who invaded Peloponnesus? What people did he free ? What state joined Sparta ? To what court did all parties send ambassadors? What was the re- sult? Who was Lycomedes? What did ne attempt? Who went to oppose his designs? Which side prevailed? In what battle ? What general fell 1 auESTioNs 457 Questions to be answered from Maps. In what part of Bceotia is Thebes? Which way from Athens ] — from Sparta ] Where is Leuctra ] Throug-h what states must a land force pass from Leuctra to Messene J Where is Arcadia ] Which way from Laconia 1 — from Mes- senial Where is Mantinea? Which way from Sparta.' — from Thebes 1 — Macedonia ] — Phocis ] — Delphi ] — Olynthus ! — Chaeronea ] Philip of Macedon — p. 55. What was now the situation of affairs in Greece ? Wlic was Jason 1 What did he design I What was the state of affairs in Thessaly ] Who united with Jason ? To what ofRce was Jason chosen 1 In what circumstances was he un- fortunate ? How did he perish .' What events followed ] What was the effect of the Holy War in Greece 1 W^hy did the Amphictyonic Council decree a fine upon the Phocians] What was done by the Phocians ] What enabled them to carry on the ten years' Holy War] Whom did the Thessa- lians call in to their assistance ] What was the result ? What Athenian orator opposed Philip's designs'? In what field did Philip gain the empire of Greece] Where did he call an assembly of the Greeks? To what office did they appoint liim ] How was ho prevented from attempting- the conquest of Asia? CHAPTER V. ALEXANDER AND HIS SUCCESSORS. Alexander — p. 57. Who succeeded Philip of Macedon ? — at what age? How did he terrify the Athenians and Thebans ? What states north of Macedon did he conquer ] What city rebelled, and was destroyed by him 1 What country was now at his devotion ] What part of the world did he invade ] With what force ] Where did he first defeat the Persians'? — where next? What city of PhoBuicia did he then take ? — what country next? What temple did he visit? Where did he then defeat Darius and his million of Asiatic soldiers? With what force ? What four great cities now fell to him ? Who m^irdered Darius ? How was he punished ? — by whom ? Where did Alexander then found cities ? To what country did he then march ? — how far? What obliged him to return? By what route? Where 39 458 auESTioNs. and how did he die ] What was his great object 1 How did he try to attain it ] What frustrated it ? Questions to be answered from Maps. In what part of Asia Minor is the river Granicus? Which way from it is Issusi Through what countries did Alexan- der march from the Granicus to Issus"? — from Issus to Tyre — from Tyre to Egypt 1 — from Egypt to Assyria? In wha part of Assyria are Gaugamela and Arbela 1 On what river , is Babylon] Where is Susa? — Persepolis? — Ecbatanal — ' Bactria 1 — Sogdiana 1 — Candahar ? — Caubul ! — the Indus ? — the Persian Gulf! Division of Alexander'' s Dominions — p. 58. To what resolution did Alexander's generals come ? How were his dominions distributed ? What design did Perdiccas form 1 Where did he fall 1 Who joined Macedon ? Who succeeded him 1 What befel Olympias ? What did Anti- gonus effect '' — Demetrius ] What title did the governors take ] Where did Antigonus fall 1 How were Alexander's dominions now divided ? Macedon — p. 60. What generals successively gained Macedon ? How were the Kelts or Celts driven from Greece 1 Who raised Mace- don from ruin ? Who succeeded him? What is related of Antigonus Doson? — of Philip? — of Perseus? To what was Macedon reduced ? What was its extent? Greece — p. GO. What was the state of affairs in Greece ? How had Sparta behaved ? To what was Sparta finally reduced? What was the Achaean league? Who joined it? Who formed a similar union ? What gave the Romans the ascendency ? To what was Greece reduced ? Under what name ? Who was the last of their heroes ? Thrace — p. 61. Who gained Thrace ? Where did he fall ? Who gave up Thrace to the Romans ? Bithynia — p. 61. Where is Bithynia? To whom was it tributary? Who expelled the Macedonian governor? Who gave it up to the Romans? UUESTIONS. Pergamus — p. 62. Who established the kingdom of Pergamusi Who was the first kmg^ In whose reign ^^^otl^^tL kmgdot What did his dominions embrace! Wholett the Kmgaom to the Romans 1 Pontus — p. 62. Whv is Pontus so called ] Who surrendered it to Alex- ander^ Who was its greatest king 7 What did he conquer 1 How long did he resist the Roman power ? How did he per- ishl Who reduced it to a Roman province r Armenia — p. 63. To whom was Armenia successively subject] Who made itinde^enLt! What did Tigranes effect ] What did he lose r What befel Tigranes 11. 1 In what was it finally ab- sorbed ? Syria — p. 63. Who was governor of Babylon f e^Al^^f^'^f ^^.^t^^j^I What did he conquer 1 What was his character 1 How did Tnt'(^hus gaL the name of Soter 1 What countries were W hJ^ntiochus II. '? What were the actions of Antiochus the Sett' Xt were the terms of his treaty with Rome! To what was the Syrian empire finally contracted 1 To whom did it fall] Judea — p. 64. What were the Israelites called after their ^turn from captivity] Whom did they successively obey Who at- LmplS^to destroy their religion] Who resisted him]-with wSsuccess] Lw far did Joh\Hyrcanus extend his dc^ minions] Who took the title of king ] H^^ /id Fompey proceed] Whom did the Romans afterwards set over Judea] What happened at his son Herod's death ] What after Agnp- pa's death ] Parthia — p. 65. Where is Parthia] To whom was it subject ] Who made it independent ] How far did his successors extend their do- minions] Whom did the Parthians successfully resist] What dynasty succeeded the Arsacides] Egypt — p. 65. Who ffoverned Egypt after Alexander's death 1 When ■lid he tie the title of king 1 How did he benefit the coun- ^^^ QUESTIONS. W„o sought cLar's proteott'f Ivk^LtrZ'", life and fate ! To what was Egypt then reduced '""''1'"="' Carthage— p. 66. Who founded Carthage? What was the character of it. people ! W,th what countries did they trade T Describe their const,tut,on What were the cause and event of «"ir -thelk'L^h1^si-Th'^'^ ''-'''' '"' third, -the fourth^ Questions to he answered from Maps. What are the chief provinces of Asia Minor? Which wav from Asia Minor is Macedon ?-Thrace?-Syria^-Media^ -Phoenicia ] Where is Ipsus? Which way from Alexandria IS Cyrene]-Cyprus?-Ipsus] How is JvLedon brnded" Winch way from it is Epirus?-Delphi? Where "s Pro' pontis ]-^tolia]-Ach^a or Achaia 1 Where is Bithynia'" Armenr^ r .''" ? w?-"'"^ ^-Tauric Chersonese ?- \ln •~^^"^-~^^^^i^ •— PaJestme?— CcGlosvrea^— Parthia i Where is Raphia ?-Ma^nesia ?-Judea ]-Idumea ^ Where Ind^r T \V^r I ^^^^"^ ^^^ '^' ^°""t"-^ -t-ted between Indi. nnd the Euphrates, and between the Arabian and Cas pmn seas Where is Libya ^ Where is CartLl^ Whfch way from It is Rome ^-Syracuse ^-Greece ?-Gaui ? ™ IS sl7acSeV7?i 7^T •-Epir"^,^ I" what part of Sicily IS Syracuse ?— Gela ?— Leontmi or Leontium ^-Messina ? CHAPTER VI. ROME, TILL THE PUNIC WARS. Rome, under Kings~p. 67. Where did the Pelasg-ians settle ?_the Siculans '^-the Aborigines ?-the Latins ?-the Sabines ? What nat on rose fsX f t"r°" °^ '" '^''''- ^^^^^ ^^« their capitai What IS the fabulous account of the origin of Rome ? What is ob served of the religion of Rome? '' What was the first coLti o^Thr/erld"' -WW^^ " ^'t ^T -doubted'histoncT or tnis period 1 What were the deeds of Ancus '—of Tar qumras i Who was his successor? What name did he take7 QUESTIONS. 461 How did he immortalize his name ? Who succeeded him ? What was his character ] What caused his expulsion, and the abolition of the royal authority ? How were the Romans originally divided ] Who were the Populus ? — the Clients'? — the Plebs ? What occasioned the diminution of the Patri- cians] How did Tarquinius I. increase them? What did his successor 1 Who were the Equites 1 How were the rest of the plebeians divided ] Which order could command the decision of a question by their vote ] Which order hindered the progress of the Roman power by their injustice ? What form of government was adopted after the kings were ex- pelled] To what extent had the Roman power risen under the kings! Questions to be answered from Maps. How is Italy bounded ] Where is Rome ? — the Tiber 1 — Ostia ] — Alba Longa ] — Etruria ] What provinces lie be- tween Ostia and Terracina] Which way from Rome is Sicily 1 — Sardinia ] — Africa ] Where is Veil 1 — Ciusium 1 — Cumse ?— Lake Regillus] The Tuscans — War with Porsenna — p. 71. Where were the Etrurians settled ? Whence came they ] What was their constitution ] Who first aided the Tarquinii ] What was the result] Who next] What was the result] Who afterwards defeated the Etrurians ] Who next espoused the cause of Tarquinius ] What was the result ] Dictator — Secession — Tribunes — p. 72. Who checked the constitution of Servius ] Who restored it in some measure] What right had the plebeians by the Valerian law] For what was the Dictatorship instituted] What was its power ] Who kept possession of the public domains ] What was the consequence to the plebeians ] Who were the creditors] What is meant by Nexi ? — Addicti? Where were debtors imprisoned ] What incident excited a tumult] What did the senate order] Were they obeyed ] What did Servilius proclaim ] What was the effect] After the victory, were the plebeians still oppressed ] What hap- pened next year] After the dictator's army was disbanded, what happened ] What part of the city was occupied by the legions] — the plebeians] — the patricians] What nation was allied with the patricians ] What concessions did the patri- cians finally make to the plebeians ] What office was insti- tuted during this secession ] Give the history of the Tribunate. 39^ 462 auESTiONs. Spurius Cassius and the Agrarian Law — p. 74. What third nation was allied with the Romans and Latins 1 On what terms ] Who made this leag:ue ] What occasioned his death 1 Describe the Roman Agrarian laws. The Decemvirs, and the Twelve Tables — p. 75. What was now the state of Rome 1 Who were appointed to make a code of laws ? Whither were they sent to collect information 1 How did they govern? What changes did they make \ Who were comprised in the Comitia 1 What jurisdiction had they 1 Who succeeded the Decemvirs "? What did they add to the laws? How did they govern? What incident caused their downfall 1 What was restored 1 Spurius Melius — p. 76. Who were now made consuls? What laws did they carry? What happened when their year expired? What privileges did the plebeians gain ? Who was Spurius Melius ? What occasioned his murder ? Wars anterior to the Gallic Invasion — p. 79. With what state was Rome at war in 272 ? Where is the Cremera? Who undertook the defence of a fort on its banks? What endued ? Where did the Veientians now fix their camp ? What was the result? What nations Vv^ere now at war? How did a Sabine w^ar end ? What was the result of the next war with Veii? What was the character of Veii? How long did the siege of Veii in the next war last? Who took the city ? For what was he exiled ? The Gauls — Capture of Rome — p. 80. Who were the Kelts or Celts ? Describe the advance of the Gauls into Italy. How did the Romans violate the law of nations at Clusium ? How did the Gauls resent it? Where did they defeat the Romans? What city did they take? Who held out against them in the capital ? What diminished the numbers of the Gauls ? How were they induced to depart ? Rebuilding of the City — Munlius — p. 81. What was now proposed ? Who opposed it ? What was done ? Who were now at war with Rome ? What was the result ? What was tlie internal state of Rome ? Who was the friend of the people ? What was his fate ? Questions to be ansioered from Maps. Where is Gaul ? — Britain ? — Iberia ? Which way is Gaul from Italy? Where are the Alps? — the Po? — the Adriatic? auESTioNs 463 — the Apennines 1 — Clusium 1 — Allia 1 — ^Volsci 1 — Umbria 1 — .Equi] The Licinian Rogations — p. 82. Who were tribunes in 378"? What did they bring' for- ward 1 How were these rogations resisted by the senate 1 — how long? Who was created dictator ? How did he recon- cile the orders'? Were the rogations gained by the people? What was the first of them 1 — the second ] — the third ? — the fourth ? What new office was made ? How was the con- sular and praetorian power divided ? Who W£ls the first ple- beian consul 1 Samnite War — p. 84. How was the period from 389 to 411 spent internally? — externally ? Who were the Samnites ? What territory and city had they taken ? In whose behalf did the Romans and Latins make war with them ? What was the result? Who made peace with the Samnites ? Who refused to join in it? The Latin War— p. 84. What propositions did the Latins make to the Romans ? What was the consequence of their rejection ? Who were allied with the Latins? — with the Romans? Where did they fight? What was done by Decius? — by Manlius? What was the result? How were the conquered Latins treated? What were the three laws of Q,. P. Philo ? What was their effect ? War with Pyrrhus — p. 85. What countries had Rome conquered ? Who leagued against her ? Where were the Romans defeated ? Were the Samnites afterwards reduced ? Who was Pyrrhus ? What were his designs? What people did he undertake to defend? Against whom ? W^here were the first tv/o battles fought ? With what result? The third ? What was the result of that battle? Whither did Pyrrhus retire? Where did befall? What was now the extent of the Roman dominions ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Latium ? — Campania ? — Hernici ? — Capua ? — Mount Gaurus? — Vesuvius? — Samnium ? — Tarentum ? — Epi- rus ? Which way from Epirus is Macedonia ? Where is Tarentum? Which way from Epirus? Which way from Tarentum is Pandosia? — Asculum? — Beneventum? — Sicily? Where is Argos? Which way from the Arno is Rhegium? 464 auESTioNs. CHAPTER VII. ROME, TILL THE TIME OF THE GRACCHI. First Punic War — p. 86. What three nations had colonized Sicily ? What is said of Syracuse ] — of Gelo 1 — of Dionysius 1 — Dion and Timoleon ? — Agathocles ] To what country did he carry war? What ensued on his death] Who were the Mamertines? Who took up their quarrel ag^ainst the Syracusans and Carthagini- ans 1 What was thus begun 1 What was the condition of Rome, at this time, compared with that of Carthage? How did the Romans prepare a fleet? What did they invent? Who gained the first naval victory? Who carried the war into Africa ? Who opposed him ? What ensued ? What made the Carthaginians sue for peace ? What were its con- ditions ? Illyrian War — Gallic War — p. 87. Who were the Illyrians? What caused a war between them and the Romans? What was the result? Where were the Senonian Gauls settled? — the Ligurians? Who engaged in war with them ? What city and country were gained by the Romans ? Questions to be answered from Maps, Which way from Syracuse is Rome? — Carthage? — Sar- dinia? Where are the ^gatian islands? Where is Illyria? — Senones ? — Liguria, or the Genoese territory ? — Gallia Cisalpina ? In what part of Etruria is Clusium ? Second Punic War — p. 88. What was now the object of the Carthaginians ? Who led them ? Who succeeded him ? What town did he take ? De- scribe his subsequent march ? Where did he defeat the Ro- mans first? — next ? — finally ? Who now foiled him ? — how? How long did Annibal keep possession of the best part of Italy ? What Roman general was sent to Spain ? Was he victorious over the Carthaginians ? Who conquered Sar- dinia ? Who took Syracuse ? How was it defended ? Who conquered Asdrubal ? — where ? Who passed into Africa ? Who left Italy to oppose him? Where was the decisive battle fought ? Who conquered ? What were the terms of peace ? aUESTIONS. 465 Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Saguntum 1 — the Pyrenees? — Gaul? — the Rhone* — the Saone 1 — the AUobroges 1 — the Alps ? — Piedmont ? — the Ticinus? — the Trebia? — the Trasimene lake? — Cannse? — the Metaurus? — Zaraa ? — Numidia? — Troas? — Caucasus? — Therm opyjffi ? — Magnesia ? The Macedonian and Syrian Wars — p. 89. What did Rome now possess? What king was attacked and conquered by them ? — where ? Was Greece a gainer by this ? Who advised Antiochus to attack the Romans ? Did he declare war? What were his possessions? Where was he defeated first ? — where next ? What were the terms of peace ? Conquest of Macedon — p. 90. Who succeeded Philip of Macedon ? Who conquered Per- seus ? — where ? What was the fate of Perseus ? To what was Macedonia afterwards reduced ? W^hat service did Rome now render to Egypt ? Third Punic War— p. 90. What was the internal state of Carthage ? What pretext led to a war with Rome ? What demands were made and granted ? What was resisted ? How long did the city hold out ? Who conquered it ? What ensued ? Achcean War — p. 91. What was the condition of Greece? What led to a war with Rome ? Where was Critolaus defeated ? — DiaBus ? How did DisBus fall? What city did Mummius take? What other Greek cities were taken ? Under what name did Greece be- come a Roman province ? The Spanish Wars — p. 92. Who originally inhabited Spain? What nations visited it? Who took a part of it and lost it to Rome ? Who now medi- tated the conquest of all Spain ? What people did they at- tack ? What Spanish general was assassinated ? Describe the siege of Numantia by Scipio. How long did parts of Spain hold out after this^ To what empire did it finally yield? 466 auESTioNs, CHAPTER VIII. ROME, TILL THE END OF THE REPUBLIC. The Gracchi — p. 93. How were the Romans corrupted ? How is their corrup- tion described 1 In what respects did they resemble a mod- srn nation '? In what respects were they different ? What did T. S. Gracchus propose ? Why was this unjust 1 What was Gracchus's character? How did he proceed] What occasioned his death 1 What did T. Gracchus propose 1 Who opposed him 1 What was his fate 1 Jugurthine War — Cimbric War — p, 95. What circumstances led to the war with Jugurthal Who reduced him to the last extremity 1 Who succeeded Metel- lus 1 What was Jugurtha's fate ? What began in the year 106 B. C. 1 What countries north of Italy had been reduced 1 What nations ravaged Gaul ] What Roman generals were successively conquered by them 1 Who defeated the Teu- tones? — where] Where were the Cimbri conquered] With what loss 1 Questions to be answered from Maps. Where were the Allobroges 7 — Arverni ] — Cimbri ? — Teu- tx)nes ] — Ambrones 1 — Tigurini 1 — the Danube ] — the RhsB- tian Alps ] — Aquse Sextise ] — Vercellae ] — Tuscany ] — Cala- bria 1 — Campania ] — Corfinium ] State of Rome — Social or Marsian Wars — p. 96. Who was made consul ? — by whom 1 What events en- sued ] What is said of the knights ] What occasioned a quarrel between them and the senate 1 What did Drusua propose ] Who united against him 7 What did he promise ? What law did he bring forward ] What was his fate ? What did the Italians demand ] What was the consequence of their being refused ] Did the Italians gain their point 7 Mithridatic and Civil Wars — p. 97. Who was Mithridates ] What severe measures did he take against Rome 1 Who was the rival of Marius 1 Relate the history of their quarrel. To what country did Sylla hasten ] Who defended Athens against him ] Where did he defeat the Pontic troops? Where was a second battle fought ] What was the result 1 What were the terms of peace 1 Who were consuls in Sylla's absence 1 Which auESTioNs. 4G7 was expelled by the other 1 How did Cinna raise an army 1 Whom did he recall 1 What events followed 1 How did Marius abuse his victory? At what age did he die 1 Where did Sylla land on his return from Greece 1 Who led an army against him? What was Cinna's fate ? Who was defeated by Sylla 3 Who went over to him 1 Meanwhile what trans- pired at Rome ? What atrocities did Sylla perpetrate on en- tering Rome 1 What were the proscription tables 1 Who defended Praeneste 1 What was his fate ] What is said of Carbo 1 — Norbanus 1 — Ofella 1 What lives did this war cost ] Describe the rest of Sylla's career. From the Death of Sylla to that of Mithridates — p. 102. Who was Sertorius ] What were his deeds and fate ? Who was Spartacusf How did he distinguish himself ] Who de- feated him? Describe the ravages of the Asiatic pirates. Who defeated them 1 In how many days 1 What caused the second war with Mithridates 1 Who was Lucullus ? Re- late his deeds. Who superseded him ? What did he effect in Asia 1 How did Mithridates close his career? How long had he resisted the Romans? What other conquests did Pompey achieve ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Minturnum? — Apulia? — Capua? — Praeneste? — Puteoli ? — Rhodes ? — Lusitania ? — Cilicia ? — Isauria ? — Ar- menia ? — Tigranocerta ? — the Tanais ? Which way from Pontus is Cilicia ? — Syria ? — Phoenicia ? — Judea ? Catiline^s Conspiracy — p. 104. Who was Catiline ? What did he design ? Who defeated his conspiracy ? What was his fate ? The Gallic War of Ccesar — p. 104. Who were the leading men at Rome ? Of what were CsBsar and Crassus suspected ? Who composed the first Tri- umvirate ? What government did CsBsar take ? What was the condition of Gaul ? Who were the Helvetii ? What provocation did they give to the Romans ? Who subdued them? What country did Caesar then conquer? What island ? How did he profit by his fame ? Whom did he aid to obtain the consulate ? What province did Pompey take ? What did Crassus ? How did Pompey govern his province ? When was Crassus defeated and put to death ? — where ? — by whom ? What dissolved the connexion of Caesar and Pom- pey ] Who supported Pompey? How did he proceed? What 468 QUESTIONS. did Caesar require ] After conquering Gaul, whither did Jie proceed 1 What towns honored him 1 What did Pompey demand and gain of him ] What did the senate decree ! What part did Cato take 1 — Cicero 1 — Curio 1 — Mark Antony J Who supported Pompey] What new decree did the senate pass] What offer had CsBsar made] What was CsBsar's condition when the new decree of the senate reached him ] Where was he ] Relate the story of his decision. Questions to be answered from Maps. How is Gaul bounded ] Where is Transalpine Gaul ] — Cisalpine Gaul? — Helvetia] — Mount Jura] — Geneva] — the Rhine ] — the Hercynian forest ] — Britain ] — Rimini ] — the Rubicon ] In what part of Syria is Carrse or Carrhse, where Crassus was defeated ] Civil War of Ccesar and Pompey — p. 109. Which towns received Caesar] Which resisted ] What ensued ] Who fled to Capua ] Whither did they go when Caesar approached Brundusium] To what city did Cassar then advance ] What did he declare ] Whither did he then march ] For what purpose ] Did he succeed ] Whither did he then go ] W^here did he land ] Who supported Pom- pey ] What is said of Caesar's army ] What was Pompey's plan] W^hat made him abandon it] Where did he meet Caesar] Describe the battle of Pharsalia. What was the result] How did Caesar behave ] What happened next day] Whither did Cato flee] Whither did Pompey flee] For what country did he sail ] What was his fate ] Who soon arrived in Egypt ] Events till the Death of Ccesar — p. 113. What detained Caesar in Alexandria ] What was Ptole- my's fate] To whom did Caesar give the kingdom] Whither did Caesar now go ] What account did he give of the Pontic war] Where did he next appear] What Roman patriots destroyed themselves] Where were the Pompeian party finally defeated and crushed ] Whither did Caesar now re- turn ] How was he received ] What did he now attend to ] What is observed of the government of Caesar ] Who con- spired against and slew him ] Civil War with Brutus and Cassius — p. 114. Who were Brutus and Cassius? What did Cicero attempt] At what did Mark Antony aim ] Who was opposed to him ] Whither was Antony driven ] Who fell before Mutinae ] By auESTioNS. 4G9 what supposed means 1 Who joined Antony in Gaull What did he now propose to Octavianus 1 Who formed the second triumvirate? What was the consequence? What distin- guished men were murdered? Who attacked Brutus and Cassius ? — where ? What was the result 1 War between Octavianus and Antomus — p. 117. Who opposed the triumvirs? Who excited disturbance be- tween them ? Who gained the legions of Lepidus ? How did Octavianus pay his legions ? Where was Antony ? Who defeated him there? Whither did he go? How did he of- fend Octavianus ? What did Octavianus give out ? Where did he engage with Antony's fleet? What was the result? What was the fate of Antony ? — of Cleopatra ? When did Egypt become a Roman province ? What power was Csesar invested with ? — when ? Describe his reign — his govern- ment. CHAPTER IX. ROME, AN EMPIRE. Emperors of the CcBsarian Family — p. 121. What is the origin of the title Emperor ? Was the t 'tie Caesar taken by the successors of Augustus ? What was tne extent of the Roman Empire under Augustus ? What was his policy ? What defeat is mentioned ? For what did Au- gustus institute the Praetorian guards? How did he dispose of them ? Who was Augustus's minister ? What did they encourage ? What disturbed Augustus's happiness ? When and where did he die ? After how long a reign ? What great event happened during his reign ? Who succeeded Augustus? What was his character? What events hap- pened in his reign ? Who succeeded him ? What was Ca- ligula's character? — his acts? — his fate? What design did the senate now entertain ? What prevented its execution ? Whom did the Praetorian guards proclaim? What was his character ? — his acts ? — his fate ? Who succeeded him ? What was Nero's character? Of what sect did he begin the persecution ? What were his other acts ? Who was declared emperor in Nero's lifetime ? What ensued ? Emperors chosen hy the Army — p. 125. Who raised Galba to the throne? What was his charac- ter ? — liis fate ? Who succeeded him ? Who was opposed to 40 470 auESTioNs. Otho'? What was the result 1 What was Vitellius's char- acter 1 Who proclaimed Vespasian in opposition to him 1 How did he die 1 What was now the state of the empire 1 What nation rebelled ? What did the rebellion cost their nation ? What building was burnt in Rome 1 What enemies threat- ened the empire 1 The Flavian Family — p. 126. Whom did Vespasian leave in Palestine when he went to Kome"? From whom did he insist on receiving- his power] What was his character 1 What was the state of the em- pire 1 Who succeeded Vespasian ? What v/as his charac- ter 1 What were the events of his reign ? How long was it? Who succeeded him 1 What was Domitian's character] — his acts] Who conquered Britain in his reign] What was his fate ] The good Emperors — p. 129. Who succeeded Domitian ] — when ] What was his char- acter] — his acts] Who succeeded Nerva ] What was Tra- jan's character ] What compliment was paid to him by the senate] What were his acts] What conquests did he make'* To what countries did he extend commerce ] Where did he die] Where was he buried] What was his monument] Who succeeded him ] — when ] What was his character] — his policy] What rebellion was quelled ] What were Hadri- an's acts ] Who succeeded him ] What was Antoninus's char- acter] How is his reign described ] Who succeeded him ] What was the character of Aurelius] What nations did he defeat ] When did he die ] From Commodus to Diocletian — p. 131. Who succeeded Aurelius] What was his character] — his acts] What terminated his career] Who placed Helvius Per- tinax on the throne ] Who dethroned and killed him ] What was now done by the Praetorians] Who bought the throne ] Whom did the legions of Britain proclaim ] — of Asia] — the Pannonian legions] Which vanquished his rivals] How is Severus's reign described] To whom did he leave the empire] Which murdered the other] What was his char- acter ] What distinguished his reign ] By whom was he murdered ] Who now seized the empire ] What was now done by the army] WJiat was the character of Elagabalus or Heliogabalus ] What was his fate] Who succeeded him ] What was his character] What conquests did he make] What caused his death ] Who succeeded him ] What was aUESTIONS. 471 Maximin's character? Who were opposed to him? What caused Maximin's death 1 Who was Gordian III. 1 What was his fate "^ Who was Philip? Who opposed him ? Who suc- ceeded? What event happened in Philip's reig-n? What were Decius's designs ? Where did he fall ? What ensued ? Who was Valerian? What befel him? How did his son Gallienus behave? Who opposed him? What is this pe- riod called? Where did Gallienus fall? Who succeeded him ? What victory did he g-ain ? Who succeeded him ? What was Aurelian's character ? — his acts ? — his fate ? What was now done by the army? Whom did the senate elect? Who succeeded him ? By whose choice ? What were Pro- bus's acts? What caused his death? By whom was Probus succeeded ? What was the fate of Cams ? — of Numerian ? — of Casinus ? Change in the Form of Government — p. 136. Who was Diocletian ? What change did he make in the government? Who was his Csesar ? Who was Maximian? Who governed Asia ? — Thrace ? Who Italy, Spain, and Af- rica ? Who Gaul and Britain ? Where did Maximian re- side ? Where Diocletian ? What farther innovation was made? What nations were defeated? Between whom did contention break out ? Who abdicated their power ? Who succeeded them? Who was Constantino? What did he effect? Who was Maxentius ? What were his acts? What were his father's crimes and fate ? Who defeated Maxentius, and gained the Western Empire ? Who was associated with him ? What was Diocletian's fate ? What profession did Constantine make? What edict did he issue ? In how long time after its origin did Christianity become the established religion of the empire? What caused the death of Licinius? Whither did Constantine remove the imperial residence ? Why? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Palmyra? — Dalmatia? — Milan? — Nicomedia? — the Allemanni? — Byzantium or Constantinople? — Utica? — Mutina ? — Phiiippi ? — Pharsalia?— Actium ? — Caprea? — Bed- riacum ? — Ctesiphon ? — Seleucia ? — Caledonia ? — Pannonia ? — Emesa ? ; Corruption of Christianity — p. 138. What was the Christian religion as given to man ? Was it early corrupted? What mingled with the gospel sim- .olicity ? What was the origm of penances, &c. ? What phi- 472 auESTioivs. losophy was combined with the oriental knowledge to debase Christianity? Where was its seat] What was its charac- ter? What was the origin of the reverence for relics? — of the worship of saints ?— of the worship of images ? — of pil- grimages ? CHAPTER X. DECLINE OF THE EMPIRE. Successors of Co nstantine — p. 140. What provinces did Constantino 11. obtain ? — Constans ? — Constantius? — Dalmatius? — Hannibalianus? What befel the two last ? What was the fate of Constantino ? — of Constans ? Who was made emperor ? Who superseded him 1 Who was his rival ? What was his fate ? Who was Julian ? What was his character ? Whither was he sent? What success had he? How did he acquire the throne? What religion did he profess ? What measures did he take ? Whither did he march ? How did he perish ? Who succeeded him ? What ensued ? Who succeeded Jovian ? How was the empire divided? What was Valentinian's character? — Valens's? What circumstances were now operating to weaken the empire 1 The Huns— p. 143. Who were the Huns ? Who were the Goths ? How were they divided ? How ruled ? What proposals did the West Gothic princes make to Valens? Where were the Huns settled ? Wars with the Goths — p. 144. What circumstance impoverished the Goths ? What drove them to arms? What success attended them ? Where was Valens defeated and slain by them ? What prevented their taking Constantinople ? Who succeeded to the empire ? What was the character of Theodosius ? Relate his transactions with the Goths. What caused the death of Gratianus? Where was Maximus defeated ? By whom ? Who murdered Valen- tinian ? How were they punished ? When did Theodosius die? Of whom was he the last? Who were his sons? Who directed them ? What was their object? Who was prince of the Goths? What caused their discontent? Who occa- sioned their going to Italy? What countries did they leave ? What course did they take ? What message did they send to the emperor ? What was his answer ? Whither did they QUESTIONS. 473 march 1 What treachery was practised towards them 1 What was the result 1 Whither did Alaric turn 1 What countries did he ravage 1 What city surrendered to him 1 — when 1 What ensued 1 Where did Alaric die? Where was he buried? Who succeeded him? Whither did he march? Whom did he marry? What country submitted to him? What city was his capital? What was the next conquest of tho West Goths? How long did their kingdom in Spain last? What was passing in Britain?— in the Netherlands? — on the Upper Rhine ?— -In Noricum ? — Pannonia ? — Thrace^ Who rebelled ? Who succeeded to the empire ? Questions to be answered from, Maps. What countries lie between the Black Sea and Livonia ? Where is Russia ? — Poland ? — Hungary ? — Mcesia ? Which way is Mcesia from Constantinople ? What countries lie be- tween them ? Where is Adrianople ? — Pannonia ? — Aquileia ? Where is Dacia? — Illyria? — Istria? — Milan? — Piedmont? — Liguria ? — Tuscany ? — Cosenzo ? What country is bounded by the Rhone, Loire, and Pyrenees ? Where is Toulouse ? — Gallicia? — Portugal ? — Spain ? — Caledonia ? — the Nether- lands ? — Burgundy ? — Noricum ? — Thrace ? Genseric tend Attila — p. 147. What caused the loss of Africa ? Relate the circumstances. What disturbed the domestic peace of Genseric ? Whom did he induce to invade the Western Empire? What were the dominions and forces of Attila? — his character? How did he prepare for war ? Did his artifice succeed ? Who united ag-ainst him ? Through what countries did he march ? Where did he encounter his enemies? Who fell in the battle? What was its result? Whither did Attila retreat? What drew him to Italy ? What success attended his arms ? Who pre- vailed on him to spare Rome ? Whither did he retire ? When did he die ? What expired with him ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Andalusia? What countries lie between the Volga and Hungary ? (Alaric's dominions.) Where is Dau- phine ? — Savoy ? — West Switzerland ? — Armorica ? — the Maese ?— the Rhine ?— Saxony ?— the Theiss ?— Rhaetia ?— Allemania ? — Chalons ? — Ravenna ? — the Danube ? — Berga- mo ? — Pomerania ? — Rugen ? 40* 474 auESTioNs. Fall of the Western Empire — p. 149. What caused the death of Valentinian III. 1 Who suc- ceeded him, and married his widow? What exasperated her? How did she seek revenge ? What ensued ? Who destroyed Maximus? How long- did Genseric's Vandals remain in Rome 1 What mischief and rapine did they commit in Italy'' What is said of Avitus? — of Majorianus? Who succeeded him? Who now invaded Italy? Who defeated them? What was now done by Richimir ? Who opposed him ? What en- sued ? Who was raised to the throne ? Who opposed him ? Who deposed him ? Whom did Orestes invest with the pur- ple ? Who now appeared in Italy under Odoacer ? Whence came they ? What city resisted them ? What ensued ? Who was beheaded by them? What was the fate of Romulus'? WWat remarks are made on the fall of the empire ? PART II* THE MIDDLE AGES. CHAPTER I. ESTABLISHMENT OF THE BARBARIANS IN THE WESTERN EMPIRE. Introduction — p. 151. How is the plan of the history now altered ? How does the historian divide the course of events? How long did the middle ages last ? — the dark ages ? What was the character of the four last centuries of the middle ages ? The Gotho- Germans — p. 151. Whence came the tribes that overturned the western em- pire ? How are they described ? What was their religion ? East Goths in Italy — p. 152. What happened on the death of Attila ? Where did the East Goths dwell? Who was Theoderic? Relate his ad- ventures. What country did Zeno bestow on the Goths? Who possessed it? Describe the progress of the Goths. What were the latter acts of Odoacer ? Who succeeded him ? QUESTIONS. 475 What was the character of Theoderic ? — his acts 1 — his family alliances'? Who succeeded him 1 Who were regents'? How did Theudat behave '? Who was Belisarius '? Against whom was he senf? Describe his progress and victories. Who was Vitig'? What was his fate'? Who was Totila'? Describe his victories. Who was opposed to him "? Whither was Beli- sarius recalled '? Who superseded him ■? Whom did Narses defeat '? Who was slain"? How did Narses reign? What occasioned his retirement '? How did he revensre himself? The Lombards in Italy — p. 154. Where had the Lombards dwelt "? Who was their king? When did they leave Pannonia? Describe their progress and settlement in Italy, What part of Italy remained to the Roman empire ? What prelates came into power ? Were they worthy at that period '^ The Burgundians — p. 154. Where did the Burgundians dwell? What were their oc- cupations? What country did they enter ? What was done by them there ? Who was Gondebald ? What were his acts '^ Who was Sigmund ? How did he offend Theoderic ? Whom did he rouse to punish Sigmund? What was the result? What nation succeeded to the Burgundians ? The Allemanni — p. 155. Where were the Allemanni settled ? What was their char- acter ? What country did they invade ? What is the legend concerning this war ? The Franks— Tp. 15G. Where were the Franks seated ? Who ruled them ? What country did they invade? Whom did they first at- tack? What ensued? What was the next acquisition of Clovis ? Who converted him ? How many of his subjects were baptized with him ? Was he a Catholic ? What was the religion of the West Goths? Who was their king? Wlio attacked him ? What prodigies are related concern- ing this war ? What was the result ? What countries did the Franks acquire ? What did the Goths retain ? Who succeeded Clovis? What country did they reduce? Who were the most distinguished of their successors ? What is said of the Mayors of the Palace ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is the Caspian Sea? — the Danube? — the Save? Which way from Pannonia is Italy ? Where is Pa via, the 476 aUESTIONS. capital of the Lombards ? Which way from Gaul is Bur gundy ] Where were the Allemanni 1 Where is the Moselle ? — the Maine 1 — Zulpich 1 — Soissons 1 — the Vienne ]— Septi- mania 1 — Orleans 1 — Paris ] — Thuringia 1 — Aquitain 1 The Anglo-Saxons — p. 157. Who assailed the Britons when the Romans had left them ? Who was their king] Whom did he engage to assist him? What ensued ? Where were the Saxons settled ] Did they gain most of the southern part of Britain 1 What parts were left to the Britons ] In what part of the continent did some of the Britons settle 1 What was it called ? What is ob- served of the subsequent history and character of the Saxons 1 Questions to be answered from Maps. In what part of Britain is Caledonia?— England?— Corn- wall?— Wales? Where is the island of Thanet? Where is Bretagne or Britany ? Which way is Britain from Saxony ? The West Goths in -Spain— p. 158. How long were the Romans in conquering Spain ? How long were the Goths? What is observed of their history? Who possessed the coasts of Spain ? The Byzantine Empire — p. 159. Why was the Roman Empire in the East called Byzantine '« What was its extent ? Who were its enemies ? What was the character of Arcadius ? — of Theodosius II. ? Who threat- ened him? Who protected him? Who succeeded him'' Who was Marcian ? What were his acts ? Who succeeded him "^ Who governed instead of Leo's grandson ? What ensued '^ Who was Anastatius? Who gained the throne after his death? Who succeeded Justinian ? What distinguished his reign ? Who was his ablest general ? What conquests did he make ? Wliat buildmg did Justinian cause to be erected "<■ Who was Justin's successor? What offended Narses^ How was he revenged ? In whose favor did Justin 11. abdil cate ? How did he govern ? Who succeeded him ? What occasioned Maurice's death ? Who rebelled against Phocas? Who was sent from Africa against him ? What ensued? Who attacked Heraclius? What places were taken by Chosroes ' On what condition was peace made ? How did Heraclius re trieve the honor of the empire ? What conquests did he make ? Where were the Avars driven ? auESTioNs. 477 Persia — p. 162. Who were the enemies of the Persians? Who drove them out, and restored the Persian empire ] What changes did Ardeshir make ] With whom did he war ? Who succeeded him, and captured Valerian ? Who gave Osrha3ne and Nisi- bis the empire 1 What is related of Yezdejird 1 — Bahram ] — Feroze ? — Cobad 1 — Chosroe ] — Hormuz 1 — Khosrool — Siroesl Who was the last of the Sassanides 1 CHAPTER 11. THE TIMES OF MOHAMMED AND THE FIRST KHALIFS. Mohammed — p. 164. Where was Mohammed born 1 — when ? Who seized his inheritance 7 What were his character and appearance 1 Who married him ? Who enriched him 1 When did he begin to preach ] What was his leading doctrine ] How many con- verts did he make in three years'? How long did he preach in Mecca 1 What relatives did he lose ] Who was his enemy ] Where did he and Aboo Beker conceal themselves for three days \ Whither did they fly 1 — when 1 What people date from this era ? What is it called 1 How was Mohammed received at Mecca 1 What ensued ] What rliange took place in the character of Mohammed and his religion 1 Where was his first battle ] Describe it. How was the vic- tory gained ] Where was the second battle fought 7 With what result ] What happened next year 1 What tribes did Mohammed next conquer ] What city did he next gain 1 Describe Ihe battle of Honain. What country was now com- pletely gained by the Moslems'? What country was next in- vaded ] How far did the prophet advance 1 Why did he retire 1 When did Mohammed die "? The First Khalifs—ip. 170. Who succeeded Mohammed ] — when '? How far did Khaled conquer in Aboo Beker's reign 1 Who succeeded him 1 How did he die 1 Who succeeded Omar ? What led to All's ele- vation '? Whom did he first conquer? What enemies now opposed him ? Where did they fight '? What was the result 1 How did Ali fall ? — when "? Who succeeded him 1 What city became the capital of the khalifs '? Into what two sects are the Mahometans divided 1 To which do the Persians be- long ^ What nations belong to the other sect ■? 478 auESTiONs. Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Arabia 1 — Mecca 1 — Medina ? Which way from Arabia is Egypt 1 — Persia 1 — Judea ] — Syria 1 Conquest of Syria — p. 171. What three countries had been conquered during the pe- riod just passed over? Whom did Aboo Beker send to con- quer Syria'? — when? What fortress was first taken "? Where did the troops of the khahf meet the Christians] What were their respective numbers 1 What was the result of the battle 1 What city was invested ] On what terms did the Christians of Damascus capitulate 1 Relate the story of the Syrian renegade. What city was taken by the Moslems next year 1 When was the last great battle in Syria fought ] What was the result? What city was now invested? To whom was it surrendered ? What building did he found? — where? — when ? What cities were next taken ? What one was threat- ened? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is the Jordan ? — Bozra ? — Aiznadin ? — Damascus ? — Baalbek? — Mount Hermon? — the Sea of Tiberias? — Jeru- salem ? — Aleppo ? — Antioch ? Conquest of Persia — p. 173. How many Moslems marched against Yezdejird TIL of Persia ? — when ? Who commanded the Persians ? What was the result of the battle ? What country submitted ? What city was founded ? What was next conquered ? Where was the final effort of the Persians made ? What was the result ? What country submitted ? What was the fate of Yezdejird ? Conquest of Egypt — p. 173. When was the conquest of Egypt commenced ? What cities did Amroo take ? With how many Arabs ? What city was built on the spot where the Arabs encamped ? What treaty was made ? What city was next taken ? In how long time ? With what loss ? Invasion of Africa — p. 174. Who advanced with 40,000 men from Egypt, towards the west? — when? What city was invested ? Who came to its relief? Who fought in the battle ? What occasioned its loss to the Christians ? What town was taken ? Where is it '' QUESTIONS. 479 What countries were subjug^ated by the followers of Moham- med, in thirty-seven years after his first victory J Questions to be answered from Maps. Which way from Syria is Persia ? Where is Bag-dad ] — Bassora ] — Assyria 1 — Media 1 — Khorassan 1 — the Oxus ] Where is Gaza? In what part of Es^ypt is Memphis'? — Pe- usium 1 — Cairo ? — Alexandria J Where is Tunis I — Sofatala ] — Cyprus 1 — Rhodes ] The Ommiyades — p. 175. Who was Ali's son 1 How was he disposed of] Who was Ommiyah 1 How long" did his dynasty last ] Conquest of Africa — p. 175. Who entered Africa, and defeated an imperial army] What was the cause of this expedition ] What is related of Akbeh ] What city did he found ] Who made the final conquest of Africa] Who succeeded him ] Conquest of Spain — p. 175. What was the condition of the Gothic monarchy in Spain? Who ascended the throne ] Who was Count Julian ] With whom did he hold a traitorous correspondence ] What was the consequence] What happened the following spring-] Where did the Saracens and Christians fight the decisive battle] Which conquered] What was Roderick's fate] To whom did all Spain submit] Who came to share his fame] What cities did Musa take] Whither did the Goths retreat] Where did a remnant of them hold out ] Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Toledo] — Andalusia] — Ceuta ] — Algeziras] — Gibraltar] — Xeres] — the Guadaleta] — the Guadalquivir] — the Bay of Biscay] — Asturias] — Septimania ] — the Pyrenees] Invasion of France by the Arabs — p. 176. What had been the result of the two sieges of Constanti- nople by the Arabs] Who menaced France] What did the Moslems claim of Eudes ] What mountains did an Arabian army pass ] Where was it defeated ] How did the second succeed] Who resisted this victorious army] With what success] Who fell] Did the Saracens ever attempt the conquest of France after this ] What was Charles the son of Pepin called ] 480 QUESTIONS. Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Aquitaine? — Aries? — Toulouse? — the Garonne 1 — the Rhone 1 — Tours ? — Sens ? — Lyons '\ — Besancon 1 — Neustria ? — Poitiers ! France — p. 177. What was the internal state of France at this period Wlio possessed the power ] The Lombards — p. 177. •. What is said of Authar ? — Ag il ulf? What did his queen effect ] What is said of Rother ] — Grimwald ? — Perthari? — Liitprand ? Constantinople — p. 178. Who succeeded Heraclius? Who was his associate ? What is said of Constans ! When was Africa lost to the Byzantine empire ? What is said of Justinian II. ] — of Philippicus Bar- danes? — of Leo? Germany — p. 179. Who enlightened and converted the Germans? What city was his see ? What did he found ? England — p. 179. Who first preached the gospel in England ? Where were their first efforts made in this country? What remarkable fact is noticed with respect to the Anglo-Saxon princes ? CHAPTER m. THE TIMES OF CHARLEMAGNE AND HAROON-ER-RASHEED. Italy — p. 179. What emperor opposed the worship of images? What did a council of Constantinople pronounce ? How was the edict received in Italy ? On what was the temporal power of the popes founded ? Who established it ? Who menaced Rome ? Who succeeded Liitprand and afterwards retired ? Who suc- ceeded Hildebrand ? What did he demand ? Who assisted the pope against Astolfo ? Who succeeded Astolfo ? Who assisted the pope against him ? What territory did he thus acquire ? What dignity did pope Leo confer on Charlemagne? What countries acknowledged him ? How was Italy gov- erned ? auESTioNS. 481 Empire of Charlemagne — p. 181. To what kingdom was Allemania joined ] Who was king- of the Franks ■? Who was chief minister"? How did he ac- quire the crown ? What dynasty was thus ended ] What were Pepin's acts 1 Who succeeded him ] How long did Carloman live'? What kingdom did Charlemagne overturn] With whom did he wage a thirty years' war ] Who aided them 1 What was the final result"? What did Charlemagne effect in Spain "? — in Germany 1 — in Pannonia ? What was the whole extent of his empire "? Who were his allies and friends 1 What title did he receive from the pope 1 — when "? What was his dynasty called ? To whom did he leave his empire ? Feudal System — p. 182. How was the land divided in France "? How were the dis- tricts governed ? How were the lands distributed at the con- quest ? On what condition were they held"? What were the terms of service"? How were the Romans situated"? Which stood higher, the Franks or Romans? Who was the most extensive landholder in the realm ] To whom were portions of these lands frequently granted 1 On what con- dition "? For how long a term 1 When did the benefices be- come hereditary "? What is suh-iiifetidation ? Who en- croached on the royal dignity? What did they make heredi- tary? Wliat did they seek to appropriate to themselves? Whom did they oppress ? What had been the condition of the free proprietors ? What duty did they owe the state 1 What now became their condition ? Did they finally become feudal vassals ? What were the obligations of a feudal vas- sal in war ? — in battle ? — on alienating or receiving his fief? — on his lord's being captured, &c. ? What was the principal obligation of the lord ? What was tlie condition of the church under the feudal system? How did the abbeys gain the favor of the lords ? W^hat were the lords bound to render in re- turn ? To what countries was the feudal system confined ? England — p. 184. What happened in England during this period ? Constantinople — p. 184. Who succeeded Leo ? What were the acts of Irene ? What did Nicephorus oppose ? Who succeeded him ? What was the character of Michael of Amorium ? Who were the ex- ternal enemies of the empire ? 41 482 auESTioNs The Abbasside Khalifs — p. 185. What family was esteemed best entitled to the throne of the khalifs ] Who were the Fatemites 1 What was their character? Who were the Abbassidesl Where were they 7 Who unfurled the white banner 1 Who the black? — where ? What befel Ibrahim! Who was he? Who opposed his brother SafFa ? — where 3 What was the result 1 Where did Mervan 11. fall? Who were now slaughtered] Who es- caped to Africa 1 To what country was he invited ] What success attended him 1 Where did the Ommiyades reign ] How long 1 Who succeeded Saffa 1 What city did ho found 1 — where ? How long was it the capital of tlie khalifs ] Where did his arms succeed 1 Where did they fail ? With whom did Mohadi, his successor, wage war ? What country did his son invade ] With what force ] Who succeeded to the throne of the khalifs in 781 I What were the military actions of this prince ] For what is he renowned ? What disgraces his memory? For wliat was his successor Al- Mamoon celebrated ? Wiiat had been the state of literature under the first khalifs? What khalifs first encouraged it? What was done by Al-Mamoon ? What works were trans- lated by his command ? What other princes vied with the khalifs of Bagdad in encouraging literature and science ? What proceeded from their sciiools ? — when ? What con- quests did Al-Mamoon make ? Whom did he drive from Al- exandria? Where did these pirates settle? How long did they harass the eastern empire ? What incident led to the invasion of Sicily ? Who came to reinforce the Arabs in Sicily ? What part of the island was subdued ? What was their capital ? How long before Syracuse submitted to the Arabs ? What mischief was done by them ? What city of Italy was attacked by the Arabs ? What allies did the city gain ? What was the result ? Questions to be ansioered from Maps. Which way from Persia is Khorassan ? Which way from Mecca is Damascus ? — Cufa ? Where is Cordova ? — Bagdad ? — Crete ? — Syracuse ? — Palermo ? — Gaieta ? — Naples ? — Salerno ? auESTioNS. 483 CHAPTER IV. DISSOLUTION OF THE GREAT EMPIRES OF THE EAST AND WEST. Empire of Charlemagne — p. 188. Who succeeded Charlemagne ? Who rebelled against Lewis ? What was the consequence 7 What occasioned Lewis's deposition ] In the partition of the empire, what did Lothaire obtain ? — Louis 1 — Charles the Bald ? — Pepin ? How were Lothaire's dominions divided on his retirement? What territories did the king of Germany gain 1 — the king of France 1 Who succeeded Charles the Bald ? What is said of Boson ? — of Charles the Fat] Who was the last emperor of the Franks ? What is said of Arnulf ?— of Eudes ?— of Charles the Simple ? — of Burgundy] — of Italy] Who were the external enemies of the empire ] The Hungarians — p. 189. Who were the Hungarians ] Whence came they ] What country did they take] What were they called by them- selves] — by other nations ] What sovereign did they choose] Who rebelled against Arnulf, king of Germany ] Who aided him against them ] How did these allies behave after ArnulPs death ] What conquests did they make in Germany ] — in France ] — in Italy ] From Italy, in what direction did their conquests extend ] What saved Constantinople ] How long did their ravages last ] Who repelled them ] Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Auxerre ] — Burgundy ] — Alsatia ] — Lorraine ] — Provence ] — Lyons ] — Geneva ] In what part of Italy is Spoleto ] — Friuli ] — Reggio ] — the Brenta ] — Pavia ] Where are the Ural mountains] Where is Finland] — Hungary] — Transylvania ] — Moravia ] — Swabia ] — Franconia ] — Augs- burg ] — Bremen ] — Bulgaria ] The Northmen — p. 190. Where was the primitive seat of the Goths] From what country did they expel the Finns] Where did they after- wards establish themselves ] What was their character and condition when in Scandinavia ] What monarchies were established ] Where did some of their petty chiefs (reguli) establish themselves] What coasts did they plunder] When did they appear in England and France ] Who repelled them from Paris] What province did Charles the Simple give 484 auESTiONs. them 1 What part of Eng-land did Alfred give them 1 What were they there called ] What nation employed them in the East ] What name did they take there J Who established a dynasty there ] Hovv long- did it last ! Whose service did the Varangians next enter ] Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Scandinavia ? — Denmark 1 — Norway? — the Feroe Isles] — the Orkneys ! — Shetland J — Normandy 1 — Northum bria] France — p. 192. How was France divided ] What is said of Louis FV. and Lothaire 3 — of Hugh Capet? When was he crowned? What dynasty expired then ? How did Hugh Capet secure his suc- cessors 1 Germany — House of Saxony — p. 192. How were the Germans divided ? Who was chosen to rule them? Who succeeded him? Hovv did he prepare to de- fend his kingdom ? Whom did he repel ? Who succeeded him ? On whom did he bestow Saxony ? Whom did he assist against Berenger? Whom did he marry? Who next called him to Italy ? Who crowned him ? Where was he after- wards crowned ? What ensued ? Whom did he depose ? What was the result of his third visit to Rome? What country did the Hungarians invade ? What was the result ? Who succeeded Otho I. ? What did he acquire from Nicepho- rusPhocas? What was Otho's character? What was the character of Otho III. ? What city did he take from the rebels ? Who succeeded him ? What ended with Henry II. ? Italy— ^. 194. How was Italy divided ? What is said of Berenger oi Friuli? Who defeated and superseded him? Who deposed Rudolf? Who succeeded Hugh ? Who deposed Berenger, and gained the kingdom of Italy ? What is said of the popes of this period ? Where were the Normans established ? — the Saracens ? England — p. 195. Who ravaged England at this period ? What is observed of Alfred ? Where did he allow the Danes to settle ? What improvements did he make ? What is said of his successors ? How were the Danes kept off, after Edgar's time ? What was done in the reign of Ethelred IL ? What was the con- s' auESTiONS. 485 sequence 1 What is said of Canute 1 — of Edward the Con- fessor 1 What practice had been introduced ] What was its effect] What was done by Godwin] Who chose Harold] Who opposed him ] Whom did he subdue ] Who conquered him, and became king" of England ] Russia — p. 196. When did Russia become known to Europe] How did they at first appear ] What city did their fleets assail] What countries did their armies invade] Who drove them out of the empire] What is said of Olga] — of Vladimir] What improvements did they make ] What is said of Yaroslof ] — of Anna] Constantinople — p. 197. Wha.t is said of Theophilus] — of Theodora] — of Basiliusi — Leo] — Constantine] — Nicephorus Phocas] — John Zimisces] — Basil] — Romanus] — of his empress] — Theodora] What ended with her ] After how long a continuance ] What is said of Michael VI. ] — Isaac Comnenus ] — Constantine Du- cas ] — Romanus Diogenes ] — Michael VII. ] — Nichephorus Botoniates ] What dynasty succeeded ] Decline of the Arabian Empire — Africa — p. 198. Who revolted in the reign of Haroon-er-Rasheed ] Who built Fez] Who founded Tunis] Where did Mahadee Obeid Allah found a state ] Whom did he conquer] Who founded Cairo] What conquests did he make besides that of Egypt] How long did his dynasty last] What did he give up to Yoossef Belkin] How long did Zeivis's dynasty last ] Who were the Almoravites] With whom did they wage war] What city did Beker found ] Decline of the Arabian Empire — Asia — p. 199. Who was Taher ] Where did he found an independent state ] Who overthrew the Taherite dynasty ] What is said of Yakoob-ben-Leis ] What country did he gain ] Who de- feated his son] What countries did the Samanians possess] Who held Mesopotamia] How long-] Who led the Dilemee] Whom did Ali Buyah defeat ] What countries did he pos- sess ] What is said of Ahmed ] — of Ali ] — of Azed ] Causes of the Decline of the Power of the Khalifs — p. 201. What was the cause of the dissolution of the empire of the Arabs] How did it operate] Who opposed the Abbassides'* What means did the Fatemite khalifs employ against the 41* 486 auESTioNs. Abbassides ? Who were the Ismailites'? — the Assassins'! — What other cause weakened the Abbassides? What plan dia Motassem adopt ] Where did he obtain recruits for his body- guard .' What was their number { Whom did they murder ? What did they force Mosteyoo to do .' How did they treat their sovereigns ? What is said of Mohtadi Billah ] — of Mok- tader ? — of Tooloon 1 — of Ahmed ] — of Cotr-en-neda 1 — of Haroonl What ended with him 1 Who finally rendered Egypt independent of the khalifs ] The Gasnevides — p. 202. What is said of Sebuktagee 1—of Mahniood 1 What title did he receive ] From whom 1 What country did he con- quer and plunder ] Spam — p. 203. What diminished the power of the Arabian dynasty in Spain ] Who founded a Christian kingdom in Spain ? Where was his capital { What now commenced ! Where did Fer- nando Gonzales found a country ] What new kingdom was it formed into ] — when ? Who founded the kingdom of Na- varre, and gained Catalonia? Who united the Christian states of Spain ? Into what two kingdoms did he divide them ] Who became independent of Charlemagne ] Who obtained Aragon ? Whom did these sovereigns oppose 1 Who came to the assistance of the Mohammedan emirs ] What part of Spain did he acquire ? Questions to be ansicered from Maps. Where is Fez 1 Which way from Egypt ? — from Arabia 7 Where is Tunis ? — Mahadiah ? W^hich way from Alexandria is Cairo ? Where is Tangiers ? — Morocco ! — Gibraltar ? — ' Algeziras ? — Transoxiana ? — Balk ? — Khorassan ! — Seistan ? — Mosul? — Aleppo] — Iran? In what part of Spain is Leon? -Burgos? — Castile? — Aragon? — Barcelona? Where is Na- varre 1 CHAPTEU V. INCREASE OF THE PAPAL POWER. Italy — The Normans — p. 204. For what were the Normans distinguished ? Who invited them to Italy? For what purpose? Were they successful agamst the Greeks'* Where did they settle ? Who was their auESTioNs. 487 commander ? How long- had the Saracens held Sicily ] What was its condition ? What occasioned the Normans' invading Sicily'? What was their success! How were they treated I How did they revenge themselves ? What towns of Italy were left to their enemies ? How did thoy divide their con- quests ] Who was the first count of Apulia 1 What made the Normans hated ] What offer of the emperor did they re- ject ] Who leagued against them ? What force could they muster] What offer was made them? Did they accept it? Where did they defeat and capture the pope ! What ensued 1 How many sons had Tancred de Hauteville ] How many went to Italy I What is said of Robert .' — of his three elder brothers? To what rank was Robert chosen] What con- quests did he make ? What did he entitle himself] Who were his enemies ] What did he accomplish in twenty years] Who conquered Sicily ] How did he govern it ] At what did Robert aim ] Whose cause did he espouse ] Where was an army assembled] Where did Robert land ] With what force ] What place was besieged ] What disasters ensued ] Who came to the relief of Durazzo] With what allies ] Who gave battle] What was the result] How was Durazzo taken ] To what country did Robert advance ] What re- called him to Italy ] Whom did he leave in command ] What place did Bohemond besiege] Who drove him back to Italy] Meanwhile what had Henry king of Germany done] What force did Robert, on his return from the East, muster against him] What was the result] What did Robert accomplish in three years] For what did Robert prepare] Who op- posed him ] Where did he land ] Where did he defeat the allied navy] Where did Robert die] What ensued] Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Apulia] — Naples] — A versa] — Bari] — Otranto] — Brundusium ] — Tarentum ] — Melfi] — Calabria] — Civitella] — Reggio ] — Cosenza ] — Messina] — Salerno] — Venice] — Du- razzo] Which way from Italy is Epirus ] Which way from Epirus is Thessaly ] Where is Corfu ] — Cephalonia ] Italy— The Popes— p. 207. What is said of the popes ] Who were their allies] What were their great objects] What was established in the pon- tificate of Nicholas II. ] What is said of Hildebrand ] What title did he take on becoming pope] What was the charac- ter of Henry IV.] On what grounds did Gregory VIL op- pose him] How did he exasperate Henry] What measures did Henry take ] What measures did Gregory take ] To 488 auESTiONs. what necessity was Henry reduced 1 What was the effect of this pusillanimous step ] How did Henry retrieve it 1 How did he revenge himself? Who now opposed him 1 How did Henry V. proceed ? How was the matter settled 1 What was the next measure of the popes ? What did Leo IX. do T Who took part with him 1 How did the practice of celibacy advance the power of the popes'! What arms were employed by the popes 1 What was the effect of excommunication ] What was its extent"? What v/as the effect of interdict? Did this affect whole kingdoms when employed against the sovereign 1 — how 1 Italy — The Lombard Cities — p. 210. How were the cities in the north of Italy governed ? What was the state of the country ? How did these causes affect the cities 1 What was the policy of the cities 1 What were their blemishes ? Germany — House of Franconia — p. 211. When did the house of Saxony become extinct? Who succeeded ? What country was gained 1 What is said of Henry III. 1 — of Henry IV. 1 Who excommunicated Henry IV. and was deposed by him ? What rival of Henry was slain in battle? How long did he wage war? What is said of Henry V. ? What ended with him ? France — p. 211. Who succeeded Hugh Capet ? What is said of Henry 1. 1 — of Philip I. ? — of Louis VI. ? What began in his reign 1 — how? England— Y>. 212. Who became king of England afler the battle of Hastings (1066) ? Where was he crowned ? How did he reward his followers? Whither did he return ? What ensued ? What was done on his return? Whither did the English nobles flee ? What were in the hands of the Normans ? Who aided the people to rebel ? What was the result ? What part of England was laid waste ? How many perished ? How did William the Conqueror divide the kingdom ? What occa- sioned the mingled dialect of the English ? How did the tyranny of the Norman monarchs increase the liberty of the common people of England? What arose hence? How many sons did William the Conqueror leave ? Who became king of England? — who Duke of Normandy? What is said of Robert? How did William IL (Rufus) of England die ? Who I auESTioNS. 489 succeeded liim 1 Whom did Henry I. marry 1 Who con- tested his claim to the English throne 1 What was the re- sult ? What did Henry contest with the popes'? To whom did he leave his dominions'? Who was Stephen I How did he proceed on the death of his benefactor Henry 1. 1 Who urged the claims of Matilda against him "? How long were they contested] How was the matter compromised '? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is England ? In what part of it is Hampshire I What part of it lies between the Tees and the Humber? Where is Westminster '? Which way from England is Nor- mandy '? Spain — p. 216. What had passed in Spain '? What had Alfonso VI. of Castile gained ? — Alfonso I. of Aragon '? Constantinople — p. 216. Against whom did Alexius Comnenus defend the eastern empire 1 What is said of John 1 — of Manuel ] The SeJJookians — p. 216. Where were the Turks originally settled] Which way did they advance ? Who encouraged them 1 Where did they make inroads'? Whom did they defeat at Zendecan'? Who was elected king of the Turks ? What conquests did he make] What appointment did he receive from the khalif? Who opposed them in Media'? Where did their ambassadors appear "? How many Christians did the Turkish cavalry mas- sacre] What did Toghrul restore to the khalif] Whose daughter did he marry] Who succeeded him] What con- quests did Alp Arslan make ? Who opposed him ] How far did Romanus drive the Turks ? What then befel him ] How was he treated? How did Alp Arslan die] Who succeeded him? What was his character] How far did his dominions extend] What did he encourage] Who was his vizier] Who destroyed both Nizain and Malek] What ensued'? Who was the last great monarch of the Seljookians ] How far did his dominions extend ] What is said of Kootelmish ] — Mansoor] — Suleiman] What country did Suleiman con- quer] Where w^as his capital ] What cities did the Turks gain ] What is said of Jerusalem ] Who had encouraged the Christian pilgrims who resorted to Jerusalem] — why] Did the Fatemites of Egypt observe the same policy] Who was Sat Atsiz ] What city of Syria did he take ] To what 490 QUESTIONS. country did he then march 1 Who drove him out ? Who now conquered Syria and Palestine 1 What was the conse- quence 1 First Crusade — p. 219. Of what did the pilg-rims complain 1 What was done by Alexius and Gregory VIL 1 What did Peter the Hermit pro- pose 1 What was done at the council of Placentia 1 — at Cler- mont 3 What was done to encourage the crusade 1 What leaders united ] How many straggled on before the army ] Who led them ? Tli rough what countries 1 How did they fare ? Who followed ] Into what city I Who passed them over into Asia ] How many besieged Nice 1 With what suc- cess 1 What did they next take ! Who was made prince of Antiochl What was done by Baldwin ? Who was AfdelT What did Afdel offer the Crusaders ] Was his offer accepted 1 What ensued 1 To what number had the Crusaders been re- duced ] What is said of Godfrey of Bouillon 1 What or- ders were established ? Why were the Templars so called 1 What did they vow ? What third order was added to those two, i. e. the knights of St John or Hospitallers and the Templars'? What was now the extent and condition of the Christian empire 1 Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is the Oxusi — the Jaxartes? — Media? — Armenia? — Georgia ? — Phrygia ? — Cashgar ? — Antioch ? — Lesser Asia? — Bithynia ? — Nice ? — Nubia ? Where is Placentia ? — Cler- mont? Which way from France is Hungary? From Hun- gary to Bulgaria ? From Bulgaria to Constantinople ? From Nice to Antioch ? From Antioch to Edessa ? From Antioch to Jerusalem ? CHAPTER VI. THE PAPAL POWER AT ITS GREATEST HEIGHT. Italy— The Popes— ^. 221. To what principle did the popes adhere ? How did they treat the emperors ? What did Adrian claim ? Who opposed the popes ? Who carried the pretensions of the popes the highest? What did he acquire? What did he establish? Were the dominions of the popes really extensive ? What had the countess Matilda granted them ? Did the emperors respect these grants? How did Innocent seek to establish aUESTioNS. 491 liis claim to these states ? To whom did he grant Ancona 1 Whom did he force to swear alleg-iance to him ? What did the holy see become 1 What did Innocent put forth? — how] What kings submitted to himi What was the pope become? What were his weapons? Relate the case of Philip Augus- tus of France. Had the national churches resisted the papal power? What measures did the popes take to force their submission ? Who were stationed in every kingdom ? On whom were taxes levied? What right did the popes assume? What was the first basis of the papal power ? — the second ? —the third ?— the fourth ? Italy — The Lombard Cities — p. 224. What cities acknowledged the superiority of the emperor to the pope? What emperor had reduced them to obedience? What did he forbid at the diet of Roncaglia ? What magis- trate was appointed ? Who resisted the emperor ? What was the result? How did the emperor now proceed? What was formed ? What drove him out of Italy? Where was he afterwards defeated ? What was secured by the peace of Constance ? Italy — Naples and Sicily — p. 225. What family governed Sicily and Naples ? Whom did the nobles raise to the throne ? Who succeeded him ? Who captured and ill-treated William III. ? Who became guardian to Frederic II. ? Germany — Swabian 'Line — p. 225. What ended with Henry V. ? Who succeeded him ? Whom did he oppose ? What were the dominions of Henry the Proud ? Who succeeded Lothaire ? How did Conrad de- prive Henry of his possessions ? What factions date from this period ? Describe their origin. Who were the parti- sans of the emperor? — who of the pope? Who succeeded Conrad III. ? What was Frederic Barbarossa's character ? What cities maintained their independence against him ? What pope did he favor ? Who opposed him ? What hap- pened after the battle of Legnano ? Who was Henry the Lion ? What did he obtain from Conrad ? — from J^Vederic ? How did he offend Frederic ? How was he punished ? How was he afterwards treated ? What happened fifty years after? From whom are the present dukes of Brunswick descended? What is their family name ? What occasioned a crusade? Who took the cross ? What befel him ? Who succeeded him ? How was his reign occupied ? Who succeeded Henry 402 aUESTIOXS. VII. ? At what age 1 Who got himself elected ] Wlio opposed him ? What ensued? Who returned after Philip's assassination ? What did he resign to the holy see ? Who now supported Frederic II. 1 When did Otho die ? Where did he pass the greater part of his reign ] About what did he quarrel with the popes ] Whither did he go in perform- ance of his vow"? What did he there accomplish 1 How was the remainder of his reign passed ] Was he successful ? Who were elected in opposition to him by the German bish- ops? Where was he afterwards defeated ? Where did he die 1 — when 1 Who disputed the succession after his death ? How long an interregnum happened ] What leagues were formed during this period ? France — p. 228. Who undertook a crusade in 1147 ? W^ere they successful 1 Whom did Louis divorce ? Who married her 1 What were the acts of Philip II. 1 To what crown did Louis VIII. pre- tend ? — when 1 With what success I With whom did he wage war by the pope's command ? Wlio succeeded him ? At what age ? Who was regent ? What were the noble acts of St. Louis ? What code did he form 1 What were his faults 1 Where did he die 1 England — The Plantagenets — p. 229. What did Henry II. inherit by his mother ? — by his wife ? What was his character ? How did he give the feudal sys- tem a blow] — how the pajjal power] Who opposed him ? What was his flite 1 Wha.t did he effect in Ireland ] How did he pass the better part of his reign ] What character is given of him ] Who succeeded him ? How was his reign occupied ] What happened on his return ? How was he released ] Where did he fall ] What were his character and name] Who succeeded Richard I.] Whose claims were opposed to John's ? Who supported them ] How did John put an end to them ? What territories did he lose in consequence of this act ] With whom did he now quarrel ? How was the matter settled ? How did his subjects profit by this] What was John compelled to sign at Runnymede ? Did he attempt to annul it ] What was done by the barons ? What ended their rebellion ? What was John's character 1 Who succeeded him ] At what age ] Who was regent ? What was the character of Henry III. ] — his acts ] W^hat was done by the barons] Who raised the nobles against Henry ] What was the consequence ] How did the twenty- "our barons behave ? Who opposed them ] Where was a QUESTIONS. 493 battle fought] What ensued 7 Who finally defeated and slew Leicester 1 How long was the reign of Henry III. 1 What had its origin in this reign ] — how ] Ireland — p. 234. Who peopled Ireland ? What was its condition ? Who were its enemies] Who gave it to Henry 11.] What fur- nished him a pretext for invading it] — when ] How did he succeed ] Spain — p. 234. Who invaded Spain in 1212] With what force] Who joined him] Where did the Christian states oppose him? What was the result ] What did St. Ferdinand unite ] What did he conquer ] To what province of Spain were the Moors confined] What conquests were made by Jayme I. of Aragon] Portugal — p. 235. Who was the first king of Portugal ] From whom did he receive it] What city did he conquer] What were the acts of his son and successor Alfonso ] Who succeeded him ] Questions to be answered from Maps. Which way from England is Ireland] In what part of Ireland is Leinster ] — Munster ] — Ulster ] — Connaught ] — Leitrim ] — Sligo ] In what part of Spain is Andalusia ] — Cas- tile ] — Leon ] — Baeza ] — Cordova ] — Seville ] — Cadiz ] — Gra- nada] — Aragon] — Valencia] — Murcia] — Toledo] Which way from Spain is Portugal] Where is the Tagus] — Algarve] — Oporto ] — Alemtejo ] The Almohades — p. 235. Who was the founder of the Almohades] With whom did he wage war] What was the seat of his dominion ] Who besieged Morocco ] What was the result ] What did the Almohades conquer in Spain ] Persia — p. 236. Where did the princes called Atta-beg rule ] By whom were they and the Assassins overthrown ] Saladin — p. 236. What brought the Turks into Egypt] What did they con- quer] Whom did they make governor] What dynasty did Saladin found ] What countries did he conquer ] What city was he besieging when Guv de Lusignan came against 42 494 QUESTIONS. him 1 What was the result 1 How did Saladin behave on takinsT Jerusalem 1 What was the effect of this news in Europe] What princes went on a crusade agamst Saladml What was the result 7 When did Saladin die 1 What was his character 1 The Mamelukes — p. 237. Who usurped the throne of Saladin 1 When did St. Louis undertake his unfortunate crusade 1 On what terms was peace made 1 Who were the Mamelukes ] What offended them f What was done by them 1 How long did they rule in Egypt ] Constantinople — p. 237. Who murdered Alexius ? What changes followed ? Whom did Alexius IV. bring against Constantinople 1 What was the result 1 Who murdered Alexius IV. 1 Who revenged him 1 Whom did they place on the throne ? What three states were formed by the Greeks ? What was the fate of Baldwin 1 — of Henry 1 *Who succeeded him? What is said of John Lascaris ? — of his grandson ? Who retook Constan- tinople ] The Crusades — p. 238. Who harassed Jerusalem while possessed by the Christians'? What enabled them to resist their enemies? Who preached a new crusade ? — why ? What princes took the cross ? With v.'hat force ? Who went first ? What were their fortunes ? Relate Louis's adventures. When did Saladin take Jerusa- lem ? What was the effect of this? Who took the cross? What was the emperor's force? Whither did he march? Who opposed him? What was the result? Where did he winter? What success had he after this? What was his fate ? What was the force of the other crusading princes ? Whence did Richard embark ? — whence Philip? What hap- pened at Messina ? — at Cyprus ? Who took Acre ? What occasioned Philip's return ? Who defeated Saladin? What was his loss ? What cities did he raze ? What stopped the crusade? On what terms was peace made? What befel Richard I. on his return ? Who composed the fourth crusade ? Who led it? What did they effect at Zara? — at Constanti- nople? How were their conquests divided ? Who composed the fifth crusade ? Who led it ? Where did he land ? What ensued ? What city was besieged ? Who was defeated ? Who returned home ? Who took the command ? What en- sued ? On what terms was peace made ? What places in auESTioNs. 495 Palestine were gained by Frederic II. 1 — how ] — when ? Who took Palestine in 12441 Who went on a crusade? What was the result 1 When did St. Louis undertake his next crusade ] What was the result 1 What beneficial effects resulted from the crusade 1 The Mongols — Chingis Khan — p. 241. Who was Temujin 1 How did he acquire the name of Chingis Khan 1 What country did he first conquer? — what next ? What sultan opposed him ? With what force ? What ensued ? What tsar opposed him ? What was the result ? When did Chingis Khan die ? What conquests were made by his descendants ? Who paid tribute 700 years to the Mon- gols ? Who led them to the confines of Europe ? What city did they burn in Poland ? — in Hungary ? Who now opposed them ? What was the result ? What caused the Mongols to retire ? Who completed the conquest of China ? End of the Khalifat at Bagdat — p. 242. Who undertook the conquest of Bagdat ? — when ? With what success ? How many fell ? What sect was destroyed ? What cities did the Mongols next take ? What country did they enter ? Who defeated them there ? Who drove them out of Syria ? Who supported the fallen descendants of the khalifs ? — where ? Questions to be answered from Maps. In what part of Palestine is Jerusalem ? — Acre or Ptole- mais ? — Joppa ? — Tabor \ — Ascalon ? — Bethlehem ? In what part of Syria is Damascus ? In what part of Asia Minor is Iconium ? — Antioch ? — Mount Taurus ? — Laodicea ? Which way is Messina from Marseilles ? — Genoa ? — Cyprus ? Which way is Acre from Cyprus ? — Ascalon from Acre ? — Joppa from Ascalon ? — Jerusalem from Joppa ? Which way from Ven- ice is Dalmatia ? Which way from Athens is the Morea, or Peloponnesus ? — Thessaly? — Achaia? Which way from Pales- tine is Damietta in Egypt ? Which way from Tartary is China ? — Corea ? — the Caspian Sea ? — Bagdat ? — Poland ? — Hungary ? 496 QUESTIONS. CHAPTER VII. DECLINE OF THE PAPAL POWER, AND FORMATION OF GREAT MONARCHIES. Italy— The Popes— ^. 243. What alienated people from the court of Rome 1 Who became pope ? What was done by him ? Relate his quarrel with Philip the Fair. What happened in 1301 ? What was the result of this quarrel 1 What was declared in Boniface's council at Rome 1 Whom did he excommunicate 1 How did Philip revenge himself] When did Boniface die] Who re- scinded the bulls against Philip ] What did this act show T Who removed the papal court to Avignon? With whom did the Avignon pontiffs quarrel ? — about what ^ What did the diet of Frankfort declare in 13381 Who opposed John XXII.? What were his oppressive acts ] What right did Boniface XII. assume ? Who removed the papal court back to Rome ? — when ] Who succeeded Gregory XI. ] What caused Urban's deposition ? Who was chosen in opposition to him '? Who adhered to Urban ] — who to Clement? How manv sue- cessors had Urban? — Clement? Where did a council meet in 1409 ? What was done by it ? How many popes were there now 1 What was done by the council of Constance! What was declared by it? Who composed it? How was it divided? — why? Who dissolved it? What was decreed con- cerning future councils? What was done by the council at Pavia? Where was the rest convoked ? What was done by Eugenius? — what by the council at Basle ? — by Nicholas V. ? How did the popes regard councils after these transactions? What did future popes learn ? What prevailed in Europe ? What was done in England ? — in Bohemia ? What cast ad- ditional odium on the church ? Questions to he answered from Maps. Where is Avignon? — Bourdeaux? — Frankfort? — Constance? — Pavia ? — Siena ? — Basle ? — Ferrara ? — Florence? — Prague? Italy — The Republics — p. 247. In what century did the republics of Italy flourish ? Name some of the first cluster? — the second? — the third? — the fourth ? Which favored the Guelf faction ? Which the Ghibi- lin ? Which were the maritime republics ? What was the condition of these republics? When did they fall under ty- rants ? Who were some of these tyrants ? What was the aUESTIONS. 497 condition of Florence 1 In whose hands was the government ? What happened in 12661— in 13361— in 13421 With whom did Florence engage in wars 1 How were they carried on 1 For what was Pisa distinguished 1 What were her posses- sions 1 From what did she derive great advantage 1 What transpired in 11191 — in 12841 To what state did Pisa finally- become subject 1 What is said of Genoa 1 What part of Constantinople was given to the Genoese 1 With whom did they carry on war 1 Give an account of the war of Chiog- gia. What dates from that period 1 What was the internal condition of Genoa 1 What was the origin of Venice 1 W^hat happened in the 10th century 1 What did Venice early apply to 1 What part of Constantinople did she gain 1 — when 1 What islands 1 With what countries did Venice trade 1 Of what was Venice the medium 1 What conquests did she makel What is said of the government of Venice 1 Questions to be answered fi'om Maps. Where is Milan 1 — Cremona 1 — Parma 1 — Pavia 1 — Man- tua 1 — Verona 1 — Padua 1 — Pisal — Florencel — Genoa! — Ven- ice 1 — Lucca 1 — Brescia 1 — Bergamo 1 — the Adda 1 Italy — Naples and Sicily — p. 250. Who occupied the kingdom of Naples in 1254 1 In whose name 1 Who opposed him 1 What was his fate 1 What was Conradin's 1 Who now claimed the crown 1 What were the possessions of Charles of Anjou 1 Who was his secret enemy 1 Who entered into John's project 1 What occurred in 1253 1 What ensued 1 On what condition was peace con- cluded 1 What happened in 1305 1 Who succeeded Robert 1 What crime is imputed to Joanna 1 What were her subse- quent fortunes and fate 1 AVho now invaded Naples 1 What ensued 1 Who succeeded Charles III. 1 What did Ladislaus effect 1 Who succeeded him 1 What ensued 1 How did the kings of Aragon acquire a claim to Sicily 1 — when 1 Who disputed iti Who founded the Aragonite line at Naples 1 To whom did he transmit his crown 1 By what means 1 Germany — p. 252. Who was elected emperor after the interregnum 1 — when? What was Rodolfs character 1 What countries did he gaini Of what was this the origin 1 Who succeeded Rodolf 1 Who opposed and slew him 1 What was Albert's fate 1 Who suc- ceeded him 1 — when 1 What happened in 1314 1— in 1322 1 With what was Louis's reign occupied 1 Who succeeded him 1 What countries did he annex to Bohemia 1 What is 42* 498 auESTioNs. said of Wenceslaus ? Who succeeded him 1 What is said of Rupert 1 — Jobst '.' — Sigismund 1 What did Sigismund re- ceive from his first wife ? — from his brother 1 — from the pope ] What did he add to these ? With whom did he war ] What house now gained the imperial dignity 1 — how ] When did Albert die? Who succeeded him in Hungary and Bohemia 1 Who was chosen emperor 1 What is said of Frederic 1 What do his posterity still possess ] Switzerland — p. 254. Of what kingdom was Switzerland a part? To what em- pire was it united 1 — when ? What was its condition ? How- did the emperor Albert offend the Swiss! Who formed a league to free the country? Wliat happened in 1308? What ensued? What happened in 1315? What other cantons now joined the confederacy ? What other events are noticed ? When was the independence of Switzerland acknowledged ? What gave their soldiers the first rank ? France — p. 254. Who succeeded St. Louis? In what war did he engage? What provinces did he annex to the crown of France ? When did Philip IV. succeed him ? What did he gain from the English? Who defeated him at Courtray? What provinces did he gain ? What city .' For what did he convene the states general? What disgraced Philip's reign ? Who were his children ? Who succeeded him? Who became regent on the death of Louis X ^ When did he cause himself to be crowned, to the exclusion of the female heir? Who op- posed him? Who supported him ^ Who succeeded Philip? Who became regent on Charles's decease ? By what cir- cumstance was tlie principle of the exclusion of females from the throne of France established ? What foreign prince claimed the throne of France ? By what right ? Was his claim valid ? How long did the wars last which were com- menced by him ? What is the origin of the title Dauphin ^ What happened in 1350 ? Who succeeded Philip ? Where was he captured by the English ? Wliat was the condition of France ? Who was regent ? Where did John die ? Who succeeded ? What is said of Charles ? Who succeeded him ? What w^as the condition of the country ? What faction dis- turbed it during the king's lunacy? Who was assassinated? Was the assassin punished ? Who was Armagnac ? Who opposed him ? What was his fate ? Who was next murdered ? What had been done by Henry V. of England? Who agreed to the treaty of Troyes with him ? What were its terms ^ QUESTIONS. * 499 Who succeeded Henry V. ? — with what title 1 In what prov- inces was Charles VII. king of France acknowledored 1 What English reg-ent opposed him 1 What woman redeemed his desperate affairs 1 Who were expelled from France ? — when 1 What was the first standing- army maintained in Europe '? What is said of Louis XL 1 Who leagued against him ] How did he divert Edward IV. from invading- France 1 What is an appanag-e ] (See Note.) Was Burgundy held as an ap- panage of the crown of France"? Who was the duke of Bur- gundy in the reign of Louis XL 1 With whom did he war successfully J Who defeated him, and broke his power ? Where and when did he fall? Who was his heir? What was Louis's true policy? What did he do] Whom did Mary marry ] What children did she leave 1 How did France ac- quire Provence ? Who succeeded Louis XL ] Who was re- gent? Whom did the duchess Anne marry? How was Maximilian offended ? How appeased ? What was now the state of France ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Artois? — Franche Comte? — Provence? — Niver^ nois ? — Burgundy ? — Lorraine ? — Friburg ? — Nancy ? — Swit- zerland ? — Britany ? — Navarre ? — Rheims ? — Poitou ? — Tou- louse ? — Auvergne ? — Angouleme ? — Lyons ? — La Marche ? England — The Plantagenets — p. 260. What was the first object of Edward I. ? What country did he acquire ? What afforded him an opportunity of inter- fering in the affairs of Scotland ? How did he avail himself of it ? Where did he lose ground by this? What did his own people gain ? What was the character of Edward II. ? Where was he defeated by the Scots ? Whom did he marry? What was his fate ? Who succeeded? Who was recent? How did she govern ? Who ended her tyranny ? What, oc- cupied Edward's reign ? What three great ])rinciples were established in the reign of Edward III. ? What order of knighthood did he institute ? What is said of his reign ? Who was his successor? What insurrection did he quell? What was his character? Whom did he injure? How did the duke revenge himself? What was the fate of Richard II.? Whom did Richard II. appoint to succeed him? Where was Roger killed? What was the age of his heir? Was the claim of Henry IV. to the crown valid by succession? What made him the lawful sovereign ? Who gained power by the defect in his lineal title? What rebellion did he quelH Wjiat is said of his government and character ? Who sue- 500 auESTioNs. ceeded him 1 What was his character 1 Where did he gain g-lory 1 When did he die '' Who succeeded him ] At what age 1 Who governed in the name of Henry VI. ? What possessions were lost by Bedford 1 Whom did Henry VT. marry] What was her character! Who was murdered'' By whom] Who claimed the crown) What was his char- acter! Who favored him] How long did the contest be tween the houses of York and Lancaster last ] (the wors of the Roses.) What battles did the Yorkists gain ] Who was taken at Northampton ] What was then done by queen Mar- garet] Where was the duke of York defeated and slain What measures did Margaret then take ] Who inherited the claims of the duke of York] What battles were gained by the Yorkists] Who became king] What was the character of Edward IV. ] Where were the Lancastrians next defeated ] What did Margaret then do ] Where was she defeated ] What ensued ] What was now done by the earl of War- wick ] Where was he defeated by Edward, and slain ] What happened the same day ] Where was Margaret next de- feated ] What ensued ] What was Henry's fate ] Who murdered Edward V. ] What is said of Buckingham ] Who opposed Richard III. ] Where was Richard III. defeated by Richmond, and slain ] Who succeeded ] With what title ] What ended with Richard III. ] How long had the Plan- tagenets ruled England ] What was the new dynasty called ? Was the title of Henry VII. good] Whom did he marry] Did this strengthen his title ] Who opposed his claim ] With what success] What is said of his character and designs 1 What changes were effected in his reign ] Wars between France and England — p. 267. Who were the allies of Edward III. ] What is said of his first campaign in France ] When was this ] What hap- pened next year ] What French count formed an alliance with Edward III. ] How was the next campaio-n terminated] What happened next year] What compelled Edward to give battle at Crecy ] What was the result ] What city did Ed- ward now take "^ What ensued ] Who formed a conspiracy against John king of France ] Who betrayed it ] What en- sued ] Who invaded France ] With what force ] W^ho opposed him ] With what force ] Where did they meet ] What was the result ] What was now the condition of France] What were the terms of the peace of Bretigni ] Who succeeded John ] What did he terminate ] Whom did he summon to appear in his court] What was the an- swer ] What followed ] What exploit was performed by the QUESTIONS. 501 duke of Gloucester in 1380 1 What prevented the invasion of England ? How long a truce was made 1 What was done by Henry IV. 1 What demands were made by Kenry V. ] What offer did the French make ] What force did Henry raise 1 What town did he take ] Who opposed him 1 With what force "] What offer did Henry make J What river did he pass ] To what was his army reduced 1 Where did he give battle 1 What was the result 1 What was the French loss? — the English J What ensued] Where did Henry next land ? With what force ] What town did he besiege .' What negotiations ensued ] What treaty was made / What was the state of affairs when Henry V. died ] Who con- ducted the war l What battle did he gain 1 What city was besieged by him ] Who now apppeared ] What ensued ] What ended thus 1 Scotland — p. 271. How was Scotland governed ] What connexion had she with England ] Who took William king of Scotland pris- oner 1 On what condition was he released 1 Who renounced this right of homage ? What two claimants aspired to the Scottish crown, on the death of Alexander III. 1 To whom were their claims referred ] Which did he prefer? On what condition ? How did the Scotch regard this transaction I What was done by the Scotch ? — by Baliol 1 — by Edward I What was now the situation of Scotland ] What led to Wal- lace's insurrection ? Whom did he defeat 1 What office did he sustain? With what force did Edward enter Scotland? Where did he defeat the Scotch ? What was Wallace's fate? Who now came forward to assert the independence of Scot- land? What did he effect? Where was he crowned? Who defeated him? Where did he take shelter? When and where did Edward I. die ? Who succeeded him ? What was now done by Bruce ? What provoked Edward II. to enter Scotland? Where was he defeated? — when? What was the effect of this battle ? Who succeeded Robert Bruce ? Who now laid claim to the Scottish crown ? Who supported him ? What success attended him ? Where was he crowned ? Whither was he afterwards driven ? W^ho lent him assist- ance ? Where did they defeat the Scots ? Was Scotland conquered ? Who had returned from France and driven Ba- liol out of Scotland ? — when ? What country did he invade ? Who defeated and captured him ? What was his ransom ? What happened in the reign of Richard 11. ? — of Henry IV '^ What was the character of Robert III. ? Who governed the kingdom? What injury did he do the king! What befel 502 auESTioNs. Robert's son James 1 Who educated him ] What was done in the reign of Henry V. 1 — of Henry VI. 1 What was tho character of James I. of Scotland 7 Who murdered him 1 What happened in the reign of Henry VIL ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Scotland ] How is it bounded 1 In what part of it is Edinburgh'? — Aberdeen 1 — Scone? — Stirling 1 — Perth ? — Fifeshire ] — Falkirk 1 In what part of England is Cum- berland 1 — Carlisle 7 — Newcastle 1 — Berwick ] Where are the Western Isles or Hebrides 1 — Norway 1 — Sweden? — Den- mark? Scandinavia — p. 276. On what terms did the Goths and Swedes unite ? What was the consequence? When did the race of Odin in Swe- den become extinct ? What other lines ended in the same century? Who united the three Scandinavian kingdoms? Who succeeded her? What befel him? Who then suc- ceeded to the three kingdoms ? Who was chosen king of Denmark on the decease of Christopher? What other coun- tries did he gain ? Who maintained the independence of Sweden ? Poland — p. 277. From whom are the Poles descended ? What was their early state ? When did they unite under a duke ? Who was their first king ? How long did his dynasty last ? With whom did it end ? Who succeeded him? Whom did Louis's daughter Hedwig marry? What is said of Jagellon's reign ? — of his son's ? Where did he fall ? Who succeeded him ? What was his character ? Of what kingdoms was his son the sovereign ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Poland ? How is it bounded ? Where is War- saw ? — Cracow ? — ^Varna ? — Lithuania? — Hungary ? — Pres- burg ? — Buda ? — Bohemia ? — Prague ? Hungary — p. 278. What house ended with Andrew III. ? — when ? Who suc- ceeded Andrew ? What is said of his reign ? — of Louis's ? Who succeeded Louis? What battle did he lose ? Who suc- ceeded him ? Who succeeded Albert? What regents gov- erned during Ladislaus's minority ? What was done by Hun- auESTioNs. 503 niades 1 Who succeeded Ladislaus 1 What is said of Mat- thias 1 Who succeeded him 1 The Ottomans — p, 278. What is said of Suleiman ? Where did he perish ? Whither did his followers go 1 Which way did Dindar and Ortoghrul rove 1 What did they encounter on their way through Asia Minor? How did they behave] How were they rewarded] Where is the country which was assigned to them 1 Of what was it the cradle ? What conquests were made by Osman ? What was his capital? What name is derived from his? What conquests did Orchan make 1 What institutions were formed under his reign 1 Who were the Janizaries ? What city did Moorad take ? What other acquisitions did he make ? Where did he fall ? Who succeeded him ? What was Baye- zeed's character 1 Who opposed him ? Where did they meet ] Which prevailed ? Who escaped ? What prevented Bayezeed from investing Constantinople ] By whom was he defeated and taken ? — where ? — when 1 What was the effect of his misfortunes ? Who restored the Turkish power ? What conquest was made by Moorad 1 How did the Greek emperor John VII. endeavor to save his falling empire] Of what breach of faith were the Hungarians guilty ] Who marched to the Black Sea] Relate the circumstances of the battle of Varna. What happened twice in Moorad's time ] Who suc- ceeded him ] What is said of Constantinople ] Who in- vested it] What was the result ] Who fell at the breach ] What befel the city and its inhabitants ] What other con- quests did Mohammed II. make ] Who resisted the Turks successfully in Albania ] Questions to be answered from Maps. Through what part of Armenia does the Euphrates run 1 Which way from Armenia is Asia Minor] In what part of Asia Minor is Iconium ] — Phrygia ] — Mysia ] — Bithynia ] In what part of Bithynia is Prusa ad Olympum or Bursa ] Where is x\drianople ] On which side of the Danube is Ni- copoHs ad latrum {Nicop ?) Where is Servia ] — Bulgaria ] — Bosnia] — Angora] — Magnesia in Asia] — Varna] — Trebi- zond ] — Belgrade ] — Wallachia] — Caramania] — Rhodes] — Samarcand ] Which way from Persia is Bagdad ] — Mesopo- tamia ] — Armenia ] — Georgia ] — India ] — the Caspian Sea ] — Sivas ] — Aleppo ] — Angora ] — Lesser Asia] The Tatars— Timoor—Tp. 281. What observations are made in the note ] Who was Ti- iuoor ] Whom did he marry ] What happened on her death ] 504 auESTioNs. — on the emir's death? What did he conquer? From Persia whither did he march 1 What countries were next conquered by the Tatars ] What country in 1398? Where did Timoor winter? What was done in the spring? What was done in 1401 ? With whom did Timoor next wage war ? Where did he defeat him ? What were the numbers on both sides ? What place did Timoor reach ? Where did Bayezeed die — Timoor? To whom did Timoor leave the empire? T whom did it descend eventually ? Who drove out the house of Timoor? Where is his lineal descendant? What tribes possessed Aderbijan and Persia? Spain — p. 283. What Christian kingdoms existed in Spain ? — what Ma- hometan one ? What is said of Alfonso X. ? — of Sancho ? — of Peter the Cruel ? Who expelled Peter ? Who assisted Henry? Who assisted Peter? On what condition? What was done by the Black Prince ? What happened on liis depar- ture? What is said of Henry's three immediate successors ? — of John 11. ? Who deposed Henry IV. ? What ensued ? Who was Isabel ? Whom did slie marry ? Who was Joanna ? Whom did she marry ? Which gained the crown of Castile ? What is said of Aragon ? What were its foreign possessions ? How many princes contended for the crown of Aragon, on king Martin's decease ? Who gained it ? Who succeeded him ? Who succeeded Alfonso V, ? Whom did Ferdinand succeed ? What two kingdoms were now united ? — how ? Whom did Ferdinand attack ? When was it conquered ? What is said of Navarre ? Portugal— ip. 284. What is said of Alfonso X. ?— of Diniz ?— Pedro? What happened after Pedro's death ? Who entered Portugal with an army? Who defeated him, and gained the crown ? What is said of his reign ? What conquest was made ? W^hat dis- coveries were made ? Discovery of America — p. 285. What had prepared men for bold and distant voyages ? What was the great problem ? How did the Portuguese seek India? Who was Columbus? What had he conjectured? What favored this supposition? What conclusion did Colum- bus arrive at ? To whom did he first offer his services 1 — to whom next ? Whom did he send to England ? What befel him ? From whom did Christopher Columbus at length ob- tain a squadron ? — of how many vessels ? When did he sail ? QUESTIONS. 505 From what port ! What happened on the voyage 1 What was the first discovery] — the next] What was the effect of these discoveries ] What was the country called ] What did Columbus discover next year 1 What in his third voy- age ? How was he remunerated 1 When and where did he die 1 What was effected during the same period by Vasco de Gama 1 In whose service 1 Questions to be answered from Maps. Where are the Azores? — Madeira? — Congo? — the Gold Coast!— Ceuta?— Fez?— the Cape of Good Hope?— Palos? — St. Salvador? — the Bahamas? — Cuba? — St. Domingo? — Porto Rico ? — Guadaloupe ? — Jamaica ? — Trinidad? — Calicut? PART III. MODERN HISTORY. CHAPTER I. VIEW OF THE STATE OF EUROPE. Introduction — p. 288- What was the state of affairs at the commencement of the middle ages ? — of learning ? — of religion ? What is said of the clergy? — the pope? — his dominion? — his pretensions? What empire rose and fell after the fall of Rome ? (Answer. Charlemagne's.) What was the internal state of Europe? Who ravaged it? What was the state of commerce? Did this continue? What is said of the monarchs? — the church? — the people ? — the nobles ? — learning ? — travels ? — inven- tions ? — schools ? — classical learning ? — religion ? — discove- ries ? What was the political condition of Europe ? England — p. 289. What was the state of England ? To whom were the daughters of Henry VII. married ? Who succeeded hira ? France — p. 290. What was the state of France ? What led Charles VIII. into Italy? With what force ? What drove him out? With what loss ? What is said of Louis XII. ? 43 506 QUESTIONS. Germany — p. 290. Who was emperor 1 What new possessions had he ac- quired "? What was done by the diet of Worms J Russia, Poland, Scandinavia — p. 290. What occupied the Russian princes ] What did they gain from the Poles? What had happened in Scandinavia? Switzerland and Savoy — p. 291. Whom had the Swiss compelled to respect their rights ? What practice had commenced in Switzerland 1 What at- tempt of the emperor had been successfully resisted by them ? What is said of Savoy 1 Italy— ^. 291. Who was the last of the Visconti ? Who succeeded him ? — how ? What is said of Galeazzo ? — of Lodovico Moro ? Whom did he invite to Italy, and afterwards oppose ] What was done by Louis XII. ? What part of Italy was ruled by the house of Este ? — by the Gonzaga family? — the Pico? Who was pope Alexander VI. ? What was his character? — his chief design ? What was done by Julius II. ? What had Venice acquired ? With whom did she trade ? What was her condition ? What caused her decline ? Who ruled at Florence? What is said of Cosmo de Medici? — of Lorenzo? Who attacked Frederic king of Naples ? What ensued ? Who drove out the French ? League of Camhray — p. 292. Who formed the league of Cambray? Who opposed it? What ensued ? Who became duke of Milan? Spain and Portugal — p. 292. Who planned the Inquisition? — when? Who opposed it? Where was it introduced ? Who were its first victims? How many were burnt? How was it introduced into Aragon ? Into what other provinces was it introduced ? How were the Moors of Granada outraged ? What was the effect of the inquisition in Spain ? What is said of Portugal ? Turkey—^. 293. Who succeeded Mohammed II. ? Who succeeded Baye- zeed ? — when ? What was Selim's character ? — his first act? What were his first conquests ? Who opposed him in Syria ! — when ? What was the result ? What was Ghawree's fate '' auESTioNS. 507 Who succeeded him 1 Where was he defeated by Selim 1 What followed 1 What was the fate of Toomawn Beg- ? — of Egypt ] When did Selim die ] Persia — p. 294. What is said of Persia 1 — of the Suffavee 1 — of Jooneid ? — of Haider] What is the origin of the name Kuzzil Bash } Where did Haider fall ] What is said of his sons 1 Whom did Ismail defeat ] Where was his capital ] What conquests did he make ] What was the extent of his dominions 1 Why did he attack Selim I. 'I Where did the opposing armies meet 1 What were their numbers ] What was the result] When did Ismail die ] Who succeeded him ] CHAPTER II. TIMES OF CHARLES V. Accession of Charles V. — p. 295. Who were the parents of Charles V. ] What dominions did he inherit from his grandmother] — from Ferdinand] — from Maximilian ] Who was his rival] Which was elected emperor of Germany] Why was he elected] Who was king of England ] Was Francis a match for Charles] — why] The Reformation — p. 296. What was the state of the public mind on the subject of religion] Who was pope] What was his character] How- did he raise funds to build the church of St. Peter at Rome ] Who sold indulgences in Germany] Who wrote and preached against them] What was the effect] What did he study] Who supported him ] Where did he defend his opinions ] — against whom ] Who summoned him to Worms ] What happened then] Who preached against indulgences in Swit- zerland ] In what other countries did the opinions of the reformers spread ] Wars of Charles V. and Francis I. — p. 297. Who was king of France] What was his first conquest] What duke of Milan was deposed ] Who was left in com- mand at Milan ] Who was repulsed from Italy ] With whom did Maximilian make peace ] Whose friendship did Charles and Francis both seek ] Which obtained it ] What trans- pired in relation to Navarre ] — the Low Countries ] Who formed a league] What was done by the Milanese and the 508 auESTioNs. /N pope 1 Who were defeated ? What did they lose 1 When did Leo X. die ] From what cause ] Who invaded the Mi- lanese] What ensued ! Who leagued against Francis 1 Who conspired against him? — why] Whom did Francis send into Italy ] Who defeated Bonnivet] — where] Who fell in this battle ] Whither did Francis march ] For what purpose ] What town did he besiege ] Who came to relieve it ] What was the result ] When was Francis taken prisoner ] What was his letter to his mother ] What is said of Henry VIII. ] — of Wolsey ] Whither was Francis removed ] Why did Charles incline to release him ] On what terms was he re- leased ] — when ] What was done by the states of Burgundy ? — by the pope ] Who formed an alliance against Charles V. 1 What was its object ] Where did they take the field ] What was done by Bourbon ] How was the pope treated 1 What was done by Charles ] Whom did Francis send into Italy ] What ensued ] Who ravaged Hungary ] What was passing in Germany ] Who made a peace between Charles and the allies] — where] On what terms] What was done by Charles in Italy ] Affairs of Germany — p. 300. What did Charles now resolve ] Where was a diet con- voked ] — when ] What was done by it ] Who protested ao-ainst the decree ] What were they called ] What was done at Augsburg ] Who formed the league of Smalcalde ] Who menaced Hungary] What was agreed on between Charles and the Protestants ] What transpired in Hungary and Austria ] — in Tunis ] — in Miinster ] Renewed War loith France — p. 301. What claims did Francis revive ] Why did not the Pro- testant princes of Smalcalde join him ] Whom did Francis rob of his dominions ] How did he regain a right to Milan ] Who took possession of it ] What did Charles resolve ] At what points did he invade France ] How was it defended ] What was the result ] What was done in the Low Coun- tries ] What was done by Charles in Germany ] — in Africa ] Between whom was the war renewed in 1542] Who were the allies of Charles ] — of Francis ] Where did the war rage ] Who were defeated at Cerisoles ] With what loss ] What were the terms of the peace of Crespi ] Affairs of Germany — p. 302. What was now Charles's object ] With whom did he make peace] Where was there a council] Why did not the aUESTIONS. 509 Protestants attend 1 What was done by them ? What Pro- testant prince turned traitor to the cause ] — why ? What was the consequence"? What was done by the pope 1 What events embarrassed Charles'! What encouraged him"? What befel the elector of Saxony ? — the landgraf of Hesse ] What did Charles present to the diet at Augsburg-? What was its effect "? What opened the eyes of the German princes'! Who was king- of the Romans, and therefore next hi succession to the office of emperor "! Whom did Charles wish to have suc- ceed ! Did he carry his point ! What was done by Maurice 1 Was his design suspected by Charles? With whom did Maurice form a treaty] How did he then proceed ■! What reasons did he assign for opposing the emperor '! What was done by Henry II. of France 1 What was done by the French troops? — by Maurice'! — by the emperor! — by the council of Trent! What was effected by the treaty of Passau '! When was it signed 1 What befel Charles at Sletz 1 — in Tuscany 1 What happened in the Low Countries? What was effected by the diet at Augsburg ? What was done by Charles in 1556 ? To whom did he leave his dominions ? Whom did Philip marry? Who succeeded Charles as emperor of Ger- many ? ' , Questions to be answered from Maps. How are the Netherlands or Low Countries bounded? Where is Wittenburg ? — Navarre ? — Milan ? — Pa via ? — Worms 1 — Spire ? — Augsburg ? — Frankfort ? — Smalcalde ? — Vienna ? — Mimster ? — Picardy ? — Champagne ? — Dauphine ? — Marseilles ? — Avignon ? — x\rles ? — Provence ? — Nice ? — Ghent ? — Cerisoles ? — Crespi ? — Trent ? — Hesse ? — Branden- burg ! — Mulhausen ? — Bologna ? — Passau ? — Metz ? — Estre- madura, the province to which Charles V. retired after his abdication 1 England — p. 304. Who governed England during the reign of Charles V. ? What was done by Henry ? Who favored the Protestants ? What is said of Mary ? What place in France was lost by the English ? Spain and Portugal — p. 305. What was done by the commons of Spain ? Who headed them? Who refused to aid them? What was the conse- quence? What conquests were made in America? — ^by whom ? What was done by John III. of Portugal ? What conquests were made by the Portuguese in Asia ? 43* 510 aUESTIONS. • Italy— 1^. 305. What popes ruled during the reign of Charles V. ? What caused the expulsion of the Medici from Florence'? Who restored them ] Which of the Medici became pope 1 What is said of Lorenzo '? — of his daughter 1 Who took the gov- ernment, and afterwards became pope 1 Who then governed Florence ? When was he obliged to fly ] Whom did he marry ] What city resisted his restoration ? What ensued ? What occasioned Alexander's death 1 Who succeeded him ] Of what power was he the slave 1 What title did he receive from the pope ] What is said of Genoa ? Which of her citi- zens formed a league with Charles V. 1 What ensued J When did Doria die ] What is said of Venice 1 What possessions were taken from Venice by the pope ? What was now the condition of Italy 1 Denmark and Sweden — ^p. 307. What act of cruelty was perpetrated by Christian 11. of Denmark and Sweden ? Who was his confederate ] Who opposed and vanquished Christian II. and reigned in his stead in Sweden 1 How did Gustavus Vasa govern ? What re- ligion did he establish in Sweden*! — when 1 Who deposed Christian II. from the throne of Denmark 1 Who was Chris- tian III. 1 What is said of him ] Turkey— Y>. 307. Who succeeded Selim ? What was his character 1 What did he gain in the war with Hungary in 1522 1 What island did he take next year 1 — from whom ] What happened in the second Hungarian campaign 1 — in the third ? — in the fourth 1 — in the war with Persia 1 Who took Tunis for Suleiman 1 Who retook it ] Whom did Suleiman next op- pose 1 — where ? — how 1 What followed 1 What happened at Malta 1 What is said of Suleiman ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Calais ? — Mexico 1 — Peru 1 What countries lie between the Persian Gulf and Japan ] Where is Florence ? — ^Venice 1 — Genoa ? — Sienna 1 — Bologna ? — Ravenna ? — An- cona 1 — Parma ? — Placentia? — Sweden ? — Upsala ? — Den- mark 1 — Holstein 1 — Hungary 1 — Belgrade ? — Peterwaradin ? — Ofen ?— Tunis ?— Rhodes f— Malta ? •f- aUESTIONS. 511 CHAPTER III. TIMES OF PHILIP II. State of Europe at Philip's Accession — p. 308. What possessions did Charles V. leave to his son Philip ?- Whom had Philip married ? Who was his uncle ] — his allies 1 What was the state of France 1 — of Turkey 1 Who were Philip's generals'? What was Philip's character 1 — his grand design 1 Who first opposed him 1 What was the result ? Who succeeded Mary of England ? Who sought her favor 1 Where was a treaty signed ? — when ? What states were in- cluded in it ] What sovereigns had recently died ] France — p. 309. Who succeeded Henry II. 1 Who had become Protestants'? Who supported the old religion ? What laws were revived ? Who conspired to seize the king '? What ensued ? Who died ] Who succeeded him ? Who was regent 1 What was her maxim '? How did she proceed ? Who quarrelled 1 What ensued 1 What cities were in the hands of the Huguenots ' What was done by Philip II. ? — by Conde ] Who joined the Guises ? Where was the first battle fought ? Where was the duke of Guise killed ? — by whom ? What ensued '? What is said of Catherine '? Who met at Bayonne ? What was there formed '? For what purpose 1 Who now took arms 1 Where were they defeated ? What was next done by them ? What renewed the war '? What happened at Jarnac ? Who besieged Poitiers ? Who drove him from it ? Against what city did Coligni advance 1 What was the consequence ? What was now ripe ? How did Charles behave ? What mar- riage was proposed '? Who assembled at Paris to celebrate it? How were they received 1 What happened on the eve of St. Bartholomew, 1572? What was the extent of the massacre 1 How many fell in Paris? — in all France ? What was the effect of this on the Protestants of Europe? What was the effect in Spain and at Rome ? What apology did Charles make ? What was done by the Protestants ? What towns did they bravely defend ? What happened in 1573 ? Who died in 1574 ? Who succeeded him ? How did he pro- ceed ? What was formed by the Catholics ? How did the king attempt to weaken it ? Who patronized the League ? — who the Protestants ? What is said of the kinsf ? Who was the next heir after the duke of Anjou's death? To what measure was the king forced ? Who conquered at Coutras ? What roused the king ? What was done by him 1 512 auESTioNs. — by the Catholic doctors of the Sorbonne ] To what office was the duke of Mayenne chosen 1 With whom did the king ally himself! What was done by them 1 Who assassinated the king ] Who succeeded him ] Who abandoned him 1 Who was proclaimed king by the League ] Whither did Henry retire 1 Who pursued him ] What happened at Ivry ] — at Paris ] What was done by the pope ? — by Elizabeth of England 1 — by Henry? — the prince of Parma? — Lesdiguieres? — Turenne? What happened in 1593? Who embraced the Catholic religion ? Wliat ensued ? What happened in Bur- gundy? — at Marseilles? — at Calais? — at Amiens? Who re- lieved Henry from his financial difficulties ? What ensued ? What took place in Britany ? What was now the state of France? What edict was issued? What did it secure to the Protestants ? With wiiom did Henry make peace ? Who aided him in restoring order? How did Henry perish? What was his character ? Who were his wives? The Netherlands— p. 314. What was the state of the Netherlands? What is said of Charles V.?— of Philip? Who led the people? Whom did Philip send to reduce them ? What followed ? Who opposed Alva? Did he succeed ? What was done by the queen of England ? Who took Brille ? W^hat followed ? What prov- inces were liberated by the prince of Orange ? What towns were taken by him ? VVhat was done by Alva? What boast did he make on retiring? Who succeeded him ? How was Leyden defended ? To what were the Dutch driven ? What was done at Antwerp ? What was done by Don John of Austria ? What renew^ed the war ? Who aided the Dutch ? What w^as done b)'^ D'Arschot and others ? Who consequently took the government? Who became his lieutenant? Who attacked the Netherlanders ? What ensued ? What union was now effected ? — by whom ? What was done by the prince of Parma ? Who became sovereign ? What was done by the duke of Anjou ? How was his career ended ? Between whom was the conflict now ] Who killed the prince of Or- ange ? Who succeeded him ? Who took Antwerp? What was the consequence ? Who aided the Dutch ? — how ? Why was Leicester recalled ? Who succeeded him ? When did the prince of Parma die ? Who succeeded him ? What places were taken by prince Maurice ? When did Philip XL die ? What had been done by him ? What was done by Al- bert? — by the provinces? What edict was issued? What was gained by the Dutch in the East Indies? What was done at Nieuport? Who took Rhineburg ? — Ostend ? What was aUESTIONS. 513 done by Spinola ? What was his opinion ? What ensued ? When was a truce made 1 How long had the contest lasted ] Wliat was its result ] Questions to be answered from Maps. How are the Netherlands bounded ] Which part of tliem is Holland 1— Belgium 1 Where is Brille ]— Mechlin?— Oude- nard 1 — Dendermond 1 — Haarlem ? — Alemaar 1 — Zealand 7 — Leyden ? — Breda 1 — Antwerp? — Amsterdam 1 — Luxemburg ? — Ghent? — Utrecht? — Friesland? — Groningen? — Overyssel? — Guelderland? — Cambray? — Brussels? — Gertreydenburg? — Neuport ? — Ostend ? — Rhineburg ? — Hague ? England — p. 318. Who ruled England ? What was her character ? What religion was established ? Who opposed Elizabeth ? What is said of Mary queen of Scots? When did she die? — how? Who attempted the invasion of England? With what force? What was the result ? What ended with Elizabeth ? Give an account of the Tudors. What were the leading events of Elizabeth's reign ? Portugal — p. 320. Who succeeded John III. ? Who had the care of him ? To what did they excite him ? What occasioned the invasion of Africa? What was the result? Who became king of Portugal? Who was the legal heir ? Who set up a claim ? What followed ? Germany — p. 321. Who succeeded Charles V. as emperor of Germany ? What was his object ? What council thwarted him ? Who suc- ceeded Ferdinand ? With whom did he wage war? What followed ? Who succeeded Maximilian ? Poland — p. 321. What alteration was made in the constitution of Poland ? What religion made progress there ? What prevailed ? What sects found an asylum in Poland ? Who succeeded Sigis- mund ? Who succeeded Henry ? Whom did he marry ? Who succeeded him ? Italy— ^. 322. What popes succeeded each other in this period ? What was done by Sixtus V. ? What is said of Cosimo ? — of his family ? — of Francis ? Relate the story of his death. Who f 514 auESTiONS. succeeded him ? What was now the state of Florence 1 What is said of Emanuel Philibert, duke of Savoy 1 — of Charles Emanuel 1 Turkey—^. 323. What is said of Selim 11. ] When was Cyprus taken 1 Who opposed Selim 1 What passed in the gulf of Lepanto '* What happened next year ! — in the succeeding reigns ] CHAPTER IV. TIMES OF THE THIRTY YEARS' WAR. Germany — p. 324. What measures were taken by the emperor Mathias ? What followed ] What war was thus begun ] Who suc- ceeded Mathias? — when] Who became king of Bohemia? Who supported him ? Who supported Ferdinand ? What events followed ? For v/hat purpose was a league formed ? Who was its head ] What ensued ? By what edict did Fer- dinand attack the Protestants] With whom did they form an alliance] What was his character ] Who aided him] — how] Where was his first victory gained ] What country did he gain] Who took Prague! Where did Tilly fall? VVho r "'"overed Prague ] What followed ] Where did Gus- tavus i-iitack Wallenstein ] What ensued ] Who became regent of Sweden after the death of Gustavus] Who prose- cuted the war ] What occasioned Wallenstein's death ] How was his loss supplied ] Where were the Swedes defeated ] — when] On what terms did the German princes make peace] Who sustained the war ] What ensued] Where were the Imperialists defeated ] Who succeeded the emperor Ferdi- nand ] What places were taken by the duke of Weimar ? What was done by Bauier] What was done by him in the next campaign ] What Protestant prince now died ] Who took his army into pay ] What events followed ] By whom was Piccolomini defeated ] — where ] Where was a diet as- sembled] What was now done by Banier] Who separated] Whither did Banier march] Where did he die] Who suc- ceeded him ] Who defeated Piccolomini ] What happened next spring] What city was besieged by the Protestants] Who were defeated in attempting to relieve it ] What was the effect of this defeat ] What city surrendered ] What were now opened ] What checked them ] Who succeeded Richelieu ] What ensued ] What is said of Torstenson] — aUESTIONS. 515 France 1 — Turenne ? — Gotz and Galas ? — of the imperial family 1 What transpired at Mariendal 1 — Nordlingen 1 Who made a truce] Who succeeded Torstenson? What is said of the French and Swedes] What compelled the empe- ror to make peace] When was the peace of Westphalia signed] — where] What was obtained by France] — Swe- den ] — the duke of Bavaria ] — Switzerland ] Who were placed on equal footing] How was the imperial chamber consti- tuted ] Questions to be answered from Ma])s. What countries are included in modern Germany ] Where is Bohemia ] — Hungary ] — Styria ] — Silesia ] — Moravia ] — Saxony ] — Transylvania ] — Bavaria ] — Franconia ] — Pomera- nia ] — Westphalia ] — Alsatia ] — Brisgau ] — Lunenburg ] — Holstein ] Where is Prague ] — Passau ? — Ratisbon ] — Leip- zig] — Buitenfeld] — Munich] — Niirenburg] — Lutzen]— Nord- iingen] — Wisloch? — Rainfeld]—Brisac]— Chemnitz] — Glatz] — Erfurt ] — Halberstadt ] — Cologne ] — Brinn] — Zummerhau- sen ]— Osnaburg ]— Mlinster ]— Metz ]— Verdun ]— Stetin ] Bremen ] — Rugen Island ] Finance — p. 329. Who was king of France in 1610] Who was regent] Who governed her ] Who revolted ] How were they ap- peased] What is said of Luines] Who took the govern- ment ] What followed ] What is said of Richelieu ] What was now done by Louis] — by the Huguenots] — by Luines] — by la Force ] Who succeeded Luines ] What ensued ] What edict was confirmed ] Who became prime minister ] Whom did he resolve to humble ] What marriage did he conclude] What was the consequence] Who rebelled] What is said of the duke of Buckingham] — of Richelieu] — of the duke of Rohan ] — of the Protestants ] Whom did Richelieu resolve to aid ] Whom did he join ] What was done by him in France ] When did he die ] When did Louis XIII. die] Who was his wife] Spain — p. 331. What tyrannical edict was issued by Philip IIL ] — when 1 What followed ] What is said of Philip IV. ] What were the events of his reign ] Portugal — p. 332. What events restored the heir of the house of Braganza to the throne of Portugal] With what title] What was the consequence to Portugal ] 516 QUESTIONS. Italy — p. 332. What happened in Venice in 1618? — what in the Valte- line in 1620?— wliat in Mantua in 1630? England — The Civil War — p. 332. Who succeeded Elizabeth ? What was his character ? What was the state of England ? What was the Gunpowder Plot ? What was the character of Charles I. ? To whom was he partial ? What is said of the Puritans ? — of Laud ? — of the king ? What was done by the Scots ? What is said of the Lono- Parliament? — of Strafford? — of Charles? What did both parties determine on? Who supported the king? — the Parliament? Where was the first battle fought? Where were other battles fought? Where was the king finally overthrown ? Who betrayed him ? How was he treated ? What was established ? Holland — p. 336. What two parties existed in the United Provinces ? Who supported the Calvinists? — the Arminians? How was Bar- neveldt treated ? What was the consequence ? What was done abroad by the Dutch ? Russia — p, 337. What is said of Fedor ? — of Bosis ? — of the false Dmitri ? of Michaili Romanov ? — of Alexei ? Turkey and Persia — p. 337. What was the character of the sultans of this period ? What is said of Moorad ? — of Persia ? — of Abbas ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is the Valteline ? In what part of England is Edge- hill ? — Newbury ? — Nantwich ? — Naseby ? In what part of Java is Batavia? CHAPTER V. TIMES OF LOUIS XIV. France, to the Peace of the Pyrenees — p. 338. Who was king of France ? — regent ? — minister "^ Wliat is said of De Retz? — of the queen ? — of Mazarin? — of the parliament of Paris? — of Conti? — Conde? Who espoused their cause ? Whither was Mazarin obliged to flee ? Who restored auESTioNs. 517 him *? What was done by Conde 1 Who opposed him ? What was the result? What took place in 1653 ?— in 1655 ] Who were now equally opposed 1 What turned the scale 1 What was the consequence 1 Where was a peace made ] What were its terms ] When did Mazarin die ] Who now took the reins of government ? England, to the Restoration — p. 341. What was done by Cromwell in 1649? — in 1650? — in 1653 ? Who acknowledged and sought the alliance of Crom- well? What was the character of his government? Who succeeded him ? Did he retain his dignity? What general restored Charles 11. ? Wars, till the Peace of Nimeguen — p. 341. What office had the Dutch abolished ? Who declared war with them ? What is said of De Witt ?— of Opdam ?— of Louis XIV.?— of the sea fights?— of the Dutch fleet? What were the terms of the treaty of Breda? What struggle now commenced ? To what did Louis lay claim ? What towns did he take ? What alliance was formed against him ? What were the terms of the treaty of Aix-la-Chapelle ? What was Louis bent on ? What treaty was made with Charles II. ? What ensued ? Who declared war with the Dutch in 1672 ? What force was brought against the Dutch ? Who led the Dutch army ? — the navy ? Where was there a sea fight ? Who were Louis's generals? — his allies? What places did they take ? What is said of Holland ? What offers were made ? How were De Witt and his brother treated ? For what were ships prepared ? What happened to the combined fleets ? Who favored the Dutch ? What is said of the three sea actions ? Who took Maestricht ? — Naerden ? — Bonn ? — Cologne ? What two powers joined the Dutch ? What was done by Charles II. ? Who took Franche-Compte ? — Grave ? What is said of Turenne ? What happened in 1675 ? — in 1676?— in 1677?— in 1678? What were the terms of the treaty ? What is said of Louis's power ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Arras ? — Valenciennes ? — Dunkirk ? — Vpres ? — Gravelines ? — Chatham on the Thames ? — Breda ? — Surinam ? — New- York ? — Brabant ? — Tournay ? — Douay ? — Lisle ? — Aix-la-Chapelle ? — South wold Bay ? — Nimeguen ? — Utrecht? — Maestricht? — Naerden? — Bonn? — Seneffe? — Grave? — the Palatinate ?— St. Omer? 44 518 QUESTIONS. England, to the Revolution — p. 345. What was the object of Charles II. 1 What was the state of England 1 What is said of the Popish Plot ?— the Test Act! — the court] Who were executed 1 When did Charles IT. die? What is said of him ? — of James 11,'.' — of Mon- mouth 1 What was the king's design 1 What is said of the six bishops'? What was done by the whigs and tories? — the troops 1 — James ] When were William III. and Mary II. de clared king and queen of England ? What is said of this revolution 1 Wars, to the Peace of Rysivick — p. 346. What is said of Louis XIV. 1 — of the Turks'! Who drove them out of Hungary ? What places did Louis reduce "? Who made a truce with him? What is said of Louis at this time? What edict did he revoke ? What was the consequence ? Who formed a league against France ? Who was at the head of it ? Where did Louis operate ? How did his army behave in the Palatinate ? What did he lose ? What passed in 1691 ? —1692 ?— 1693 ]— 1695 ? What were the terms of the treaty of Ryswick ? What was done by prince Eugene ? England — p. 348. Who supported the claims of James II. to the crown of England ? Where was viscount Dundee killed ? Who fa- vored James in Ireland ? Where did king William III. de- feat his party ? What successes followed ? What is said of William III. ? — of his government ? Sj)anish Succession — p. 348. What is said of Charles II. of Spain ? Who were the claim- ants to his throne? Who were for Louis? — who for Leopold? What happened in 1698 ? In whose favor did the king make a will ? Who died ? Who was the next heir nominated ? What was done by the pope ? Who was declared heir in the king's last will? What followed? Under what title was Louis crowned ? What states acknowledged him ? Who disputed his title ? — how ? With what success ? Who supported him ? What treaty was signed ? — by whom ? For what pur- pose? What happened in 1702? What is said of Marlbo- rough?— of the fleets? Who joined the allies in 1703? What advantages were gained by the French ? Who checked them in Flanders? What was done by the emperor? What was his situation in 1704 '^ Who marched to relieve him ? Wlio joined him ? — where .' Who opposed them ? What was QUESTIONS. 519 the force of each army ] Where did they fight ? What was the result ] What was the consequence of this battle ] What fortress was taken by the English ] What happened in 1705 1 Who died 1 What did Louis now resolve ? What destroyed his projects'? Who defeated Villeroy? — where? What was the consequence I What transpired in Italy 1 — in Spain ?- Who offered peace 1 What prevented it ? What happened in 1707 T— in 17081 Who were defeated at Oudenarde ?— by whom] Who took Lisle? — Ghent and Bruges? — Sar- dmia and Minorca? What terms did Louis offer in 1709? What occasioned their rejection ? What was done by Louis ? What was the French force ? — where formed ? What city did Eugene and Marlborough take? What one did they in- vest? Whom did they attack and defeat? What city sur- rendered ? What now prevented peace ? What was done by Eugene and Marlborough? — by the archduke Charles? — Vendome? — Staremburg? What was the state of things in 1711 ? When and where were the treaties signed ? — by whom? What were its terms respecting Philip? — the dukes of Berri and Orleans ? — the succession ? — Austria ? — the boun- dary of France and Germany ? — England ? — Louis ? Who was the real gainer? — -'hy? What events happened next year? Questions to be ansioered from Maps. Where is Hochstadt ? — Coblentz? — Mondelsheim? — Baden? — Donarvert? — Blenheim ? — Gibraltar ? — Valencia ? — Catalo- nia ? — Ramilies ? — Brabant ? — Turin ? — Barcelona? — Madrid? — Modena? — Almanza? — Toulon ? — Ghent? — Bruges ? — the Scheldt ? — Oudenarde ? — Lisle ? — Sardinia ? — Minorca ? — Douay ? — Arras ? — Mons ? — Tournay ? — Malplaquet ? — Ger- truydenburg ? — Almenara ? — Saragossa ? — Brihuega ? — Villa Viciosa ? — Utrecht ? North of Europe — Peter the Great — Charles XII. — p. 355. What was done by the Danes in 1661 ? Who succeeded Charles XL ? Who succeeded Theodore in Russia ? What ensued? When did Peter take the government? What was done by him (1696) ? How did he spend a year in Holland and England ? Whom did he join ? — against whom ? Who joined Charles XII. ? What was done at Copenhagen ? — at Narva? What next year ? Where did he defeat Augustus? Who succeeded Augustus? By whose influence? What was done by Peter ? — by Charles ? — by Schalemburg ? What were Charles's next achievements? What did he attempt? What is said of Mazeppa? Who advised Charles to retreat? 520 auESTioNs. Did he regard them? What city did he besiege? What was his force 1 — what was Peter's ] When was the battle fought l What was its result ? Who recovered Poland ] What saved Sweden? How long was Charles XII. in Tur- key 1 What occupied him on his return ? Where was he killed 1 Who succeeded him 1 What is said of Peter the Great 1 Who succeeded him 1 England — p. 356. What country was united with England in 1706? On whom was the crown settled ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Azof? — Narva ? — the Duna ? — Copenhagen ? — Livonia ? — Courland ? — Lithuania ? — Clissau ? — Warsaw ? — Cracovi?? — Pultausk ? — Thorn ? — Frauenstadt ? — Moscow ? — the Ukraine ? — Pultowa ? — Bender ? — Frederickshall ? — Pe- tersburg ? CHAPTER VL PERIOD OF COMPARATIVE REPOSE. England — p. 357. What happened on the death of queen Anne ? Who werfl impeached? What happened in 1715? — in 1727? The Quadruple Alliance — p. 357. Who was the second queen of Philip V. ? Who governed her? What was done by Alberoni? Who formed the Quad- ruple Alliance? What was one of its articles? — another? What had Spain taken? Who declared war against her? What ensued ? Who was dismissed ? What terms were ac- ceded to by Philip ? Who made a private treaty ? What powers were offended ? How was the first treaty counter- acted ? What ensued ? What was agreed in the treaty of Seville ? Who confirmed it ? What was the Prao-matic Sane- tion ? Who guarantied it? Who was first chosen to succeed Augustus king of Poland ? What ensued? When was peace made ? — on what terms ? — where ? Russia — p. 359. Who succeeded Catherine of Russia? When did he die ^ What expired in him ? Who offered Anne the crown ? How did she behave ? Who succeeded Anne ? aUESTIONS. 521 Turkish Wars — p. 359. Who took Candia from the Venetians 1 — when ? What did the Venetians gain in 16991 What happened while Charles XIL was in Turkey 1 What was done by Ahmed } Who opposed him 1 Who defeated the Turks ? — where ? What city did he take] What were the terms of the peace of Passarowitz 1 Who declared war with Turkey ] What places did the Russians take 1 What were the terms of the peace ] Persia — Nadir Shah — p. 360. What was the character of the latter Suffavies ? How longr had they reigned ? Who defeated Shah Hoossein ] Who suc- ceeded him ] Who succeeded Mahmood ] By whom was Ashraff defeated and slain 1 How was Nadir rewarded '.' Whom did he attack 1 What befel Tamasp ? Who took his place 1 What di- rected his attention to India 1 Where did he gain a victory 1 What did he gaini What kings did he afterwards subdue? Where did he finally defeat the Turks ] What were the actions of his latter days? What was his fate? What en- sued, on his death ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Candia?— the Morea? — Dalmatia? — the Pruth ? — Belgrade ? — Peterwaradin ? — Temiswar ? — the Crimea ? — Oczakoff ? — Chotin ? — Servia ? — Delhi ? — Bokhara or Bucha- ria ? — Armenia ? — Khorassan ? CHAPTER VII. TIMES OF FREDERIC II. The Silesian Wars — p. 361. Who was Maria Theresa ? Whom did she marry? Who claimed her dominions? How did she gain the Hungarians? What power first attacked the queen ? What is said of Fred- eric William ?— of Frederic II. ? What did he claim? What city did he take ? What did he offer ? Did she accede to if What followed ? In virtue of what sanction did Maria The- resa hold her dominions? Who had guarantied this sanction? What did the nobility desire ? With whom did Louis unite against Maria ? Who were his generals? What was done by the king of England? What was done by the allies? — the queen ? — the Hungarian nobles? How many Hungarians 44* 522 auESTiONs. marched to the relief of Vienna 1 Whither did the elector retire 1 What city did he take 1 What followed 1 What happened in England ] Whom did the English assist ? — how 1 What was done by the Austrians 1 — by Frederic 11. ? Whom did he defeat? — where ! With whom did he make a treaty 1 On what terms 1 How was this conduct regarded by the French court ] What was offered by the French generals 1 What was required by the queen 1 Did they comply 1 Who attempted to relieve them 1 Whither did Belleisle accom- plish a masterly retreat ] Who foiled the Spaniards in Italy 1 Who offered peace ? Who rejected the offer 1 What ensued] What was the situation of the British and Hanoverians in Ger- many 1 Who attempted to intercept their retreat 1 — where 1 What was the result 1 What is said of Maria Theresa 1 — of Charles VII. ] — of the king of Prussia? — of the Pretender? — of Italy] Who formed a treaty? What happened in Flanders ? — in Bohemia ? What is said of the emperor ? What followed his death ? What were the terms of the treaty? Who resolved to continue the war? What is said of Elizabeth Farnese ? Who formed an alliance ? What fol- lowed ? Who invested Tournay ? Who came to its relief? What ensued ? Who gained the victory at Fontenoy ? What was the loss on each side ? What towns did the French gain ? Who was elected emperor? — with what title? What advan- tages did Frederic gain ? With whom did he make peace ? What city and provinces were gained by Marshal Saxe? What happened in Italy ? — at Genoa ? — in Provence ? — in the United Provinces? What is said of the Dutch? — of the al- lies ? — of Belleisle ? — of Genoa ? — of the English ? — of Louis? Where was a congress opened ? Who besieged Maestricht ? What interrupted him ? What provinces were granted to Philip by the peace of Aix-la-Chapelle ? — to Frederic ? What is said of Frederic ? — of France and England ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Silesia? — Breslau ? — Neiss? — Hanover? — Pas- sau ? — Lintz ? — Vienna ? — Bohemia ? — Prague ? — Frankfort on the Maine ? — Bavaria ? — Munich ? — Glatz ? — Dettingen ? — Tournay ? — Fontenoy ? — Ghent ? — Ostend ? — Dresden ? — Hainault ? — Brabant ? — Namur ? — Provence ? — Savoy ? — Ma- estricht ? — Parma ? — Placentia ? — Guastalla ? England — p. 365. Who was Charles Edward ? Where did he land ? — when? For what purpose ? What places did he take ? Where did they defeat the royal troops ? What place in England did auESTioNS. 523 the rebels take? What occasioned their retreat 1 What events followed 1 Where were the rebels finally defeated "^ What is said of the Pretender ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Dunkeld ?— Perth 1— Dundee ?— Edinburgh 1— Carlisle 1— Derby ?— Stirling ]— Falkirk T— CuUoden 1 . Russia — p. 366. Who was empress of Russia 1 Who was appointed to suc- ceed her ■? Whom did he marry 1 The Seven Years' War— p. 366. What powers were at war 1 Who was to protect Hanover 1 When did France and the German empire form an alliance 7 Who joined them 1 Who declared war with Frederic 1 What powers were neutral 1 What two powers stood alone opposed to all the other belligerents'! What was done in 1756 by the French 1 — by Frederic II. 1 How did the French gain the electorate of Hanover 1 Who entered Bohemia ? Whom did they defeat? Where did they besiege the Austrians? What drove the Prussians out of Bohemia? Who advanced into Saxony 1 Who advanced and defeated them 1 What is said of this victory 1 — of their respective losses ? What happened at Breslau ? — at Lissa ? Was Breslau recovered ? What is said of the Russians? — Swedes? — Hanoverians? — English? What is said of prince Ferdinand ? — of Frederic ? — of mar- shal Daun ? What happened at sea? — in America? — in Af- rica? — India? Who were victorious early in 1759? What advantages did the French gain ? Where did Ferdinand de- feat them? What is said of the Russians? — of the battle of Cunelsdorf ? What followed ? What happened in West- phalia? — Hesse? — at Lignitz? How did Frederic escape? What happened in Brandenburg ? — at Berlin ? — at Torgau ? — in the West Indies? — New- York? — Canada? — India? — off Cape Lagos and Belleisle ? What happened in 1761 ? Who declared war in 1762? What was done in Portugal? — in Westphalia? What now relieved Frederic? — how? What ensued ? What places were taken by the British ? When was the peace of Paris signed ? Between whom was another treaty signed ? What did England obtain? What did she restore ? What was done by Prussia and Austria ? What is said of the Seven Years' War? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Minorca? — Bohemia? — Lowesitz ? — Ebenhertl -the Wescr ? — Reichenberg ? — Colin ? — Stralsund ? — Lissa ? 524 QUESTIONS. — Crevelt 1 — Olmutz 1 — Zorndorf ? — Hochkirchen 1 In what part of the Gulf of St. Lawrence is Cape Breton'? — St. John's] Where is Minden ? — Miinster ? — Cunersdorf? — Warburg 1 — Hesse 1 — Lignitz 1 — Berlin 1 — Brandenburg 1 — Torgau] In what part of the West Indies is Guadaloupel — Havana? — Martinique? — Grenada? In what part of New- York are Crown Point and Ticonderoga ? Where is Quebec? — Cape Lagos? — Belleisle? — Franconia? Where is Manilla? — Senegal ? Suppression of the Jesuits — p. 369. Who founded the ecclesiastical order called Jesuits ? — when? What was its early character ? Who made it a po- litical engine ? What did the Jesuits become ? Of what were they the chief stay ? What was against this order ? What were its faults ? Who drove the Jesuits from Portu- gal? From what other countries were they driven ? Who seized their property ? Where did they take refuge ? What was done by Clement XIII. ? — by Clement XIV. ? First Partition of Poland — p. 370. What is said of Catherine II. ? — of Augustus III. ? — the diet ? Who succeeded Augustus ? — by whose interference ? What followed his election ? Who fomented the disorders ? What two wars existed ? What plan did Frederic 11. form, for tranquillizing Poland I Who were the three plundering sovereigns ? How was the partition eifected ? Turkish War— p. 371. What war ensued ? Where did it commence ? — when ? What events happened in the spring? Where did a Russian fleet appear ? Whence had the Russians been driven ? Where was the vizier defeated ? What place was besieged and taken by the Russians ? Where did the Greeks rise ? Who de- feated them? — where? What is said of the Turkish fleet? What Turkish provinces were in rebellion ? Where did the plague rage ? What province of Turkey did the Russians seize? What passed in Egypt? What is said of the Rus- sians ? — of Hassan Pasha ? Who succeeded Mustafa III. '* What made peace necessary for the Turks ? What was the disposition of the tsarina ? Where was peace concluded ? — on what terms ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Describe the Dniester — the Danube — the Pruth. Whero is Chotin ? — Moldavia ? — Wallachia ? — Bender ? — the Morea ? QUESTIONS. 525 — Bosnia ? — Modon 1 — Epidaurus 1 — Chios or Scio? — Chesmel — Syria 1 — Egypt ? — Yassy ? — Moscow 1 — the Crimea 1 — Con- etantmople 1 — Silistria] — Varna] — ^Kainargil — the Black Seal American Revolutionary War — p. 371. Who colonized North America ] Who obtained parts of it by conquest] What was the condition of the British colo- nies ] — of England ] How did England seek relief 3 When was the stamp act passed ] — when repealed '? What new duty was imposed ] What was done by the Americans 7 How were they punished ] Where was a congress assembled ] What ensued! What did the king and parliament determine on] Where did hostilities commence ] — when] What was the result of this first battle \ Where were the British be- sieged ] — when ] Where was the next battle ] — when ] Re- late the affair. What happened in Canada ] Where had the first congress assembled ] — when ] When and where the second ] Who was its president ] Who was made com- mander-in-chief of the American forces ] When and where did he join the army] How long did he besiege the British in Boston ] When did he take possession of that town ] What happened at Charleston ] When was the independence of the United States declared ] What city was occupied by the British ] — what state ] Who recovered New-Jersey ] — in what actions] Where was Washington defeated in 1777] Who fought on the American side in this battle ] Who took Philadelphia] Who reduced Ticonderoga] To whom did Burgoyne afterwards surrender] — where] — on what terms] What powers formed an alliance with the United States in 1778 ] What is said of Sir Henry Clinton ]— of Sullivan and d'Estaine] — of the commissioners] What events passed in Georgia ] Who took Charleston ? What state conse- quently submitted to the British ] Who defeated general Gates ] — where ] What is said of Arnold ] — Andre ] — Rod- ney ] What powers formed an armed neutrality ] For what purpose ] What occasioned war between England and Hol- land] What island did the English take from the Dutch] How did this operate to the disadvantage of the English] What is said of Gibraltar ] — Minorca ] — of the sea actions ] — of Tobaffo] — of the French admiral] What events in Carolina are noticed] What is said of general Greene] What was terminated by the battle at Eutaw Springs ] From what state had earl Cornwallis retreated ] Where had he taken a station ] Who entered the Chesapeake ] With what force] Who besieged Cornwallis ] What was the result] How many British were taken ] What happened in 1782 ? 526 auESTiONS. When did Great Britain acknowledge the independence of the United States .' What ensued ] What remarks are made on this war ] Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Boston 1 — Concord 1 — Lexington ] — Cambridge 1 — Charlestown 1 — Q,uebec ? — Philadelphia 1 — Charleston 1 — Trenton 1 — Princeton ! — the Brandy wine ] — Germantown ] — Ticonderogal — Saratoga ? — Rhode Island ] — Camdenl — Guil- ford 1 — Yorktown ? Where is Ushant ? — Cape St. Vincent ! — Gibraltar 1 — Minorca 1 — Eustatia 1 — Tobago 1 India — p, 379. What did the Portuguese possess when they fell under the yoke of Spain ] Who traded at Lisbon 1 — how 1 What drove their merchants to India] Where did they settle? What did they take from the Portuguese ? When did the English appear in India 1 Where did they settle 1 Who were at war in India 1 How did the Dutch violate the treaty] What is said of James 1. 1 — of Cromwell 1 Who formed a French East India company? Where did the French settle? — when? Who took Madras from the English ? — when ? When was it restored ? What is said of M. Dupleix ? What did he aim at ? Who sought aid of the English ? What ensued ? What was done by the English officer Clive ? Who joined the English ? What ensued ? What is said of Bengal ? — of the Mogul government ? What caused the three factories to be fortified ? What place did the Dutch fortifv ? — the French ?— the English ? What is said of the English ? Who marched against Calcutta ? — why ? What ensued ? Who sailed for Calcutta ? What did they effect ? What did the subahdar agree to do? What was next done by the English? What is said of Clive ? What did he gain ? What did he persuade the subahdar to do ? What place did he advance to take ? Who opposed him ? With what force ? What wa? dive's force ? What was the result of the battle ? Who became subahdar? Who was put to death ? What did Jaffier agree to do ? Where was the war carried on ? What is said of Count Lally ? Where did he fail ? What places did the English reduce ? What was done by colonel Coote ? Who took Su rat? What was done in Bengal? Who succeeded Jaffier ? — how ? — when ? What led to Jaffier's restoration 1 What followed ? Who opposed Hyder Ali? — where? What happened during the American war? What was done by Hyder Ali? — by Sir Eyre Coote? — by Tippoo? What is said of the English empire in India, and its acquisition ? auESTioNs. 527 Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Hindoostan 1 How is it bounded ] In what part of it is Bengal 1 — the Carnatic ? — Orissa 1 — Bahar 1 — Mysore 1 — Delhi 1 — Oude ? — Bombayl — Mahratta? — Goa ] — Coroman- del 1 — Pondicherry 1 — Madras 1 — Deccan ? — Masulipatam 1 — Surat 1 — Cape Comorin ] Where is Tanjore ] — Cudalore ] — Fort St. David ?— Arcot 1— Calcutta ?— Hooglee '!— Chander- nagore? — Plassyl — Conjeveram ? Where is the island of Ceylon ^ — the Moluccas 1 — the Sunda isles ] — the Japan isles] — Java I — Banda ] — Amboyna 1 — Poleron 1 CHAPTER Vni. TIMES OF THE FRENCH REVOLUTION AND EMPIRE. State of Europe — p. 382. What is said of literature 1 — of the self-styled philosophers? — of their philosophy 1 — its effects 1 Into what was it in- fused 1 What was the consequence 1 Where was its chief seaf? What is said of the French court? — of Louis XVI.? of the middle orders? — of the English? — of the achievement of American independence ? — Poland ? — Gustavus III. ? — the United Provinces? — the east of Europe? — the Turkish sul- tan? — Suvaroff? — Joseph? What was done by the king of Sweden ? — by his officers ? — by the Russians ? What Rus- sian officer took OczakofF? Who succeeded Abd-ul-hamed ? Who took Belgrade ? When did the emperor Joseph die ? What was done by Leopold ? Who took Ismail ? What en- sued ? Who defeated the Russians in the Baltic? What fol- lowed ? What Vt^as done in Turkey ? When was peace con- cluded ? What was done in Poland? When did Frederic II. die? — Catherine of Russia? The French Revolution — p. 385. Why did the French court assemble the Notables ? Who were they? When did the states-general meet? What was done by them ? — by the king ? — the populace ? What were abolished ? Who was recalled ? What ensued ? Vv^hat pre- vailed ? What club was formed in 1790 ? Who quitted France ? Who were prevented from quitting it? What fol- lowed ? What is said of Brissot ? — La Fayette ? — the duke of Brunswick? — the Jacobins? What was abolished ? Who hearted the Girondists? — the Jacobins? What obliged the Prussians and Austrians to retire from France? Who re- 528 auESTioNs. duced the Netherlands'? What other country was conquered ! What was now done by the Jacobins 1 What followed this act 1 What was done by Dumouriez ] What forced him to fly to Austria? What was done in Holland 1 — at the Pyrenees'? — in St. Domingo 1 — in France '? — in the south of France ■? — .n La Vendee '? — Toulon 1 — Netherlands 1 — Germany '? What demagogues were put to death in France ] Who killed Marat? What was done by lord Howe 1 — the Corsicans? — the French"? —the Dutch ] Questions to be ansioered from Maps. Where is Varennes? — Savoy "? — Dunkirk? — St. Domingo'? — Lyons '? — La Vendee "? — Toulon "? — Fleurus *? — Juliers 1 — Cologne "? — Corsica '? Europe, to the Peace of Campo Formio — p. 387. What was passing in Poland 1 Who made peace with France "? What is said of the Jacobins? — the king of Spain? — Germany? — theVendeans? — Bridport and Corn wall is ? — Paris ? Who defeated the French in Germany ? What French general made an admirable retreat to the Rhine ? What was done in Italy ? — by whom ? What is said of the king of Sardinia? — of the battle of Lodi? Who purchased safety ? — how ? What passed at Mantua ? What republics were formed in Italy ? What is said of England ? What city was taken by the French ? What is said of the pope ? — of Bonaparte ? What provinces did he overrun ? Where was a treaty signed ? What is said of Venice ? — of Genoa ? What were the terms of the peace of Campo Formio ? Affairs, to the Assumption of the Chief Power by Bona- parte — p. 388. What happened at Rome? — in Switzerland? — Malta ? Who went on an expedition to Egypt? Where did he land? What cities were taken by him ? What was done by Nelson ? What is said of Ireland ? Who now engagred in the war ? What was passing in Italy ? What is said of the French ? — of the archduke Charles ? — of Suvaroff ? — Korsakoff? — Massena ? — the Austrians? — Bonaparte? — general Regnier? Who op- posed him? Who joined the army? What places were taken ? Who defended Acre ? — with what success ? What had been done by Desaix in Egypt ? Who recovered Aboukir from the Turks? Whither did Bonaparte return? What vi^as done by Kleber ? What happened in Italy ? — m Holland ? What change was made in the French government on the return of Bonaparte to Paris ? auESTiONs. 529 Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Warsaw 1 — Sardinia 1 — Lombardy ?— Tuscany . —Parma ?— Modena ?— Mantua ?— Corsica 1— Rivoli ]— Ca- rinthia 1 — Styria 1 — Istria 3 — Carniola '] — Leoben 1 — Campo Formio 1 — Malta 1 — Alexandria ? — Cairo ? — Aboukir ] — Pa- lernao'? — Capua? — the Grison country ? — Ostrach 1 — Cassano? —Milan ?— Zurich ?— Syria 1— Al-Arish ?~Gaza ]— Acre ?— Upper Egypt 1 Affairs, till the Peace of Amiens — p. 390. What is said of Bonaparte ? — England ? — Ireland ? Where did Bonaparte join the army? What mountains did he cross? What country was subdued ? What place had surrendered to the Austrians ? Who were opposed to Bonaparte at Ma- rengo? Whose arrival decided the battle in favor of the French? What was the result? What happened in Ger- many? What is said of the tsar Paul? — of the English? — the Danes? — Nelson? — the king of Sweden? Who mur- dered Paul ? Who succeeded him ? Who favored England ? What happened in Egypt ? Who evacuated Egypt ? What were the terms of the peace of Amiens? Affairs of Europe, to the Treaty of Tilsit — p. 391. What is said of Bonaparte? — of Touissant I'Ouverture! What renewed the war ? What is said of Hanover ? — Hol- land ? — St. Domingo ? Who became emperor of France ? What additions did he make to the French empire? Who combined against him ? Where was Nelson successful ? — against whom ? What happened on the Rhine ? — at Ulm ? — Vienna? — Austerlitz ? — Presburg? Who was made king of Naples ? — of Holland ? What confederacy was formed ? — by whom ? What is said of the king of Prussia ? Who was his chief general ? What passed at Saalfield ? — Jena and Auerstadt ? — Erfurt ? — Pretzlau ? — Berlin ? What was done by the king of Holland ? — by Jerome Bonaparte ? — by the Prussian general Blucher ? — the Russians ? What was done by Napoleon at Berlin? What was done in Turkey? — in Egypt ? Who took Dantzig ? What is said of the treaty of Tilsit ? Who became king of Westphalia ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Geneva ? — Mont St. Bernard ? — the Po ?— Mon- tebello ? — Tortona ? — Bavaria ? — Munich ? — Copenhagen ? — Amiens ? — Trafalgar ? — Ulm ? — Austerlitz ? — Wurtemburg ? —Westphalia ?— Saalfield ?— Jena ?— Auerstadt ?— Erfurt?— 45 530 auESTiONs. Prentzlau "!— the Weser 1 — Pultusk 1— Ratkau 1 — Berlin 1— Prussian Eylau ] — Dantzi^ 1 — Friedland ? — Konigsburg 1 — Tilsit 1 Affairs, to the Treaty of Vienna — p. 392. What city was bombarded and plundered by the English "? What ensued ] What prince went to Brazil 1 Who occupied his kingdom? What was done by Charles IV. ] What was afterwards done at Bayonne ] Did the Spaniards acknow- ledge Joseph Bonaparte ] Whom did they proclaim ? What passed at Cadiz 1 — at Saragossa 1 — in Portugal 1 — at Vimiero 1 — at Cintra? — in the Tagus ? — in Sweden ] What was done in Spain by the French 1 — by Napoleon 1 What general was killed at Corunna "? Who made war on the French ? What was done by Napoleon '.' What is said of the Walcheren ex- pedition 1 What powers now made peace ] Progress of the Peninsular War — p. 394. What part of Spain did the French possess? What had passed at Saragossa? — in Portugal? What was done by Wellesley ? What place was taken by the French 1 What events in 1810 are noticed ? What is said of Seville ? — Cadiz ? Who now retreated ? Who besieged Badajoz ? Who was defeated in attempting to relieve it? Who resumed the siege ? Who forced Wellington to retire ? Where were the French defeated ? Where had they the advan- tage ? Where did a revolution commence in 1811 ? What places were taken by Wellington? What other places were recovered ? Where did Wellinofton fail ? o The Invasion of Russia, and Fall of Napoleon — p. 395. What is said of Alexander of Russia? — of Napoleon? What province was occupied? To what place did Napoleon advance ? What is said of Oudinot and Macdonald ? — Witt- genstein ? What place was abandoned to the French ? Where was a general battle fought? With what result? In what condition did Napoleon find Moscow? What did he offer? What is said of the retreat ? — of the loss of men ? What is said of Alexander? — of Bernadotte ? — of the king of Prussia? What passed at Lutzen ? — at Bautzen ? Who now joined the alliance against Napoleon ? Who commanded the allied army? What is said of Blucher? — Vandamme? — Ney? — Napoleon ? — Leipzig ? — the king of Bavaria ? — Holland ? — Wellington ? Where did he defeat the French ? What city was besieged and taken ? What country was now invaded I What city was taken by the allies '' What was Napoleoii auESTioA'ri. 531 obliged to do ] Whither was he sent? Who became king of France ] What was the state of Europe ] Who landed in France] — when' How was he received'? Where did Louis seek a refuge ] Who opposed Napoleon ? Who de- feated him at Waterloo? How long was his second reign f To whom did he surrender? When and where did he die? How did the allies now proceed? What is said of Denmark? — Prussia ? — Austria ? — Genoa ? — Netherlands and United Provinces ? — Poland ? — Germany ? — England ? — India ? Questions to be answered from Maps. Where is Brazil? Which way from Portugal? Where is Bayonne ? — Bourdeaux ? — Saragossa ? — Vimiero ? — Cintra? — Raynosa ? — Tudela ? — Corunna ? — J]ckmuhl ? — Wagram ? — Walcheren Island ? — Middleburg? — Flushing? — Antwerp? — Oporto ? — Vittoria ? — Talavera ? — Galicia ? — Ciudad Rod- rigo ? — St. Sebastian ? — Almeida ? — Santarem ? — Badajoz ? — Pampeluna ? — Albuera ? — Tarragona? — Seville? — ValladolidJ — Burgos ? — Smolensk ? — St. Petersburg ? — Polotsk ? — Mo- hilotf? — Borodino? — Moscow ? — Lutzen ? — Bautzen ? — Katz- bach ? — Silesia ? — Dresden ? — Culm ? — Leipzig ? — Elba ? — Waterloo ? — St. Helena ? — Rugen ? — Pomerania ? — Lauen- burg ? United States of America — p. 399. What had been the situation of the United States during the late wars ? What is said of the French Directory ? — of John Adams? — of the naval victories obtained in the short war with France? What did the Americans acquire? Who first invaded this privilege? What followed? What was done by Mr, Jefferson ? Why was the embargo law repealed ? — when ? What was substituted ? What offer was made by the United States ? What was done by Napoleon's minister? — by Great Britain ? — by the United States ? What was the first object of attack? What is said of general Hull? — cap- tain Hull ? — Decatur ? What happened at Queenstown ? What was done by captain Bainbridge ? — by general Proctor and his Indian allies? — general Harrison? What American officer fell in the expedition against York ? Was it success- ful ? What forts were taken by the Americans ? What was done by the British in the Chesapeake ? What naval action is noticed? — what exploit of major Croghan? What naval victory was obtained in September, 1813? What place was taken ? What was done by general Harrison ? — colonel John- son? Why was the invasion of Canada abandoned for this season ? Where did commissioners meet to form a treaty ■* 532 QUESTIONS. What passed in Maine ? — ^at sea ? — on the northern frontier? — in Washington? — near Baltimore ? — on Lake Champlain? — at Plattsburg ? — -at New Orleans ? What is said of the treaty of peace ? From the events of this war, what have the Americans learned ? — what have other nations ? Questions to he answered from Maps. In what part of America are the United States ? What country is north of them ? How does the boundary line run? Where is Michigan territory? — Detroit? — Queens- town ? — Raisin river ? — York ? — Erie ?— Norfolk ? — Hamp- ton? — Chesapeake Bay? — .Lake Erie?. — Sandusky? — Nia- gara ? — Maine ? — Penobscot river ? — Washington city ? — Baltimore ? — Lake Champlain ?— Plattsburg ? — New Or- leans ? CHAPTER IX. TIMES OF THE RESTORATION AND LOUIS PHILIPPE. State of Europe — p. 404. What was the character of the progress of the European nations during this period ? What were the causes of the convulsions which followed ? ^ France — ^p. 405. What was the state of France at this time ? What event caused violent commotions? What laws were passed by the deputies? What was the consequence? What occurred in 1821 ? What occurred in 1822 ? When was the army sent into Spain? What was its object? How did the war terminate ? What was the expense of it ? When did Louis XVIII. die? Who succeeded him? What occurred in 1827? What event hastened a crisis ? What did the king announce to the chambers ? What followed ? AYhat was the imme- diate cause of the Revolution of the Three Days? Who suc- ceeded Charles X. ? What followed ? What was the con- dition of France in 1830 ? What were the most important acts of the assembly during its session ? What occurred in 1832 ? What successes rendered the government popular ? What occurred in March, 1834? Who succeeded marshal Soult as president of the ministry? What difficulty oc- curred? What ministerial difficulties occurred in February, 1835 ? What was the fate of the prisoners held for riot ? QUESTIONS. 533 What occurred at the anniversary of the Revolution of 1830? How did the ministry attempt to strengthen the power of the king ? What were the lirst important events of 1836 ? AVho was appointed president of the ministry ? What was the character of the new ministry ? Who suc- ceeded Thiers, and what was the policy of his ministry? Who attempted insurrection in October, and with what success ? What took place in December ? What ministerial troubles occurred in January, 1837 ? Was the chamber of deputies favorable to the government ? What events took place in the early part of 1838 ? What was the cause of the dijffi- culty between France and Switzerland ? What ministerial difficulties occurred in January, 1839 ? What was the cha- racter of the ministry formed in May ? To what measure was the king compelled to resort ? Did the new ministry satisfy expectation? What foreign trouble occurred to- wards the close of the session ? What events occurred to prevent a war ? Who was the head of the new ministry, and what was its success ? What two important events occurred in May, 1842 ? What was the state of affairs in France, after the short cahn from 1842 to 1846 ? Great Britain — p. 413. Give an account of the state of things in Great Britain from 1815 to 1820 ? What caused discontent to subside ? What conspiracy was detected? When did the queen die? What was the consequence of increasing the value of money? What events signalized the year 1826 ? When did George lY. die, and who succeeded him? What great measure was adopted by parliament in 1830 ? What were the most important acts of the first reformed parliament? What ministerial revolutions occurred ? What were the principal acts passed by parliament during the remainder of the reign of William ? When did the king die, and who succeeded him ? In what condition did the queen find her kingdom ? What measures were adopted to suppress discontent? What two associations were formed in 1808, and what were their object? Who did Victoria marry? What difficulties oc- curred soon after ? How were they settled ? When did the Melbourne ministry resign, and who was at the head of its successor ? By whom and for what purpose was the Free Church of Scotland instituted? What occurred in Ireland ? What trouble happened with the Peel ministry ? What were the most prominent events of the year 1847 ? 45' 534 QUESTIONS. Spain — p. 416. Give an account of the state of things in Spain, after the restoration of Ferdinand VII. How often was the ministry changed ? What was the cause of the rebellion during this period ? How was it prosecuted ? What were its results ? What was the state of foreign affairs ? Were the measures adopted successful ? AVhich was dominant — the liberal or the despotic party? What did the foreign ambassadors demand ? Did Spain acquiesce ? How was the war with France prosecuted ? When did Ferdinand return to his capital ? What events followed ? What did the adherents of despotism attempt? What losses did Spain sustain in 1825 and 1829? To whom was the right of succession given ? When did Ferdinand die ? Who commenced the civil war ? By whose efforts did it terminate in the queen's favor ? What state of things followed ? In what year did the queen regent resign ? Who succeeded her in her office ? Why was he driven from the country ? When ? What was the title given to the young queen, on attaining her ma- jority? What measures were adopted? What has been the condition of Spain since that time ? Questions to he ansivered from Maps. Where is Aix-la-Chapelle ? How is Algiers bounded ? Where are the Marquesas and Society Islands ? Saxe- Cobourg-Gotha? Nankin? The island of Hong Kong? Where is La Caracca? Lima? Callao? Portugal — p. 419. To what right did the new constitution give security? When were the departments of the government organized? What measures were taken to overthrow the government ? What was the conduct of the king? What happened on the 30th of April, 1834? How was the king secured from the intrigue of his opponents? When was the independence of Brazil acknowledged? To whom did Dom Pedro offer his throne? On what condition? What event occurred to prevent her accession? Who headed the insurgents? By what aid was the insurrection suppressed? What steps were taken to raise Dom Pedro to the throne? How was the scheme frustrated? How did Miguel endeavor to con- solidate his power? By whom was he declared lawful king? What was the number of prisoners confined for political causes, in 1830? What opposition did Miguel draw upon himself by his arbitrary acts? What expedition was pre- QUESTIONS. 535 paring? When did Dom Pedro land at Oporto? What happened in July, 1833? Who commanded the troops of the Miguel faction? When did Dom Miguel capitulate? To what dissensions did the death of Dom Pedro give rise? Did the appointment of Saldanha gain the favor of the masses? When did the queen's husband die? Whom did she marry ? When did the insurrection of the democrats break out? What were its principal features? What con- tributed to establish the stability of the throne? How was the overthrow of the ministry effected? Who were restored to power? What measures did they adopt? What fol- lowed? Italy— ^. 422. How was Italy divided by the congress of Vienna? What famous political society was formed? What was their ob- ject? How did they progress? How many members were added to the Carbonari in March, 1820? Did they succeed in revolutionizing Naples and Piedmont? How was the revolutionary spirit quelled? What measures were adopted in 1825? What change took place in the Papal States? How did the French revolution of 1830 affect Italy? How were the outbreaks suppressed? When did Gregory XVI. die? Who succeeded him? Germany and Prussia — p. 423. When was the German League formed? What were the objects of the confederation? What has been the condition of Germany from 1816 to the present time? What illiberal measures were taken by the diet in 1831 and 1834? Who excited a commotion in 1840, and what was the result? The Netherlands — p. 424. In what condition were the states comprising the Nether- lands, after the union? AVhat measures were adopted by the government ? When and from whom did the Nether- lands receive full possession of Sumatra? What induced the government to change its policy? How did it then act? How did the French revolution of 1830 affect the Nether- lands ? To whom did the king give the command of his army? What measure became necessary? How did the king act? What did the states-general declare? When? What was the consequence? Who appealed to the king for aid? Describe the contest? What did the provisional 'government declare? What three parties immediately ap- peared? What was the state of the country? What took 636 QUESTIONS. place at Antwerp ? Who was elected king of Belgium ? Did he accept the crown? Who then became king? What fol- lowed? What did the leading powers of Europe do in 1832? Was this satisfactory? To what did France and England agree ? Were these resolutions carried out ? When was the nationality of Belgium acknowledged? Who succeeded William upon the throne of Holland? Austria — p. 426. What occurred in Austria in 1819 ? In what assemblies did Austria possess the strongest influence? What prin- ciples were established by these assemblies? What was the character of her domestic policy? When did Francis II. die, and who succeeded him? In what measure did Austria unite with Russia and Prussia? How did Ferdinand act towards Italy? What checked his designs? Russia — p. 427. To what did Alexander direct his attention after the peace of Vienna? When did he die, and who succeeded him? Who renounced his right to the throne? What followed ? What was the result of the war with Persia ? When was war de- clared against Turkey ? How was the first campaign pro- secuted? When did hostilities recommence? How was the war prosecuted then? When was the treaty of peace signed? What revolution followed the Turkish war? What has been the course of Russia since the peace of Adrianople ? Sweden — p. 428. What are the predominant features of Swedish and Nor- wegian society? Was Charles XIV. fitted for his post? Why? What conspiracies were detected in 1823? How was their repetition prevented? What did the king of Nor- way propose to the storthing in 1823? How were the pro- posals treated? What took place in 1834? In 1840? When did Charles XIV. die, and who succeeded him ? Turkey--^. 429. What did Mahmoud VI. do in 1817 ? How was an out- break prevented ? What took place in Constantinople, in 1826? How did Mahmoud attempt to introduce reform? What was the consequence ? When did the war with Russia commence ? To what did Turkey agree at the treaty of Adrianople? What project did Mahmoud then resume? What was the cause of the war between Mahmoud and Mehemet Ali, pasha of Egypt ? Who was sent into Syria QUESTIONS. 537 with an army? What success did he meet with? Who assisted the sultan ? When were hostilities renewed ? Who succeeded Mahmoud ? When did the war with the pasha of Egypt terminate ? Where was the treaty concluded, and what were its terms? To what did the sultan direct his attention after the settlement of this difficulty ? Greece — p. 430. What was the first great event in Greece after the peace of Vienna ? When was the first attempt at rebellion made? How did the Turks act after its suppression? How was the war prosecuted ? What took place in January, 1822 ? What took place at Scio? In Cara Veria? NearNapoli? Upon what did the sultan resolve ? Was his army success- ful ? What took place on the 20th of August ? How was the war prosecuted on the main land ? When was Missi- longhi taken ? Did the sultan accept the mediation of the three great powers ? Where, and by whom, was the Turkish and Egyptian fleet annihilated ? What occurred in 1828 ? In the next year? When was the independence of Greece secured? Who was chosen king? Who accepted the crown ? What took place in 1843 ? Have the hopes of the friends of Greece been realized? TTie United States of America — p. 432. Who was the fifth president of the United States ? When was he inaugurated? What treaties were concluded in 1824 ? Who was the sixth president of the United States ? What treaties were concluded under his administration? What two ex-presidents died on the 4th of July, 1826? Who was the seventh president of the Union ? What bill was the subject of violent discussions? What took place in South Carolina ? How was civil war prevented ? What jiew source of contention arose? How did the president act? What caused the Seminole war? What followed from the abolition of the national bank? Who was the eighth president of the Union? What new Indian war occurred, and how did it result ? What was the result of the Texan war ? What occurred in the first year of Van Buren's inauguration? What took place on the Canada border? What difficulty occurred with Great Britain? Who succeeded Martin Van Buren as president of the Union? .What was the consequence? When did general Harrison die, and who succeeded him? What course did president Tyler pursue towards the United vStates Bank bill ? What was the consequence ? When, and by whom was the Maine 538 QUESTIONS. boundary question settled? Who was the eleventh presi- dent of the Union? When was Texas annexed to the United States ? How and when was the Oregon question settled ? How was the annexation of Texas regarded by Mexico ? Who was ordered into Texas ? AVhen was he ordered to move to the Rio Grande ? How did hostilities commence? What took place on the 8th and 9th of May? When was the siege of Monterey commenced and ended ? When was the battle of Buena Vista fought, and what was the result? Who conducted expeditions against New Mexico and California ? With Avhat success ? AVhen did general Scott land at Vera Cruz ? When did the city and castle surrender? When was the battle of Cerro (jordo fought ? What was the result ? When did the Americans reach San Augustin ? What fortresses were taken ? When was Molino del Rey stormed? Chapultepec? Describe the taking of the city of Mexico ? How long did the siege of Puebla last ? What battle concluded the war ? Mexico and Central America — p. 436. How long did the Mexicans struggle for independence ? Who assumed the title of emperor Augustin I. ? How long did he reign ? What kind of a government was then esta- blished ? Who was the first president ? What occurred in 1828 ? What did Spain attempt, and how was she frus- trated ? What followed ? Who was chosen vice-president by the army ? Where did revolts occur ? Who led them ? When did he become president ? What was the cause of insurrections, and what was the consequence? Who re- gained power after the battle of San Jacinto ? What was the result of his policy ? What took place in November, 1838 ? How was the dispute settled ? What has been the condition of Mexico since that treaty ? When was the in- dependence of Guatamala declared? When was the govern- ment organized? Who was the first president? What distinguished his administration? What took place in 1829 ? In 1838 ? In 1842 ? What has been the condition of the country since the death of Morazon ? South Ameinca — p. 437. When did the first congress of Colombia meet, and what did they decide upon ? How was the war with Spain con- ducted? What took place in 1824? Who revolted? What took place in March, 1828 ? What course did Bolivar then pursue? What event caused the resignation of Bolivar? What took place in the same year? When was Peru de- QUESTIONS. 539 clared independent ? When did the congress meet ? Did the constitution give satisfaction ? What took place in 1823 ? When was the independence of Peru secured? What caused the war with Colombia? When was peace con- cluded? Who became president, and when was he over- thrown ? When was tne war with Bolivia concluded ? What was the condition of Bolivia under Santa Cruz ? What caused his overthrow? What occurred in Brazil in 1822? Who was named constitutional emperor? How did he govern? What was the character of the constitution of 1824? When was the independence of Brazil acknow- ledged? What followed? What occurred in 1831 ? When was the independence of La Plata acknowledged by the United States? How long did the civil war continue? Who was called to the presidency? When was the independence of Chili secured? What was the state of things in that republic after that event ? When was the new constitution adopted ? What were the principal events since that time? CHAPTER X. TIMES or THE CONTINENTAL REVOLUTIONS. France — p. 440. How did the democrats strive to bring things to a crisis? How did the government endeavor to prevent an outbreak? What took place on the night of the 22d of February ? On the 24th? AVho were the members of the provisional go- vernment? What were their first acts? When was order restored? Who were appointed as an executive committee? What occurred on the 15th of May ? On the 23d of June? Who was appointed commander-in-chief of the army? What was the result of the struggle? When was the constitution proclaimed? AVho was elected president? What caused numerous riots? What conspiracy was discovered? Great Britain — p. 442. In what state were things in Ireland in 1848 ? How was the distress partially relieved? What took place in India? What were the most important subsequent measures of the British government? Itahj — p. 443. When did the insurrection in Italy occur ? How did it succeed ? How did the French interfere ? What measures 540 QUESTIONS. were adopted by the Constituent Assembly ? When did the siege of Rome commence? Describe its prosecution. When did the French enter Rome ? What took place after- wards ? Germany and Prussia — p. 444. How did the French revolution of 1848 affect Germany ? What occurred in Bavaria ? In Prussia ? At Frankfort ? In Belgium and Holland? / Austria — p. 444. What occurred at Vienna after the French revolution? What occurred in Italy in May, 1848? In Hungary? Describe the progress of the Hungarian war. What has been the course of Austria since the rebellion ? Russia aiid Turkey — ^p. 445. What was the course of Russia during the revolution of 1848? How did the sultan of Turkey treat the Hungarian refugees ? The United States — ^p. 445. When was the treaty between the United States and Mexico concluded ? What were its terms ? Who was elected president in November of the year 1848 ? What occurred in California? What pestilence visited the country in 1849? What threatened a dismemberment of the Union ? What measure was proposed for the adjustment of the difficulty? How was it discussed, and what was its fate ? When did president Taylor die? Who succeeded him? What fol- lowed ? THE END. a 7 8 M I y "^ ^:' o ■ ,\\ ^ J V, '^ O 0^ y <- ' 4^ i- A >:^. '"\ J- r "oo^ -.^^''^^ ,x< s ' <■ / ■^ -J s " -^^ ff C' -' V--. x^^^ vV ■ \ A' ^ V x^ '-^^ ■.V V O 0^ Kj .0^ <*-^ * ^^ ^'/ > ,0> '., V. X^ ,# -^^ \^ % '^^ f Deacidified using the Bookkeeper process. Neutralizing agent: Magnesium Oxide ^/ J u Treatment Date: WAY 2002 '^'^ PreservationTechnologies •^ Q,"^' A WORLD LEADER IN PAPER PRESERVATION .-, ^ 111 Thomson Park Drive \ y<. . .^ , ■ - v^ 'Z Cranberry Township. PA 16066 .- ''%>^0^^ -^ X^'' ' (724)779-2111 "v ^■ 7. - ^ ">^ •>'^ - .X .\V •/*. Z * .'t5 <:' - X-